This is a modern-English version of Creative Evolution, originally written by Bergson, Henri.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
Transcibers note..The greek contained herein has been transcribed as faithfully as browser limitations allow.
Transcriber's note: The Greek text here has been recorded as accurately as browser limitations permit.
CREATIVE EVOLUTION
BY HENRI BERGSON
MEMBER OF THE INSTITUTE PROFESSOR AT THE COLLEGE DE FRANCE
AUTHORIZED TRANSLATION BY
ARTHUR MITCHELL, Doctorate
NEW YORK HENRY HOLT AND COMPANY 1911
NEW YORK HENRY HOLT AND COMPANY 1911
Copyright, 1911,
by
HENRY HOLT AND COMPANY
CAMELOT PRESS, 18-20 OAK STREET, NEW YORK
[Pg v]
Copyright, 1911,
by
HENRY HOLT AND COMPANY
CAMELOT PRESS, 18-20 OAK STREET, NEW YORK
[Pg v]
TRANSLATOR'S NOTE
In the writing of this English translation of Professor Bergson's most important work, I was helped by the friendly interest of Professor William James, to whom I owe the illumination of much that was dark to me as well as the happy rendering of certain words and phrases for which an English equivalent was difficult to find. His sympathetic appreciation of Professor Bergson's thought is well known, and he has expressed his admiration for it in one of the chapters of A Pluralistic Universe. It was his intention, had he lived to see the completion of this translation, himself to introduce it to English readers in a prefatory note.
In creating this English translation of Professor Bergson's most important work, I was supported by the kind interest of Professor William James, who helped clarify many things that were unclear to me and provided a great way to express certain words and phrases for which finding an English equivalent was challenging. His appreciation for Professor Bergson's ideas is widely recognized, and he shared his admiration in one of the chapters of A Pluralistic Universe. He intended, had he lived to see this translation finished, to introduce it to English readers with a preface.
I wish to thank my friend, Dr. George Clarke Cox, for many valuable suggestions.
I want to thank my friend, Dr. George Clarke Cox, for all the helpful suggestions.
I have endeavored to follow the text as closely as possible, and at the same time to preserve the living union of diction and thought. Professor Bergson has himself carefully revised the whole work. We both of us wish to acknowledge the great assistance of Miss Millicent Murby. She has kindly studied the translation phrase by phrase, weighing each word, and her revision has resulted in many improvements.
I have tried to stick as closely to the text as I can, while also keeping the connection between the words and ideas intact. Professor Bergson has thoroughly reviewed the entire work himself. We both want to express our gratitude to Miss Millicent Murby. She has generously examined the translation word by word, considering each term, and her edits have led to many enhancements.
But above all we must express our acknowledgment to Mr. H. Wildon Carr, the Honorary Secretary of the[Pg vi] Aristotelian Society of London, and the writer of several studies of "Evolution Creatrice."[1] We asked him to be kind enough to revise the proofs of our work. He has done much more than revise them: they have come from his hands with his personal mark in many places. We cannot express all that the present work owes to him.
But most importantly, we want to acknowledge Mr. H. Wildon Carr, the Honorary Secretary of the[Pg vi] Aristotelian Society of London, and the author of several studies on "Evolution Creatrice."[1] We asked him to kindly review the proofs of our work. He has done much more than just review them; they have come back from him with his personal touch in many places. We can't fully express how much this work owes to him.
ARTHUR MITCHELL
ARTHUR MITCHELL
Harvard University
Harvard University
CONTENTS
Intro
CHAPTER I
PAGE | ||
The Evolution of Life—Mechanism and Purpose | ||
Of duration in general—Unorganized bodies and abstract time—Organized bodies and real duration—Individuality and the process of growing old | 1 | |
Of transformism and the different ways of interpreting it—Radical mechanism and real duration: the relation of biology to physics and chemistry—Radical finalism and real duration: the relation of biology to philosophy | 23 | |
The quest of a criterion—Examination of the various theories with regard to a particular example—Darwin and insensible variation—De Vries and sudden variation—Eimer and orthogenesis—Neo-Lamarckism and the hereditability of acquired characters | 59 | |
Result of the inquiry—The vital impetus | 87 |
CHAPTER II
The Different Paths of Life's Evolution—Torpor, Intelligence, Instinct | ||
General idea of the evolutionary process—Growth—Divergent and complementary tendencies—The meaning of progress and of adaptation | 98 | |
The relation of the animal to the plant—General tendency of animal life—The development of animal life | 105 | |
The main directions of the evolution of life: torpor, intelligence, instinct | 135 | |
The nature of the intellect | 151 | |
The nature of instinct | 165 | |
Life and consciousness—The apparent place of man in nature | 176 |
CHAPTER III
On the Meaning of Life—The Order of Nature and the Nature of Intelligence | ||
Relation of the problem of life to the problem of knowledge—The method of philosophy—Apparent vicious circle of the method proposed—Real vicious circle of the opposite method | 186 | |
Simultaneous genesis of matter and intelligence—Geometry inherent in matter—Geometrical tendency of the intellect—Geometry and deduction—Geometry and induction—Physical laws | 199 | |
Sketch of a theory of knowledge based on the analysis of the idea of Disorder—Two opposed forms of order: the problem of genera and the problem of laws—The idea of "disorder" an oscillation of the intellect between the two kinds of order | 220 | |
Creation and evolution—Ideal genesis of matter—The origin and function of life—The essential and the accidental in the vital process and in the evolutionary movement—Mankind—The life of the body and the life of the spirit | 236 |
CHAPTER IV
The Filmmaking Process of Thought and the Mechanical Illusion—A Look at the History of Systems—True Development and Misleading Evolutionism | ||
Sketch of a criticism of philosophical systems, based on the analysis of the idea of Immutability and of the idea of "Nothing"—Relation of metaphysical problems to the idea of "Nothing"—Real meaning of this idea | 272 | |
Form and Becoming | 298 | |
The philosophy of Forms and its conception of Becoming—Plato and Aristotle—The natural trend of the intellect | 304 | |
Becoming in modern science: two views of Time | 329 | |
The metaphysical interpretation of modern science: Descartes, Spinoza, Leibniz | 345 | |
The Criticism of Kant | 356 | |
The evolutionism of Spencer | 363 |
INDEX
INTRODUCTION
The history of the evolution of life, incomplete as it yet is, already reveals to us how the intellect has been formed, by an uninterrupted progress, along a line which ascends through the vertebrate series up to man. It shows us in the faculty of understanding an appendage of the faculty of acting, a more and more precise, more and more complex and supple adaptation of the consciousness of living beings to the conditions of existence that are made for them. Hence should result this consequence that our intellect, in the narrow sense of the word, is intended to secure the perfect fitting of our body to its environment, to represent the relations of external things among themselves—in short, to think matter. Such will indeed be one of the conclusions of the present essay. We shall see that the human intellect feels at home among inanimate objects, more especially among solids, where our action finds its fulcrum and our industry its tools; that our concepts have been formed on the model of solids; that our logic is, pre-eminently, the logic of solids; that, consequently, our intellect triumphs in geometry, wherein is revealed the kinship of logical thought with unorganized matter, and where the intellect has only to follow its natural movement, after the lightest possible contact with experience, in order to go from discovery to discovery, sure that experience is following behind it and will justify it invariably.
The history of the evolution of life, though still incomplete, shows us how the intellect has developed through a steady progression, moving from simpler vertebrates up to humans. It illustrates that our ability to understand is closely linked to our ability to act, representing an increasingly precise and flexible adaptation of living beings' consciousness to their environments. Therefore, it follows that our intellect, in its most specific sense, is meant to ensure our bodies fit perfectly into their surroundings, to represent the relationships between external things—essentially, to think about matter. This will be one of the conclusions of this essay. We will see that the human intellect feels comfortable among inanimate objects, especially solids, where our actions find their leverage and our tools are found; that our concepts have been shaped based on solids; that our logic primarily reflects the logic of solids; and that, as a result, our intellect excels in geometry, revealing the connection between logical thought and unorganized matter, where the intellect can proceed from one discovery to another, confidently knowing that experience will always support it.
But from this it must also follow that our thought, in its purely logical form, is incapable of presenting the true nature of life, the full meaning of the evolutionary[Pg x] movement. Created by life, in definite circumstances, to act on definite things, how can it embrace life, of which it is only an emanation or an aspect? Deposited by the evolutionary movement in the course of its way, how can it be applied to the evolutionary movement itself? As well contend that the part is equal to the whole, that the effect can reabsorb its cause, or that the pebble left on the beach displays the form of the wave that brought it there. In fact, we do indeed feel that not one of the categories of our thought—unity, multiplicity, mechanical causality, intelligent finality, etc.—applies exactly to the things of life: who can say where individuality begins and ends, whether the living being is one or many, whether it is the cells which associate themselves into the organism or the organism which dissociates itself into cells? In vain we force the living into this or that one of our molds. All the molds crack. They are too narrow, above all too rigid, for what we try to put into them. Our reasoning, so sure of itself among things inert, feels ill at ease on this new ground. It would be difficult to cite a biological discovery due to pure reasoning. And most often, when experience has finally shown us how life goes to work to obtain a certain result, we find its way of working is just that of which we should never have thought.
But from this, it must also follow that our thinking, in its purely logical form, can’t truly capture the essence of life or the full meaning of the evolutionary movement. Created by life, under specific circumstances, to act on particular things, how can it fully encompass life, of which it is merely a reflection or an aspect? Established by the evolutionary movement along its path, how can it be applied to the movement itself? It’s like arguing that the part is equal to the whole, that the effect can absorb its cause, or that the pebble left on the beach shows the shape of the wave that brought it there. In reality, we feel that none of our thinking categories—unity, multiplicity, mechanical causality, intelligent finality, etc.—fit perfectly with the aspects of life: who can determine where individuality begins and ends, whether a living being is one or many, whether it’s the cells that come together to form an organism or the organism that breaks apart into cells? We struggle to fit the living into any of our molds. All the molds break. They are too narrow and, most importantly, too rigid for what we attempt to place in them. Our reasoning, so confident among inanimate things, feels uncomfortable in this new territory. It would be hard to point out a biological discovery that stemmed purely from reasoning. Most of the time, when experience finally reveals how life operates to achieve a certain outcome, we find that its methods are exactly those we would never have imagined.
Yet evolutionist philosophy does not hesitate to extend to the things of life the same methods of explanation which have succeeded in the case of unorganized matter. It begins by showing us in the intellect a local effect of evolution, a flame, perhaps accidental, which lights up the coming and going of living beings in the narrow passage open to their action; and lo! forgetting what it has just told us, it makes of this lantern glimmering in a tunnel a Sun which can illuminate the world. Boldly it proceeds, with the powers of conceptual thought alone, to the ideal[Pg xi] reconstruction of all things, even of life. True, it hurtles in its course against such formidable difficulties, it sees its logic end in such strange contradictions, that it very speedily renounces its first ambition. "It is no longer reality itself," it says, "that it will reconstruct, but only an imitation of the real, or rather a symbolical image; the essence of things escapes us, and will escape us always; we move among relations; the absolute is not in our province; we are brought to a stand before the Unknowable."—But for the human intellect, after too much pride, this is really an excess of humility. If the intellectual form of the living being has been gradually modeled on the reciprocal actions and reactions of certain bodies and their material environment, how should it not reveal to us something of the very essence of which these bodies are made? Action cannot move in the unreal. A mind born to speculate or to dream, I admit, might remain outside reality, might deform or transform the real, perhaps even create it—as we create the figures of men and animals that our imagination cuts out of the passing cloud. But an intellect bent upon the act to be performed and the reaction to follow, feeling its object so as to get its mobile impression at every instant, is an intellect that touches something of the absolute. Would the idea ever have occurred to us to doubt this absolute value of our knowledge if philosophy had not shown us what contradictions our speculation meets, what dead-locks it ends in? But these difficulties and contradictions all arise from trying to apply the usual forms of our thought to objects with which our industry has nothing to do, and for which, therefore, our molds are not made. Intellectual knowledge, in so far as it relates to a certain aspect of inert matter, ought, on the contrary, to give us a faithful imprint of it, having been stereotyped on this particular object. It becomes relative[Pg xii] only if it claims, such as it is, to present to us life—that is to say, the maker of the stereotype-plate.
Yet evolutionary philosophy confidently applies the same methods of explanation to the complexities of life that have worked for unorganized matter. It starts by showing us that evolution has a specific effect on the intellect, a spark—perhaps coincidental—that highlights the rise and fall of living beings in the narrow realm of their actions; and suddenly, forgetting what it just explained, it turns this flickering light in a tunnel into a Sun that can illuminate the entire world. It boldly forges ahead, using conceptual thought alone, to idealize the reconstruction of everything, even life itself. True, it confronts significant challenges, and its logic leads to bizarre contradictions, causing it to quickly abandon its initial ambition. "It's no longer reality itself," it claims, "that we will reconstruct, but only a replica of the real, or more accurately, a symbolic image; the essence of things eludes us, and will always elude us; we navigate within relationships; the absolute is beyond our reach; we find ourselves stopped by the Unknowable."—But for human intellect, after excessive pride, this is really an overreach of humility. If the intellectual form of a living being has been gradually shaped by the reciprocal actions and reactions of certain bodies and their material surroundings, how could it not reveal to us something of the very essence from which these bodies are made? Action cannot exist in the unreal. A mind designed for speculation or dreaming might remain outside of reality, distorting or transforming it, perhaps even creating it—as we shape the figures of people and animals that our imagination carves from passing clouds. But an intellect focused on action and the resulting reaction, grasping its subject to capture its ever-changing impression in each moment, is an intellect that connects with something absolute. Would we ever have even considered doubting this absolute value of our knowledge if philosophy hadn’t pointed out the contradictions our speculation encounters, the dead ends it reaches? Yet these difficulties and contradictions arise solely from attempting to apply our usual thought patterns to objects that our activities have nothing to do with, and for which, therefore, our molds are unsuitable. Intellectual knowledge, as it pertains to a specific aspect of inert matter, should instead provide us with a true representation of it, having been imprinted directly from this particular object. It only becomes relative if it presumes to present life to us, that is to say, the creator of the stereotype plate.
Must we then give up fathoming the depths of life? Must we keep to that mechanistic idea of it which the understanding will always give us—an idea necessarily artificial and symbolical, since it makes the total activity of life shrink to the form of a certain human activity which is only a partial and local manifestation of life, a result or by-product of the vital process? We should have to do so, indeed, if life had employed all the psychical potentialities it possesses in producing pure understandings—that is to say, in making geometricians. But the line of evolution that ends in man is not the only one. On other paths, divergent from it, other forms of consciousness have been developed, which have not been able to free themselves from external constraints or to regain control over themselves, as the human intellect has done, but which, none the less, also express something that is immanent and essential in the evolutionary movement. Suppose these other forms of consciousness brought together and amalgamated with intellect: would not the result be a consciousness as wide as life? And such a consciousness, turning around suddenly against the push of life which it feels behind, would have a vision of life complete—would it not?—even though the vision were fleeting.
Must we then stop trying to understand the depths of life? Must we stick to that mechanical view of it that our minds will always give us—an idea that is inherently artificial and symbolic, since it reduces the entire activity of life to just one type of human activity, which is merely a partial and localized expression of life, a result or by-product of the vital process? We would have to accept that, indeed, if life had used all of its mental potential to produce pure understandings—that is, to create geometricians. But the evolutionary path that leads to humans isn't the only one. On different paths, diverging from it, other forms of consciousness have developed, which haven’t been able to break free from external limitations or regain control over themselves, like the human intellect has done, but which still express something inherent and essential in the evolutionary process. If we were to combine these other forms of consciousness with intellect, wouldn’t the outcome be a consciousness as vast as life itself? And such a consciousness, suddenly reacting against the push of life it senses behind it, would have a complete vision of life—wouldn’t it?—even if that vision were just fleeting.
It will be said that, even so, we do not transcend our intellect, for it is still with our intellect, and through our intellect, that we see the other forms of consciousness. And this would be right if we were pure intellects, if there did not remain, around our conceptual and logical thought, a vague nebulosity, made of the very substance out of which has been formed the luminous nucleus that we call the intellect. Therein reside certain powers that are[Pg xiii] complementary to the understanding, powers of which we have only an indistinct feeling when we remain shut up in ourselves, but which will become clear and distinct when they perceive themselves at work, so to speak, in the evolution of nature. They will thus learn what sort of effort they must make to be intensified and expanded in the very direction of life.
It can be argued that we don't go beyond our intellect, since it is still through our intellect that we experience other forms of consciousness. This would be true if we were purely intellectual beings, if there wasn't a vague, nebulous quality surrounding our logical thinking, made of the same essence as the bright core we call intellect. Within this nebulosity lie certain abilities that are[Pg xiii] complementary to understanding—abilities we can only vaguely sense when we're focused inward, but which become clear and defined when they perceive themselves in action during the process of nature. They will then discover what kind of effort is needed to enhance and expand themselves in the direction of life.
This amounts to saying that theory of knowledge and theory of life seem to us inseparable. A theory of life that is not accompanied by a criticism of knowledge is obliged to accept, as they stand, the concepts which the understanding puts at its disposal: it can but enclose the facts, willing or not, in pre-existing frames which it regards as ultimate. It thus obtains a symbolism which is convenient, perhaps even necessary to positive science, but not a direct vision of its object. On the other hand, a theory of knowledge which does not replace the intellect in the general evolution of life will teach us neither how the frames of knowledge have been constructed nor how we can enlarge or go beyond them. It is necessary that these two inquiries, theory of knowledge and theory of life, should join each other, and, by a circular process, push each other on unceasingly.
This basically means that the theory of knowledge and theory of life seem inseparable to us. A theory of life that doesn’t include a critique of knowledge has to accept the concepts provided by our understanding as they are; it can only fit the facts into existing frameworks it views as ultimate. This results in a symbolism that, while convenient and perhaps even necessary for positive science, doesn't offer a direct understanding of its subject. On the flip side, a theory of knowledge that doesn’t consider the intellect within the broader evolution of life won’t help us learn how the structures of knowledge were formed or how we can expand or transcend them. It’s essential for these two areas of inquiry, theory of knowledge and theory of life, to connect and continually push each other forward in a circular process.
Together, they may solve by a method more sure, brought nearer to experience, the great problems that philosophy poses. For, if they should succeed in their common enterprise, they would show us the formation of the intellect, and thereby the genesis of that matter of which our intellect traces the general configuration. They would dig to the very root of nature and of mind. They would substitute for the false evolutionism of Spencer—which consists in cutting up present reality, already evolved, into little bits no less evolved, and then recomposing it[Pg xiv] with these fragments, thus positing in advance everything that is to be explained—a true evolutionism, in which reality would be followed in its generation and its growth.
Together, they might find a more reliable method, closer to real experience, to tackle the major issues that philosophy presents. If they succeed in their joint effort, they would reveal how the mind develops, and in turn, how we understand the material that shapes our thoughts. They would explore the very root of nature and the mind. They would replace Spencer's flawed evolutionism—which breaks down current reality, which is already developed, into smaller evolved parts and then reassemble it[Pg xiv] with these pieces, thereby assuming from the start what needs to be explained—with a genuine evolutionism that follows reality in its formation and growth.
But a philosophy of this kind will not be made in a day. Unlike the philosophical systems properly so called, each of which was the individual work of a man of genius and sprang up as a whole, to be taken or left, it will only be built up by the collective and progressive effort of many thinkers, of many observers also, completing, correcting and improving one another. So the present essay does not aim at resolving at once the greatest problems. It simply desires to define the method and to permit a glimpse, on some essential points, of the possibility of its application.
But a philosophy like this won’t be created overnight. Unlike the formal philosophical systems, each of which was the unique work of a brilliant individual and emerged fully formed, this one will be developed through the collective and ongoing efforts of many thinkers and observers, who will complete, correct, and enhance one another’s ideas. So, this essay doesn't aim to solve the biggest problems all at once. It just seeks to outline the method and offer a glimpse, on some key points, of the potential for its application.
Its plan is traced by the subject itself. In the first chapter, we try on the evolutionary progress the two ready-made garments that our understanding puts at our disposal, mechanism and finality;[2] we show that they do not fit, neither the one nor the other, but that one of them might be recut and resewn, and in this new form fit less badly than the other. In order to transcend the point of view of the understanding, we try, in our second chapter, to reconstruct the main lines of evolution along which life[Pg xv] has traveled by the side of that which has led to the human intellect. The intellect is thus brought back to its generating cause, which we then have to grasp in itself and follow in its movement. It is an effort of this kind that we attempt—incompletely indeed—in our third chapter. A fourth and last part is meant to show how our understanding itself, by submitting to a certain discipline, might prepare a philosophy which transcends it. For that, a glance over the history of systems became necessary, together with an analysis of the two great illusions to which, as soon as it speculates on reality in general, the human understanding is exposed.
Its plan is outlined by the topic itself. In the first chapter, we try on the evolutionary progress the two ready-made outfits that our understanding provides, mechanism and purpose; [2] we demonstrate that neither fits well, but one of them could be altered and fitted in a way that makes it slightly better than the other. To move beyond the viewpoint of understanding, we attempt, in our second chapter, to reconstruct the main pathways of evolution that life[Pg xv] has taken alongside the development of the human intellect. The intellect is thus returned to its origin, which we then need to understand in itself and track in its movement. It is this kind of effort that we endeavor—in a limited way, to be sure—in our third chapter. A fourth and final part aims to show how our understanding itself, by adhering to a specific discipline, could lay the groundwork for a philosophy that goes beyond it. For this, an overview of the history of systems and an analysis of the two major misconceptions that human understanding faces as soon as it starts speculating on reality in general have become necessary.
FOOTNOTES:
[2] The idea of regarding life as transcending teleology as well as mechanism is far from being a new idea. Notably in three articles by Ch. Dunan on "Le problème de la vie" (Revue philosophique, 1892) it is profoundly treated. In the development of this idea, we agree with Ch. Dunan on more than one point. But the views we are presenting on this matter, as on the questions attaching to it, are those that we expressed long ago in our Essai sur les données immédiates de la conscience (Paris, 1889). One of the principal objects of that essay was, in fact, to show that the psychical life is neither unity nor multiplicity, that it transcends both the mechanical and the intellectual, mechanism and finalism having meaning only where there is "distinct multiplicity," "spatiality," and consequently assemblage of pre-existing parts: "real duration" signifies both undivided continuity and creation. In the present work we apply these same ideas to life in general, regarded, moreover, itself from the psychological point of view.
[2] The idea of seeing life as going beyond purpose and mechanics isn't a new concept. It’s explored in depth in three articles by Ch. Dunan on "Le problème de la vie" (Revue philosophique, 1892). We agree with Ch. Dunan on several points regarding this idea. However, the views we’re presenting on this topic and the related questions are those we articulated long ago in our Essai sur les données immédiates de la conscience (Paris, 1889). One of the main goals of that essay was to demonstrate that psychic life is neither a single entity nor merely a collection of parts; it goes beyond both the mechanical and the intellectual. Mechanism and purpose only make sense in contexts with "distinct multiplicity," "spatiality," and thus the combination of pre-existing parts: "real duration" represents both continuous unity and creation. In this current work, we apply these same ideas to life in general, viewed from a psychological perspective.
CHAPTER I
THE EVOLUTION OF LIFE—MECHANISM AND TELEOLOGY
THE EVOLUTION OF LIFE—MECHANISM AND PURPOSE
The existence of which we are most assured and which we know best is[Pg 1] unquestionably our own, for of every other object we have notions which may be considered external and superficial, whereas, of ourselves, our perception is internal and profound. What, then, do we find? In this privileged case, what is the precise meaning of the word "exist"? Let us recall here briefly the conclusions of an earlier work.
The thing we are most certain of and know best is[Pg 1] undeniably ourselves, because for every other thing, we have ideas that can be seen as external and shallow, while our understanding of ourselves is internal and deep. So, what do we discover? In this unique situation, what exactly does the word "exist" mean? Let’s quickly review the conclusions from a previous work.
I find, first of all, that I pass from state to state. I am warm or cold, I am merry or sad, I work or I do nothing, I look at what is around me or I think of something else. Sensations, feelings, volitions, ideas—such are the changes into which my existence is divided and which color it in turns. I change, then, without ceasing. But this is not saying enough. Change is far more radical than we are at first inclined to suppose.
I realize, first of all, that I move from one state to another. I can be warm or cold, happy or sad, busy or doing nothing, focused on my surroundings or lost in thought. Sensations, feelings, wills, ideas—these are the shifts that define my existence and give it various colors. I am constantly changing. But that's not the whole story. Change is much more fundamental than we initially think.
For I speak of each of my states as if it formed a block and were a separate whole. I say indeed that I change, but the change seems to me to reside in the passage from one state to the next: of each state, taken separately, I am apt to think that it remains the same during all the time that it prevails. Nevertheless, a slight effort of attention would reveal to me that there is no feeling, no idea, no volition which is not undergoing change every moment: if a mental state ceased to vary, its duration[Pg 2] would cease to flow. Let us take the most stable of internal states, the visual perception of a motionless external object. The object may remain the same, I may look at it from the same side, at the same angle, in the same light; nevertheless the vision I now have of it differs from that which I have just had, even if only because the one is an instant older than the other. My memory is there, which conveys something of the past into the present. My mental state, as it advances on the road of time, is continually swelling with the duration which it accumulates: it goes on increasing—rolling upon itself, as a snowball on the snow. Still more is this the case with states more deeply internal, such as sensations, feelings, desires, etc., which do not correspond, like a simple visual perception, to an unvarying external object. But it is expedient to disregard this uninterrupted change, and to notice it only when it becomes sufficient to impress a new attitude on the body, a new direction on the attention. Then, and then only, we find that our state has changed. The truth is that we change without ceasing, and that the state itself is nothing but change.
I describe each of my mental states as if it forms a solid block and is a separate entity. I do admit that I change, but it feels to me like the change happens in the transition from one state to the next: when I think of each state on its own, I tend to believe it stays the same for as long as it lasts. However, a bit of focused attention would show me that there’s no feeling, idea, or decision that isn’t changing every moment: if a mental state stopped evolving, its duration would stop flowing. Take, for example, the most stable internal state, the visual perception of a still external object. The object might stay the same, I might view it from the same side, angle, and light; yet the vision I have of it now is different from the vision I just had, even if only because one is a moment older than the other. My memory is involved, bringing some aspect of the past into the present. As my mental state moves through time, it keeps accumulating duration: it continues to grow—like a snowball rolling through the snow. This is even more true for deeper internal states, like sensations, emotions, desires, etc., which don’t relate, like a simple visual perception, to a constant external object. But it’s easier to ignore this constant change and only pay attention to it when it’s significant enough to prompt a new stance in the body or a shift in focus. It’s then that we recognize our state has changed. The reality is that we are always changing, and the state itself is nothing but change.
This amounts to saying that there is no essential difference between passing from one state to another and persisting in the same state. If the state which "remains the same" is more varied than we think, on the other hand the passing from one state to another resembles, more than we imagine, a single state being prolonged; the transition is continuous. But, just because we close our eyes to the unceasing variation of every psychical state, we are obliged, when the change has become so considerable as to force itself on our attention, to speak as if a new state were placed alongside the previous one. Of this new state we assume that it remains unvarying in its turn, and so on endlessly. The apparent discontinuity of the psychical[Pg 3] life is then due to our attention being fixed on it by a series of separate acts: actually there is only a gentle slope; but in following the broken line of our acts of attention, we think we perceive separate steps. True, our psychic life is full of the unforeseen. A thousand incidents arise, which seem to be cut off from those which precede them, and to be disconnected from those which follow. Discontinuous though they appear, however, in point of fact they stand out against the continuity of a background on which they are designed, and to which indeed they owe the intervals that separate them; they are the beats of the drum which break forth here and there in the symphony. Our attention fixes on them because they interest it more, but each of them is borne by the fluid mass of our whole psychical existence. Each is only the best illuminated point of a moving zone which comprises all that we feel or think or will—all, in short, that we are at any given moment. It is this entire zone which in reality makes up our state. Now, states thus defined cannot be regarded as distinct elements. They continue each other in an endless flow.
This means that there's no fundamental difference between moving from one state to another and staying in the same state. If the state that "stays the same" is more varied than we realize, then transitioning from one state to another actually resembles extending a single state much more than we think; the change is continuous. However, since we often ignore the constant shifts in every mental state, when the change becomes significant enough to grab our attention, we talk as if a new state has appeared alongside the old one. We assume that this new state stays unchanged in its turn, and this continues indefinitely. The apparent breaks in psychological life come from our focus being drawn to it through a series of separate moments: in reality, there's only a gentle slope; but by following the uneven line of our focused moments, we believe we see distinct steps. True, our mental life is full of surprises. Countless events occur that seem disconnected from those that came before and after. While they may seem discontinuous, in fact, they stand out against the constant background from which they emerge, and to which they owe the gaps that separate them; they are the beats of a drum that pop up here and there in the symphony. We pay attention to them because they catch our interest more, but each of them is carried by the fluid mass of our entire mental existence. Each is just the most illuminated point in a shifting area that includes all that we feel, think, or want—all that we are at any given moment. This entire area is what actually constitutes our state. Now, states defined this way cannot be seen as separate elements. They flow into one another endlessly.
But, as our attention has distinguished and separated them artificially, it is obliged next to reunite them by an artificial bond. It imagines, therefore, a formless ego, indifferent and unchangeable, on which it threads the psychic states which it has set up as independent entities. Instead of a flux of fleeting shades merging into each other, it perceives distinct and, so to speak, solid colors, set side by side like the beads of a necklace; it must perforce then suppose a thread, also itself solid, to hold the beads together. But if this colorless substratum is perpetually colored by that which covers it, it is for us, in its indeterminateness, as if it did not exist, since we only perceive what is colored, or, in other words,[Pg 4] psychic states. As a matter of fact, this substratum has no reality; it is merely a symbol intended to recall unceasingly to our consciousness the artificial character of the process by which the attention places clean-cut states side by side, where actually there is a continuity which unfolds. If our existence were composed of separate states with an impassive ego to unite them, for us there would be no duration. For an ego which does not change does not endure, and a psychic state which remains the same so long as it is not replaced by the following state does not endure either. Vain, therefore, is the attempt to range such states beside each other on the ego supposed to sustain them: never can these solids strung upon a solid make up that duration which flows. What we actually obtain in this way is an artificial imitation of the internal life, a static equivalent which will lend itself better to the requirements of logic and language, just because we have eliminated from it the element of real time. But, as regards the psychical life unfolding beneath the symbols which conceal it, we readily perceive that time is just the stuff it is made of.
But as our attention has artificially distinguished and separated them, it is then forced to bring them back together with an artificial connection. It imagines, therefore, a formless ego, indifferent and unchanging, onto which it threads the mental states it has set up as independent entities. Instead of a flow of fleeting shades blending into one another, it sees distinct and, so to speak, solid colors, placed side by side like beads on a necklace; it then has to assume a thread, also solid, to hold the beads together. However, if this colorless underlying substance is constantly colored by what covers it, for us, in its ambiguity, it seems as if it doesn’t exist, since we only perceive what is colored, or, in other words, [Pg 4] psychic states. In fact, this underlying substance has no reality; it is merely a symbol meant to continually remind us of the artificial nature of the process that the attention uses to line up clear-cut states beside each other, where in reality, there is a continuous unfolding. If our existence were made up of separate states with an unchanging ego to connect them, then for us, there would be no duration. An ego that doesn’t change doesn’t endure, and a psychic state that remains the same until it is replaced by the next state doesn’t endure either. Therefore, the attempt to place such states beside each other on the ego that is supposed to support them is futile: these solids strung on a solid can never make up that duration which flows. What we actually achieve in this way is an artificial imitation of internal life, a static equivalent that fits better with the requirements of logic and language, precisely because we have removed the element of real time from it. However, with regard to the psychic life unfolding beneath the symbols that mask it, we readily see that time is exactly what it is made of.
There is, moreover, no stuff more resistant nor more substantial. For our duration is not merely one instant replacing another; if it were, there would never be anything but the present—no prolonging of the past into the actual, no evolution, no concrete duration. Duration is the continuous progress of the past which gnaws into the future and which swells as it advances. And as the past grows without ceasing, so also there is no limit to its preservation. Memory, as we have tried to prove,[3] is not a faculty of putting away recollections in a drawer, or of inscribing them in a register. There is no register, no drawer; there is not even, properly speaking, a faculty,[Pg 5] for a faculty works intermittently, when it will or when it can, whilst the piling up of the past upon the past goes on without relaxation. In reality, the past is preserved by itself, automatically. In its entirety, probably, it follows us at every instant; all that we have felt, thought and willed from our earliest infancy is there, leaning over the present which is about to join it, pressing against the portals of consciousness that would fain leave it outside. The cerebral mechanism is arranged just so as to drive back into the unconscious almost the whole of this past, and to admit beyond the threshold only that which can cast light on the present situation or further the action now being prepared—in short, only that which can give useful work. At the most, a few superfluous recollections may succeed in smuggling themselves through the half-open door. These memories, messengers from the unconscious, remind us of what we are dragging behind us unawares. But, even though we may have no distinct idea of it, we feel vaguely that our past remains present to us. What are we, in fact, what is our character, if not the condensation of the history that we have lived from our birth—nay, even before our birth, since we bring with us prenatal dispositions? Doubtless we think with only a small part of our past, but it is with our entire past, including the original bent of our soul, that we desire, will and act. Our past, then, as a whole, is made manifest to us in its impulse; it is felt in the form of tendency, although a small part of it only is known in the form of idea.
There is no substance more resilient or more significant. Our duration isn’t just one moment substituting another; if it were, we would only experience the present—there would be no extension of the past into the now, no development, no tangible duration. Duration is the ongoing flow of the past that extends into the future, expanding as it goes. And as the past continues to grow, there’s also no limit to how it can be remembered. Memory, as we've tried to demonstrate,[3] isn't just about storing memories in a drawer or jotting them down in a log. There’s no log, no drawer; there isn’t even really a faculty,[Pg 5] since a faculty operates sporadically, whenever it wants or is able, while the accumulation of past experiences keeps building without rest. In reality, the past preserves itself automatically. It likely accompanies us at every moment; everything we’ve felt, thought, and desired since infancy is there, hovering over the present that’s about to merge with it, pushing against the barriers of consciousness that would prefer to keep it out. Our brain is designed to push almost all of this past back into the unconscious, allowing only what can illuminate our current situation or assist the action at hand—in brief, only what can provide useful work. At best, a few unnecessary memories may manage to sneak through the slightly open door. These memories, messengers from the unconscious, remind us of what we are unwittingly dragging behind us. But, even if we don't have a clear idea of it, we have a vague sense that our past remains present with us. What are we, really—what is our character—if not the sum of the experiences we’ve lived from our birth—even before our birth, since we carry with us prenatal traits? Sure, we think with only a fraction of our past, but it is with our entire past, including the inherent tendencies of our soul, that we desire, will, and act. Our past, as a whole, reveals itself to us through its force; it’s sensed as a tendency, although we only know a small part of it in terms of ideas.
From this survival of the past it follows that consciousness cannot go through the same state twice. The circumstances may still be the same, but they will act no longer on the same person, since they find him at a new moment of his history. Our personality, which is being built up each instant with its accumulated experience,[Pg 6] changes without ceasing. By changing, it prevents any state, although superficially identical with another, from ever repeating it in its very depth. That is why our duration is irreversible. We could not live over again a single moment, for we should have to begin by effacing the memory of all that had followed. Even could we erase this memory from our intellect, we could not from our will.
From this survival of the past, it follows that consciousness can’t experience the same state twice. The circumstances might still be the same, but they won't affect the same person, since he is at a different point in his life. Our personality, which is built up at every moment with its accumulated experiences,[Pg 6] is constantly changing. By changing, it ensures that no state, even if it appears superficially identical to another, can ever fully repeat itself. That’s why our experience is irreversible. We couldn’t relive a single moment, because we would have to start by erasing the memory of everything that followed. Even if we could wipe that memory from our minds, we couldn’t remove it from our will.
Thus our personality shoots, grows and ripens without ceasing. Each of its moments is something new added to what was before. We may go further: it is not only something new, but something unforeseeable. Doubtless, my present state is explained by what was in me and by what was acting on me a moment ago. In analyzing it I should find no other elements. But even a superhuman intelligence would not have been able to foresee the simple indivisible form which gives to these purely abstract elements their concrete organization. For to foresee consists of projecting into the future what has been perceived in the past, or of imagining for a later time a new grouping, in a new order, of elements already perceived. But that which has never been perceived, and which is at the same time simple, is necessarily unforeseeable. Now such is the case with each of our states, regarded as a moment in a history that is gradually unfolding: it is simple, and it cannot have been already perceived, since it concentrates in its indivisibility all that has been perceived and what the present is adding to it besides. It is an original moment of a no less original history.
Our personality continually develops and matures. Each moment adds something new to what came before. In fact, it’s not just something new; it's something unpredictable. Surely, my current state can be traced back to what was within me and what influenced me just moments ago. If I analyze it, I would find no other components. However, even a superhuman intelligence couldn't have predicted the unique form that organizes these abstract elements into something concrete. Foreseeing something involves projecting into the future what has been experienced in the past, or imagining a new arrangement of previously known elements. But what has never been experienced and is inherently simple is always unpredictable. Each of our states, seen as a moment in a gradually unfolding story, is simple and hasn't been experienced before, as it brings together everything perceived thus far and what the present adds to it. It represents an original moment in an equally original narrative.
The finished portrait is explained by the features of the model, by the nature of the artist, by the colors spread out on the palette; but, even with the knowledge of what explains it, no one, not even the artist, could have foreseen exactly what the portrait would be, for to predict it would have been to produce it before it was produced[Pg 7]—an absurd hypothesis which is its own refutation. Even so with regard to the moments of our life, of which we are the artisans. Each of them is a kind of creation. And just as the talent of the painter is formed or deformed—in any case, is modified—under the very influence of the works he produces, so each of our states, at the moment of its issue, modifies our personality, being indeed the new form that we are just assuming. It is then right to say that what we do depends on what we are; but it is necessary to add also that we are, to a certain extent, what we do, and that we are creating ourselves continually. This creation of self by self is the more complete, the more one reasons on what one does. For reason does not proceed in such matters as in geometry, where impersonal premisses are given once for all, and an impersonal conclusion must perforce be drawn. Here, on the contrary, the same reasons may dictate to different persons, or to the same person at different moments, acts profoundly different, although equally reasonable. The truth is that they are not quite the same reasons, since they are not those of the same person, nor of the same moment. That is why we cannot deal with them in the abstract, from outside, as in geometry, nor solve for another the problems by which he is faced in life. Each must solve them from within, on his own account. But we need not go more deeply into this. We are seeking only the precise meaning that our consciousness gives to this word "exist," and we find that, for a conscious being, to exist is to change, to change is to mature, to mature is to go on creating oneself endlessly. Should the same be said of existence in general?
The finished portrait is defined by the features of the model, the nature of the artist, and the colors laid out on the palette; however, even with all this information, no one—not even the artist—could have predicted exactly what the portrait would turn out to be. Predicting it would mean creating it before it was actually created[Pg 7]—an absurd idea that cancels itself out. The same goes for the moments of our lives, of which we are the creators. Each moment is a kind of creation. Just as a painter’s talent is shaped or altered—essentially modified—by the works they create, each of our states, the moment they emerge, changes our personality, representing the new form we are just beginning to assume. It's accurate to say that what we do is influenced by who we are; but it’s also important to add that we are, to some extent, shaped by what we do, and we are constantly creating ourselves. This self-creation is more complete when we reflect on our actions. Reason doesn’t work in these matters like it does in geometry, where fixed premises are established, and a fixed conclusion must follow. On the contrary, the same reasons may lead different people, or even the same person at different times, to make profoundly different yet equally reasonable choices. The truth is, they aren’t truly the same reasons, since they don’t come from the same person or the same moment. That’s why we can’t approach them abstractly, from an outside perspective, like in geometry, nor can we solve for someone else the problems they face in life. Each person must resolve them from within, on their own terms. But we don’t need to delve deeper into this. We're only looking for the specific meaning that our consciousness gives to the word “exist,” and we find that for a conscious being, to exist is to change, to change is to grow, and to grow is to keep creating oneself endlessly. Should the same be true for existence in general?
A material object, of whatever kind, presents opposite characters to those which we have just been describing. Either it remains as it is, or else, if it changes under the[Pg 8] influence of an external force, our idea of this change is that of a displacement of parts which themselves do not change. If these parts took to changing, we should split them up in their turn. We should thus descend to the molecules of which the fragments are made, to the atoms that make up the molecules, to the corpuscles that generate the atoms, to the "imponderable" within which the corpuscle is perhaps a mere vortex. In short, we should push the division or analysis as far as necessary. But we should stop only before the unchangeable.
A physical object, no matter what type, shows qualities that are the opposite of those we’ve just described. It either stays the same, or if it changes due to an external force, we think of that change as a shifting of parts that themselves do not change. If these parts start to change, we would then break them down further. We would go down to the molecules that make up the fragments, to the atoms that form the molecules, to the particles that create the atoms, and then to whatever "immeasurable" thing the particle might just be a vortex within. Essentially, we would analyze or divide as far as needed. But we would only stop before we reach the unchangeable.
Now, we say that a composite object changes by the displacement of its parts. But when a part has left its position, there is nothing to prevent its return to it. A group of elements which has gone through a state can therefore always find its way back to that state, if not by itself, at least by means of an external cause able to restore everything to its place. This amounts to saying that any state of the group may be repeated as often as desired, and consequently that the group does not grow old. It has no history.
Now, we say that a combined object changes when its parts move. But when a part leaves its position, there's nothing stopping it from going back. A group of elements that have gone through a state can always return to that state, whether on their own or through some external force that can put everything back in order. This means that any state of the group can be repeated as often as wanted, and therefore the group doesn’t age. It has no history.
Thus nothing is created therein, neither form nor matter. What the group will be is already present in what it is, provided "what it is" includes all the points of the universe with which it is related. A superhuman intellect could calculate, for any moment of time, the position of any point of the system in space. And as there is nothing more in the form of the whole than the arrangement of its parts, the future forms of the system are theoretically visible in its present configuration.
Thus, nothing is created in that context, neither form nor matter. What the group will become is already present in what it is, as long as "what it is" encompasses all the connections to the universe. A superhuman intellect could calculate, for any moment in time, the position of any point within the system in space. And since there is nothing more in the overall form than the arrangement of its parts, the future forms of the system can theoretically be seen in its current configuration.
All our belief in objects, all our operations on the systems that science isolates, rest in fact on the idea that time does not bite into them. We have touched on this question in an earlier work, and shall return to it in the course of the present study. For the moment, we will confine our[Pg 9]selves to pointing out that the abstract time t attributed by science to a material object or to an isolated system consists only in a certain number of simultaneities or more generally of correspondences, and that this number remains the same, whatever be the nature of the intervals between the correspondences. With these intervals we are never concerned when dealing with inert matter; or, if they are considered, it is in order to count therein fresh correspondences, between which again we shall not care what happens. Common sense, which is occupied with detached objects, and also science, which considers isolated systems, are concerned only with the ends of the intervals and not with the intervals themselves. Therefore the flow of time might assume an infinite rapidity, the entire past, present, and future of material objects or of isolated systems might be spread out all at once in space, without there being anything to change either in the formulae of the scientist or even in the language of common sense. The number t would always stand for the same thing; it would still count the same number of correspondences between the states of the objects or systems and the points of the line, ready drawn, which would be then the "course of time."
All our belief in objects and all our actions regarding the systems that science identifies are based on the idea that time doesn't affect them. We mentioned this question in an earlier work and will revisit it during this study. For now, we will limit ourselves to pointing out that the abstract time t assigned by science to a material object or an isolated system consists solely of a certain number of simultaneities or correspondences. This number stays the same, regardless of the nature of the intervals between the correspondences. We don’t worry about these intervals when dealing with inert matter; if they are considered, it’s only to count additional correspondences, and we still won’t care about what happens in between. Common sense, which focuses on separate objects, and science, which looks at isolated systems, only cares about the ends of the intervals, not the intervals themselves. Therefore, time could flow infinitely fast, and the entire past, present, and future of material objects or isolated systems could be laid out all at once in space, without affecting the formulas of scientists or even the language of common sense. The number t would always represent the same thing; it would continue to count the same number of correspondences between the states of the objects or systems and the points on the already drawn line that would then represent the "course of time."
Yet succession is an undeniable fact, even in the material world. Though our reasoning on isolated systems may imply that their history, past, present, and future, might be instantaneously unfurled like a fan, this history, in point of fact, unfolds itself gradually, as if it occupied a duration like our own. If I want to mix a glass of sugar and water, I must, willy nilly, wait until the sugar melts. This little fact is big with meaning. For here the time I have to wait is not that mathematical time which would apply equally well to the entire history of the material world, even if that history were spread out instantaneously[Pg 10] in space. It coincides with my impatience, that is to say, with a certain portion of my own duration, which I cannot protract or contract as I like. It is no longer something thought, it is something lived. It is no longer a relation, it is an absolute. What else can this mean than that the glass of water, the sugar, and the process of the sugar's melting in the water are abstractions, and that the Whole within which they have been cut out by my senses and understanding progresses, it may be in the manner of a consciousness?
Yet succession is an undeniable fact, even in the material world. While our reasoning about isolated systems might suggest that their history—past, present, and future—could be instantly revealed like a fan, this history actually unfolds gradually, as if it exists in a timeline similar to our own. If I want to mix a glass of sugar and water, I inevitably have to wait until the sugar dissolves. This simple fact carries a lot of significance. The time I have to wait is not that mathematical time which would apply equally to the entire history of the material world, even if that history were laid out instantly in space. It aligns with my impatience, meaning it corresponds to a certain part of my own duration, which I cannot extend or shorten at will. It is no longer something thought; it is something lived. It is no longer a relationship; it is an absolute. What else can this mean except that the glass of water, the sugar, and the process of the sugar dissolving in the water are abstractions, and that the Whole, from which they have been extracted by my senses and understanding, progresses perhaps like a consciousness?
Certainly, the operation by which science isolates and closes a system is not altogether artificial. If it had no objective foundation, we could not explain why it is clearly indicated in some cases and impossible in others. We shall see that matter has a tendency to constitute isolable systems, that can be treated geometrically. In fact, we shall define matter by just this tendency. But it is only a tendency. Matter does not go to the end, and the isolation is never complete. If science does go to the end and isolate completely, it is for convenience of study; it is understood that the so-called isolated system remains subject to certain external influences. Science merely leaves these alone, either because it finds them slight enough to be negligible, or because it intends to take them into account later on. It is none the less true that these influences are so many threads which bind up the system to another more extensive, and to this a third which includes both, and so on to the system most objectively isolated and most independent of all, the solar system complete. But, even here, the isolation is not absolute. Our sun radiates heat and light beyond the farthest planet. And, on the other hand, it moves in a certain fixed direction, drawing with it the planets and their satellites. The thread attaching it to the rest of the universe is doubtless[Pg 11] very tenuous. Nevertheless it is along this thread that is transmitted down to the smallest particle of the world in which we live the duration immanent to the whole of the universe.
Certainly, the process by which science isolates and sets aside a system isn't entirely artificial. If it didn't have a real basis, we wouldn't be able to explain why it's clearly possible in some situations and impossible in others. We will see that matter has a tendency to form isolatable systems that can be understood geometrically. In fact, we will define matter by this specific tendency. However, it is only a tendency. Matter never fully completes this process, and isolation is never total. When science does manage to fully isolate something, it's mainly for the sake of study; it's understood that the so-called isolated system still faces certain external influences. Science simply chooses to ignore these factors, either because they are deemed insignificant or because it plans to address them later. Nonetheless, it is true that these influences are like threads connecting the system to a larger one, and this to a third system that includes both, and so on up to the most objectively isolated system that's completely independent of everything else, the solar system as a whole. Yet even here, isolation isn't absolute. Our sun emits heat and light that extend far beyond the outermost planet. Moreover, it moves in a specific direction, dragging the planets and their moons along with it. The link connecting it to the rest of the universe is undoubtedly[Pg 11] very thin. Still, it's through this link that the duration inherent in the entire universe is transmitted down to the smallest particle in the world we inhabit.
The universe endures. The more we study the nature of time, the more we shall comprehend that duration means invention, the creation of forms, the continual elaboration of the absolutely new. The systems marked off by science endure only because they are bound up inseparably with the rest of the universe. It is true that in the universe itself two opposite movements are to be distinguished, as we shall see later on, "descent" and "ascent." The first only unwinds a roll ready prepared. In principle, it might be accomplished almost instantaneously, like releasing a spring. But the ascending movement, which corresponds to an inner work of ripening or creating, endures essentially, and imposes its rhythm on the first, which is inseparable from it.
The universe endures. The more we explore the nature of time, the better we will understand that duration equates to invention, the creation of forms, and the ongoing development of something entirely new. The systems defined by science endure only because they are inextricably linked with the rest of the universe. It's true that within the universe there are two opposing movements, which we will discuss later: "descent" and "ascent." The first merely unravels a roll that has already been prepared. In theory, it could happen almost instantly, like releasing a spring. However, the ascending movement, which relates to an inner process of maturation or creation, endures fundamentally and sets its rhythm for the first, which cannot be separated from it.
There is no reason, therefore, why a duration, and so a form of existence like our own, should not be attributed to the systems that science isolates, provided such systems are reintegrated into the Whole. But they must be so reintegrated. The same is even more obviously true of the objects cut out by our perception. The distinct outlines which we see in an object, and which give it its individuality, are only the design of a certain kind of influence that we might exert on a certain point of space: it is the plan of our eventual actions that is sent back to our eyes, as though by a mirror, when we see the surfaces and edges of things. Suppress this action, and with it consequently those main directions which by perception are traced out for it in the entanglement of the real, and the individuality of the body is reabsorbed in the universal interaction which, without doubt, is reality itself.[Pg 12]
There’s no reason why a duration, and thus a form of existence like ours, shouldn't be attributed to the systems that science identifies, as long as those systems are reintegrated into the Whole. But they must be reintegrated. This is even more obviously true for the objects we perceive. The clear outlines we see in an object, which give it its individuality, are just a representation of a specific kind of influence we might have on a certain point in space: it’s like a preview of our potential actions reflected back to us, as if in a mirror, when we observe the surfaces and edges of things. Remove this action, and therefore the main directions that perception outlines in the complex reality, and the individuality of the body is absorbed back into the universal interaction that is undoubtedly the essence of reality itself.[Pg 12]
Now, we have considered material objects generally. Are there not some objects privileged? The bodies we perceive are, so to speak, cut out of the stuff of nature by our perception, and the scissors follow, in some way, the marking of lines along which action might be taken. But the body which is to perform this action, the body which marks out upon matter the design of its eventual actions even before they are actual, the body that has only to point its sensory organs on the flow of the real in order to make that flow crystallize into definite forms and thus to create all the other bodies—in short, the living body—is this a body as others are?
Now, we've looked at material objects in general. Aren't there some objects that are special? The bodies we see are, in a sense, shaped out of nature by our perception, and this shaping follows certain lines along which action can happen. But the body that carries out this action, the body that outlines on matter the plan for its future actions even before they occur, the body that simply has to focus its senses on the flow of reality to make that flow take shape into specific forms and thus create all other bodies—in short, the living body—is it just like any other body?
Doubtless it, also, consists in a portion of extension bound up with the rest of extension, an intimate part of the Whole, subject to the same physical and chemical laws that govern any and every portion of matter. But, while the subdivision of matter into separate bodies is relative to our perception, while the building up of closed-off systems of material points is relative to our science, the living body has been separated and closed off by nature herself. It is composed of unlike parts that complete each other. It performs diverse functions that involve each other. It is an individual, and of no other object, not even of the crystal, can this be said, for a crystal has neither difference of parts nor diversity of functions. No doubt, it is hard to decide, even in the organized world, what is individual and what is not. The difficulty is great, even in the animal kingdom; with plants it is almost insurmountable. This difficulty is, moreover, due to profound causes, on which we shall dwell later. We shall see that individuality admits of any number of degrees, and that it is not fully realized anywhere, even in man. But that is no reason for thinking it is not a characteristic property of life. The biologist who proceeds as a[Pg 13] geometrician is too ready to take advantage here of our inability to give a precise and general definition of individuality. A perfect definition applies only to a completed reality; now, vital properties are never entirely realized, though always on the way to become so; they are not so much states as tendencies. And a tendency achieves all that it aims at only if it is not thwarted by another tendency. How, then, could this occur in the domain of life, where, as we shall show, the interaction of antagonistic tendencies is always implied? In particular, it may be said of individuality that, while the tendency to individuate is everywhere present in the organized world, it is everywhere opposed by the tendency towards reproduction. For the individuality to be perfect, it would be necessary that no detached part of the organism could live separately. But then reproduction would be impossible. For what is reproduction, but the building up of a new organism with a detached fragment of the old? Individuality therefore harbors its enemy at home. Its very need of perpetuating itself in time condemns it never to be complete in space. The biologist must take due account of both tendencies in every instance, and it is therefore useless to ask him for a definition of individuality that shall fit all cases and work automatically.
Surely, it also includes a part of extension that's connected to the rest of extension, an integral part of the Whole, subject to the same physical and chemical laws that apply to any and all matter. However, while dividing matter into separate entities is relative to our perception, and while creating closed systems of material points is relative to our science, the living body has been naturally separated and closed off. It consists of different parts that complement each other. It performs various functions that interconnect. It is an individual, and nothing else, not even a crystal, can make this claim, because a crystal has neither differing parts nor varied functions. It is certainly challenging to determine what is individual and what is not, even within the organized world. This challenge is significant, even in the animal kingdom; with plants, it’s almost impossible. This issue arises from deep-rooted causes, which we will discuss later. We will observe that individuality has many degrees, and it is never fully realized anywhere, even in humans. But that doesn't mean it's not a defining characteristic of life. A biologist who approaches this like a[Pg 13] mathematician is too quick to exploit our inability to provide a precise and general definition of individuality. A perfect definition only applies to a completed reality; vital properties are never fully realized, though they are always evolving towards that state; they are more about tendencies than states. And a tendency achieves its goals only if it’s not obstructed by another tendency. So, how could this happen in the realm of life, where, as we will demonstrate, the interaction of opposing tendencies is always involved? Specifically, it can be stated about individuality that while the tendency to be individual is present throughout the organized world, it is constantly challenged by the tendency toward reproduction. For individuality to be perfect, it would require that no separate part of the organism can survive independently. But this would make reproduction impossible. After all, what is reproduction if not the creation of a new organism from a detached part of the old one? Thus, individuality carries its opponent within itself. Its very need to perpetuate itself in time prevents it from ever being complete in space. The biologist must consider both tendencies in every instance, so it is pointless to ask for a definition of individuality that fits all situations and functions automatically.
But too often one reasons about the things of life in the same way as about the conditions of crude matter. Nowhere is the confusion so evident as in discussions about individuality. We are shown the stumps of a Lumbriculus, each regenerating its head and living thence-forward as an independent individual; a hydra whose pieces become so many fresh hydras; a sea-urchin's egg whose fragments develop complete embryos: where then, we are asked, was the individuality of the egg, the hydra, the worm?—But, because there are several individuals[Pg 14] now, it does not follow that there was not a single individual just before. No doubt, when I have seen several drawers fall from a chest, I have no longer the right to say that the article was all of one piece. But the fact is that there can be nothing more in the present of the chest of drawers than there was in its past, and if it is made up of several different pieces now, it was so from the date of its manufacture. Generally speaking, unorganized bodies, which are what we have need of in order that we may act, and on which we have modelled our fashion of thinking, are regulated by this simple law: the present contains nothing more than the past, and what is found in the effect was already in the cause. But suppose that the distinctive feature of the organized body is that it grows and changes without ceasing, as indeed the most superficial observation testifies, there would be nothing astonishing in the fact that it was one in the first instance, and afterwards many. The reproduction of unicellular organisms consists in just this—the living being divides into two halves, of which each is a complete individual. True, in the more complex animals, nature localizes in the almost independent sexual cells the power of producing the whole anew. But something of this power may remain diffused in the rest of the organism, as the facts of regeneration prove, and it is conceivable that in certain privileged cases the faculty may persist integrally in a latent condition and manifest itself on the first opportunity. In truth, that I may have the right to speak of individuality, it is not necessary that the organism should be without the power to divide into fragments that are able to live. It is sufficient that it should have presented a certain systematization of parts before the division, and that the same systematization tend to be reproduced in each separate portion afterwards. Now, that is precisely what we observe in the organic[Pg 15] world. We may conclude, then, that individuality is never perfect, and that it is often difficult, sometimes impossible, to tell what is an individual, and what is not, but that life nevertheless manifests a search for individuality, as if it strove to constitute systems naturally isolated, naturally closed.
But too often we think about life the same way we think about basic physical things. This confusion is especially clear when we talk about individuality. We see the stumps of a Lumbriculus, each regenerating its head and living on as independent individuals; a hydra whose pieces turn into several new hydras; a sea urchin's egg whose fragments develop into complete embryos: so, we ask, where was the individuality of the egg, the hydra, the worm? Just because there are multiple individuals now doesn’t mean there wasn’t a single individual a moment ago. Sure, when I see several drawers fall out of a chest, I can no longer say the item was one solid piece. But the truth is, there can be nothing more in the present chest of drawers than there was in its past, and if it has multiple different pieces now, it was always made that way since its creation. Generally speaking, unorganized bodies—those we need in order to act and that shape our way of thinking—follow this simple rule: the present contains nothing more than the past, and what is found in the effect was already in the cause. Now, let’s say the unique characteristic of an organized body is that it grows and changes continuously, which even the simplest observations show us, then it’s not surprising that it was one at first and later many. The reproduction of unicellular organisms works just like this—the living being splits into two halves, each a complete individual. True, in more complex animals, nature concentrates the ability to produce a whole new organism into almost independent sexual cells. However, some of this ability may still be spread throughout the rest of the organism, as seen in regeneration, and it’s possible that in certain special cases this capacity can remain entirely intact in a latent state, ready to emerge at the first opportunity. In fact, for me to rightfully speak of individuality, it’s not necessary for the organism to lack the ability to split into living fragments. It’s enough for it to have shown some organization of parts before the split, and for that same organization to be reproduced in each separate part afterward. That’s exactly what we see in the organic[Pg 15] world. Therefore, we can conclude that individuality is never perfect, and it’s often difficult, sometimes impossible, to determine what is an individual and what is not. Yet, life still shows a quest for individuality, as if it strives to create systems that are naturally isolated and closed off.
By this is a living being distinguished from all that our perception or our science isolates or closes artificially. It would therefore be wrong to compare it to an object. Should we wish to find a term of comparison in the inorganic world, it is not to a determinate material object, but much rather to the totality of the material universe that we ought to compare the living organism. It is true that the comparison would not be worth much, for a living being is observable, whilst the whole of the universe is constructed or reconstructed by thought. But at least our attention would thus have been called to the essential character of organization. Like the universe as a whole, like each conscious being taken separately, the organism which lives is a thing that endures. Its past, in its entirety, is prolonged into its present, and abides there, actual and acting. How otherwise could we understand that it passes through distinct and well-marked phases, that it changes its age—in short, that it has a history? If I consider my body in particular, I find that, like my consciousness, it matures little by little from infancy to old age; like myself, it grows old. Indeed, maturity and old age are, properly speaking, attributes only of my body; it is only metaphorically that I apply the same names to the corresponding changes of my conscious self. Now, if I pass from the top to the bottom of the scale of living beings, from one of the most to one of the least differentiated, from the multicellular organism of man to the unicellu[Pg 16]lar organism of the Infusorian, I find, even in this simple cell, the same process of growing old. The Infusorian is exhausted at the end of a certain number of divisions, and though it may be possible, by modifying the environment, to put off the moment when a rejuvenation by conjugation becomes necessary, this cannot be indefinitely postponed.[4] It is true that between these two extreme cases, in which the organism is completely individualized, there might be found a multitude of others in which the individuality is less well marked, and in which, although there is doubtless an ageing somewhere, one cannot say exactly what it is that grows old. Once more, there is no universal biological law which applies precisely and automatically to every living thing. There are only directions in which life throws out species in general. Each particular species, in the very act by which it is constituted, affirms its independence, follows its caprice, deviates more or less from the straight line, sometimes even remounts the slope and seems to turn its back on its original direction. It is easy enough to argue that a tree never grows old, since the tips of its branches are always equally young, always equally capable of engendering new trees by budding. But in such an organism—which is, after all, a society rather than an individual—something ages, if only the leaves and the interior of the trunk. And each cell, considered separately, evolves in a specific way. Wherever anything lives, there is, open somewhere, a register in which time is being inscribed.
By this, a living being is set apart from everything that our perception or our science artificially isolates or closes off. So, it would be a mistake to compare it to an object. If we want to find a comparison in the non-living world, it shouldn't be with a specific material object, but rather with the entirety of the material universe when comparing a living organism. It's true that this comparison wouldn't mean much, since a living being is observable, while the universe as a whole is constructed or reconstructed in our minds. But at least this would highlight the essential characteristic of organization. Like the universe as a whole, and like each conscious being by itself, a living organism is a thing that endures. Its entire past extends into its present, remaining there, actual and active. How else could we understand that it goes through distinct and clearly marked phases, that it ages—in short, that it has a history? If I look at my body specifically, I find that, like my consciousness, it gradually matures from infancy to old age; it ages just like I do. In fact, maturity and old age are, strictly speaking, attributes of my body; I only metaphorically apply those same names to the corresponding changes in my conscious self. Now, if I move from the top to the bottom of the scale of living beings, from one of the most complex to one of the least differentiated, from the multicellular organism of humans to the unicellular organism of the Infusorian, I find the same process of aging even in this simple cell. The Infusorian becomes exhausted after a certain number of divisions, and although it might be possible, by altering the environment, to delay the moment when rejuvenation through conjugation becomes necessary, this can't be postponed indefinitely.[4] It's true that between these two extremes, where the organism is fully individualized, there can be many other cases where individuality is less clear, and where, although aging certainly occurs somewhere, it's hard to pinpoint exactly what is aging. Once again, there is no universal biological law that applies precisely and automatically to every living thing. There are only directions in which life creates species in general. Each specific species, in the very act of being formed, asserts its independence, follows its whims, deviates more or less from the straightforward path, and sometimes even retraces its steps, seemingly ignoring its original direction. It's easy to argue that a tree never ages, since the tips of its branches are always perpetually young, always capable of producing new trees by budding. But in such an organism—which is, after all, a collective rather than an individual—something does age, if only the leaves and the interior of the trunk. And each cell, when considered separately, evolves in its own specific way. Wherever anything lives, there is, open somewhere, a register in which time is being inscribed.
This, it will be said, is only a metaphor.—It is of the very essence of mechanism, in fact, to consider as metaphorical every expression which attributes to time an effective action and a reality of its own. In vain does[Pg 17] immediate experience show us that the very basis of our conscious existence is memory, that is to say, the prolongation of the past into the present, or, in a word, duration, acting and irreversible. In vain does reason prove to us that the more we get away from the objects cut out and the systems isolated by common sense and by science and the deeper we dig beneath them, the more we have to do with a reality which changes as a whole in its inmost states, as if an accumulative memory of the past made it impossible to go back again. The mechanistic instinct of the mind is stronger than reason, stronger than immediate experience. The metaphysician that we each carry unconsciously within us, and the presence of which is explained, as we shall see later on, by the very place that man occupies amongst the living beings, has its fixed requirements, its ready-made explanations, its irreducible propositions: all unite in denying concrete duration. Change must be reducible to an arrangement or rearrangement of parts; the irreversibility of time must be an appearance relative to our ignorance; the impossibility of turning back must be only the inability of man to put things in place again. So growing old can be nothing more than the gradual gain or loss of certain substances, perhaps both together. Time is assumed to have just as much reality for a living being as for an hour-glass, in which the top part empties while the lower fills, and all goes where it was before when you turn the glass upside down.
This is just a metaphor, some might say. In fact, it’s essential to mechanism to treat as metaphorical any expression that gives time its own active effect and reality. It’s pointless for immediate experience to show us that the core of our conscious existence is memory — that is, the extension of the past into the present, or, in one word, duration, which is active and irreversible. It’s pointless for reason to demonstrate that the further we move away from the neatly defined objects and isolated systems of common sense and science, and the deeper we explore beneath them, the more we encounter a reality that changes as a whole in its innermost aspects. It’s as if an accumulated memory of the past makes it impossible to go back. The mind’s instinct for mechanistic thinking is stronger than reason and stronger than immediate experience. The metaphysician that we all have unconsciously within us, whose presence will be explained later by the very position of humans among living beings, has its fixed needs, ready-made explanations, and irreducible propositions: all of which come together to deny concrete duration. Change must be reducible to an arrangement or rearrangement of parts; the irreversibility of time must just be an appearance relative to our ignorance; the impossibility of going back must simply be humanity's inability to restore things to their original state. So, aging can only be seen as the gradual gain or loss of certain substances, perhaps both at once. Time is assumed to have as much reality for a living being as for an hourglass, where the top part empties while the bottom fills, and everything goes back to where it was when you turn the glass upside down.
True, biologists are not agreed on what is gained and what is lost between the day of birth and the day of death. There are those who hold to the continual growth in the volume of protoplasm from the birth of the cell right on to its death.[5] More probable and more profound is the[Pg 18] theory according to which the diminution bears on the quantity of nutritive substance contained in that "inner environment" in which the organism is being renewed, and the increase on the quantity of unexcreted residual substances which, accumulating in the body, finally "crust it over."[6] Must we however—with an eminent bacteriologist—declare any explanation of growing old insufficient that does not take account of phagocytosis?[7] We do not feel qualified to settle the question. But the fact that the two theories agree in affirming the constant accumulation or loss of a certain kind of matter, even though they have little in common as to what is gained and lost, shows pretty well that the frame of the explanation has been furnished a priori. We shall see this more and more as we proceed with our study: it is not easy, in thinking of time, to escape the image of the hour-glass.
Biologists don't all agree on what is gained and lost between birth and death. Some believe that protoplasm continuously grows from the cell's birth to its death.[5] A more likely and deeper theory suggests that loss relates to the amount of nutrients in the "inner environment" where the organism is renewed, while gain focuses on the build-up of unexcreted waste substances that eventually "crust it over."[6] Should we, along with a prominent bacteriologist, declare any theory of aging inadequate if it doesn't consider phagocytosis?[7] We don’t feel qualified to resolve this debate. However, the fact that both theories agree on the constant accumulation or loss of a particular type of matter, despite differing views on what is gained and lost, indicates that the framework for explanation has been provided a priori. As we continue our study, this will become increasingly clear: when thinking about time, it's hard not to envision an hourglass.
The cause of growing old must lie deeper. We hold that there is unbroken continuity between the evolution of the embryo and that of the complete organism. The impetus which causes a living being to grow larger, to develop and to age, is the same that has caused it to pass through the phases of the embryonic life. The development of the embryo is a perpetual change of form. Any one who attempts to note all its successive aspects becomes lost in an infinity, as is inevitable in dealing with a continuum. Life does but prolong this prenatal evolution. The proof of this is that it is often impossible for us to say whether we are dealing with an organism growing old or with an embryo continuing to evolve; such is the case,[Pg 19] for example, with the larvae of insects and crustacea. On the other hand, in an organism such as our own, crises like puberty or the menopause, in which the individual is completely transformed, are quite comparable to changes in the course of larval or embryonic life—yet they are part and parcel of the process of our ageing. Although they occur at a definite age and within a time that may be quite short, no one would maintain that they appear then ex abrupto, from without, simply because a certain age is reached, just as a legal right is granted to us on our one-and-twentieth birthday. It is evident that a change like that of puberty is in course of preparation at every instant from birth, and even before birth, and that the ageing up to that crisis consists, in part at least, of this gradual preparation. In short, what is properly vital in growing old is the insensible, infinitely graduated, continuance of the change of form. Now, this change is undoubtedly accompanied by phenomena of organic destruction: to these, and to these alone, will a mechanistic explanation of ageing be confined. It will note the facts of sclerosis, the gradual accumulation of residual substances, the growing hypertrophy of the protoplasm of the cell. But under these visible effects an inner cause lies hidden. The evolution of the living being, like that of the embryo, implies a continual recording of duration, a persistence of the past in the present, and so an appearance, at least, of organic memory.
The reason we age must go deeper than we think. We believe there is an unbroken link between the development of the embryo and that of the full organism. The drive that makes a living being grow larger, develop, and age is the same force that took it through the stages of embryonic life. The embryo’s development is a constant change in form. Anyone who tries to track all its changing aspects can easily get lost in a never-ending process, which is typical when dealing with a continuum. Life simply extends this prenatal evolution. The evidence for this is that it's often hard to tell whether we're observing an aging organism or an embryo that's still evolving. This is true, for example, in the case of insect and crustacean larvae. Conversely, in organisms like us, stages such as puberty or menopause, where individuals undergo complete transformations, are comparable to changes during larval or embryonic life—yet they are integral to our aging process. Even though they happen at specific ages and can occur in a relatively short time, no one would claim they suddenly happen just because we reach a certain age, like the legal rights we gain on our twenty-first birthday. It’s clear that changes like those occurring at puberty are in the works from the moment we are born, and even before, and that the aging process leading up to that point partly consists of this gradual preparation. In short, what is truly essential in aging is the subtle, infinitely nuanced, ongoing change in form. This change does come with signs of organic breakdown; a mechanistic view of aging will focus on these alone. It will observe symptoms like sclerosis, the slow buildup of leftover substances, and the increasing thickening of a cell’s protoplasm. However, beneath these visible effects, a deeper cause remains concealed. The evolution of living beings, similar to that of the embryo, includes a constant recording of time, a retention of the past in the present, and thus an appearance, at least, of organic memory.
The present state of an unorganized body depends exclusively on what happened at the previous instant; and likewise the position of the material points of a system defined and isolated by science is determined by the position of these same points at the moment immediately before. In other words, the laws that govern unorganized matter are expressible, in principle, by differential equations[Pg 20] in which time (in the sense in which the mathematician takes this word) would play the rôle of independent variable. Is it so with the laws of life? Does the state of a living body find its complete explanation in the state immediately before? Yes, if it is agreed a priori to liken the living body to other bodies, and to identify it, for the sake of the argument, with the artificial systems on which the chemist, physicist, and astronomer operate. But in astronomy, physics, and chemistry the proposition has a perfectly definite meaning: it signifies that certain aspects of the present, important for science, are calculable as functions of the immediate past. Nothing of the sort in the domain of life. Here calculation touches, at most, certain phenomena of organic destruction. Organic creation, on the contrary, the evolutionary phenomena which properly constitute life, we cannot in any way subject to a mathematical treatment. It will be said that this impotence is due only to our ignorance. But it may equally well express the fact that the present moment of a living body does not find its explanation in the moment immediately before, that all the past of the organism must be added to that moment, its heredity—in fact, the whole of a very long history. In the second of these two hypotheses, not in the first, is really expressed the present state of the biological sciences, as well as their direction. As for the idea that the living body might be treated by some superhuman calculator in the same mathematical way as our solar system, this has gradually arisen from a metaphysic which has taken a more precise form since the physical discoveries of Galileo, but which, as we shall show, was always the natural metaphysic of the human mind. Its apparent clearness, our impatient desire to find it true, the enthusiasm with which so many excellent minds accept it without proof—all the seductions, in short,[Pg 21] that it exercises on our thought, should put us on our guard against it. The attraction it has for us proves well enough that it gives satisfaction to an innate inclination. But, as will be seen further on, the intellectual tendencies innate to-day, which life must have created in the course of its evolution, are not at all meant to supply us with an explanation of life: they have something else to do.
The current state of an unorganized body relies entirely on what occurred at the previous moment; similarly, the position of the material points within a defined and isolated system is determined by where these points were just before. In simple terms, the laws that govern unorganized matter can essentially be expressed through differential equations[Pg 20] in which time, as mathematicians understand it, acts as the independent variable. But is this the case with the laws of life? Does the condition of a living body fully explain itself through its prior state? Yes, if we agree a priori to compare living bodies to non-living ones and to treat them, for argument's sake, like the artificial systems that chemists, physicists, and astronomers study. However, in fields like astronomy, physics, and chemistry, this proposition has a clear meaning: it indicates that certain relevant aspects of the present can be calculated as functions of the immediate past. There is none of this in the realm of life. Here, calculations may only touch on certain phenomena of organic destruction. In contrast, organic creation, the evolutionary processes that truly define life, cannot be treated mathematically in any way. Some may argue that this limitation is only due to our lack of knowledge. But it could just as easily reflect that the current state of a living body isn't explained solely by the moment before it; instead, all of the organism's past needs to be accounted for, including its heredity and indeed, the entirety of a long history. The second of these two possibilities, rather than the first, truly represents the current state and direction of the biological sciences. As for the notion that a living body could be handled by some superhuman calculator in the same mathematical way as our solar system, this idea has gradually emerged from a metaphysical perspective that has taken a more defined shape since Galileo's physical discoveries, yet it has always been the natural metaphysic of the human mind. Its seeming clarity, our eager desire to validate it, and the enthusiasm with which many brilliant minds accept it without proof—all the compelling factors, in short,[Pg 21] that it exerts on our thoughts, should serve as a warning to us. The appeal it holds shows that it satisfies an innate inclination. But, as will be explored further, the intellectual tendencies that are innate today, which life must have shaped during its evolution, are not actually intended to explain life; they serve a different purpose.
Any attempt to distinguish between an artificial and a natural system, between the dead and the living, runs counter to this tendency at once. Thus it happens that we find it equally difficult to imagine that the organized has duration and that the unorganized has not. When we say that the state of an artificial system depends exclusively on its state at the moment before, does it not seem as if we were bringing time in, as if the system had something to do with real duration? And, on the other hand, though the whole of the past goes into the making of the living being's present moment, does not organic memory press it into the moment immediately before the present, so that the moment immediately before becomes the sole cause of the present one?—To speak thus is to ignore the cardinal difference between concrete time, along which a real system develops, and that abstract time which enters into our speculations on artificial systems. What does it mean, to say that the state of an artificial system depends on what it was at the moment immediately before? There is no instant immediately before another instant; there could not be, any more than there could be one mathematical point touching another. The instant "immediately before" is, in reality, that which is connected with the present instant by the interval dt. All that you mean to say, therefore, is that the present state of the system is defined by equations into which differential coefficients enter, such as ds|dt, dv|dt, that is to say, at[Pg 22] bottom, present velocities and present accelerations. You are therefore really speaking only of the present—a present, it is true, considered along with its tendency. The systems science works with are, in fact, in an instantaneous present that is always being renewed; such systems are never in that real, concrete duration in which the past remains bound up with the present. When the mathematician calculates the future state of a system at the end of a time t, there is nothing to prevent him from supposing that the universe vanishes from this moment till that, and suddenly reappears. It is the t-th moment only that counts—and that will be a mere instant. What will flow on in the interval—that is to say, real time—does not count, and cannot enter into the calculation. If the mathematician says that he puts himself inside this interval, he means that he is placing himself at a certain point, at a particular moment, therefore at the extremity again of a certain time t'; with the interval up to T' he is not concerned. If he divides the interval into infinitely small parts by considering the differential dt, he thereby expresses merely the fact that he will consider accelerations and velocities—that is to say, numbers which denote tendencies and enable him to calculate the state of the system at a given moment. But he is always speaking of a given moment—a static moment, that is—and not of flowing time. In short, the world the mathematician deals with is a world that dies and is reborn at every instant—the world which Descartes was thinking of when he spoke of continued creation. But, in time thus conceived, how could evolution, which is the very essence of life, ever take place? Evolution implies a real persistence of the past in the present, a duration which is, as it were, a hyphen, a connecting link. In other words, to know a living being or natural system is to get at the very interval of duration, while[Pg 23] the knowledge of an artificial or mathematical system applies only to the extremity.
Any attempt to separate an artificial system from a natural one, or to divide the dead from the living, goes against this tendency. As a result, we find it just as hard to believe that the organized can last while the unorganized cannot. When we state that the state of an artificial system depends solely on its state just prior, doesn’t it seem like we’re introducing time, suggesting that the system involves real duration? Conversely, even though the entire past shapes a living being’s present moment, doesn’t organic memory compress it into the moment just before now, making that moment the only cause of the present? To express it like this is to overlook the key difference between concrete time, along which a real system evolves, and abstract time that feeds into our theories about artificial systems. What does it mean to say that an artificial system’s state relies on what it was just before? There’s no instant directly before another; it’s impossible, just as one mathematical point cannot touch another. The instant "immediately before" is, in truth, connected to the current instant by the interval dt. So, what you’re really saying is that the system's present state is defined by equations that include differential coefficients like ds|dt, dv|dt, meaning, essentially, [Pg 22] present velocities and present accelerations. You are thus only talking about the present—a present considered along with its tendency. The systems that science examines exist in a continuous present that is always being refreshed; these systems are never truly in that real, concrete duration where the past is interconnected with the present. When a mathematician predicts a system’s future state after a time t, he can assume the universe disappears from now until then and then suddenly reappears. Only the t-th moment matters—and that will be just a moment. What happens in the interval—that is, real time—doesn’t matter and can’t be included in the calculation. If a mathematician claims that he places himself within this interval, he means he’s situating himself at a particular point, at a certain moment, at the edge of a specific time t'; he doesn’t engage with the interval up to T'. If he divides that interval into infinitely small parts by considering the differential dt, he only reveals that he will look at accelerations and velocities—numbers that represent tendencies and allow him to compute the system's state at a specific moment. But he’s always referring to a specific moment—a static moment, that is—and not to flowing time. In short, the world that the mathematician engages with is a world that dies and is reborn at every instant—the world Descartes was considering when he mentioned ongoing creation. But, in this concept of time, how could evolution, which is the core of life, ever occur? Evolution requires a genuine persistence of the past within the present, a duration that acts as a connection. In other words, to understand a living being or natural system is to reach into the very interval of duration, while[Pg 23] knowledge of an artificial or mathematical system only relates to the endpoint.
Continuity of change, preservation of the past in the present, real duration—the living being seems, then, to share these attributes with consciousness. Can we go further and say that life, like conscious activity, is invention, is unceasing creation?
Continuity of change, preservation of the past in the present, real duration—the living being appears to share these traits with consciousness. Can we take it a step further and say that life, like conscious activity, is about invention and continuous creation?
It does not enter into our plan to set down here the proofs of transformism. We wish only to explain in a word or two why we shall accept it, in the present work, as a sufficiently exact and precise expression of the facts actually known. The idea of transformism is already in germ in the natural classification of organized beings. The naturalist, in fact, brings together the organisms that are like each other, then divides the group into sub-groups within which the likeness is still greater, and so on: all through the operation, the characters of the group appear as general themes on which each of the sub-groups performs its particular variation. Now, such is just the relation we find, in the animal and in the vegetable world between the generator and the generated: on the canvas which the ancestor passes on, and which his descendants possess in common, each puts his own original embroidery. True, the differences between the descendant and the ancestor are slight, and it may be asked whether the same living matter presents enough plasticity to take in turn such different forms as those of a fish, a reptile and a bird. But, to this question, observation gives a peremptory answer. It shows that up to a certain period in its development the embryo of the bird is hardly distinguishable from that of the reptile, and that the individual develops, throughout the embryonic life in general, a series of transformations comparable to those through which, according[Pg 24] to the theory of evolution, one species passes into another. A single cell, the result of the combination of two cells, male and female, accomplishes this work by dividing. Every day, before our eyes, the highest forms of life are springing from a very elementary form. Experience, then, shows that the most complex has been able to issue from the most simple by way of evolution. Now, has it arisen so, as a matter of fact? Paleontology, in spite of the insufficiency of its evidence, invites us to believe it has; for, where it makes out the order of succession of species with any precision, this order is just what considerations drawn from embryogeny and comparative anatomy would lead any one to suppose, and each new paleontological discovery brings transformism a new confirmation. Thus, the proof drawn from mere observation is ever being strengthened, while, on the other hand, experiment is removing the objections one by one. The recent experiments of H. de Vries, for instance, by showing that important variations can be produced suddenly and transmitted regularly, have overthrown some of the greatest difficulties raised by the theory. They have enabled us greatly to shorten the time biological evolution seems to demand. They also render us less exacting toward paleontology. So that, all things considered, the transformist hypothesis looks more and more like a close approximation to the truth. It is not rigorously demonstrable; but, failing the certainty of theoretical or experimental demonstration, there is a probability which is continually growing, due to evidence which, while coming short of direct proof, seems to point persistently in its direction: such is the kind of probability that the theory of transformism offers.
We don’t plan to lay out the evidence for transformism here. We just want to briefly explain why we’ll accept it in this work as a sufficiently accurate expression of the facts we actually know. The idea of transformism is already present in the natural classification of living organisms. Naturalists gather similar organisms together and then break them down into sub-groups where the similarities are even stronger, and so on: throughout this process, the characteristics of the group emerge as general themes on which each sub-group makes its own unique variations. This is exactly the relationship we observe in both the animal and plant worlds between the ancestor and the descendant: on the canvas that the ancestor hands down, which is shared by his descendants, each one creates his own unique patterns. The differences between the descendant and the ancestor may be slight, leading to the question of whether the same living matter can adapt to take on such different forms as those of a fish, a reptile, and a bird. However, observation provides a clear answer. It shows that up to a certain stage in development, a bird's embryo is hardly distinguishable from that of a reptile, and that the individual goes through a series of transformations during embryonic life that resemble the changes through which, according to the theory of evolution, one species evolves into another. A single cell, created from the combination of male and female cells, accomplishes this by dividing. Every day, we see complex forms of life emerging from very simple forms. Experience indicates that the most complex can arise from the most simple through evolution. But did it actually happen this way? Paleontology, despite its incomplete evidence, encourages us to believe it did; when it accurately tracks the sequence of species, this sequence aligns with what we would expect from embryology and comparative anatomy, and each new paleontological discovery further supports transformism. Thus, the proof from mere observation is steadily gaining strength, while experiments are gradually dismantling objections. Recent experiments by H. de Vries, for example, have shown that significant variations can occur suddenly and be passed on, addressing some of the major challenges posed by the theory. These findings allow us to greatly shorten the timeframe that biological evolution seems to require and make us less demanding of paleontology. Considering everything, the transformist hypothesis increasingly resembles a close approximation of the truth. It isn't rigorously provable; but, in the absence of definitive theoretical or experimental proof, there's a growing probability based on evidence that, while not directly proving the case, consistently points in that direction: this is the kind of probability that the theory of transformism presents.
Let us admit, however, that transformism may be wrong. Let us suppose that species are proved, by in[Pg 25]ference or by experiment, to have arisen by a discontinuous process, of which to-day we have no idea. Would the doctrine be affected in so far as it has a special interest or importance for us? Classification would probably remain, in its broad lines. The actual data of embryology would also remain. The correspondence between comparative embryogeny and comparative anatomy would remain too. Therefore biology could and would continue to establish between living forms the same relations and the same kinship as transformism supposes to-day. It would be, it is true, an ideal kinship, and no longer a material affiliation. But, as the actual data of paleontology would also remain, we should still have to admit that it is successively, not simultaneously, that the forms between which we find an ideal kinship have appeared. Now, the evolutionist theory, so far as it has any importance for philosophy, requires no more. It consists above all in establishing relations of ideal kinship, and in maintaining that wherever there is this relation of, so to speak, logical affiliation between forms, there is also a relation of chronological succession between the species in which these forms are materialized. Both arguments would hold in any case. And hence, an evolution somewhere would still have to be supposed, whether in a creative Thought in which the ideas of the different species are generated by each other exactly as transformism holds that species themselves are generated on the earth; or in a plan of vital organization immanent in nature, which gradually works itself out, in which the relations of logical and chronological affiliation between pure forms are just those which transformism presents as relations of real affiliation between living individuals; or, finally, in some unknown cause of life, which develops its effects as if they generated one another. Evolution would then simply have been transposed, made[Pg 26] to pass from the visible to the invisible. Almost all that transformism tells us to-day would be preserved, open to interpretation in another way. Will it not, therefore, be better to stick to the letter of transformism as almost all scientists profess it? Apart from the question to what extent the theory of evolution describes the facts and to what extent it symbolizes them, there is nothing in it that is irreconcilable with the doctrines it has claimed to replace, even with that of special creations, to which it is usually opposed. For this reason we think the language of transformism forces itself now upon all philosophy, as the dogmatic affirmation of transformism forces itself upon science.
Let’s acknowledge that transformism could be incorrect. Suppose it turns out, through inference or experiment, that species emerged through a process we can't currently comprehend. Would this change the significance or relevance of the doctrine to us? Classification would likely still hold in its general outlines. The actual details of embryology would still be valid. The connection between comparative embryology and comparative anatomy would also persist. Thus, biology could and would continue to draw the same relationships and kinship among living forms that transformism suggests today. It would indeed be an ideal kinship, rather than a material one. However, since the actual data of paleontology would remain, we would still need to accept that the forms linked by an ideal kinship appeared successively, not at the same time. The evolutionary theory, in terms of its philosophical significance, requires no more than this. It primarily aims to establish relations of ideal kinship and to assert that where these logical connections exist between forms, there is also a chronological succession among the species manifesting these forms. Both of these ideas would remain valid. Therefore, some form of evolution would still need to be assumed, whether it exists within a creative Thought that generates the ideas of different species, as transformism claims species themselves develop on Earth; in an inherent plan of vital organization within nature that unfolds gradually, where the logical and chronological relationships between pure forms are similar to what transformism identifies as real relationships between living individuals; or finally, in some unknown cause of life that creates its effects as if they are generating one another. Evolution would then simply have been transposed, shifting from the visible to the invisible. Almost everything transformism teaches us today would still stand, open to reinterpretation. Is it not, therefore, better to adhere to the core of transformism as most scientists advocate? Aside from the debate about how accurately the theory of evolution reflects reality and how much it represents it symbolically, nothing in it contradicts the doctrines it seeks to replace, including that of special creations, which it typically opposes. For this reason, we believe the language of transformism now imposes itself on all philosophy, just as the dogmatic assertion of transformism imposes itself on science.
But then, we must no longer speak of life in general as an abstraction, or as a mere heading under which all living beings are inscribed. At a certain moment, in certain points of space, a visible current has taken rise; this current of life, traversing the bodies it has organized one after another, passing from generation to generation, has become divided amongst species and distributed amongst individuals without losing anything of its force, rather intensifying in proportion to its advance. It is well known that, on the theory of the "continuity of the germ-plasm," maintained by Weismann, the sexual elements of the generating organism pass on their properties directly to the sexual elements of the organism engendered. In this extreme form, the theory has seemed debatable, for it is only in exceptional cases that there are any signs of sexual glands at the time of segmentation of the fertilized egg. But, though the cells that engender the sexual elements do not generally appear at the beginning of the embryonic life, it is none the less true that they are always formed out of those tissues of the embryo which have not undergone any particular functional differentiation, and[Pg 27] whose cells are made of unmodified protoplasm.[8] In other words, the genetic power of the fertilized ovum weakens, the more it is spread over the growing mass of the tissues of the embryo; but, while it is being thus diluted, it is concentrating anew something of itself on a certain special point, to wit, the cells, from which the ova or spermatozoa will develop. It might therefore be said that, though the germ-plasm is not continuous, there is at least continuity of genetic energy, this energy being expended only at certain instants, for just enough time to give the requisite impulsion to the embryonic life, and being recouped as soon as possible in new sexual elements, in which, again, it bides its time. Regarded from this point of view, life is like a current passing from germ to germ through the medium of a developed organism. It is as if the organism itself were only an excrescence, a bud caused to sprout by the former germ endeavoring to continue itself in a new germ. The essential thing is the continuous progress indefinitely pursued, an invisible progress, on which each visible organism rides during the short interval of time given it to live.
But we can't just talk about life in general as an abstract idea or as a simple label for all living beings. At a certain moment, in specific places, a visible flow has started; this current of life, moving through the bodies it has created one after another, passing from generation to generation, has become divided among species and spread among individuals without losing any of its energy. In fact, it seems to intensify as it progresses. It's well known that, according to the theory of "continuity of germ-plasm," proposed by Weismann, the sexual elements of the parent organism directly pass their traits to the sexual elements of the offspring. In its most extreme form, this theory seems debatable, as there are rarely any signs of sexual glands at the time the fertilized egg begins to divide. However, even though the cells that create the sexual elements typically don't appear at the start of embryonic development, they are still formed from those embryonic tissues that haven’t undergone any specific functional change, and[Pg 27] whose cells consist of unaltered protoplasm.[8] In other words, the genetic capacity of the fertilized egg diminishes as it spreads over the growing mass of tissues in the embryo; yet, while it's being diluted, it is also concentrating some of its essence at a specific point, namely, the cells that will develop into eggs or sperm. So, it could be said that, even if the germ-plasm isn’t continuous, there is at least a continuity of genetic energy, which is used only at certain moments, just long enough to provide the necessary push for embryonic life, and is quickly recovered in new sexual elements, where it again waits for the right moment. From this perspective, life is like a current flowing from germ to germ through the medium of a developed organism. It’s as if the organism itself is merely an outgrowth, a bud that sprouts from the former germ attempting to extend itself into a new germ. The key thing is the continuous progress that endlessly goes on, an invisible advancement that each visible organism rides during its brief period of life.
Now, the more we fix our attention on this continuity of life, the more we see that organic evolution resembles the evolution of a consciousness, in which the past presses against the present and causes the upspringing of a new form of consciousness, incommensurable with its antecedents. That the appearance of a vegetable or animal species is due to specific causes, nobody will gainsay. But this can only mean that if, after the fact, we could know these causes in detail, we could explain by them the form that has been produced; foreseeing the form is out of the question.[9] It may perhaps be said that the form could[Pg 28] be foreseen if we could know, in all their details, the conditions under which it will be produced. But these conditions are built up into it and are part and parcel of its being; they are peculiar to that phase of its history in which life finds itself at the moment of producing the form: how could we know beforehand a situation that is unique of its kind, that has never yet occurred and will never occur again? Of the future, only that is foreseen which is like the past or can be made up again with elements like those of the past. Such is the case with astronomical, physical and chemical facts, with all facts which form part of a system in which elements supposed to be unchanging are merely put together, in which the only changes are changes of position, in which there is no theoretical absurdity in imagining that things are restored to their place; in which, consequently, the same total phenomenon, or at least the same elementary phenomena, can be repeated. But an original situation, which imparts something of its own originality to its elements, that is to say, to the partial views that are taken of it, how can such a situation be pictured as given before it is actually produced?[10] All that can be said is that, once produced, it will be explained by the elements that analysis will then carve out of it. Now, what is true of the production of a new species is also true of the production of a new individual, and, more generally, of any moment of any living form. For, though the variation must reach a certain importance and a certain generality in order to give rise to a new species, it is being produced every moment, continuously and insensibly, in every living being. And it is evident that even the sudden "mutations" which we now hear of are possible only if a process of incubation, or rather of maturing, is going[Pg 29] on throughout a series of generations that do not seem to change. In this sense it might be said of life, as of consciousness, that at every moment it is creating something.[11]
Now, the more we focus on this continuity of life, the more we realize that organic evolution is similar to the evolution of consciousness, where the past influences the present and leads to the emergence of a new form of consciousness that is beyond comparison to its predecessors. No one can deny that the appearance of a plant or animal species is due to specific causes. But this only means that if, after the fact, we could fully understand these causes, we could explain the form that has emerged; predicting the form is impossible.[9] It might be argued that the form could[Pg 28] be predicted if we could know all the details of the conditions under which it will develop. But these conditions are intrinsic to it and are part of its very nature; they are specific to that moment in its history when life is in the process of producing the form: how could we anticipate a situation that is unique, has never happened before, and will never happen again? Regarding the future, we can only foresee what resembles the past or can be reconstructed with elements similar to those of the past. This is true for astronomical, physical, and chemical facts, and for all phenomena that are part of a system where elements thought to be unchanging are merely rearranged, where the only changes are positional, and in which there is no theoretical absurdity in imagining that things are returned to their original places; thus, the same overall phenomenon, or at least the same basic phenomena, can be replicated. However, how can we conceive of an original situation, which imparts its uniqueness to its elements, that is, to the partial perspectives we take on it, before it is actually created?[10] All we can assert is that, once it exists, it will be explained by the elements that analysis will then extract from it. Now, what is true for the emergence of a new species is also true for the emergence of a new individual, and, more broadly, for any moment of any living form. For although a variation must reach a certain significance and generality to result in a new species, it is happening continuously and subtly in every living being at every moment. It is clear that even the sudden "mutations" we now hear about are only possible if a process of incubation, or more accurately, maturing, is taking place over a series of generations that appear unchanged. In this sense, it could be said of life, much like consciousness, that it is creating something at every moment.[11]
But against this idea of the absolute originality and unforeseeability of forms our whole intellect rises in revolt. The essential function of our intellect, as the evolution of life has fashioned it, is to be a light for our conduct, to make ready for our action on things, to foresee, for a given situation, the events, favorable or unfavorable, which may follow thereupon. Intellect therefore instinctively selects in a given situation whatever is like something already known; it seeks this out, in order that it may apply its principle that "like produces like." In just this does the prevision of the future by common sense consist. Science carries this faculty to the highest possible degree of exactitude and precision, but does not alter its essential character. Like ordinary knowledge, in dealing with things science is concerned only with the aspect of repetition. Though the whole be original, science will always manage to analyze it into elements or aspects which are approximately a reproduction of the past. Science can work only on what is supposed to repeat itself—that is to say, on what is withdrawn, by hypothesis, from the action of real time. Anything that is irreducible[Pg 30] and irreversible in the successive moments of a history eludes science. To get a notion of this irreducibility and irreversibility, we must break with scientific habits which are adapted to the fundamental requirements of thought, we must do violence to the mind, go counter to the natural bent of the intellect. But that is just the function of philosophy.
But against the idea that forms are completely original and unpredictable, our intellect strongly objects. The main purpose of our intellect, as shaped by the evolution of life, is to guide our behavior, to prepare us for action, and to anticipate the outcomes, whether positive or negative, that may follow from a specific situation. Therefore, the intellect instinctively identifies in any situation anything similar to something already known; it seeks this out so it can apply the principle that "like produces like." This is essentially what common sense does in predicting the future. Science takes this ability to the highest level of accuracy and precision, but it doesn’t change its fundamental nature. Like everyday knowledge, science focuses only on the aspect of repetition when it examines things. Even if something as a whole is original, science will always find a way to break it down into elements or aspects that are roughly a repeat of the past. Science can only operate on what is assumed to repeat itself—that is, on what is hypothetically separated from the effects of real time. Anything that is irreducible[Pg 30] and irreversible in the sequence of events in history escapes science. To grasp this irreducibility and irreversibility, we must break away from scientific habits that are suited to the basic needs of thought; we must challenge our mind and go against the natural inclination of our intellect. But that’s precisely the role of philosophy.
In vain, therefore, does life evolve before our eyes as a continuous creation of unforeseeable form: the idea always persists that form, unforeseeability and continuity are mere appearance—the outward reflection of our own ignorance. What is presented to the senses as a continuous history would break up, we are told, into a series of successive states. "What gives you the impression of an original state resolves, upon analysis, into elementary facts, each of which is the repetition of a fact already known. What you call an unforeseeable form is only a new arrangement of old elements. The elementary causes, which in their totality have determined this arrangement, are themselves old causes repeated in a new order. Knowledge of the elements and of the elementary causes would have made it possible to foretell the living form which is their sum and their resultant. When we have resolved the biological aspect of phenomena into physico-chemical factors, we will leap, if necessary, over physics and chemistry themselves; we will go from masses to molecules, from molecules to atoms, from atoms to corpuscles: we must indeed at last come to something that can be treated as a kind of solar system, astronomically. If you deny it, you oppose the very principle of scientific mechanism, and you arbitrarily affirm that living matter is not made of the same elements as other matter."—We reply that we do not question the fundamental identity of inert matter and organized matter. The only question is whether the[Pg 31] natural systems which we call living beings must be assimilated to the artificial systems that science cuts out within inert matter, or whether they must not rather be compared to that natural system which is the whole of the universe. That life is a kind of mechanism I cordially agree. But is it the mechanism of parts artificially isolated within the whole of the universe, or is it the mechanism of the real whole? The real whole might well be, we conceive, an indivisible continuity. The systems we cut out within it would, properly speaking, not then be parts at all; they would be partial views of the whole. And, with these partial views put end to end, you will not make even a beginning of the reconstruction of the whole, any more than, by multiplying photographs of an object in a thousand different aspects, you will reproduce the object itself. So of life and of the physico-chemical phenomena to which you endeavor to reduce it. Analysis will undoubtedly resolve the process of organic creation into an ever-growing number of physico-chemical phenomena, and chemists and physicists will have to do, of course, with nothing but these. But it does not follow that chemistry and physics will ever give us the key to life.
In vain, then, does life unfold before us as a continuous creation of unpredictable forms: the notion remains that form, unpredictability, and continuity are just appearances—the outward reflection of our own ignorance. What is perceived as a continuous history would, we are told, break down into a series of successive states. "What seems like an original state actually consists, upon closer examination, of basic facts, each of which is just a repetition of something we already know. What you call an unpredictable form is merely a new arrangement of old elements. The basic causes that, in their totality, have shaped this arrangement are themselves old causes presented in a new order. Understanding the elements and the basic causes would enable us to predict the living form that is their sum and consequence. When we break down the biological aspect of phenomena into physical and chemical factors, we will, if needed, skip over the physics and chemistry themselves; we will move from masses to molecules, from molecules to atoms, from atoms to particles: we must eventually arrive at something that can be seen as a kind of solar system, astronomically speaking. If you deny this, you contradict the very principle of scientific mechanism, asserting that living matter is not made of the same elements as other matter."—Our response is that we do not doubt the fundamental identity of inert matter and organized matter. The only question is whether the [Pg 31] natural systems we call living beings should be compared to the artificial systems that science creates within inert matter, or whether they should be more closely related to the natural system that is the entirety of the universe. I completely agree that life is a kind of mechanism. But is it the mechanism of parts artificially isolated within the whole of the universe, or is it the mechanism of the true whole? We can conceive that the true whole might be an indivisible continuity. The systems we isolate within it would, properly speaking, not be parts at all; they would be partial views of the whole. And by putting these partial views together, you won’t even start to reconstruct the whole, just as taking thousands of photographs of an object from different angles won’t actually reproduce the object itself. The same goes for life and the physical and chemical phenomena that you try to reduce it to. Analysis will indeed break down the process of organic creation into an ever-growing number of physical and chemical phenomena, and chemists and physicists will have to deal strictly with these. But that doesn’t mean that chemistry and physics will ever provide us with the key to life.
A very small element of a curve is very near being a straight line. And the smaller it is, the nearer. In the limit, it may be termed a part of the curve or a part of the straight line, as you please, for in each of its points a curve coincides with its tangent. So likewise "vitality" is tangent, at any and every point, to physical and chemical forces; but such points are, as a fact, only views taken by a mind which imagines stops at various moments of the movement that generates the curve. In reality, life is no more made of physico-chemical elements than a curve is composed of straight lines.
A very small segment of a curve is almost a straight line. The smaller it is, the closer it gets. In the limit, it can be considered part of the curve or part of the straight line, whichever you prefer, because at every point, a curve matches up with its tangent. Similarly, "vitality" is tangent to physical and chemical forces at any and every point; however, these points are actually just perspectives taken by a mind that imagines stopping at different moments of the movement that creates the curve. In reality, life is no more made of physical and chemical elements than a curve is made up of straight lines.
In a general way, the most radical progress a science[Pg 32] can achieve is the working of the completed results into a new scheme of the whole, by relation to which they become instantaneous and motionless views taken at intervals along the continuity of a movement. Such, for example, is the relation of modern to ancient geometry. The latter, purely static, worked with figures drawn once for all; the former studies the varying of a function—that is, the continuous movement by which the figure is described. No doubt, for greater strictness, all considerations of motion may be eliminated from mathematical processes; but the introduction of motion into the genesis of figures is nevertheless the origin of modern mathematics. We believe that if biology could ever get as close to its object as mathematics does to its own, it would become, to the physics and chemistry of organized bodies, what the mathematics of the moderns has proved to be in relation to ancient geometry. The wholly superficial displacements of masses and molecules studied in physics and chemistry would become, by relation to that inner vital movement (which is transformation and not translation) what the position of a moving object is to the movement of that object in space. And, so far as we can see, the procedure by which we should then pass from the definition of a certain vital action to the system of physico-chemical facts which it implies would be like passing from the function to its derivative, from the equation of the curve (i.e. the law of the continuous movement by which the curve is generated) to the equation of the tangent giving its instantaneous direction. Such a science would be a mechanics of transformation, of which our mechanics of translation would become a particular case, a simplification, a projection on the plane of pure quantity. And just as an infinity of functions have the same differential, these functions differing from each other by a constant,[Pg 33] so perhaps the integration of the physico-chemical elements of properly vital action might determine that action only in part—a part would be left to indetermination. But such an integration can be no more than dreamed of; we do not pretend that the dream will ever be realized. We are only trying, by carrying a certain comparison as far as possible, to show up to what point our theory goes along with pure mechanism, and where they part company.
Generally speaking, the most radical advancement a science[Pg 32] can make is integrating the completed findings into a new overall framework, making them instant and fixed snapshots taken at intervals throughout a continuous process. This is similar to the relationship between modern and ancient geometry. The latter, being purely static, dealt with figures drawn once; the former examines the variation of a function—that is, the continuous movement that creates the figure. While it's true that, for the sake of precision, all notions of motion can be removed from mathematical operations, introducing motion into the creation of figures is still the foundation of modern mathematics. We believe that if biology could ever get as close to its subject as mathematics does to its own, it would become, in relation to the physics and chemistry of living organisms, what modern mathematics has shown itself to be compared to ancient geometry. The superficial movements of masses and molecules explored in physics and chemistry would relate to that deep vital movement (which is transformation, not mere translation) in the same way that the position of a moving object relates to its movement in space. As far as we can see, the way we would transition from defining a specific vital action to the system of physical-chemical facts it implies would resemble moving from a function to its derivative, from the equation of a curve (i.e., the law of the continuous movement that generates the curve) to the equation of the tangent that shows its instantaneous direction. Such a science would be a mechanics of transformation, of which our mechanics of translation would be just a particular case, a simplification, a projection onto the plane of pure quantity. Just as an infinite number of functions can share the same differential, differing only by a constant,[Pg 33] perhaps the integration of the physical-chemical elements of true vital action could define that action only partially—a portion would remain uncertain. However, such an integration is merely a dream; we don't claim that the dream will ever become reality. We are simply attempting, by extending a certain comparison as far as possible, to illustrate how our theory aligns with pure mechanism and where it diverges from it.
Imitation of the living by the unorganized may, however, go a good way. Not only does chemistry make organic syntheses, but we have succeeded in reproducing artificially the external appearance of certain facts of organization, such as indirect cell-division and protoplasmic circulation. It is well known that the protoplasm of the cell effects various movements within its envelope; on the other hand, indirect cell-division is the outcome of very complex operations, some involving the nucleus and others the cytoplasm. These latter commence by the doubling of the centrosome, a small spherical body alongside the nucleus. The two centrosomes thus obtained draw apart, attract the broken and doubled ends of the filament of which the original nucleus mainly consisted, and join them to form two fresh nuclei about which the two new cells are constructed which will succeed the first. Now, in their broad lines and in their external appearance, some at least of these operations have been successfully imitated. If some sugar or table salt is pulverized and some very old oil is added, and a drop of the mixture is observed under the microscope, a froth of alveolar structure is seen whose configuration is like that of protoplasm, according to certain theories, and in which movements take place which are decidedly like those of protoplasmic circulation.[12] If, in a froth of the same kind,[Pg 34] the air is extracted from an alveolus, a cone of attraction is seen to form, like those about the centrosomes which result in the division of the nucleus.[13] Even the external motions of a unicellular organism—of an amoeba, at any rate—are sometimes explained mechanically. The displacements of an amoeba in a drop of water would be comparable to the motion to and fro of a grain of dust in a draughty room. Its mass is all the time absorbing certain soluble matters contained in the surrounding water, and giving back to it certain others; these continual exchanges, like those between two vessels separated by a porous partition, would create an everchanging vortex around the little organism. As for the temporary prolongations or pseudopodia which the amoeba seems to make, they would be not so much given out by it as attracted from it by a kind of inhalation or suction of the surrounding medium.[14] In the same way we may perhaps come to explain the more complex movements which the Infusorian makes with its vibratory cilia, which, moreover, are probably only fixed pseudopodia.
Imitating the living by the unorganized can be quite effective. Not only does chemistry create organic compounds, but we've also managed to artificially reproduce the outward characteristics of certain organizational facts, like indirect cell division and protoplasmic circulation. It's well-known that the protoplasm of a cell creates various movements within its envelope. On the other hand, indirect cell division is the result of very complex processes, some involving the nucleus and others the cytoplasm. These processes begin with the duplication of the centrosome, a small spherical body next to the nucleus. The two centrosomes that are formed pull apart, attract the broken and duplicated ends of the filament that mainly makes up the original nucleus, and connect them to create two new nuclei around which the two new cells will be built. Now, in general terms and in their outward appearance, some of these processes have been successfully replicated. If you grind some sugar or table salt and add very old oil, then look at a drop of that mixture under a microscope, you'll see a froth with an alveolar structure that resembles protoplasm according to certain theories, and in which movements occur that are definitely similar to protoplasmic circulation.[12] If air is removed from an alveolus in a froth like that,[Pg 34] a cone of attraction forms, similar to what happens around the centrosomes during nucleus division.[13] Even the external movements of a unicellular organism—like an amoeba—are sometimes explained mechanically. The way an amoeba moves in a drop of water can be compared to the back-and-forth motion of a grain of dust in a drafty room. Its mass continually absorbs certain soluble substances from the surrounding water and releases different ones; these constant exchanges, like those between two containers separated by a porous barrier, create an ever-changing vortex around the tiny organism. As for the temporary extensions or pseudopodia that the amoeba seems to create, they are probably not so much produced by it as pulled from it through a type of inhalation or suction of the surrounding medium.[14] Similarly, we might eventually explain the more complex movements that the Infusorian makes with its vibrating cilia, which are likely just fixed pseudopodia.
But scientists are far from agreed on the value of explanations and schemas of this sort. Chemists have pointed out that even in the organic—not to go so far as the organized—science has reconstructed hitherto nothing but waste products of vital activity; the peculiarly active plastic substances obstinately defy synthesis. One of the most notable naturalists of our time has insisted on the opposition of two orders of phenomena observed in living tissues, anagenesis and katagenesis. The rôle of the anagenetic energies is to raise the inferior energies[Pg 35] to their own level by assimilating inorganic substances. They construct the tissues. On the other hand, the actual functioning of life (excepting, of course, assimilation, growth, and reproduction) is of the katagenetic order, exhibiting the fall, not the rise, of energy. It is only with these facts of katagenetic order that physico-chemistry deals—that is, in short, with the dead and not with the living.[15] The other kind of facts certainly seem to defy physico-chemical analysis, even if they are not anagenetic in the proper sense of the word. As for the artificial imitation of the outward appearance of protoplasm, should a real theoretic importance be attached to this when the question of the physical framework of protoplasm is not yet settled? We are still further from compounding protoplasm chemically. Finally, a physico-chemical explanation of the motions of the amoeba, and a fortiori of the behavior of the Infusoria, seems impossible to many of those who have closely observed these rudimentary organisms. Even in these humblest manifestations of life they discover traces of an effective psychological activity.[16] But instructive above all is the fact that the tendency to explain everything by physics and chemistry is discouraged rather than strengthened by deep study of histological phenomena. Such is the conclusion of the truly admirable book which the histologist E.B. Wilson[Pg 36] has devoted to the development of the cell: "The study of the cell has, on the whole, seemed to widen rather than to narrow the enormous gap that separates even the lowest forms of life from the inorganic world.[17]"
But scientists are far from agreeing on the value of explanations and frameworks like this. Chemists have pointed out that even in the organic—not to mention the organized—science has only managed to reconstruct the waste products of life; the uniquely active plastic substances stubbornly resist synthesis. One of the most prominent naturalists of our time has emphasized the existence of two types of phenomena observed in living tissues, anagenesis and katagenesis. The role of the anagenetic energies is to elevate the lower energies[Pg 35] to their own level by assimilating inorganic substances. They build the tissues. In contrast, the actual functioning of life (excluding, of course, assimilation, growth, and reproduction) is of the katagenetic type, showing a decline, not an increase, of energy. It is only with these katagenetic facts that physico-chemistry deals—that is, in short, with the dead and not with the living.[15] The other types of facts definitely seem to resist physico-chemical analysis, even if they aren’t strictly anagenetic. As for artificially mimicking the outward appearance of protoplasm, should real theoretical significance be given to this when the question of the physical structure of protoplasm is still unresolved? We are even further from chemically creating protoplasm. Finally, a physico-chemical explanation for the movements of the amoeba, and a fortiori for the behavior of the Infusoria, seems impossible to many who have closely studied these simple organisms. Even in these most basic expressions of life, they find evidence of genuine psychological activity.[16] But what is most revealing is that the tendency to explain everything through physics and chemistry is discouraged more than it is supported by thorough study of histological phenomena. This is the conclusion of the truly remarkable book by histologist E.B. Wilson[Pg 36] focused on cell development: "The study of the cell has, overall, seemed to broaden rather than narrow the significant gap that separates even the simplest forms of life from the inorganic world.[17]"
To sum up, those who are concerned only with the functional activity of the living being are inclined to believe that physics and chemistry will give us the key to biological processes.[18] They have chiefly to do, as a fact, with phenomena that are repeated continually in the living being, as in a chemical retort. This explains, in some measure, the mechanistic tendencies of physiology. On the contrary, those whose attention is concentrated on the minute structure of living tissues, on their genesis and evolution, histologists and embryogenists on the one hand, naturalists on the other, are interested in the retort itself, not merely in its contents. They find that this retort creates its own form through a unique series of acts that really constitute a history. Thus, histologists, embryogenists, and naturalists believe far less readily than physiologists in the physico-chemical character of vital actions.
To sum up, those who focus only on the functional activities of living beings tend to believe that physics and chemistry will provide the key to understanding biological processes.[18] They primarily deal with phenomena that are repeated continuously in living organisms, much like in a chemical flask. This somewhat explains the mechanistic approach in physiology. In contrast, those who pay attention to the minute structure of living tissues, their development and evolution—histologists and embryogenists on one side, naturalists on the other—are more interested in the flask itself than just its contents. They observe that this flask shapes its own form through a unique series of actions that essentially create a history. As a result, histologists, embryogenists, and naturalists are much less inclined than physiologists to view vital actions as purely physico-chemical in nature.
The fact is, neither one nor the other of these two theories, neither that which affirms nor that which denies the possibility of chemically producing an elementary organism, can claim the authority of experiment. They are both unverifiable, the former because science has not yet advanced a step toward the chemical synthesis of a living substance, the second because there is no conceivable way of proving experimentally the impossibility of a fact. But we have set forth the theoretical reasons which prevent us from likening the living being, a system closed off by nature, to the systems which our science isolates. These[Pg 37] reasons have less force, we acknowledge, in the case of a rudimentary organism like the amoeba, which hardly evolves at all. But they acquire more when we consider a complex organism which goes through a regular cycle of transformations. The more duration marks the living being with its imprint, the more obviously the organism differs from a mere mechanism, over which duration glides without penetrating. And the demonstration has most force when it applies to the evolution of life as a whole, from its humblest origins to its highest forms, inasmuch as this evolution constitutes, through the unity and continuity of the animated matter which supports it, a single indivisible history. Thus viewed, the evolutionist hypothesis does not seem so closely akin to the mechanistic conception of life as it is generally supposed to be. Of this mechanistic conception we do not claim, of course, to furnish a mathematical and final refutation. But the refutation which we draw from the consideration of real time, and which is, in our opinion, the only refutation possible, becomes the more rigorous and cogent the more frankly the evolutionist hypothesis is assumed. We must dwell a good deal more on this point. But let us first show more clearly the notion of life to which we are leading up.
The truth is, neither of these two theories—one that supports the idea of chemically creating a basic organism and the other that denies it—can be backed by experiments. Both are impossible to verify; the first because science hasn’t made any progress toward chemically synthesizing living matter, and the second because there's no way to experimentally prove that something is impossible. However, we’ve explained the theoretical reasons that make it inappropriate to compare a living being, which is naturally a closed system, to the systems that our science examines in isolation. These[Pg 37] reasons hold less weight in the case of a simple organism like the amoeba, which hardly changes at all. But they become more significant when we look at a complex organism that undergoes a regular cycle of changes. The more time shapes a living being, the more clearly it stands apart from a mere mechanism, which time merely passes over without actually affecting it. The argument is most compelling when applied to the development of life as a whole, from its simplest beginnings to its most advanced forms, since this development represents a single, unified history through the continuity of the living matter that supports it. From this perspective, the evolutionary hypothesis doesn’t seem as similar to the mechanistic view of life as many often think. We don’t claim to provide a mathematical and definitive refutation of the mechanistic view. However, the refutation we present, based on the reality of time—which we believe is the only viable refutation—becomes more rigorous and convincing the more openly we accept the evolutionary hypothesis. We need to spend more time discussing this point. But first, let’s clarify the concept of life that we are approaching.
The mechanistic explanations, we said, hold good for the systems that our thought artificially detaches from the whole. But of the whole itself and of the systems which, within this whole, seem to take after it, we cannot admit a priori that they are mechanically explicable, for then time would be useless, and even unreal. The essence of mechanical explanation, in fact, is to regard the future and the past as calculable functions of the present, and thus to claim that all is given. On this hypothesis, past, present and future would be open at a glance to a superhuman intellect capable of making the calculation. Indeed,[Pg 38] the scientists who have believed in the universality and perfect objectivity of mechanical explanations have, consciously or unconsciously, acted on a hypothesis of this kind. Laplace formulated it with the greatest precision: "An intellect which at a given instant knew all the forces with which nature is animated, and the respective situations of the beings that compose nature—supposing the said intellect were vast enough to subject these data to analysis—would embrace in the same formula the motions of the greatest bodies in the universe and those of the slightest atom: nothing would be uncertain for it, and the future, like the past, would be present to its eyes."[19] And Du Bois-Reymond: "We can imagine the knowledge of nature arrived at a point where the universal process of the world might be represented by a single mathematical formula, by one immense system of simultaneous differential equations, from which could be deduced, for each moment, the position, direction, and velocity of every atom of the world."[20] Huxley has expressed the same idea in a more concrete form: "If the fundamental proposition of evolution is true, that the entire world, living and not living, is the result of the mutual interaction, according to definite laws, of the forces possessed by the molecules of which the primitive nebulosity of the universe was composed, it is no less certain that the existing world lay, potentially, in the cosmic vapor, and that a sufficient intellect could, from a knowledge of the properties of the molecules of that vapor, have predicted, say the state of the Fauna of Great Britain in 1869, with as much certainty as one can say what will happen to the vapor of the breath in a cold winter's day." In such a doctrine,[Pg 39] time is still spoken of: one pronounces the word, but one does not think of the thing. For time is here deprived of efficacy, and if it does nothing, it is nothing. Radical mechanism implies a metaphysic in which the totality of the real is postulated complete in eternity, and in which the apparent duration of things expresses merely the infirmity of a mind that cannot know everything at once. But duration is something very different from this for our consciousness, that is to say, for that which is most indisputable in our experience. We perceive duration as a stream against which we cannot go. It is the foundation of our being, and, as we feel, the very substance of the world in which we live. It is of no use to hold up before our eyes the dazzling prospect of a universal mathematic; we cannot sacrifice experience to the requirements of a system. That is why we reject radical mechanism.
The mechanistic explanations, as we mentioned, are valid for systems that our minds artificially separate from the whole. However, we cannot assume a priori that the whole itself and the systems within it that seem to reflect it can be explained mechanically, because that would render time useless and even unreal. The core of mechanical explanation is to view the future and the past as calculable outcomes of the present, thus asserting that all is given. Under this assumption, a superhuman intellect capable of performing the calculation would have instant access to the past, present, and future. Indeed,[Pg 38] scientists who have believed in the universal and complete objectivity of mechanical explanations have, whether consciously or unconsciously, acted on this kind of hypothesis. Laplace stated it most clearly: "An intellect that, at a specific moment, knew all the forces of nature and the positions of all beings in nature—assuming this intellect could analyze this data—would be able to describe in the same formula the movements of the largest bodies in the universe and the tiniest atom: nothing would be uncertain for it, and both the future and the past would be present to its view."[19] Du Bois-Reymond added: "We can envision a level of knowledge of nature where the entire process of the world could be captured by a single mathematical formula, by one massive system of simultaneous differential equations, from which the position, direction, and velocity of every atom in the world could be derived for any moment."[20] Huxley expressed the same idea more concretely: "If the fundamental concept of evolution is accurate, that the entire world, both living and non-living, results from the mutual interactions of the forces within the molecules of the universe's original nebula, it's equally certain that the current world existed, potentially, within that cosmic vapor, and that a sufficiently knowledgeable intellect could, based on the properties of the molecules in that vapor, have predicted, for example, the state of Great Britain's fauna in 1869, as reliably as one can predict what will happen to the breath vapor on a cold winter's day." In such a theory,[Pg 39] time is mentioned: the word is spoken, but the concept isn't fully considered. Here, time is rendered ineffective, and if it does nothing, it is nothing. Radical mechanism suggests a philosophy where the totality of reality is seen as complete in eternity, and the perceived duration of things merely reflects the weakness of a mind that can't grasp everything at once. However, duration feels very different to our consciousness, which is the most undeniable aspect of our experience. We experience duration as a flow that we cannot reverse. It is the foundation of our existence and, as we feel, the very essence of the world we inhabit. It's pointless to present us with the brilliant idea of a universal mathematics; we cannot trade our experience for the demands of a theory. That’s why we reject radical mechanism.
But radical finalism is quite as unacceptable, and for the same reason. The doctrine of teleology, in its extreme form, as we find it in Leibniz for example, implies that things and beings merely realize a programme previously arranged. But if there is nothing unforeseen, no invention or creation in the universe, time is useless again. As in the mechanistic hypothesis, here again it is supposed that all is given. Finalism thus understood is only inverted mechanism. It springs from the same postulate, with this sole difference, that in the movement of our finite intellects along successive things, whose successiveness is reduced to a mere appearance, it holds in front of us the light with which it claims to guide us, instead of putting it behind. It substitutes the attraction of the future for the impulsion of the past. But succession remains none the less a mere appearance, as indeed does movement itself. In the doctrine of Leibniz, time is reduced to a[Pg 40] confused perception, relative to the human standpoint, a perception which would vanish, like a rising mist, for a mind seated at the centre of things.
But radical finalism is just as unacceptable, and for the same reason. The doctrine of teleology, in its extreme form, as seen in Leibniz for example, implies that things and beings simply follow a pre-arranged plan. But if there’s nothing unexpected, no invention or creation in the universe, then time is pointless again. Just like the mechanistic hypothesis, it’s assumed that all is given here as well. Finalism, understood this way, is merely an inverted mechanism. It arises from the same underlying idea, with the only difference being that instead of placing the guiding light behind us, it puts it in front of us as we move along successive things, which are seen as just an illusion. It replaces the push of the past with the pull of the future. However, succession remains just an appearance, as does movement itself. In Leibniz's doctrine, time is reduced to a[Pg 40] confused perception, relative to the human viewpoint, a perception that would disappear like a rising mist for a mind placed at the center of things.
Yet finalism is not, like mechanism, a doctrine with fixed rigid outlines. It admits of as many inflections as we like. The mechanistic philosophy is to be taken or left: it must be left if the least grain of dust, by straying from the path foreseen by mechanics, should show the slightest trace of spontaneity. The doctrine of final causes, on the contrary, will never be definitively refuted. If one form of it be put aside, it will take another. Its principle, which is essentially psychological, is very flexible. It is so extensible, and thereby so comprehensive, that one accepts something of it as soon as one rejects pure mechanism. The theory we shall put forward in this book will therefore necessarily partake of finalism to a certain extent. For that reason it is important to intimate exactly what we are going to take of it, and what we mean to leave.
Yet finalism isn’t like mechanism; it’s not a rigid doctrine with strict boundaries. It can be interpreted in numerous ways. Mechanistic philosophy can be embraced or rejected—if even the smallest grain of dust strays from the path defined by mechanics and shows any hint of spontaneity, it has to be discarded. On the other hand, the idea of final causes will never be completely disproven. If one version of it is dismissed, another will take its place. Its foundation, which is largely psychological, is very adaptable. It’s so broad and inclusive that one inevitably accepts part of it as soon as they reject pure mechanism. The theory we will present in this book will therefore necessarily include some aspects of finalism. For this reason, it’s crucial to clarify exactly what we’re adopting and what we intend to leave out.
Let us say at once that to thin out the Leibnizian finalism by breaking it into an infinite number of pieces seems to us a step in the wrong direction. This is, however, the tendency of the doctrine of finality. It fully realizes that if the universe as a whole is the carrying out of a plan, this cannot be demonstrated empirically, and that even of the organized world alone it is hardly easier to prove all harmonious: facts would equally well testify to the contrary. Nature sets living beings at discord with one another. She everywhere presents disorder alongside of order, retrogression alongside of progress. But, though finality cannot be affirmed either of the whole of matter or of the whole of life, might it not yet be true, says the finalist, of each organism taken separately? Is there not a wonderful division of labor, a marvellous solidarity among the parts of an organism, perfect order in infinite[Pg 41] complexity? Does not each living being thus realize a plan immanent in its substance?—This theory consists, at bottom, in breaking up the original notion of finality into bits. It does not accept, indeed it ridicules, the idea of an external finality, according to which living beings are ordered with regard to each other: to suppose the grass made for the cow, the lamb for the wolf—that is all acknowledged to be absurd. But there is, we are told, an internal finality: each being is made for itself, all its parts conspire for the greatest good of the whole and are intelligently organized in view of that end. Such is the notion of finality which has long been classic. Finalism has shrunk to the point of never embracing more than one living being at a time. By making itself smaller, it probably thought it would offer less surface for blows.
Let’s be clear: breaking down Leibniz's idea of finalism into countless pieces seems like a step in the wrong direction. Yet, this is the trend within the doctrine of finality. It acknowledges that, if the universe as a whole is fulfilling a plan, this can't be shown through observation, and even for the organized world alone, proving everything is harmonious is just as challenging: the facts could as easily suggest the opposite. Nature pits living beings against each other. It constantly shows disorder alongside order, regression next to progress. However, even though we can't affirm finality of all matter or all life, could it still be true, the finalist argues, for each organism individually? Is there not an amazing division of labor, an incredible solidarity among an organism’s parts, and perfect order in infinite complexity? Does each living being not reflect a plan inherent in its very existence? This theory essentially breaks down the original concept of finality into smaller parts. It rejects, even mocks, the idea of an external finality—where living beings are arranged in relation to each other; the thought of grass being made for cows or lambs for wolves is deemed absurd. But we're told there is an internal finality: each being exists for itself, all its parts work together for the overall good and are intelligently organized with that goal in mind. This is the notion of finality that has long been considered classic. Finalism has shrunk to the point of focusing on just one living being at a time. By becoming smaller, it likely believed it would present less target area for criticism.
The truth is, it lay open to them a great deal more. Radical as our own theory may appear, finality is external or it is nothing at all.
The truth is, it revealed a lot more to them. As extreme as our theory might seem, finality is either external or it doesn't exist.
Consider the most complex and the most harmonious organism. All the elements, we are told, conspire for the greatest good of the whole. Very well, but let us not forget that each of these elements may itself be an organism in certain cases, and that in subordinating the existence of this small organism to the life of the great one we accept the principle of an external finality. The idea of a finality that is always internal is therefore a self-destructive notion. An organism is composed of tissues, each of which lives for itself. The cells of which the tissues are made have also a certain independence. Strictly speaking, if the subordination of all the elements of the individual to the individual itself were complete, we might contend that they are not organisms, reserve the name organism for the individual, and recognize only internal finality. But every one knows that these elements may possess a true au[Pg 42]tonomy. To say nothing of phagocytes, which push independence to the point of attacking the organism that nourishes them, or of germinal cells, which have their own life alongside the somatic cells—the facts of regeneration are enough: here an element or a group of elements suddenly reveals that, however limited its normal space and function, it can transcend them occasionally; it may even, in certain cases, be regarded as the equivalent of the whole.
Consider the most complex and harmonious organism. All the elements, we’re told, work together for the greatest benefit of the whole. That’s fine, but let’s not forget that each of these elements can, in some cases, be an organism in its own right, and by placing the existence of this small organism under the larger one, we accept the principle of an external purpose. Therefore, the idea of a purpose that is always internal is fundamentally flawed. An organism is made up of tissues, each of which lives for itself. The cells that make up these tissues also have a degree of independence. Strictly speaking, if the subordination of all the elements of the individual to the individual itself were complete, we could argue that they aren't organisms, reserving the term organism for the individual, and recognizing only internal purpose. But everyone knows that these elements can have real autonomy. Not to mention phagocytes, which push independence to the point of attacking the organism that sustains them, or germinal cells, which have their own life alongside the somatic cells—the facts of regeneration are sufficient: here an element or a group of elements suddenly shows that, although its normal space and function may be limited, it can occasionally exceed them; it may even, in certain cases, be seen as equivalent to the whole.
There lies the stumbling-block of the vitalistic theories. We shall not reproach them, as is ordinarily done, with replying to the question by the question itself: the "vital principle" may indeed not explain much, but it is at least a sort of label affixed to our ignorance, so as to remind us of this occasionally,[21] while mechanism invites us to ignore that ignorance. But the position of vitalism is rendered very difficult by the fact that, in nature, there is neither purely internal finality nor absolutely distinct individuality. The organized elements composing the individual have themselves a certain individuality, and each will claim its vital principle if the individual pretends to have its own. But, on the other hand, the individual itself is not sufficiently independent, not sufficiently cut off from other things, for us to allow it a "vital princi[Pg 43]ple" of its own. An organism such as a higher vertebrate is the most individuated of all organisms; yet, if we take into account that it is only the development of an ovum forming part of the body of its mother and of a spermatozoon belonging to the body of its father, that the egg (i.e. the ovum fertilized) is a connecting link between the two progenitors since it is common to their two substances, we shall realize that every individual organism, even that of a man, is merely a bud that has sprouted on the combined body of both its parents. Where, then, does the vital principle of the individual begin or end? Gradually we shall be carried further and further back, up to the individual's remotest ancestors: we shall find him solidary with each of them, solidary with that little mass of protoplasmic jelly which is probably at the root of the genealogical tree of life. Being, to a certain extent, one with this primitive ancestor, he is also solidary with all that descends from the ancestor in divergent directions. In this sense each individual may be said to remain united with the totality of living beings by invisible bonds. So it is of no use to try to restrict finality to the individuality of the living being. If there is finality in the world of life, it includes the whole of life in a single indivisible embrace. This life common to all the living undoubtedly presents many gaps and incoherences, and again it is not so mathematically one that it cannot allow each being to become individualized to a certain degree. But it forms a single whole, none the less; and we have to choose between the out-and-out negation of finality and the hypothesis which co-ordinates not only the parts of an organism with the organism itself, but also each living being with the collective whole of all others.
There lies the stumbling block of vitalistic theories. We won’t criticize them, as is usually done, for answering the question with another question: the "vital principle" may not explain much, but it is at least a label attached to our ignorance to remind us of it occasionally,[21] while mechanism encourages us to overlook that ignorance. However, vitalism's stance is complicated by the fact that, in nature, there is neither purely internal purpose nor completely distinct individuality. The organized elements that make up the individual have their own individuality too, and each will assert its vital principle if the individual claims to have one. On the flip side, the individual itself isn’t independent enough or separate from other entities to warrant its own "vital principle." An organism like a higher vertebrate is the most individualized of all organisms; yet, if we consider that it's simply the development of an ovum from its mother and a sperm from its father, and that the egg (i.e., the fertilized ovum) is a connection between the two progenitors since it contains elements from both of their substances, we realize that every individual organism, even a human, is merely a bud that has blossomed on the combined bodies of both parents. Where, then, does the individual’s vital principle begin or end? Gradually, we would trace back further and further to the individual's most distant ancestors: we would find that they are connected to each of them, linked even to that small mass of protoplasmic jelly that probably forms the root of the genealogical tree of life. Being, to some extent, one with this primitive ancestor, the individual is also connected to all that descends from the ancestor in various directions. In this sense, one could say that each individual remains united with the totality of living beings through invisible bonds. Therefore, it's pointless to try to limit purpose to the individuality of living beings. If there is purpose in the world of life, it encompasses all of life in a single, indivisible embrace. This life shared by all living beings undoubtedly has gaps and inconsistencies, and it's not so mathematically one that it can't allow each entity to be individualized to some degree. But it nonetheless forms a single whole; and we must choose between completely denying purpose and adopting the hypothesis that connects not only the parts of an organism to the organism itself but also each living being to the collective whole of all others.
Finality will not go down any easier for being taken as a powder. Either the hypothesis of a finality im[Pg 44]manent in life should be rejected as a whole, or it must undergo a treatment very different from pulverization.
Finality won't be any easier to handle just because it's dismissed. Either we should completely reject the idea of a final, permanent aspect of life, or we need to approach it in a way that's much different from just breaking it down into smaller pieces.
The error of radical finalism, as also that of radical mechanism, is to extend too far the application of certain concepts that are natural to our intellect. Originally, we think only in order to act. Our intellect has been cast in the mold of action. Speculation is a luxury, while action is a necessity. Now, in order to act, we begin by proposing an end; we make a plan, then we go on to the detail of the mechanism which will bring it to pass. This latter operation is possible only if we know what we can reckon on. We must therefore have managed to extract resemblances from nature, which enable us to anticipate the future. Thus we must, consciously or unconsciously, have made use of the law of causality. Moreover, the more sharply the idea of efficient causality is defined in our mind, the more it takes the form of a mechanical causality. And this scheme, in its turn, is the more mathematical according as it expresses a more rigorous necessity. That is why we have only to follow the bent of our mind to become mathematicians. But, on the other hand, this natural mathematics is only the rigid unconscious skeleton beneath our conscious supple habit of linking the same causes to the same effects; and the usual object of this habit is to guide actions inspired by intentions, or, what comes to the same, to direct movements combined with a view to reproducing a pattern. We are born artisans as we are born geometricians, and indeed we are geometricians only because we are artisans. Thus the human intellect, inasmuch as it is fashioned for the needs of human action, is an intellect which proceeds at the same time by intention and by calculation, by adapting means to ends and by thinking out mechanisms of[Pg 45] more and more geometrical form. Whether nature be conceived as an immense machine regulated by mathematical laws, or as the realization of a plan, these two ways of regarding it are only the consummation of two tendencies of mind which are complementary to each other, and which have their origin in the same vital necessities.
The mistake of extreme finalism, just like that of extreme mechanism, is stretching the use of certain concepts that come naturally to our minds. Initially, we think only to take action. Our intellect is shaped around the idea of action. Speculation is a luxury, while action is essential. To take action, we first propose a goal; we create a plan, and then we move on to the details of the mechanism that will make it happen. This latter process is only possible if we know what we can rely on. Therefore, we must have extracted similarities from nature, allowing us to predict the future. So, we must have used the law of causality, whether we realize it or not. Additionally, the clearer the concept of efficient causality is in our minds, the more it resembles a mechanical causation. Furthermore, this scheme becomes more mathematical as it expresses a stricter necessity. That’s why, if we follow our natural inclination, we can easily become mathematicians. However, this inherent mathematics is merely the rigid, unconscious framework underlying our more flexible habit of linking the same causes to the same effects; and the typical aim of this habit is to direct actions inspired by intentions or, essentially, to control movements aimed at replicating a pattern. We are born craftsmen just as we are born geometricians, and in fact, we are geometricians primarily because we are craftsmen. Thus, the human intellect, as it is shaped for human action, functions through both intention and calculation, by adapting means to ends while devising mechanisms of[Pg 45] increasingly geometrical form. Whether we see nature as a vast machine governed by mathematical laws or as the realization of a plan, these two perspectives are simply the culmination of two complementary mental tendencies that arise from the same essential needs.
For that reason, radical finalism is very near radical mechanism on many points. Both doctrines are reluctant to see in the course of things generally, or even simply in the development of life, an unforeseeable creation of form. In considering reality, mechanism regards only the aspect of similarity or repetition. It is therefore dominated by this law, that in nature there is only like reproducing like. The more the geometry in mechanism is emphasized, the less can mechanism admit that anything is ever created, even pure form. In so far as we are geometricians, then, we reject the unforeseeable. We might accept it, assuredly, in so far as we are artists, for art lives on creation and implies a latent belief in the spontaneity of nature. But disinterested art is a luxury, like pure speculation. Long before being artists, we are artisans; and all fabrication, however rudimentary, lives on likeness and repetition, like the natural geometry which serves as its fulcrum. Fabrication works on models which it sets out to reproduce; and even when it invents, it proceeds, or imagines itself to proceed, by a new arrangement of elements already known. Its principle is that "we must have like to produce like." In short, the strict application of the principle of finality, like that of the principle of mechanical causality, leads to the conclusion that "all is given." Both principles say the same thing in their respective languages, because they respond to the same need.
For that reason, radical finalism is very close to radical mechanism on many points. Both theories are hesitant to see in the natural course of events, or even simply in the development of life, an unpredictable creation of form. When examining reality, mechanism only focuses on similarity or repetition. It is therefore governed by the principle that in nature there is only like reproducing like. The more importance is placed on geometry in mechanism, the less mechanism can accept that anything is ever created, even pure form. As we become more like geometricians, we tend to reject the unexpected. We might embrace it, surely, as we become artists, because art thrives on creation and involves an inherent belief in the spontaneity of nature. But disinterested art is a luxury, like pure speculation. Long before we become artists, we are craftsmen; and all creation, no matter how basic, depends on likeness and repetition, like the natural geometry that supports it. Creation works on models that it aims to reproduce; and even when it invents, it does so by rearranging elements that are already known. Its principle is that "we must have like to produce like." In short, the strict application of the principle of purpose, similar to the principle of mechanical causality, leads to the conclusion that "everything is given." Both principles express the same idea in their own terms because they respond to the same need.
That is why again they agree in doing away with time.[Pg 46] Real duration is that duration which gnaws on things, and leaves on them the mark of its tooth. If everything is in time, everything changes inwardly, and the same concrete reality never recurs. Repetition is therefore possible only in the abstract: what is repeated is some aspect that our senses, and especially our intellect, have singled out from reality, just because our action, upon which all the effort of our intellect is directed, can move only among repetitions. Thus, concentrated on that which repeats, solely preoccupied in welding the same to the same, intellect turns away from the vision of time. It dislikes what is fluid, and solidifies everything it touches. We do not think real time. But we live it, because life transcends intellect. The feeling we have of our evolution and of the evolution of all things in pure duration is there, forming around the intellectual concept properly so-called an indistinct fringe that fades off into darkness. Mechanism and finalism agree in taking account only of the bright nucleus shining in the centre. They forget that this nucleus has been formed out of the rest by condensation, and that the whole must be used, the fluid as well as and more than the condensed, in order to grasp the inner movement of life.
That's why they agree again to eliminate time.[Pg 46] True duration is the kind that wears on things, leaving a mark behind. When everything exists in time, everything changes internally, and the same concrete reality never comes back. Repetition is only possible in the abstract: what gets repeated is some aspect that our senses and especially our intellect have highlighted from reality, precisely because our actions, which are the focus of our intellectual effort, can only move among repetitions. Thus, by focusing on what's repeating, and solely concerned with linking the same to the same, our intellect turns away from the perception of time. It avoids what’s fluid and solidifies everything it encounters. We do not think in real time. But we live it, because life goes beyond intellect. The sense we have of our development and the development of everything in pure duration exists, creating around the intellectual concept a vague boundary that fades into darkness. Mechanism and finalism both focus only on the bright core shining at the center. They overlook that this core has formed from the rest through condensation, and that the whole must be acknowledged, the fluid as well as and more than the condensed, to understand the inner movement of life.
Indeed, if the fringe exists, however delicate and indistinct, it should have more importance for philosophy than the bright nucleus it surrounds. For it is its presence that enables us to affirm that the nucleus is a nucleus, that pure intellect is a contraction, by condensation, of a more extensive power. And, just because this vague intuition is of no help in directing our action on things, which action takes place exclusively on the surface of reality, we may presume that it is to be exercised not merely on the surface, but below.
Indeed, if the fringe exists, no matter how delicate and vague, it should be more important for philosophy than the bright core it surrounds. Its presence allows us to confirm that the core is indeed a core, that pure intellect is a compression, by condensing, of a broader capacity. And, since this unclear intuition doesn’t really help us direct our actions toward things, which happen only on the surface of reality, we can assume that it should be applied not just on the surface, but beneath it.
As soon as we go out of the encasings in which radical[Pg 47] mechanism and radical finalism confine our thought, reality appears as a ceaseless upspringing of something new, which has no sooner arisen to make the present than it has already fallen back into the past; at this exact moment it falls under the glance of the intellect, whose eyes are ever turned to the rear. This is already the case with our inner life. For each of our acts we shall easily find antecedents of which it may in some sort be said to be the mechanical resultant. And it may equally well be said that each action is the realization of an intention. In this sense mechanism is everywhere, and finality everywhere, in the evolution of our conduct. But if our action be one that involves the whole of our person and is truly ours, it could not have been foreseen, even though its antecedents explain it when once it has been accomplished. And though it be the realizing of an intention, it differs, as a present and new reality, from the intention, which can never aim at anything but recommencing or rearranging the past. Mechanism and finalism are therefore, here, only external views of our conduct. They extract its intellectuality. But our conduct slips between them and extends much further. Once again, this does not mean that free action is capricious, unreasonable action. To behave according to caprice is to oscillate mechanically between two or more ready-made alternatives and at length to settle on one of them; it is no real maturing of an internal state, no real evolution; it is merely—however paradoxical the assertion may seem—bending the will to imitate the mechanism of the intellect. A conduct that is truly our own, on the contrary, is that of a will which does not try to counterfeit intellect, and which, remaining itself—that is to say, evolving—ripens gradually into acts which the intellect will be able to resolve indefinitely into intelligible elements without ever reaching[Pg 48] its goal. The free act is incommensurable with the idea, and its "rationality" must be defined by this very incommensurability, which admits the discovery of as much intelligibility within it as we will. Such is the character of our own evolution; and such also, without doubt, that of the evolution of life.
As soon as we escape the confines of rigid thinking that limit our thoughts to mechanistic and deterministic views, reality emerges as a constant flow of new experiences. The moment something new appears to define the present, it instantly slips back into the past; at that very instant, it comes into focus for our intellect, which always looks backward. This is also true for our inner lives. For every action we take, we can easily identify prior events that can be seen as its mechanical cause. Similarly, we can say that each action represents the realization of an intention. In this sense, mechanistic and teleological ideas exist throughout our behavior. However, if an action involves our entire being and is genuinely ours, it couldn’t have been anticipated, even though we can explain it by its preceding events once it’s done. And even though it realizes an intention, it differs, as a current and new reality, from that intention, which can only aim to repeat or reorganize what has already happened. Thus, mechanism and finality serve merely as external perspectives on our behavior. They strip away its depth. Yet, our actions navigate between these perspectives and extend much further. Again, this doesn't imply that free action is random or irrational. Acting on a whim means mechanically bouncing between a few ready-made choices and eventually settling on one; it doesn’t reflect genuine internal development or evolution; instead, it’s simply—however paradoxical it may sound—forcing one’s will to mimic the intellectual process. Truly authentic behavior, on the other hand, comes from a will that doesn’t pretend to be intellect and, while remaining true to itself—that is, evolving—gradually matures into actions that the intellect can endlessly break down into understandable components without ever arriving at a definitive conclusion. A free act is beyond simple comparisons to ideas, and its "rationality" must be defined by this very incommensurability, which allows for as much intelligibility as we choose to discover within it. This reflects our own evolution; and, without a doubt, it reflects the evolution of life as well.
Our reason, incorrigibly presumptuous, imagines itself possessed, by right of birth or by right of conquest, innate or acquired, of all the essential elements of the knowledge of truth. Even where it confesses that it does not know the object presented to it, it believes that its ignorance consists only in not knowing which one of its time-honored categories suits the new object. In what drawer, ready to open, shall we put it? In what garment, already cut out, shall we clothe it? Is it this, or that, or the other thing? And "this," and "that," and "the other thing" are always something already conceived, already known. The idea that for a new object we might have to create a new concept, perhaps a new method of thinking, is deeply repugnant to us. The history of philosophy is there, however, and shows us the eternal conflict of systems, the impossibility of satisfactorily getting the real into the ready-made garments of our ready-made concepts, the necessity of making to measure. But, rather than go to this extremity, our reason prefers to announce once for all, with a proud modesty, that it has to do only with the relative, and that the absolute is not in its province. This preliminary declaration enables it to apply its habitual method of thought without any scruple, and thus, under pretense that it does not touch the absolute, to make absolute judgments upon everything. Plato was the first to set up the theory that to know the real consists in finding its Idea, that is to say, in forcing it into a pre-existing frame already at our disposal—as if we implicitly possessed uni[Pg 49]versal knowledge. But this belief is natural to the human intellect, always engaged as it is in determining under what former heading it shall catalogue any new object; and it may be said that, in a certain sense, we are all born Platonists.
Our reason, undeniably overconfident, thinks it has all the essential elements of understanding the truth, whether by birthright or by achievement, whether it’s something we’re born with or something we’ve learned. Even when it admits it doesn’t know the object in front of it, it believes its ignorance is just about not knowing which of its well-established categories fits the new object. Which drawer should we open to put it in? What existing framework should we use to categorize it? Is it this, that, or something else? And “this,” “that,” and “the other thing” are always concepts we’ve already understood, already known. The idea that we might need to create a new concept for a new object, or perhaps even a new way of thinking, is extremely uncomfortable for us. Yet, the history of philosophy shows us the ongoing struggle between theories, the difficulty of fitting reality into our pre-made ideas, and the need for custom solutions. But rather than face this challenge, our reason prefers to proudly state that it only deals with the relative, leaving the absolute out of its focus. This initial claim allows it to use its usual way of thinking without hesitation, and so, under the guise of not addressing the absolute, it makes absolute judgments about everything. Plato was the first to propose that understanding reality means finding its Idea—essentially forcing it into a framework we already have, as if we inherently possessed universal knowledge. However, this belief is natural to human intellect, which is always trying to figure out which existing category to file any new object under; in a way, we’re all born Platonists.
Nowhere is the inadequacy of this method so obvious as in theories of life. If, in evolving in the direction of the vertebrates in general, of man and intellect in particular, life has had to abandon by the way many elements incompatible with this particular mode of organization and consign them, as we shall show, to other lines of development, it is the totality of these elements that we must find again and rejoin to the intellect proper, in order to grasp the true nature of vital activity. And we shall probably be aided in this by the fringe of vague intuition that surrounds our distinct—that is, intellectual—representation. For what can this useless fringe be, if not that part of the evolving principle which has not shrunk to the peculiar form of our organization, but has settled around it unasked for, unwanted? It is there, accordingly, that we must look for hints to expand the intellectual form of our thought; from there shall we derive the impetus necessary to lift us above ourselves. To form an idea of the whole of life cannot consist in combining simple ideas that have been left behind in us by life itself in the course of its evolution. How could the part be equivalent to the whole, the content to the container, a by-product of the vital operation to the operation itself? Such, however, is our illusion when we define the evolution of life as a "passage from the homogeneous to the heterogeneous," or by any other concept obtained by putting fragments of intellect side by side. We place ourselves in one of the points where evolution comes to a head—the principal one, no doubt, but not the only one; and[Pg 50] there we do not even take all we find, for of the intellect we keep only one or two of the concepts by which it expresses itself; and it is this part of a part that we declare representative of the whole, of something indeed which goes beyond the concrete whole, I mean of the evolution movement of which this "whole" is only the present stage! The truth is, that to represent this the entire intellect would not be too much—nay, it would not be enough. It would be necessary to add to it what we find in every other terminal point of evolution. And these diverse and divergent elements must be considered as so many extracts which are, or at least which were, in their humblest form, mutually complementary. Only then might we have an inkling of the real nature of the evolution movement; and even then we should fail to grasp it completely, for we should still be dealing only with the evolved, which is a result, and not with evolution itself, which is the act by which the result is obtained.
Nowhere is the failure of this method more apparent than in theories of life. If, while evolving towards vertebrates in general and humans and intellect in particular, life has had to give up many elements that don't fit this specific form of organization and assign them to other developmental paths, it is the totality of these elements that we need to rediscover and reconnect to intellect in order to understand the true nature of vital activity. We will likely be guided by the vague intuitions that surround our distinct—that is, intellectual—representation. What else could this unnecessary fringe be, if not the part of the evolving principle that hasn’t condensed into our specific form of organization but has gathered around it uninvited and unwanted? Therefore, this is where we should look for clues to expand our intellectual thought; from this place, we will gain the drive necessary to elevate ourselves. Forming a complete idea of life cannot simply involve compiling isolated ideas that have been left behind by life itself throughout its evolution. How could a part equate to the whole, the content to the container, a by-product of the vital process to the process itself? Yet, this is the illusion we fall into when we define life's evolution as a "transition from the homogeneous to the heterogeneous," or by any other concept that results from merely juxtaposing fragments of intellect. We position ourselves at a critical point of evolution—certainly the main one, but not the only one; and there, we don’t even take everything available, as we only retain one or two of the concepts through which intellect expresses itself. It is this part of a part that we claim is representative of the whole, something that indeed goes beyond the concrete whole, meaning the evolutionary movement of which this "whole" is merely the current stage! The truth is, representing this with the full intellect wouldn’t be excessive—rather, it still wouldn’t be adequate. We would need to include what we find in every other endpoint of evolution. These diverse and divergent elements must be viewed as various extracts that were, or at least existed in their simplest form, complementary to each other. Only then might we begin to glimpse the true nature of the evolutionary movement; and even then, we would still fail to fully grasp it, as we would only be dealing with the evolved, which is a result, not with evolution itself, which is the action that generates the result.
Such is the philosophy of life to which we are leading up. It claims to transcend both mechanism and finalism; but, as we announced at the beginning, it is nearer the second doctrine than the first. It will not be amiss to dwell on this point, and show more precisely how far this philosophy of life resembles finalism and wherein it is different.
Such is the philosophy of life we are discussing. It asserts that it goes beyond both mechanism and finalism; however, as we mentioned at the start, it aligns more closely with the second belief than the first. It's worth taking some time to elaborate on this point and clarify exactly how this philosophy of life is similar to finalism and how it differs.
Like radical finalism, although in a vaguer form, our philosophy represents the organized world as a harmonious whole. But this harmony is far from being as perfect as it has been claimed to be. It admits of much discord, because each species, each individual even, retains only a certain impetus from the universal vital impulsion and tends to use this energy in its own interest. In this consists adaptation. The species and the individual thus think only of themselves—whence arises a possible conflict[Pg 51] with other forms of life. Harmony, therefore, does not exist in fact; it exists rather in principle; I mean that the original impetus is a common impetus, and the higher we ascend the stream of life the more do diverse tendencies appear complementary to each other. Thus the wind at a street-corner divides into diverging currents which are all one and the same gust. Harmony, or rather "complementarity," is revealed only in the mass, in tendencies rather than in states. Especially (and this is the point on which finalism has been most seriously mistaken) harmony is rather behind us than before. It is due to an identity of impulsion and not to a common aspiration. It would be futile to try to assign to life an end, in the human sense of the word. To speak of an end is to think of a pre-existing model which has only to be realized. It is to suppose, therefore, that all is given, and that the future can be read in the present. It is to believe that life, in its movement and in its entirety, goes to work like our intellect, which is only a motionless and fragmentary view of life, and which naturally takes its stand outside of time. Life, on the contrary, progresses and endures in time. Of course, when once the road has been traveled, we can glance over it, mark its direction, note this in psychological terms and speak as if there had been pursuit of an end. Thus shall we speak ourselves. But, of the road which was going to be traveled, the human mind could have nothing to say, for the road has been created pari passu with the act of traveling over it, being nothing but the direction of this act itself. At every instant, then, evolution must admit of a psychological interpretation which is, from our point of view, the best interpretation; but this explanation has neither value nor even significance except retrospectively. Never could the finalistic interpretation, such as we shall propose it, be taken for an[Pg 52] anticipation of the future. It is a particular mode of viewing the past in the light of the present. In short, the classic conception of finality postulates at once too much and too little: it is both too wide and too narrow. In explaining life by intellect, it limits too much the meaning of life: intellect, such at least as we find it in ourselves, has been fashioned by evolution during the course of progress; it is cut out of something larger, or, rather, it is only the projection, necessarily on a plane, of a reality that possesses both relief and depth. It is this more comprehensive reality that true finalism ought to reconstruct, or, rather, if possible, embrace in one view. But, on the other hand, just because it goes beyond intellect—the faculty of connecting the same with the same, of perceiving and also of producing repetitions—this reality is undoubtedly creative, i.e. productive of effects in which it expands and transcends its own being. These effects were therefore not given in it in advance, and so it could not take them for ends, although, when once produced, they admit of a rational interpretation, like that of the manufactured article that has reproduced a model. In short, the theory of final causes does not go far enough when it confines itself to ascribing some intelligence to nature, and it goes too far when it supposes a pre-existence of the future in the present in the form of idea. And the second theory, which sins by excess, is the outcome of the first, which sins by defect. In place of intellect proper must be substituted the more comprehensive reality of which intellect is only the contraction. The future then appears as expanding the present: it was not, therefore, contained in the present in the form of a represented end. And yet, once realized, it will explain the present as much as the present explains it, and even more; it must be viewed as an end as much as, and more than, a result. Our in[Pg 53]tellect has a right to consider the future abstractly from its habitual point of view, being itself an abstract view of the cause of its own being.
Like radical finalism, our philosophy also portrays the world as a harmonious whole, albeit in a less distinct manner. However, this harmony is not as flawless as it has been made out to be. It allows for quite a bit of discord because each species, and even each individual, retains only a certain drive from the universal life force and tends to use this energy for its own benefit. This is what we call adaptation. The species and individuals therefore think primarily of themselves, leading to potential conflicts[Pg 51] with other forms of life. Therefore, harmony doesn't actually exist; it exists more as a principle. The original drive is a common drive, and as we progress along the course of life, diverse tendencies seem to complement each other more. Just like the wind at a street corner splits into diverging currents that are all the same gust, harmony, or rather "complementarity," is only revealed broadly, in tendencies instead of fixed states. Especially (and this is where finalism has been most mistaken), harmony is more behind us than ahead. It comes from a shared drive rather than a common goal. Trying to assign a purpose to life in the human sense is futile. To talk about a purpose is to think of a pre-existing model that just needs to be realized. It implies that everything is predetermined, and that the future can be understood from the present. It assumes that life functions like our intellect, which is just a static and fragmented perspective of life, existing outside of time. Life, in contrast, progresses and endures in time. Of course, once the path has been traveled, we can look back, note its direction, articulate it in psychological terms, and speak as though there was a pursuit of an end. That's how we'll speak too. But regarding the path that will be taken, the human mind could reveal nothing, as that path is created pari passu with the act of traveling it, being merely the direction of this very act. At every moment, evolution must allow for a psychological interpretation, which is, from our perspective, the best interpretation; but this explanation has no value or significance except in hindsight. The finalistic interpretation we propose can never be seen as[Pg 52] a prediction of the future. It is simply a specific way to look back at the past through the lens of the present. In short, the classic idea of finality assumes too much and too little at the same time: it’s both too broad and too narrow. In explaining life through intellect, it overly restricts the meaning of life: intellect, as we understand it, has been shaped by evolution throughout progress; it's a piece of something much larger, or rather, it’s just the flat projection of a reality that has both depth and dimension. This broader reality is what true finalism should aim to reconstruct or, if possible, encompass in a single perspective. However, because it goes beyond intellect— which connects similar things, recognizes, and produces repetitions—this reality is undoubtedly creative, i.e. it generates effects that expand and transcend its own existence. These effects were not pre-defined, so they couldn’t be seen as goals, although once they are created, they can be rationally interpreted, much like a manufactured item that has replicated a model. In short, the theory of final causes doesn’t go far enough when it merely attributes some intelligence to nature, and it goes too far when it assumes the future pre-exists in the present as an idea. The second theory, which overreaches, stems from the first, which underachieves. Instead of intellect, we should refer to the more expansive reality of which intellect is just a contraction. The future then appears to emerge from the present: it wasn't contained in the present as a predetermined goal. Yet, once it comes into being, it will explain the present as much as the present explains it, and possibly even more; it should be seen as a goal as much as, if not more than, a consequence. Our in[Pg 53]tellect has the right to view the future abstractly from its usual perspective, being itself an abstract view of the cause of its own existence.
It is true that the cause may then seem beyond our grasp. Already the finalist theory of life eludes all precise verification. What if we go beyond it in one of its directions? Here, in fact, after a necessary digression, we are back at the question which we regard as essential: can the insufficiency of mechanism be proved by facts? We said that if this demonstration is possible, it is on condition of frankly accepting the evolutionist hypothesis. We must now show that if mechanism is insufficient to account for evolution, the way of proving this insufficiency is not to stop at the classic conception of finality, still less to contract or attenuate it, but, on the contrary, to go further.
It’s true that the cause might seem out of our reach. The finalist theory of life already escapes all precise verification. What if we push beyond it in one of its directions? Here, after a necessary aside, we return to the question we consider essential: can we prove that mechanism is insufficient based on facts? We mentioned that if this demonstration is possible, it requires openly accepting the evolutionist hypothesis. Now we need to show that if mechanism can’t fully explain evolution, the way to prove this insufficiency isn’t by sticking to the classic idea of finality, nor by narrowing or simplifying it, but rather by pushing further.
Let us indicate at once the principle of our demonstration. We said of life that, from its origin, it is the continuation of one and the same impetus, divided into divergent lines of evolution. Something has grown, something has developed by a series of additions which have been so many creations. This very development has brought about a dissociation of tendencies which were unable to grow beyond a certain point without becoming mutually incompatible. Strictly speaking, there is nothing to prevent our imagining that the evolution of life might have taken place in one single individual by means of a series of transformations spread over thousands of ages. Or, instead of a single individual, any number might be supposed, succeeding each other in a unilinear series. In both cases evolution would have had, so to speak, one dimension only. But evolution has actually taken place through millions of individuals, on divergent lines, each ending at a crossing from which new paths radiate, and so on indefinitely. If[Pg 54] our hypothesis is justified, if the essential causes working along these diverse roads are of psychological nature, they must keep something in common in spite of the divergence of their effects, as school-fellows long separated keep the same memories of boyhood. Roads may fork or by-ways be opened along which dissociated elements may evolve in an independent manner, but nevertheless it is in virtue of the primitive impetus of the whole that the movement of the parts continues. Something of the whole, therefore, must abide in the parts; and this common element will be evident to us in some way, perhaps by the presence of identical organs in very different organisms. Suppose, for an instant, that the mechanistic explanation is the true one: evolution must then have occurred through a series of accidents added to one another, each new accident being preserved by selection if it is advantageous to that sum of former advantageous accidents which the present form of the living being represents. What likelihood is there that, by two entirely different series of accidents being added together, two entirely different evolutions will arrive at similar results? The more two lines of evolution diverge, the less probability is there that accidental outer influences or accidental inner variations bring about the construction of the same apparatus upon them, especially if there was no trace of this apparatus at the moment of divergence. But such similarity of the two products would be natural, on the contrary, on a hypothesis like ours: even in the latest channel there would be something of the impulsion received at the source.[Pg 55] Pure mechanism, then, would be refutable, and finality, in the special sense in which we understand it, would be demonstrable in a certain aspect, if it could be proved that life may manufacture the like apparatus, by unlike means, on divergent lines of evolution; and the strength of the proof would be proportional both to the divergency between the lines of evolution thus chosen and to the complexity of the similar structures found in them.
Let’s clarify the principle behind our demonstration right away. We mentioned that life, from its very beginning, is a continuation of a single drive, branching out into various evolutionary paths. Something has grown, and something has developed through a series of additions that can be seen as numerous creative acts. This development has caused a separation of tendencies that couldn’t progress beyond a certain point without becoming incompatible with each other. In a strict sense, there’s nothing stopping us from imagining that the evolution of life could have happened within a single individual through a series of transformations over thousands of years. Or, instead of just one individual, we could consider multiple individuals, following one after another in a straightforward line. In both scenarios, evolution would seem to have only one dimension. However, in reality, evolution has occurred through millions of individuals along various paths, each ending at junctions from which new routes emerge, and this pattern continues indefinitely. If[Pg 54] our hypothesis is valid, and if the fundamental causes working along these different paths are psychological in nature, they must share something in common despite the differing effects, much like school friends who, although long separated, still share the same childhood memories. Paths may split or side roads may form where disconnected elements can evolve independently, but it is because of the original impulse of the whole that the movement of the individual parts continues. Thus, something of the whole must remain in the parts; this shared element may be evident to us in some way, perhaps through the presence of similar organs in very different organisms. Now, let’s consider for a moment that the mechanistic explanation is the accurate one: evolution would then have happened through a series of accumulating accidents, each new accident being retained through selection if it benefits the existing collection of advantageous accidents that the current form of the living being represents. What are the odds that, by combining two completely different sets of accidents, two entirely different evolutionary paths would yield similar outcomes? The more two evolutionary paths diverge, the less likely it is that either random external influences or random internal variations would result in the development of the same structure, particularly if no trace of this structure existed at the point of divergence. However, such similarities in the two outcomes would actually be expected in a hypothesis like ours: even in the most recent pathway, there would still be remnants of the initial drive received at the source.[Pg 55] If pure mechanism is indeed incorrect, then the idea of finality, in the specific sense we understand it, would be demonstrable in some way, if we could prove that life can create similar structures through different means along divergent evolutionary paths; the strength of this proof would depend on both the degree of divergence between the chosen evolutionary paths and the complexity of the similar structures found within them.
It will be said that resemblance of structure is due to sameness of the general conditions in which life has evolved, and that these permanent outer conditions may have imposed the same direction on the forces constructing this or that apparatus, in spite of the diversity of transient outer influences and accidental inner changes. We are not, of course, blind to the rôle which the concept of adaptation plays in the science of to-day. Biologists certainly do not all make the same use of it. Some think the outer conditions capable of causing change in organisms in a direct manner, in a definite direction, through physico-chemical alterations induced by them in the living substance; such is the hypothesis of Eimer, for example. Others, more faithful to the spirit of Darwinism, believe the influence of conditions works indirectly only, through favoring, in the struggle for life, those representatives of a species which the chance of birth has best adapted to the environment. In other words, some attribute a positive influence to outer conditions, and say that they actually give rise to variations, while the others say these conditions have only a negative influence and merely eliminate variations. But, in both cases, the outer conditions are supposed to bring about a precise adjustment of the organism to its circumstances. Both parties, then, will attempt to explain mechanically, by adaptation to similar conditions, the similarities of structure which we think are the strongest argument against mechanism. So we must at once indicate in a general way, before passing to the detail, why explanations from "adaptation" seem to us insufficient.
It can be said that the similarity in structure comes from the same general conditions in which life has developed, and that these consistent outer conditions may have directed the forces shaping this or that feature, despite the variety of temporary external influences and random internal changes. We are certainly aware of the role that the concept of adaptation plays in today’s science. Biologists definitely do not all interpret it the same way. Some believe that external conditions can directly cause changes in organisms, in a specific direction, through physical and chemical changes they induce in living substances; this is the hypothesis of Eimer, for example. Others, staying true to the spirit of Darwinism, think that the influence of conditions works indirectly, by favoring those individuals of a species that happen to be best suited to the environment in the struggle for survival. In simpler terms, some people believe that external conditions have a positive influence and actually cause variations, while others argue that these conditions have only a negative influence and merely filter out variations. However, in both cases, it is assumed that external conditions lead to a precise adjustment of the organism to its surroundings. Therefore, both sides will try to explain mechanically, through adaptation to similar conditions, the structural similarities that we argue are the strongest case against mechanism. Thus, we must quickly outline, in general terms, before delving into details, why explanations based on "adaptation" seem insufficient to us.
Let us first remark that, of the two hypotheses just described, the latter is the only one which is not equivocal.[Pg 56] The Darwinian idea of adaptation by automatic elimination of the unadapted is a simple and clear idea. But, just because it attributes to the outer cause which controls evolution a merely negative influence, it has great difficulty in accounting for the progressive and, so to say, rectilinear development of complex apparatus such as we are about to examine. How much greater will this difficulty be in the case of the similar structure of two extremely complex organs on two entirely different lines of evolution! An accidental variation, however minute, implies the working of a great number of small physical and chemical causes. An accumulation of accidental variations, such as would be necessary to produce a complex structure, requires therefore the concurrence of an almost infinite number of infinitesimal causes. Why should these causes, entirely accidental, recur the same, and in the same order, at different points of space and time? No one will hold that this is the case, and the Darwinian himself will probably merely maintain that identical effects may arise from different causes, that more than one road leads to the same spot. But let us not be fooled by a metaphor. The place reached does not give the form of the road that leads there; while an organic structure is just the accumulation of those small differences which evolution has had to go through in order to achieve it. The struggle for life and natural selection can be of no use to us in solving this part of the problem, for we are not concerned here with what has perished, we have to do only with what has survived. Now, we see that identical structures have been formed on independent lines of evolution by a gradual accumulation of effects. How can accidental causes, occurring in an accidental order, be supposed to have repeatedly come to the same result, the causes being infinitely numerous and the effect infinitely complicated?[Pg 57]
Let’s first point out that, of the two hypotheses just mentioned, the second one is the only one that's clear-cut.[Pg 56] The Darwinian concept of adaptation through the automatic elimination of the unfit is a straightforward idea. However, because it assigns merely a negative role to the external factors that influence evolution, it struggles to explain the progressive and, so to speak, linear development of complex systems that we’re about to explore. How much harder will this challenge be when looking at the similar structures of two very complex organs that evolved along completely different paths? Any random variation, no matter how small, involves a wide range of minor physical and chemical factors at play. The accumulation of these random variations, which would be necessary to create a complex structure, therefore requires the coordination of an almost unimaginable number of tiny factors. Why would these entirely random factors show up in the same way, and in the same sequence, in different locations and times? No one can seriously argue that this is the case, and even a Darwinian would probably just claim that similar outcomes can result from different causes, that there are multiple paths to the same destination. But let’s not be misled by a metaphor. The destination reached doesn’t determine the path taken to get there; an organic structure is simply the sum of those small differences that evolution has navigated to create it. The struggle for existence and natural selection won't help us solve this aspect of the issue, as we’re not looking at what has been lost, but rather what has endured. Now, we see that identical structures have developed along independent evolutionary paths through a gradual buildup of effects. How can random causes, occurring in a random sequence, be expected to repeatedly achieve the same outcome, with the causes being countless and the effect infinitely complex?[Pg 57]
The principle of mechanism is that "the same causes produce the same effects." This principle, of course, does not always imply that the same effects must have the same causes; but it does involve this consequence in the particular case in which the causes remain visible in the effect that they produce and are indeed its constitutive elements. That two walkers starting from different points and wandering at random should finally meet, is no great wonder. But that, throughout their walk, they should describe two identical curves exactly superposable on each other, is altogether unlikely. The improbability will be the greater, the more complicated the routes; and it will become impossibility, if the zigzags are infinitely complicated. Now, what is this complexity of zigzags as compared with that of an organ in which thousands of different cells, each being itself a kind of organism, are arranged in a definite order?
The principle of mechanism is that "the same causes produce the same effects." This principle doesn’t always mean that the same effects must come from the same causes; however, it does imply this when the causes are apparent in the effects they create and are actually essential to them. It’s not surprising that two walkers starting from different locations and wandering randomly would eventually meet. But it is quite unlikely that, during their walk, they would trace out two identical curves that perfectly overlap. The more complicated their paths, the less likely it is, and it becomes impossible if the zigzags are infinitely intricate. Now, how does this complexity of zigzags compare to that of an organism made up of thousands of different cells, each functioning as a kind of organism, arranged in a specific order?
Let us turn, then, to the other hypothesis, and see how it would solve the problem. Adaptation, it says, is not merely elimination of the unadapted; it is due to the positive influence of outer conditions that have molded the organism on their own form. This time, similarity of effects will be explained by similarity of cause. We shall remain, apparently, in pure mechanism. But if we look closely, we shall see that the explanation is merely verbal, that we are again the dupes of words, and that the trick of the solution consists in taking the term "adaptation" in two entirely different senses at the same time.
Let’s now consider the other hypothesis and see how it addresses the problem. It argues that adaptation isn’t just about getting rid of the unfit; it results from the positive impact of external conditions that have shaped the organism’s form. This time, the similarity in outcomes will be explained by a similarity in causes. We will seemingly remain within pure mechanics. However, upon closer examination, we will realize that the explanation is just a matter of words, that we are once again misled by language, and that the trick in the solution lies in using the term “adaptation” in two completely different meanings at the same time.
If I pour into the same glass, by turns, water and wine, the two liquids will take the same form, and the sameness in form will be due to the sameness in adaptation of content to container. Adaptation, here, really means mechanical adjustment. The reason is that the form to which the matter has adapted itself was there, ready-made, and[Pg 58] has forced its own shape on the matter. But, in the adaptation of an organism to the circumstances it has to live in, where is the pre-existing form awaiting its matter? The circumstances are not a mold into which life is inserted and whose form life adopts: this is indeed to be fooled by a metaphor. There is no form yet, and the life must create a form for itself, suited to the circumstances which are made for it. It will have to make the best of these circumstances, neutralize their inconveniences and utilize their advantages—in short, respond to outer actions by building up a machine which has no resemblance to them. Such adapting is not repeating, but replying,—an entirely different thing. If there is still adaptation, it will be in the sense in which one may say of the solution of a problem of geometry, for example, that it is adapted to the conditions. I grant indeed that adaptation so understood explains why different evolutionary processes result in similar forms: the same problem, of course, calls for the same solution. But it is necessary then to introduce, as for the solution of a problem of geometry, an intelligent activity, or at least a cause which behaves in the same way. This is to bring in finality again, and a finality this time more than ever charged with anthropomorphic elements. In a word, if the adaptation is passive, if it is mere repetition in the relief of what the conditions give in the mold, it will build up nothing that one tries to make it build; and if it is active, capable of responding by a calculated solution to the problem which is set out in the conditions, that is going further than we do—too far, indeed, in our opinion—in the direction we indicated in the beginning. But the truth is that there is a surreptitious passing from one of these two meanings to the other, a flight for refuge to the first whenever one is about to be caught in flagrante delicto of finalism by employing the second. It is really[Pg 59] the second which serves the usual practice of science, but it is the first that generally provides its philosophy. In any particular case one talks as if the process of adaptation were an effort of the organism to build up a machine capable of turning external circumstances to the best possible account: then one speaks of adaptation in general as if it were the very impress of circumstances, passively received by an indifferent matter.
If I pour water and wine into the same glass, the two liquids will take the same shape, and the similarity in form will be because both are adjusting to the same container. Here, adaptation really means a mechanical adjustment. The reason is that the shape to which the substance has adapted was already there, ready-made, and[Pg 58] has imposed its own shape onto the substance. But in the adaptation of an organism to its living conditions, where is the pre-existing shape ready for its substance? The conditions are not a mold into which life fits and whose shape life takes; that would be falling for a metaphor. There is no existing form, and life must create a form for itself that suits the conditions it's faced with. It has to make the most of these circumstances, offset their downsides, and leverage their advantages—in short, respond to external factors by building a structure that doesn't resemble them. Such adaptation is not about repeating, but responding—which is an entirely different concept. If there is still adaptation, it will be in the way one might say the solution to a geometry problem is adapted to the conditions. I do agree that understanding adaptation this way clarifies why different evolutionary paths result in similar forms: the same problem, after all, requires the same solution. But it’s crucial to introduce, as with a geometry problem, some intelligent agency, or at the very least, a cause that behaves similarly. This brings us back to finality, and this finality is even more steeped in anthropomorphic elements than before. In short, if adaptation is passive, merely repeating what the conditions offer, it won't produce anything that one tries to shape it into; and if it's active, able to respond with a calculated solution to the problem presented by the conditions, that goes further than we do—too far, in fact, in our view—in the direction we first pointed out. The truth is that there’s a sneaky shift from one meaning to the other, a retreat to the first whenever one is about to be caught in flagrante delicto of finalism by using the second. It’s actually[Pg 59] the second that usually serves the practice of science, but it’s the first that typically drives its philosophy. In any particular case, people discuss the adaptation process as an effort by the organism to create a mechanism that can best take advantage of external circumstances; then they refer to adaptation in general as if it were a mere imprint of circumstances, passively received by an indifferent substance.
But let us come to the examples. It would be interesting first to institute here a general comparison between plants and animals. One cannot fail to be struck with the parallel progress which has been accomplished, on both sides, in the direction of sexuality. Not only is fecundation itself the same in higher plants and in animals, since it consists, in both, in the union of two nuclei that differ in their properties and structure before their union and immediately after become equivalent to each other; but the preparation of sexual elements goes on in both under like conditions: it consists essentially in the reduction of the number of chromosomes and the rejection of a certain quantity of chromatic substance.[22] Yet vegetables and animals have evolved on independent lines, favored by unlike circumstances, opposed by unlike obstacles. Here are two great series which have gone on diverging. On either line, thousands and thousands of causes have combined to determine the morphological and functional evolution. Yet these infinitely complicated causes have been consummated, in each series, in the same effect. And this effect, could hardly be called a phenomenon of "adaptation": where is the adaptation, where is the pressure of external circumstances? There is no striking utility[Pg 60] in sexual generation; it has been interpreted in the most diverse ways; and some very acute enquirers even regard the sexuality of the plant, at least, as a luxury which nature might have dispensed with.[23] But we do not wish to dwell on facts so disputed. The ambiguity of the term "adaptation," and the necessity of transcending both the point of view of mechanical causality and that of anthropomorphic finality, will stand out more clearly with simpler examples. At all times the doctrine of finality has laid much stress on the marvellous structure of the sense-organs, in order to liken the work of nature to that of an intelligent workman. Now, since these organs are found, in a rudimentary state, in the lower animals, and since nature offers us many intermediaries between the pigment-spot of the simplest organisms and the infinitely complex eye of the vertebrates, it may just as well be alleged that the result has been brought about by natural selection perfecting the organ automatically. In short, if there is a case in which it seems justifiable to invoke adaptation, it is this particular one. For there may be discussion about the function and meaning of such a thing as sexual generation, in so far as it is related to the conditions in which it occurs; but the relation of the eye to light is obvious, and when we call this relation an adaptation, we must know what we mean. If, then, we can show, in this privileged case, the insufficiency of the principles invoked on both sides, our demonstration will at once have reached a high degree of generality.
But let’s look at some examples. It would be interesting to start with a general comparison between plants and animals. It's hard not to notice the similar progress made in both regarding sexuality. Fecundation is the same in higher plants and animals; it involves the merging of two nuclei that differ in their properties and structure before they combine and become equivalent after their union. The preparation of sexual elements also occurs under similar conditions in both, essentially involving the reduction of the number of chromosomes and the elimination of some chromatic material.[22] However, plants and animals have evolved along separate paths, shaped by different circumstances and confronted by different obstacles. These are two major lines of evolution that have diverged over time. On each line, countless factors have interacted to influence their morphological and functional evolution. Yet, despite these incredibly complex factors, both have ended up with similar outcomes. This outcome can hardly be considered a case of "adaptation”: where is the adaptation, where is the pressure from external circumstances? There is no obvious utility[Pg 60] in sexual reproduction; it has been interpreted in many ways, and some keen researchers even see the plant’s sexuality as a luxury that nature might have done without.[23] But we don’t want to linger on such debated facts. The ambiguity of the term "adaptation," combined with the need to look beyond mechanical causality and anthropomorphic purpose, will become clearer with simpler examples. Throughout history, the idea of purpose has emphasized the remarkable structure of sensory organs to compare nature's work to that of a skilled craftsman. Now, since these organs are found in a rudimentary form in lower animals and since nature presents many stages between the pigment spot of the simplest organisms and the extremely complex eye of vertebrates, it can equally be argued that these results have come about through natural selection refining the organ over time. In short, if there is a situation where it seems reasonable to bring up adaptation, it’s this one. There can be discussions about the function and significance of sexual reproduction as it relates to the conditions in which it occurs, but the connection between the eye and light is clear, and when we refer to this connection as adaptation, we must understand what we mean. If we can demonstrate, in this significant case, the shortcomings of the concepts discussed on both sides, our argument will have a high level of generality.
Let us consider the example on which the advocates of finality have always insisted: the structure of such an organ as the human eye. They have had no diffi[Pg 61]culty in showing that in this extremely complicated apparatus all the elements are marvelously co-ordinated. In order that vision shall operate, says the author of a well-known book on Final Causes, "the sclerotic membrane must become transparent in one point of its surface, so as to enable luminous rays to pierce it;... the cornea must correspond exactly with the opening of the socket;... behind this transparent opening there must be refracting media;... there must be a retina[24] at the extremity of the dark chamber;... perpendicular to the retina there must be an innumerable quantity of transparent cones permitting only the light directed in the line of their axes to reach the nervous membrane,"[25] etc. etc. In reply, the advocate of final causes has been invited to assume the evolutionist hypothesis. Everything is marvelous, indeed, if one consider an eye like ours, in which thousands of elements are coördinated in a single function. But take the function at its origin, in the Infusorian, where it is reduced to the mere impressionability (almost purely chemical) of a pigment-spot to light: this function, possibly only an accidental fact in the beginning, may have brought about a slight complication of the organ, which again induced an improvement of the function. It may have done this either directly, through some unknown mechanism, or indirectly, merely through the effect of the advantages it brought to the living being and the hold it thus offered to natural selection. Thus the progressive formation of an eye as well contrived as ours would be explained by an almost infinite number of actions and reactions between the function and the organ, without the intervention of other than mechanical causes.
Let's consider the example that supporters of finality have always pointed to: the structure of the human eye. They've shown without any difficulty that in this incredibly complex system, all the parts are wonderfully coordinated. In order for vision to work, as noted by the author of a famous book on Final Causes, "the sclerotic membrane must be transparent at one point to let light rays through;... the cornea must align perfectly with the socket opening;... there must be refracting media behind this transparent opening;... there must be a retina[24] at the back of the dark chamber;... perpendicular to the retina there must be countless transparent cones that allow only light directed along their axes to reach the nervous membrane,"[25] and so on. In response, supporters of final causes have been asked to consider the evolutionist hypothesis. Everything is indeed amazing when looking at an eye like ours, where thousands of parts work together for one purpose. However, if we look at the function in its early stages, in the Infusorian, where it simply involves the ability of a pigment spot to respond to light (almost purely chemical): this function, which may have started as an accidental fact, could have led to a slight complication of the organ, which in turn improved the function. This may have happened directly, through some unknown process, or indirectly, simply as a result of the advantages it provided to the living being and the advantages that natural selection then favored. So, the gradual development of an eye as well-designed as ours could be explained by an almost infinite number of interactions between the function and the organ, without the need for anything other than mechanical causes.
The question is hard to decide, indeed, when put di[Pg 62]rectly between the function and the organ, as is done in the doctrine of finality, as also mechanism itself does. For organ and function are terms of different nature, and each conditions the other so closely that it is impossible to say a priori whether in expressing their relation we should begin with the first, as does mechanism, or with the second, as finalism requires. But the discussion would take an entirely different turn, we think, if we began by comparing together two terms of the same nature, an organ with an organ, instead of an organ with its function. In this case, it would be possible to proceed little by little to a solution more and more plausible, and there would be the more chance of a successful issue the more resolutely we assumed the evolutionist hypothesis.
The question is indeed difficult to answer when placed directly between function and organ, as seen in the doctrines of finality and mechanism. Organ and function are fundamentally different concepts, and they each condition the other so closely that it's impossible to determine beforehand whether we should start with the former, as mechanism does, or with the latter, as finalism requires. However, we believe the discussion would take a completely different direction if we began by comparing two similar terms, such as one organ with another, instead of an organ with its function. In this case, it would be possible to gradually arrive at a more convincing solution, and the chances of success would increase the more confidently we embraced the evolutionist hypothesis.
Let us place side by side the eye of a vertebrate and that of a mollusc such as the common Pecten. We find the same essential parts in each, composed of analogous elements. The eye of the Pecten presents a retina, a cornea, a lens of cellular structure like our own. There is even that peculiar inversion of retinal elements which is not met with, in general, in the retina of the invertebrates. Now, the origin of molluscs may be a debated question, but, whatever opinion we hold, all are agreed that molluscs and vertebrates separated from their common parent-stem long before the appearance of an eye so complex as that of the Pecten. Whence, then, the structural analogy?
Let's compare the eye of a vertebrate with that of a mollusk like the common Pecten. We see the same essential components in each, made up of similar elements. The eye of the Pecten has a retina, a cornea, and a lens with a cellular structure similar to our own. There’s even the unusual inversion of retinal elements, which generally doesn’t occur in the retina of invertebrates. The origins of mollusks may be a topic of debate, but regardless of our views, everyone agrees that mollusks and vertebrates diverged from their common ancestor long before the development of an eye as complex as that of the Pecten. So, where does this structural similarity come from?
Let us question on this point the two opposed systems of evolutionist explanation in turn—the hypothesis of purely accidental variations, and that of a variation directed in a definite way under the influence of external conditions.
Let’s examine the two opposing systems of evolutionary explanation one by one—the theory of completely random variations and the theory of variations that are guided in a specific direction by external conditions.
The first, as is well known, is presented to-day in two quite different forms. Darwin spoke of very slight vari[Pg 63]ations being accumulated by natural selection. He was not ignorant of the facts of sudden variation; but he thought these "sports," as he called them, were only monstrosities incapable of perpetuating themselves; and he accounted for the genesis of species by an accumulation of insensible variations.[26] Such is still the opinion of many naturalists. It is tending, however, to give way to the opposite idea that a new species comes into being all at once by the simultaneous appearance of several new characters, all somewhat different from the previous ones. This latter hypothesis, already proposed by various authors, notably by Bateson in a remarkable book,[27] has become deeply significant and acquired great force since the striking experiments of Hugo de Vries. This botanist, working on the Œnothera Lamarckiana, obtained at the end of a few generations a certain number of new species. The theory he deduces from his experiments is of the highest interest. Species pass through alternate periods of stability and transformation. When the period of "mutability" occurs, unexpected forms spring forth in a great number of different directions.[28]—We will not attempt to take sides between this hypothesis and that of insensible variations. Indeed, perhaps both are partly true. We wish merely to point out that if the variations invoked are accidental, they do not, whether small or great, account for a similarity of structure such as we have cited.
The first, as is well known, is presented today in two quite different forms. Darwin spoke of very slight variations being accumulated by natural selection. He was aware of the facts of sudden variation; but he thought these "sports," as he called them, were just monstrosities that couldn't sustain themselves; and he explained the origin of species by an accumulation of *insensible* variations.[26] Many naturalists still hold this view. However, it is gradually giving way to the opposite idea that new species appear all at once through the simultaneous emergence of several new characteristics that differ from the previous ones. This latter hypothesis, already proposed by various authors, notably by Bateson in a remarkable book,[27] has gained significant importance and strength since the remarkable experiments of Hugo de Vries. This botanist, working on the *Œnothera Lamarckiana*, obtained several new species after just a few generations. The theory he derives from his experiments is of great interest. Species go through alternating periods of stability and transformation. During the "mutability" period, unexpected forms emerge in numerous directions.[28]—We will not take sides between this hypothesis and that of insensible variations. In fact, perhaps both contain elements of truth. We merely wish to highlight that if the invoked variations are accidental, whether small or large, they do not explain a similarity of structure like the one we have cited.
Let us assume, to begin with, the Darwinian theory of insensible variations, and suppose the occurrence of small differences due to chance, and continually accumulating.[Pg 64] It must not be forgotten that all the parts of an organism are necessarily coördinated. Whether the function be the effect of the organ or its cause, it matters little; one point is certain—the organ will be of no use and will not give selection a hold unless it functions. However the minute structure of the retina may develop, and however complicated it may become, such progress, instead of favoring vision, will probably hinder it if the visual centres do not develop at the same time, as well as several parts of the visual organ itself. If the variations are accidental, how can they ever agree to arise in every part of the organ at the same time, in such way that the organ will continue to perform its function? Darwin quite understood this; it is one of the reasons why he regarded variation as insensible.[29] For a difference which arises accidentally at one point of the visual apparatus, if it be very slight, will not hinder the functioning of the organ; and hence this first accidental variation can, in a sense, wait for complementary variations to accumulate and raise vision to a higher degree of perfection. Granted; but while the insensible variation does not hinder the functioning of the eye, neither does it help it, so long as the variations that are complementary do not occur. How, in that case, can the variation be retained by natural selection? Unwittingly one will reason as if the slight variation were a toothing stone set up by the organism and reserved for a later construction. This hypothesis, so little conformable to the Darwinian principle, is difficult enough to avoid even in the case of an organ which has been developed along one single main line of evolution, e.g. the vertebrate eye. But it is absolutely forced upon us when we observe the likeness of structure of the vertebrate eye and that of the molluscs. How could the same small variations, incal[Pg 65]culable in number, have ever occurred in the same order on two independent lines of evolution, if they were purely accidental? And how could they have been preserved by selection and accumulated in both cases, the same in the same order, when each of them, taken separately, was of no use?
Let’s start by assuming the Darwinian theory of tiny, unnoticed variations and consider that small differences occur by chance and accumulate over time.[Pg 64] It’s important to remember that all parts of an organism are interconnected. Whether an organ's function is a result of its structure or vice versa is irrelevant; the key point is that the organ won’t be useful and won’t be favored by selection unless it works. No matter how complex the retina’s structure becomes, development in that area alone could hinder vision if the visual centers and other parts of the visual system do not evolve simultaneously. If variations happen by chance, how can they line up perfectly across all parts of the organ at the same time so that the organ continues to function? Darwin understood this well; it's one of the reasons he saw variation as insensible. A minor change that occurs randomly in one part of the visual system, if it’s very small, won't disrupt the organ's function. Therefore, this initial random variation can somewhat wait for complementary changes to build up and enhance vision. That said, while this insensible variation doesn't hinder the eye’s function, it also doesn't improve it unless complementary variations occur. So, how can natural selection preserve these variations? One might mistakenly think of the slight variation as a foundation set up by the organism for future development. This assumption, which goes against Darwinian principles, is hard to avoid even with an organ that has developed along a single evolutionary path, like the vertebrate eye. However, it becomes unavoidable when we compare the similar structures of the vertebrate eye and that of mollusks. How could the same tiny variations, countless in number, occur in the same sequence on two separate evolutionary paths if they were purely accidental? And how could they be preserved by selection and accumulate in both instances in the same order when each one, on its own, had no utility?
Let us turn, then, to the hypothesis of sudden variations, and see whether it will solve the problem. It certainly lessens the difficulty on one point, but it makes it much worse on another. If the eye of the mollusc and that of the vertebrate have both been raised to their present form by a relatively small number of sudden leaps, I have less difficulty in understanding the resemblance of the two organs than if this resemblance were due to an incalculable number of infinitesimal resemblances acquired successively: in both cases it is chance that operates, but in the second case chance is not required to work the miracle it would have to perform in the first. Not only is the number of resemblances to be added somewhat reduced, but I can also understand better how each could be preserved and added to the others; for the elementary variation is now considerable enough to be an advantage to the living being, and so to lend itself to the play of selection. But here there arises another problem, no less formidable, viz., how do all the parts of the visual apparatus, suddenly changed, remain so well coördinated that the eye continues to exercise its function? For the change of one part alone will make vision impossible, unless this change is absolutely infinitesimal. The parts must then all change at once, each consulting the others. I agree that a great number of uncoördinated variations may indeed have arisen in less fortunate individuals, that natural selection may have eliminated these, and that only the combination fit to[Pg 66] endure, capable of preserving and improving vision, has survived. Still, this combination had to be produced. And, supposing chance to have granted this favor once, can we admit that it repeats the self-same favor in the course of the history of a species, so as to give rise, every time, all at once, to new complications marvelously regulated with reference to each other, and so related to former complications as to go further on in the same direction? How, especially, can we suppose that by a series of mere "accidents" these sudden variations occur, the same, in the same order,—involving in each case a perfect harmony of elements more and more numerous and complex—along two independent lines of evolution?
Let's look at the idea of sudden changes and see if it solves the problem. It definitely eases one aspect, but complicates another. If the eye of the mollusk and the vertebrate developed into their current forms through a relatively small number of sudden leaps, I find it easier to grasp the similarity between the two organs than if that similarity resulted from countless tiny resemblances accumulated over time. In both scenarios, chance is at work, but in the second case, chance wouldn't need to perform the miracle it would in the first. Not only is the number of similarities reduced somewhat, but I can also better understand how each could be preserved and combined with the others; the basic variation is now significant enough to benefit the organism and thus subject to natural selection. However, another significant problem arises: how do all the parts of the visual system, which change suddenly, remain well-coordinated so that the eye continues to function? A change in just one part would make vision impossible unless that change is incredibly tiny. Thus, all parts must change simultaneously, each accounting for the others. I acknowledge that many uncoordinated variations may have occurred in less fortunate individuals, and that natural selection may have eliminated these, with only the viable combination that can endure, capable of preserving and enhancing vision, surviving. Still, this combination had to come together. And if we assume chance provided this opportunity once, can we believe it will repeatedly grant the same favor throughout a species' history, resulting in new complexities that are perfectly regulated in relation to one another and connected to previous complexities in a way that moves in the same direction? How, especially, can we suppose that a series of mere "accidents" leads to these sudden changes, identical and in the same order—each time involving a perfect harmony of elements that are increasingly numerous and complex—along two independent evolutionary paths?
The law of correlation will be invoked, of course; Darwin himself appealed to it.[30] It will be alleged that a change is not localized in a single point of the organism, but has its necessary recoil on other points. The examples cited by Darwin remain classic: white cats with blue eyes are generally deaf; hairless dogs have imperfect dentition, etc.—Granted; but let us not play now on the word "correlation." A collective whole of solidary changes is one thing, a system of complementary changes—changes so coördinated as to keep up and even improve the functioning of an organ under more complicated conditions—is another. That an anomaly of the pilous system should be accompanied by an anomaly of dentition is quite conceivable without our having to call for a special principle of explanation; for hair and teeth are similar formations,[31] and the same chemical change of the germ that hinders the formation of hair would probably obstruct[Pg 67] that of teeth: it may be for the same sort of reason that white cats with blue eyes are deaf. In these different examples the "correlative" changes are only solidary changes (not to mention the fact that they are really lesions, namely, diminutions or suppressions, and not additions, which makes a great difference). But when we speak of "correlative" changes occurring suddenly in the different parts of the eye, we use the word in an entirely new sense: this time there is a whole set of changes not only simultaneous, not only bound together by community of origin, but so coördinated that the organ keeps on performing the same simple function, and even performs it better. That a change in the germ, which influences the formation of the retina, may affect at the same time also the formation of the cornea, the iris, the lens, the visual centres, etc., I admit, if necessary, although they are formations that differ much more from one another in their original nature than do probably hair and teeth. But that all these simultaneous changes should occur in such a way as to improve or even merely maintain vision, this is what, in the hypothesis of sudden variation, I cannot admit, unless a mysterious principle is to come in, whose duty it is to watch over the interest of the function. But this would be to give up the idea of "accidental" variation. In reality, these two senses of the word "correlation" are often interchanged in the mind of the biologist, just like the two senses of the word "adaptation." And the confusion is almost legitimate in botany, that science in which the theory of the formation of species by sudden variation rests on the firmest experimental basis. In vegetables, function is far less narrowly bound to form than in animals. Even profound morphological differences, such as a change in the form of leaves, have no appreciable influence on the exercise of function, and so do not require a whole[Pg 68] system of complementary changes for the plant to remain fit to survive. But it is not so in the animal, especially in the case of an organ like the eye, a very complex structure and very delicate function. Here it is impossible to identify changes that are simply solidary with changes which are also complementary. The two senses of the word "correlation" must be carefully distinguished; it would be a downright paralogism to adopt one of them in the premisses of the reasoning, and the other in the conclusion. And this is just what is done when the principle of correlation is invoked in explanations of detail in order to account for complementary variations, and then correlation in general is spoken of as if it were any group of variations provoked by any variation of the germ. Thus, the notion of correlation is first used in current science as it might be used by an advocate of finality; it is understood that this is only a convenient way of expressing oneself, that one will correct it and fall back on pure mechanism when explaining the nature of the principles and turning from science to philosophy. And one does then come back to pure mechanism, but only by giving a new meaning to the word "correlation"—a meaning which would now make correlation inapplicable to the detail it is called upon to explain.
The law of correlation will be referenced, of course; even Darwin pointed to it.[30] It's claimed that a change isn't just limited to one specific part of the organism but impacts other areas as well. Darwin's classic examples include: white cats with blue eyes are usually deaf; hairless dogs have dental issues, and so on. That's true, but let's not get tangled up in the word "correlation" right now. A collection of related changes is one thing, while a system of complementary changes—changes that work together to maintain and even enhance the function of an organ under more complex conditions—is another. It's quite possible for an issue with hair growth to be linked to a dental issue without needing to invoke a special principle to explain it; after all, hair and teeth are similar structures,[31] and the same chemical change in the germ that prevents hair from forming might also hinder tooth development: this might also explain why white cats with blue eyes tend to be deaf. In these various examples, the "correlative" changes are merely related changes (not to mention that they are actually deficiencies—specifically, losses or reductions, rather than additions, which is significant). However, when we speak of "correlative" changes happening unexpectedly across different parts of the eye, we are using the term in a completely different way: now we're talking about a whole set of changes that are not only simultaneous and connected by a common origin but also coordinated in a way that allows the organ to continue performing the same basic function, and even to do it better. I acknowledge that a change in the germ, affecting the formation of the retina, can simultaneously impact the formation of the cornea, the iris, the lens, the visual centers, and so on, although these structures are much more different from each other in their original nature than probably hair and teeth are. But for all these simultaneous changes to occur in such a way that vision improves or at least remains the same is something I can't accept with the idea of sudden variation, unless there’s some mysterious principle at play, overseeing the function’s needs. But that would mean abandoning the concept of "accidental" variation. In reality, these two meanings of "correlation" often get mixed up in the biologist's mind, much like the two meanings of "adaptation." This confusion is somewhat legitimate in botany, a field where the theory of species formation through sudden variation is backed by strong experimental evidence. In plants, function is much less strictly tied to form than it is in animals. Even significant morphological changes, like leaf shape alterations, don’t noticeably affect functionality, so they don’t require a whole[Pg 68] system of complementary changes for the plant to continue thriving. But that’s not the case in animals, especially when it comes to an organ like the eye, which has a very intricate structure and delicate function. Here, it's impossible to distinguish between changes that are merely related and those that are also complementary. The two meanings of "correlation" must be clearly differentiated; it would be a serious logical error to apply one meaning in the premises and a different one in the conclusion. And that’s exactly what happens when the principle of correlation is used in detailed explanations to account for complementary variations, and then correlation in general is discussed as if it referred to any group of variations caused by any germ variation. Thus, the concept of correlation is initially employed in contemporary science as one might use it in arguments for purpose; it’s understood that this is just a convenient way to express ideas, and that one would later correct it and revert to pure mechanism when explaining the principles and shifting from science to philosophy. And while one does return to pure mechanism, it is done by assigning a new meaning to the term "correlation"—a meaning that renders correlation irrelevant to the details it is supposed to clarify.
To sum up, if the accidental variations that bring about evolution are insensible variations, some good genius must be appealed to—the genius of the future species—in order to preserve and accumulate these variations, for selection will not look after this. If, on the other hand, the accidental variations are sudden, then, for the previous function to go on or for a new function to take its place, all the changes that have happened together must be complementary. So we have to fall back on the good genius again, this time to obtain the convergence of simultaneous[Pg 69] changes, as before to be assured of the continuity of direction of successive variations. But in neither case can parallel development of the same complex structures on independent lines of evolution be due to a mere accumulation of accidental variations. So we come to the second of the two great hypotheses we have to examine. Suppose the variations are due, not to accidental and inner causes, but to the direct influence of outer circumstances. Let us see what line we should have to take, on this hypothesis, to account for the resemblance of eye-structure in two series that are independent of each other from the phylogenetic point of view.
To sum up, if the random variations that lead to evolution are subtle changes, we need to rely on some kind of guiding force—the guiding force of future species—to preserve and build upon these variations, because selection won't take care of this. On the other hand, if the random variations are sudden, then, for the previous function to continue or for a new function to emerge, all the changes that have occurred must work together. So we have to turn to that guiding force again, this time to achieve the convergence of simultaneous[Pg 69] changes, just as before to ensure the continuity of direction of successive variations. But in neither case can parallel development of the same complex structures along independent evolutionary paths be explained by just a buildup of random variations. Thus, we arrive at the second of the two major hypotheses we need to explore. Let's consider the idea that the variations are not from random internal causes, but from the direct influence of external conditions. Let’s investigate what approach we would need to take under this hypothesis to explain the similarity in eye structure between two series that are evolutionarily independent from each other.
Though molluscs and vertebrates have evolved separately, both have remained exposed to the influence of light. And light is a physical cause bringing forth certain definite effects. Acting in a continuous way, it has been able to produce a continuous variation in a constant direction. Of course it is unlikely that the eye of the vertebrate and that of the mollusc have been built up by a series of variations due to simple chance. Admitting even that light enters into the case as an instrument of selection, in order to allow only useful variations to persist, there is no possibility that the play of chance, even thus supervised from without, should bring about in both cases the same juxtaposition of elements coördinated in the same way. But it would be different supposing that light acted directly on the organized matter so as to change its structure and somehow adapt this structure to its own form. The resemblance of the two effects would then be explained by the identity of the cause. The more and more complex eye would be something like the deeper and deeper imprint of light on a matter which, being organized, possesses a special aptitude for receiving it.
Even though mollusks and vertebrates have evolved separately, both have been affected by light. Light is a physical factor that causes specific effects. By acting continuously, it can create ongoing changes in a consistent direction. It's unlikely that the vertebrate eye and the mollusk eye developed through random variations alone. Even if we accept that light played a role as a selection mechanism to let only beneficial variations survive, there's no way that chance alone, even if guided from the outside, could create the same arrangement of elements in both cases. However, it would be different if light acted directly on the organized matter, changing its structure and adapting it to its own form. The similarity of the two effects would then be explained by the same underlying cause. The increasingly complex eye would be like a deeper and deeper imprint of light on organized matter that has a unique ability to absorb it.
But can an organic structure be likened to an imprint?[Pg 70] We have already called attention to the ambiguity of the term "adaptation." The gradual complication of a form which is being better and better adapted to the mold of outward circumstances is one thing, the increasingly complex structure of an instrument which derives more and more advantage from these circumstances is another. In the former case, the matter merely receives an imprint; in the second, it reacts positively, it solves a problem. Obviously it is this second sense of the word "adapt" that is used when one says that the eye has become better and better adapted to the influence of light. But one passes more or less unconsciously from this sense to the other, and a purely mechanistic biology will strive to make the passive adaptation of an inert matter, which submits to the influence of its environment, mean the same as the active adaptation of an organism which derives from this influence an advantage it can appropriate. It must be owned, indeed, that Nature herself appears to invite our mind to confuse these two kinds of adaptation, for she usually begins by a passive adaptation where, later on, she will build up a mechanism for active response. Thus, in the case before us, it is unquestionable that the first rudiment of the eye is found in the pigment-spot of the lower organisms; this spot may indeed have been produced physically, by the mere action of light, and there are a great number of intermediaries between the simple spot of pigment and a complicated eye like that of the vertebrates.—But, from the fact that we pass from one thing to another by degrees, it does not follow that the two things are of the same nature. From the fact that an orator falls in, at first, with the passions of his audience in order to make himself master of them, it will not be concluded that to follow is the same as to lead. Now, living matter seems to have no other means of turning cir[Pg 71]cumstances to good account than by adapting itself to them passively at the outset. Where it has to direct a movement, it begins by adopting it. Life proceeds by insinuation. The intermediate degrees between a pigment-spot and an eye are nothing to the point: however numerous the degrees, there will still be the same interval between the pigment-spot and the eye as between a photograph and a photographic apparatus. Certainly the photograph has been gradually turned into a photographic apparatus; but could light alone, a physical force, ever have provoked this change, and converted an impression left by it into a machine capable of using it?
But can we compare an organic structure to an imprint?[Pg 70] We've already pointed out the ambiguity of the term "adaptation." The gradual complexity of a form that is becoming better suited to its surroundings is one thing, while the increasingly intricate structure of a tool that gains more from these surroundings is another. In the first case, the matter just takes on an imprint; in the second, it actively responds to and solves a problem. Clearly, this second meaning of "adapt" is what is meant when we say that the eye has become increasingly better suited to light. However, we often unconsciously shift from this meaning to the other, and a purely mechanistic biology will try to equate the passive adaptation of an inert matter, which responds to its environment, with the active adaptation of an organism that benefits from this influence. It's true that Nature seems to encourage us to confuse these two types of adaptation, as she usually starts with a passive adaptation, which later develops into a mechanism for active response. Therefore, in the case at hand, it’s clear that the earliest version of the eye is found in the pigment spot of lower organisms; this spot may indeed have been formed physically by mere exposure to light, and there are many intermediates between the simple pigment spot and the complex eye of vertebrates. However, just because we transition gradually from one to another does not mean the two are the same. The fact that an orator initially aligns with the emotions of his audience in order to gain control over them does not mean that to follow is the same as to lead. Now, living matter seems to have no other way of making the most of circumstances than by initially adapting to them passively. When it needs to direct a movement, it starts by adopting it. Life unfolds gradually. The intermediate stages between a pigment spot and an eye aren't relevant: no matter how many degrees exist, there will always be the same gap between the pigment spot and the eye as between a photograph and a photographic machine. Certainly, a photograph can gradually evolve into a photographic apparatus, but could light alone, a physical force, ever have caused this change and transformed an impression into a machine capable of utilizing it?
It may be claimed that considerations of utility are out of place here; that the eye is not made to see, but that we see because we have eyes; that the organ is what it is, and "utility" is a word by which we designate the functional effects of the structure. But when I say that the eye "makes use of" light, I do not merely mean that the eye is capable of seeing; I allude to the very precise relations that exist between this organ and the apparatus of locomotion. The retina of vertebrates is prolonged in an optic nerve, which, again, is continued by cerebral centres connected with motor mechanisms. Our eye makes use of light in that it enables us to utilize, by movements of reaction, the objects that we see to be advantageous, and to avoid those which we see to be injurious. Now, of course, as light may have produced a pigment-spot by physical means, so it can physically determine the movements of certain organisms; ciliated Infusoria, for instance, react to light. But no one would hold that the influence of light has physically caused the formation of a nervous system, of a muscular system, of an osseous system, all things which are continuous with the apparatus of vision in vertebrate animals. The truth is, when one[Pg 72] speaks of the gradual formation of the eye, and, still more, when one takes into account all that is inseparably connected with it, one brings in something entirely different from the direct action of light. One implicitly attributes to organized matter a certain capacity sui generis, the mysterious power of building up very complicated machines to utilize the simple excitation that it undergoes.
Some might argue that thinking about utility isn’t relevant here; that the eye wasn’t made to see, but we see because we have eyes; that the organ simply is what it is, and "utility" is just a term we use to describe its functional effects. However, when I say that the eye "makes use of" light, I’m not just saying that the eye can see; I'm referring to the specific connections between this organ and how we move. The retina of vertebrates extends into an optic nerve, which connects to brain centers linked with motor functions. Our eye makes use of light by allowing us to react to the beneficial things we see, and to steer clear of those we recognize as harmful. Of course, while light might create a pigment spot through physical means, it can also physically influence the movements of certain organisms; for example, ciliated Infusoria respond to light. But no one would claim that light's influence physically caused the development of a nervous system, a muscular system, or a skeletal system, all of which are connected to the visual apparatus in vertebrate animals. The reality is, when discussing the gradual development of the eye, especially considering everything intertwined with it, we’re bringing in something completely different from the direct effects of light. One implicitly ascribes to organized matter a unique capacity, the mysterious ability to construct intricate systems to make use of the simple stimulations it experiences.
But this is just what is claimed to be unnecessary. Physics and chemistry are said to give us the key to everything. Eimer's great work is instructive in this respect. It is well known what persevering effort this biologist has devoted to demonstrating that transformation is brought about by the influence of the external on the internal, continuously exerted in the same direction, and not, as Darwin held, by accidental variations. His theory rests on observations of the highest interest, of which the starting-point was the study of the course followed by the color variation of the skin in certain lizards. Before this, the already old experiments of Dorfmeister had shown that the same chrysalis, according as it was submitted to cold or heat, gave rise to very different butterflies, which had long been regarded as independent species, Vanessa levana and Vanessa prorsa: an intermediate temperature produces an intermediate form. We might class with these facts the important transformations observed in a little crustacean, Artemia salina, when the salt of the water it lives in is increased or diminished.[32] In these various experiments the external agent seems to act as a cause of transformation. But what does the word "cause"[Pg 73] mean here? Without undertaking an exhaustive analysis of the idea of causality, we will merely remark that three very different meanings of this term are commonly confused. A cause may act by impelling, releasing, or unwinding. The billiard-ball, that strikes another, determines its movement by impelling. The spark that explodes the powder acts by releasing. The gradual relaxing of the spring, that makes the phonograph turn, unwinds the melody inscribed on the cylinder: if the melody which is played be the effect, and the relaxing of the spring the cause, we must say that the cause acts by unwinding. What distinguishes these three cases from each other is the greater or less solidarity between the cause and the effect. In the first, the quantity and quality of the effect vary with the quantity and quality of the cause. In the second, neither quality nor quantity of the effect varies with quality and quantity of the cause: the effect is invariable. In the third, the quantity of the effect depends on the quantity of the cause, but the cause does not influence the quality of the effect: the longer the cylinder turns by the action of the spring, the more of the melody I shall hear, but the nature of the melody, or of the part heard, does not depend on the action of the spring. Only in the first case, really, does cause explain effect; in the others the effect is more or less given in advance, and the antecedent invoked is—in different degrees, of course—its occasion rather than its cause. Now, in saying that the saltness of the water is the cause of the transformations of Artemia, or that the degree of temperature determines the color and marks of the wings which a certain chrysalis will assume on becoming a butterfly, is the word "cause" used in the first sense? Obviously not: causality has here an intermediary sense between those of unwinding and releasing. Such, indeed, seems to be Eimer's own meaning when he speaks[Pg 74] of the "kaleidoscopic" character of the variation,[33] or when he says that the variation of organized matter works in a definite way, just as inorganic matter crystallizes in definite directions.[34] And it may be granted, perhaps, that the process is a merely physical and chemical one in the case of the color-changes of the skin. But if this sort of explanation is extended to the case of the gradual formation of the eye of the vertebrate, for instance, it must be supposed that the physico-chemistry of living bodies is such that the influence of light has caused the organism to construct a progressive series of visual apparatus, all extremely complex, yet all capable of seeing, and of seeing better and better.[35] What more could the most confirmed finalist say, in order to mark out so exceptional a physico-chemistry? And will not the position of a mechanistic philosophy become still more difficult, when it is pointed out to it that the egg of a mollusc cannot have the same chemical composition as that of a vertebrate, that the organic substance which evolved toward the first of these two forms could not have been chemically identical with that of the substance which went in the other direction, and that, nevertheless, under the influence of light, the same organ has been constructed in the one case as in the other?
But this is exactly what is claimed to be unnecessary. Physics and chemistry are said to provide us with the key to everything. Eimer's significant work illustrates this. It's well-known how much effort this biologist has put into showing that transformation is caused by continuous external influence on the internal, rather than, as Darwin believed, by random variations. His theory is based on fascinating observations, starting with the study of color changes in the skin of certain lizards. Prior to this, the earlier experiments by Dorfmeister demonstrated that the same chrysalis, when exposed to cold or heat, results in very different butterflies, which were long considered separate species, Vanessa levana and Vanessa prorsa: a middle temperature creates an intermediate form. We can also relate this to the significant transformations seen in a small crustacean, Artemia salina, when the salt content in its water increases or decreases.[32] In these various experiments, the external factor seems to act as a cause of transformation. But what does the term "cause"[Pg 73] mean here? Without delving deeply into the concept of causality, we can point out that three distinct meanings of this term are often mixed up. A cause can act by impelling, releasing, or unwinding. The billiard ball that hits another causes it to move by impelling. The spark that ignites the powder acts by releasing. The gradual unwinding of the spring that makes the phonograph play unwinds the melody recorded on the cylinder: if the melody played is the effect and the unwinding of the spring is the cause, we must say the cause acts by unwinding. What distinguishes these three instances from each other is the degree of connection between the cause and the effect. In the first scenario, the quantity and quality of the effect vary with the quantity and quality of the cause. In the second, neither the quality nor quantity of the effect changes with the quality and quantity of the cause: the effect remains constant. In the third case, the quantity of the effect relies on the amount of the cause, but the cause does not influence the quality of the effect: the longer the cylinder turns due to the spring's action, the more of the melody I will hear, but the nature of the melody, or the part I hear, does not depend on the spring's action. Only in the first example does the cause explain the effect; in the other cases, the effect is somewhat predetermined, and the earlier factor referred is, in varying degrees, its occasion rather than its true cause. Now, when stating that the salinity of the water is the cause of the transformations of Artemia, or that the temperature level determines the color and patterns of the wings that a certain chrysalis will take on when it becomes a butterfly, is the term "cause" used in the first sense? Clearly not: causality here has an intermediary meaning between unwinding and releasing. This seems to align with Eimer's intent when he refers[Pg 74] to the "kaleidoscopic" nature of variation,[33] or when he mentions that the variation of organized matter functions in a specific manner, just as inorganic matter crystallizes in defined patterns.[34] It's conceivable that the process is purely physical and chemical in the case of color changes in the skin. But if this kind of explanation is applied to the slow development of the eye in vertebrates, it has to be assumed that the physico-chemistry of living organisms is such that the influence of light has led the organism to create a progressive series of increasingly complex visual systems, all capable of vision, and improving in clarity. [35] What more could a staunch finalist argue to highlight such an extraordinary physico-chemistry? And won't the position of a mechanistic philosophy be even more challenging when it's pointed out that the egg of a mollusk cannot have the same chemical makeup as that of a vertebrate, that the organic material that evolved into the first of these two forms could not have been chemically identical to that of the substance that led to the other, and that yet, under the influence of light, the same organ has been developed in both cases?
The more we reflect upon it, the more we shall see that this production of the same effect by two different accumulations of an enormous number of small causes is contrary to the principles of mechanistic philosophy. We have concentrated the full force of our discussion upon an example drawn from phylogenesis. But ontogenesis would have furnished us with facts no less cogent. Every[Pg 75] moment, right before our eyes, nature arrives at identical results, in sometimes neighboring species, by entirely different embryogenic processes. Observations of "heteroblastia" have multiplied in late years,[36] and it has been necessary to reject the almost classical theory of the specificity of embryonic gills. Still keeping to our comparison between the eye of vertebrates and that of molluscs, we may point out that the retina of the vertebrate is produced by an expansion in the rudimentary brain of the young embryo. It is a regular nervous centre which has moved toward the periphery. In the mollusc, on the contrary, the retina is derived from the ectoderm directly, and not indirectly by means of the embryonic encephalon. Quite different, therefore, are the evolutionary processes which lead, in man and in the Pecten, to the development of a like retina. But, without going so far as to compare two organisms so distant from each other, we might reach the same conclusion simply by looking at certain very curious facts of regeneration in one and the same organism. If the crystalline lens of a Triton be removed, it is regenerated by the iris.[37] Now, the original lens was built out of the ectoderm, while the iris is of mesodermic origin. What is more, in the Salamandra maculata, if the lens be removed and the iris left, the regeneration of the lens takes place at the upper part of the iris; but if this upper part of the iris itself be taken away, the regeneration takes place in the inner or retinal layer of the remaining region.[Pg 76][38] Thus, parts differently situated, differently constituted, meant normally for different functions, are capable of performing the same duties and even of manufacturing, when necessary, the same pieces of the machine. Here we have, indeed, the same effect obtained by different combinations of causes.
The more we think about it, the more we realize that achieving the same result through two different sets of countless small causes goes against the principles of mechanistic philosophy. We've focused our entire discussion on an example from phylogenesis, but ontogenesis could provide equally compelling facts. Every[Pg 75] moment, right in front of us, nature reaches identical outcomes in sometimes closely related species through entirely different embryonic processes. Observations of "heteroblastia" have increased in recent years,[36] and we’ve had to discard the almost traditional theory regarding the specificity of embryonic gills. Sticking to our comparison between the eyes of vertebrates and mollusks, we can point out that the retina in vertebrates develops from an extension of the rudimentary brain in the young embryo. It’s a normal nervous center that has moved toward the outside. In contrast, in mollusks, the retina comes directly from the ectoderm, not indirectly via the embryonic brain. Thus, the evolutionary processes that lead to the formation of a similar retina in humans and in the Pecten are quite different. However, without needing to compare two organisms that are so distantly related, we can draw the same conclusion just by observing some very interesting facts about regeneration in a single organism. If you remove the lens from a Triton, it regenerates from the iris.[37] The original lens developed from the ectoderm, while the iris comes from the mesoderm. Furthermore, in the Salamandra maculata, if the lens is removed but the iris is left, the lens regenerates in the upper part of the iris; but if that upper part of the iris is also removed, regeneration occurs in the inner or retinal layer of the remaining region.[Pg 76][38] This shows that different parts, which are positioned differently, made up of different materials, and usually designed for different functions, can still perform the same roles and even recreate the same components of the system when needed. Here we have the same effect achieved through different combinations of causes.
Whether we will or no, we must appeal to some inner directing principle in order to account for this convergence of effects. Such convergence does not appear possible in the Darwinian, and especially the neo-Darwinian, theory of insensible accidental variations, nor in the hypothesis of sudden accidental variations, nor even in the theory that assigns definite directions to the evolution of the various organs by a kind of mechanical composition of the external with the internal forces. So we come to the only one of the present forms of evolution which remains for us to mention, viz., neo-Lamarckism.
Whether we like it or not, we have to look for some inner guiding principle to explain this convergence of effects. This convergence doesn’t seem possible in the Darwinian, especially the neo-Darwinian, theory of small random variations, nor in the idea of sudden random changes, nor even in the theory that defines specific directions for the evolution of different organs through a mechanical mix of external and internal forces. So, we arrive at the only current form of evolution left to discuss, which is neo-Lamarckism.
It is well known that Lamarck attributed to the living being the power of varying by use or disuse of its organs, and also of passing on the variation so acquired to its descendants. A certain number of biologists hold a doctrine of this kind to-day. The variation that results in a new species is not, they believe, merely an accidental variation inherent in the germ itself, nor is it governed by a determinism sui generis which develops definite characters in a definite direction, apart from every consideration of utility. It springs from the very effort of the living being to adapt itself to the circumstances of its existence. The effort may indeed be only the mechanical exercise of certain organs, mechanically elicited by the pressure of external circumstances. But it may also imply consciousness and will, and it is in this sense that it appears to be understood by one of the most eminent representatives of the[Pg 77] doctrine, the American naturalist Cope.[39] Neo-Lamarckism is therefore, of all the later forms of evolutionism, the only one capable of admitting an internal and psychological principle of development, although it is not bound to do so. And it is also the only evolutionism that seems to us to account for the building up of identical complex organs on independent lines of development. For it is quite conceivable that the same effort to turn the same circumstances to good account might have the same result, especially if the problem put by the circumstances is such as to admit of only one solution. But the question remains, whether the term "effort" must not then be taken in a deeper sense, a sense even more psychological than any neo-Lamarckian supposes.
It is well known that Lamarck believed living organisms have the ability to change through the use or disuse of their organs, and that these changes can be passed down to their offspring. Some biologists today still support this idea. They argue that the variation leading to a new species isn’t just a random change present in the organism's genetic material, nor is it strictly determined by a unique process that shapes specific traits in a particular direction without considering usefulness. Instead, it arises from the organism's efforts to adapt to its environment. This effort could simply involve the mechanical usage of certain organs triggered by external pressures. However, it could also involve awareness and intention, which seems to be the perspective of one of the leading proponents of this view, the American naturalist Cope. Neo-Lamarckism is therefore the only modern form of evolution theory that can incorporate an internal and psychological factor in development, though it's not required to. It’s also the only evolution theory that appears to explain how similar complex organs can evolve independently. It’s quite possible that the same effort to effectively utilize the same conditions might yield the same outcome, especially if the situation only allows for one solution. However, the question remains whether the term "effort" should be understood in a deeper way, one that is even more psychological than any neo-Lamarckian theorist assumes.
For a mere variation of size is one thing, and a change of form is another. That an organ can be strengthened and grow by exercise, nobody will deny. But it is a long way from that to the progressive development of an eye like that of the molluscs and of the vertebrates. If this development be ascribed to the influence of light, long continued but passively received, we fall back on the theory we have just criticized. If, on the other hand, an internal activity is appealed to, then it must be something quite different from what we usually call an effort, for never has an effort been known to produce the slightest complication of an organ, and yet an enormous number of complications, all admirably coördinated, have been necessary to pass from the pigment-spot of the Infusorian to the eye of the vertebrate. But, even if we accept this notion of the evolutionary process in the case of animals, how can we apply it to plants? Here, variations of form do not seem to imply, nor always to lead to, functional[Pg 78] changes; and even if the cause of the variation is of a psychological nature, we can hardly call it an effort, unless we give a very unusual extension to the meaning of the word. The truth is, it is necessary to dig beneath the effort itself and look for a deeper cause.
Changing size is one thing, but changing shape is another. Everyone agrees that an organ can become stronger and grow through use. However, that’s a long way from the gradual evolution of an eye like those found in mollusks and vertebrates. If we attribute this development to the long-term effects of light that is simply received, we revert to the theory we've just criticized. On the other hand, if we refer to some internal drive, it has to be something different from what we typically think of as effort, because no effort has ever been shown to create even a small change in an organ. Yet, a vast number of intricate changes, all perfectly coordinated, have been required to move from the pigment spot of an Infusorian to the eye of a vertebrate. But even if we accept this idea of evolution for animals, how do we apply it to plants? In this case, changes in shape don’t seem to indicate, nor do they always result in, functional[Pg 78] changes. Even if the reason for the change is psychological, it’s hard to label it as effort unless we stretch the definition of the word significantly. The reality is that we need to look deeper than the effort itself to find a more fundamental cause.
This is especially necessary, we believe, if we wish to get at a cause of regular hereditary variations. We are not going to enter here into the controversies over the transmissibility of acquired characters; still less do we wish to take too definite a side on this question, which is not within our province. But we cannot remain completely indifferent to it. Nowhere is it clearer that philosophers can not to-day content themselves with vague generalities, but must follow the scientists in experimental detail and discuss the results with them. If Spencer had begun by putting to himself the question of the hereditability of acquired characters, his evolutionism would no doubt have taken an altogether different form. If (as seems probable to us) a habit contracted by the individual were transmitted to its descendants only in very exceptional cases, all the Spencerian psychology would need remaking, and a large part of Spencer's philosophy would fall to pieces. Let us say, then, how the problem seems to us to present itself, and in what direction an attempt might be made to solve it.
This is especially important, we believe, if we want to understand the cause of regular hereditary variations. We’re not going to get into the debates about whether acquired traits can be passed down; we also don’t want to take a strong stance on this issue, as it's not our area. However, we can't completely ignore it. It’s clear now that philosophers can’t just be satisfied with vague ideas; they need to follow scientists’ experimental details and discuss the findings with them. If Spencer had started by questioning the heritability of acquired traits, his ideas on evolution would likely have developed in a very different way. If (as we think is likely) a habit learned by an individual is passed down to their offspring only in rare cases, then Spencer's entire psychology would need to be reworked, and much of his philosophy would unravel. So, let's outline how we see the problem and explore how it might be addressed.
After having been affirmed as a dogma, the transmissibility of acquired characters has been no less dogmatically denied, for reasons drawn a priori from the supposed nature of germinal cells. It is well known how Weismann was led, by his hypothesis of the continuity of the germ-plasm, to regard the germinal cells—ova and spermatozoa—as almost independent of the somatic cells. Starting from this, it has been claimed, and is still claimed by many, that the hereditary transmission of an acquired[Pg 79] character is inconceivable. But if, perchance, experiment should show that acquired characters are transmissible, it would prove thereby that the germ-plasm is not so independent of the somatic envelope as has been contended, and the transmissibility of acquired characters would become ipso facto conceivable; which amounts to saying that conceivability and inconceivability have nothing to do with the case, and that experience alone must settle the matter. But it is just here that the difficulty begins. The acquired characters we are speaking of are generally habits or the effects of habit, and at the root of most habits there is a natural disposition. So that one can always ask whether it is really the habit acquired by the soma of the individual that is transmitted, or whether it is not rather a natural aptitude, which existed prior to the habit. This aptitude would have remained inherent in the germ-plasm which the individual bears within him, as it was in the individual himself and consequently in the germ whence he sprang. Thus, for instance, there is no proof that the mole has become blind because it has formed the habit of living underground; it is perhaps because its eyes were becoming atrophied that it condemned itself to a life underground.[40] If this is the case, the tendency to lose the power of vision has been transmitted from germ to germ without anything being acquired or lost by the soma of the mole itself. From the fact that the son of a fencing-master has become a good fencer much more quickly than his father, we cannot infer that the habit of the parent has been transmitted to the child; for certain natural dispositions in course of growth may have passed from the plasma engendering the father to the plasma engendering[Pg 80] the son, may have grown on the way by the effect of the primitive impetus, and thus assured to the son a greater suppleness than the father had, without troubling, so to speak, about what the father did. So of many examples drawn from the progressive domestication of animals: it is hard to say whether it is the acquired habit that is transmitted or only a certain natural tendency—that, indeed, which has caused such and such a particular species or certain of its representatives to be specially chosen for domestication. The truth is, when every doubtful case, every fact open to more than one interpretation, has been eliminated, there remains hardly a single unquestionable example of acquired and transmitted peculiarities, beyond the famous experiments of Brown-Séquard, repeated and confirmed by other physiologists.[41] By cutting the spinal cord or the sciatic nerve of guinea-pigs, Brown-Séquard brought about an epileptic state which was transmitted to the descendants. Lesions of the same sciatic nerve, of the restiform body, etc., provoked various troubles in the guinea-pig which its progeny inherited sometimes in a quite different form: exophthalmia, loss of toes, etc. But it is not demonstrated that in these different cases of hereditary transmission there had been a real influence of the soma of the animal on its germ-plasm. Weismann at once objected that the operations of Brown-Séquard might have introduced certain special microbes into the body of the guinea-pig, which had found their means of nutrition in the nervous tissues and transmitted the malady by penetrating into the sexual elements.[42] This objection has been answered[Pg 81] by Brown-Séquard himself;[43] but a more plausible one might be raised. Some experiments of Voisin and Peron have shown that fits of epilepsy are followed by the elimination of a toxic body which, when injected into animals,[44] is capable of producing convulsive symptoms. Perhaps the trophic disorders following the nerve lesions made by Brown-Séquard correspond to the formation of precisely this convulsion-causing poison. If so, the toxin passed from the guinea-pig to its spermatozoon or ovum, and caused in the development of the embryo a general disturbance, which, however, had no visible effects except at one point or another of the organism when developed. In that case, what occurred would have been somewhat the same as in the experiments of Charrin, Delamare, and Moussu, where guinea-pigs in gestation, whose liver or kidney was injured, transmitted the lesion to their progeny, simply because the injury to the mother's organ had given rise to specific "cytotoxins" which acted on the corresponding organ of the foetus.[45] It is true that, in these experiments, as in a former observation of the same physiologists,[46] it was the already formed foetus that was influenced by the toxins. But other researches of Charrin have resulted in showing that the same effect may be produced, by an analogous process, on the spermatozoa and the ova.[47] To conclude, then: the inheritance of an ac[Pg 82]quired peculiarity in the experiments of Brown-Séquard can be explained by the effect of a toxin on the germ. The lesion, however well localized it seems, is transmitted by the same process as, for instance, the taint of alcoholism. But may it not be the same in the case of every acquired peculiarity that has become hereditary?
After being established as a principle, the passing down of acquired traits has been just as dogmatically denied, based on supposed characteristics of germinal cells. It's well known how Weismann's theory of the continuity of germ-plasm led him to view germinal cells—ova and sperm cells—as almost independent from somatic cells. Starting from this idea, many have claimed, and still do, that it's unimaginable for acquired traits to be inherited. But if experiments were to show that acquired traits can be inherited, it would suggest that germ-plasm is not as independent from the somatic structure as previously claimed, making the inheritance of acquired traits conceivable; this implies that whether something is conceivable or inconceivable doesn’t really matter, and only experience can provide the answer. However, this is where the difficulty arises. The acquired traits we're discussing are generally habits or the results of habits, and most habits stem from a natural tendency. Therefore, one could question whether it’s truly the habit learned by the individual's body that gets passed on, or if it’s a natural ability that existed before the habit was formed. This ability would still be present in the germ-plasm within the individual, just as it was in the individual himself and in the germ from which he originated. For example, there’s no evidence that a mole became blind simply because it adapted to living underground; it might be that its eyes were shrinking, leading it to adapt to a life below the surface. If this is the case, the tendency to lose sight has been passed down from generation to generation without any changes or losses occurring in the mole’s body. From the fact that the child of a fencing master becomes a skilled fencer faster than his father, we cannot conclude that the parent’s habit was passed on to the child; certain natural abilities may have transferred from the plasma that created the father to the plasma creating the son, possibly enhanced by original motivation, thus giving the son more agility than the father without any influence from what the father did. Similarly, in many cases of animal domestication, it’s difficult to determine whether it’s the acquired habit that gets passed on or just a natural tendency—this tendency might be what led certain species or individuals to be favored for domestication. The reality is, when all ambiguous cases and all facts that could have multiple explanations are set aside, there are hardly any clear-cut examples of acquired traits being inherited, apart from the well-known experiments of Brown-Séquard, which have been repeated and verified by other physiologists. By cutting the spinal cord or the sciatic nerve of guinea pigs, Brown-Séquard induced an epileptic state that was passed on to the offspring. Damage to the same sciatic nerve or other parts of the body resulted in various issues for the guinea pig, which sometimes manifested differently in its descendants—such as exophthalmia or loss of toes. However, it hasn’t been proven that in these instances of hereditary transmission there was a genuine impact of the animal's body on its germ-plasm. Weismann immediately countered that Brown-Séquard's procedures might have introduced specific microbes into the guinea pig, which could have thrived in the nervous tissues and transmitted the sickness by affecting the reproductive cells. This objection has been addressed by Brown-Séquard himself; however, a more relatable concern could be raised. Some experiments by Voisin and Peron have shown that epileptic seizures are followed by the elimination of a toxic substance that, when injected into animals, can induce convulsive symptoms. It’s possible that the bodily issues following the nerve damage caused by Brown-Séquard were related to the production of this convulsion-inducing toxin. If so, the toxin could have transferred from the guinea pig to its sperm or egg, causing a general disturbance during embryo development that only became noticeable in specific areas of the mature organism. In that case, the process would have been somewhat similar to the experiments by Charrin, Delamare, and Moussu, where pregnant guinea pigs that suffered liver or kidney damage passed the injury on to their offspring, merely because the mother's organ damage triggered specific "cytotoxins" that acted on the corresponding organ of the fetus. It is true that, in these experiments, as with a previous observation by the same physiologists, it was the already developing fetus that was affected by the toxins. But other research by Charrin has shown that a similar effect can occur in sperm and ova. To conclude: the inheritance of an acquired trait in Brown-Séquard’s experiments can be explained by the impact of a toxin on the germ. The injury, no matter how localized it appears, is passed down in the same manner as, for instance, the effects of alcoholism. But could this apply to every inherited acquired trait?
There is, indeed, one point on which both those who affirm and those who deny the transmissibility of acquired characters are agreed, namely, that certain influences, such as that of alcohol, can affect at the same time both the living being and the germ-plasm it contains. In such case, there is inheritance of a defect, and the result is as if the soma of the parent had acted on the germ-plasm, although in reality soma and plasma have simply both suffered the action of the same cause. Now, suppose that the soma can influence the germ-plasm, as those believe who hold that acquired characters are transmissible. Is not the most natural hypothesis to suppose that things happen in this second case as in the first, and that the direct effect of the influence of the soma is a general alteration of the germ-plasm? If this is the case, it is by exception, and in some sort by accident, that the modification of the descendant is the same as that of the parent. It is like the hereditability of the alcoholic taint: it passes from father to children, but it may take a different form in each child, and in none of them be like what it was in the father. Let the letter C represent the change in the plasm, C being either positive or negative, that is to say, showing either the gain or loss of certain substances. The effect will not be an exact reproduction of the cause, nor will the change in the germ-plasm, provoked by a certain modification of a certain part of the soma, determine a similar modification of the corresponding part of the new organism in process of formation, unless all the other[Pg 83] nascent parts of this organism enjoy a kind of immunity as regards C: the same part will then undergo alteration in the new organism, because it happens that the development of this part is alone subject to the new influence. And, even then, the part might be altered in an entirely different way from that in which the corresponding part was altered in the generating organism.
There is one point where both those who agree and those who disagree about the transmissibility of acquired traits find common ground: certain influences, like alcohol, can impact both the living organism and the genetic material it carries at the same time. In this case, a defect is inherited, and it appears as if the parent's body had affected the genetic material, even though both the body and the genetic material have simply been affected by the same cause. Now, if we consider that the body can influence the genetic material, as those who believe that acquired traits can be passed down think, isn’t it most reasonable to assume that, in this second scenario, things unfold just like in the first? The direct effect of the body's influence would then be a general change to the genetic material. If that's the case, it would only happen by exception and somewhat by chance that the descendant's modification matches that of the parent. It's similar to the inheritance of an alcoholic trait: it passes from parent to child, but it might manifest differently in each child and may not resemble what it was in the parent at all. Let the letter C represent the change in the genetic material, with C being either positive or negative, indicating either the gain or loss of certain substances. The effect will not be an exact copy of the cause, nor will the change in the genetic material, triggered by a specific change in a part of the body, ensure a similar change in the matching part of the new organism developing, unless all the other nascent parts of this organism have a sort of immunity regarding C: only then will that specific part undergo a change in the new organism, because it just so happens that the development of that part is the only one affected by the new influence. Even then, that part could be altered in a completely different way than the corresponding part was altered in the parent organism.
We should propose, then, to introduce a distinction between the hereditability of deviation and that of character. An individual which acquires a new character thereby deviates from the form it previously had, which form the germs, or oftener the half-germs, it contains would have reproduced in their development. If this modification does not involve the production of substances capable of changing the germ-plasm, or does not so affect nutrition as to deprive the germ-plasm of certain of its elements, it will have no effect on the offspring of the individual. This is probably the case as a rule. If, on the contrary, it has some effect, this is likely to be due to a chemical change which it has induced in the germ-plasm. This chemical change might, by exception, bring about the original modification again in the organism which the germ is about to develop, but there are as many and more chances that it will do something else. In this latter case, the generated organism will perhaps deviate from the normal type as much as the generating organism, but it will do so differently. It will have inherited deviation and not character. In general, therefore, the habits formed by an individual have probably no echo in its offspring; and when they have, the modification in the descendants may have no visible likeness to the original one. Such, at least, is the hypothesis which seems to us most likely. In any case, in default of proof to the contrary, and so long as the decisive experiments called for[Pg 84] by an eminent biologist[48] have not been made, we must keep to the actual results of observation. Now, even if we take the most favorable view of the theory of the transmissibility of acquired characters, and assume that the ostensible acquired character is not, in most cases, the more or less tardy development of an innate character, facts show us that hereditary transmission is the exception and not the rule. How, then, shall we expect it to develop an organ such as the eye? When we think of the enormous number of variations, all in the same direction, that we must suppose to be accumulated before the passage from the pigment-spot of the Infusorian to the eye of the mollusc and of the vertebrate is possible, we do not see how heredity, as we observe it, could ever have determined this piling-up of differences, even supposing that individual efforts could have produced each of them singly. That is to say that neo-Lamarckism is no more able than any other form of evolutionism to solve the problem.
We should suggest introducing a distinction between the heritability of deviation and character. An individual that acquires a new character deviates from its previous form, which the germs, or more commonly the half-germs, it contains would have reproduced during their development. If this modification doesn't produce substances that can change the germ-plasm or doesn't affect nutrition to deprive the germ-plasm of certain elements, it won't have any impact on the individual's offspring. This is likely true most of the time. On the other hand, if it does have an effect, it's probably due to a chemical change it has induced in the germ-plasm. This chemical change could, by chance, bring about the original modification again in the organism that the germ will eventually develop into, but there are just as many chances it will do something different. In that case, the new organism may deviate from the normal type as much as the original organism, but it will do so differently. It will have inherited a deviation, not a character. Generally, the habits formed by an individual probably don't echo in its offspring; and when they do, the modification in the descendants may not resemble the original at all. Such is the hypothesis we find most plausible. In any event, in the absence of evidence to the contrary, and until the decisive experiments called for[Pg 84] by an eminent biologist[48] are conducted, we have to rely on the actual results of observation. Now, even if we take the most favorable viewpoint on the theory of the transmissibility of acquired characters, and assume that the apparent acquired character is not, in most cases, just the slow development of an innate character, the facts show us that hereditary transmission is the exception, not the rule. So, how can we expect it to develop an organ like the eye? When we consider the vast number of variations we must assume have accumulated before the transition from the pigment spot of the Infusorian to the eye of the mollusk and vertebrate is possible, we can't see how heredity, as we observe it, could ever have caused this accumulation of differences, even if individual efforts could have produced each of them separately. In other words, neo-Lamarckism is just as unable as any other form of evolutionism to solve the problem.
In thus submitting the various present forms of evolutionism to a common test, in showing that they all strike against the same insurmountable difficulty, we have in no wise the intention of rejecting them altogether. On the contrary, each of them, being supported by a considerable number of facts, must be true in its way. Each of them must correspond to a certain aspect of the process of evolution. Perhaps even it is necessary that a theory should restrict itself exclusively to a particular point of view, in order to remain scientific, i.e. to give a precise direction to researches into detail. But the reality of which each of these theories takes a partial view must transcend them all. And this reality is the special object of philosophy, which is not constrained to scientific pre[Pg 85]cision because it contemplates no practical application. Let us therefore indicate in a word or two the positive contribution that each of the three present forms of evolutionism seems to us to make toward the solution of the problem, what each of them leaves out, and on what point this threefold effort should, in our opinion, converge in order to obtain a more comprehensive, although thereby of necessity a less definite, idea of the evolutionary process.
By submitting the different current versions of evolutionism to a common test and showing that they all face the same insurmountable challenge, we don't intend to dismiss them altogether. On the contrary, each one is backed by a significant number of facts and has its own truth. Each must reflect a specific aspect of the evolution process. It might even be necessary for a theory to focus entirely on a particular perspective to remain scientific, that is, to provide a clear direction for detailed research. However, the reality that each of these theories addresses only partially must go beyond them all. This reality is the main concern of philosophy, which isn't limited to precise scientific definitions since it doesn't involve practical applications. Therefore, let’s briefly highlight the positive contributions that each of the three current forms of evolutionism seems to offer in solving the problem, what each one overlooks, and where this combined effort should, in our view, align to develop a more comprehensive, albeit necessarily less defined, understanding of the evolutionary process.
The neo-Darwinians are probably right, we believe, when they teach that the essential causes of variation are the differences inherent in the germ borne by the individual, and not the experiences or behavior of the individual in the course of his career. Where we fail to follow these biologists, is in regarding the differences inherent in the germ as purely accidental and individual. We cannot help believing that these differences are the development of an impulsion which passes from germ to germ across the individuals, that they are therefore not pure accidents, and that they might well appear at the same time, in the same form, in all the representatives of the same species, or at least in a certain number of them. Already, in fact, the theory of mutations is modifying Darwinism profoundly on this point. It asserts that at a given moment, after a long period, the entire species is beset with a tendency to change. The tendency to change, therefore, is not accidental. True, the change itself would be accidental, since the mutation works, according to De Vries, in different directions in the different representatives of the species. But, first we must see if the theory is confirmed by many other vegetable species (De Vries has verified it only by the [OE]nothera Lamarckiana),[49] and[Pg 86] then there is the possibility, as we shall explain further on, that the part played by chance is much greater in the variation of plants than in that of animals, because, in the vegetable world, function does not depend so strictly on form. Be that as it may, the neo-Darwinians are inclined to admit that the periods of mutation are determinate. The direction of the mutation may therefore be so as well, at least in animals, and to the extent we shall have to indicate.
The neo-Darwinians are probably right, we believe, when they say that the main causes of variation come from the differences in the germ of the individual, rather than from the experiences or behavior of the individual throughout their life. Where we part ways with these biologists is in viewing the differences in the germ as purely accidental and individual. We can't help but think that these differences are the result of an impulse that transfers from one germ to another across individuals, meaning they are not just random accidents, and that they could emerge simultaneously and in the same form among all members of the same species, or at least in some of them. In fact, the theory of mutations is already significantly altering Darwinism on this issue. It claims that at a certain moment, after a long period, an entire species develops a tendency to change. So, the tendency to change is not random. True, the actual change itself would be random, since, according to De Vries, mutations happen in different ways for different individuals of the species. But first, we need to check if the theory is supported by many other plant species (De Vries has only confirmed it with the [OE]nothera Lamarckiana),[49] and[Pg 86] then we need to consider that chance might play a much larger role in plant variation compared to animal variation, because, in the plant world, function doesn't rely as strictly on form. Regardless, neo-Darwinians tend to agree that mutation periods are determined. Therefore, the direction of mutations might also be determined, at least in animals, to the extent that we will discuss later.
We thus arrive at a hypothesis like Eimer's, according to which the variations of different characters continue from generation to generation in definite directions. This hypothesis seems plausible to us, within the limits in which Eimer himself retains it. Of course, the evolution of the organic world cannot be predetermined as a whole. We claim, on the contrary, that the spontaneity of life is manifested by a continual creation of new forms succeeding others. But this indetermination cannot be complete; it must leave a certain part to determination. An organ like the eye, for example, must have been formed by just a continual changing in a definite direction. Indeed, we do not see how otherwise to explain the likeness of structure of the eye in species that have not the same history. Where we differ from Eimer is in his claim that combinations of physical and chemical causes are enough to secure the result. We have tried to prove, on the contrary, by the example of the eye, that if there is "orthogenesis" here, a psychological cause intervenes.
We thus arrive at a hypothesis like Eimer's, which suggests that the variations of different traits continue from generation to generation in specific directions. This hypothesis seems reasonable to us, within the scope that Eimer himself maintains. Of course, the evolution of the organic world can’t be entirely predetermined. On the contrary, we argue that the spontaneity of life is shown by a constant creation of new forms that replace others. However, this uncertainty can't be absolute; it must allow for some degree of determination. An organ like the eye, for instance, must have developed through ongoing changes in a specific direction. In fact, we can't see how else to explain the structural similarity of the eye in species that don’t share the same history. Where we differ from Eimer is in his assertion that combinations of physical and chemical causes are sufficient to achieve this outcome. We have attempted to demonstrate, using the example of the eye, that if there's "orthogenesis" here, a psychological cause plays a role.
Certain neo-Lamarckians do indeed resort to a cause of a psychological nature. There, to our thinking, is one of the most solid positions of neo-Lamarckism. But if this cause is nothing but the conscious effort of the individual, it cannot operate in more than a restricted number of cases—at most in the animal world, and not at all[Pg 87] in the vegetable kingdom. Even in animals, it will act only on points which are under the direct or indirect control of the will. And even where it does act, it is not clear how it could compass a change so profound as an increase of complexity: at most this would be conceivable if the acquired characters were regularly transmitted so as to be added together; but this transmission seems to be the exception rather than the rule. A hereditary change in a definite direction, which continues to accumulate and add to itself so as to build up a more and more complex machine, must certainly be related to some sort of effort, but to an effort of far greater depth than the individual effort, far more independent of circumstances, an effort common to most representatives of the same species, inherent in the germs they bear rather than in their substance alone, an effort thereby assured of being passed on to their descendants.
Some neo-Lamarckians do indeed point to psychological causes. We believe this is one of the strongest points of neo-Lamarckism. However, if this cause is merely the conscious effort of the individual, it can only affect a limited number of cases—primarily in the animal kingdom, and not at all[Pg 87] in the plant kingdom. Even in animals, it will only influence aspects that are directly or indirectly under the individual's control. And even where it does have an effect, it’s unclear how it could lead to a significant change like increasing complexity: this might only be possible if the acquired traits were consistently passed down and accumulated, but this transfer seems to be more of an exception than a rule. A hereditary change that consistently heads in a specific direction, building a more complex organism over time, must definitely relate to a kind of effort, but one of much greater depth than individual effort. It must be more independent of circumstances and common to most members of the same species, rooted in the germs they carry rather than just their physical characteristics, making it likely to be inherited by their offspring.
So we come back, by a somewhat roundabout way, to the idea we started from, that of an original impetus of life, passing from one generation of germs to the following generation of germs through the developed organisms which bridge the interval between the generations. This impetus, sustained right along the lines of evolution among which it gets divided, is the fundamental cause of variations, at least of those that are regularly passed on, that accumulate and create new species. In general, when species have begun to diverge from a common stock, they accentuate their divergence as they progress in their evolution. Yet, in certain definite points, they may evolve identically; in fact, they must do so if the hypothesis of a common impetus be accepted. This is just what we shall have to show now in a more precise way, by the same example we have chosen, the formation of the eye in[Pg 88] molluscs and vertebrates. The idea of an "original impetus," moreover, will thus be made clearer.
So we return, in a bit of a roundabout way, to the idea we started with: the concept of an original impetus of life that passes from one generation of microorganisms to the next through the developed organisms that connect these generations. This impetus, maintained along the lines of evolution where it gets divided, is the main reason behind variations, at least the ones that are consistently passed down, which accumulate and lead to new species. Generally, when species start to diverge from a common ancestor, they emphasize their differences as they evolve. However, at certain specific points, they might evolve in similar ways; in fact, they have to if we accept the idea of a common impetus. This is exactly what we will demonstrate now in a more precise way, using the same example we have chosen: the formation of the eye in [Pg 88] mollusks and vertebrates. The concept of an "original impetus" will become clearer through this.
Two points are equally striking in an organ like the eye: the complexity of its structure and the simplicity of its function. The eye is composed of distinct parts, such as the sclerotic, the cornea, the retina, the crystalline lens, etc. In each of these parts the detail is infinite. The retina alone comprises three layers of nervous elements—multipolar cells, bipolar cells, visual cells—each of which has its individuality and is undoubtedly a very complicated organism: so complicated, indeed, is the retinal membrane in its intimate structure, that no simple description can give an adequate idea of it. The mechanism of the eye is, in short, composed of an infinity of mechanisms, all of extreme complexity. Yet vision is one simple fact. As soon as the eye opens, the visual act is effected. Just because the act is simple, the slightest negligence on the part of nature in the building of the infinitely complex machine would have made vision impossible. This contrast between the complexity of the organ and the unity of the function is what gives us pause.
Two points stand out in an organ like the eye: its complex structure and simple function. The eye is made up of different parts, like the sclera, cornea, retina, and crystalline lens, among others. Each of these parts has infinite details. The retina alone has three layers of nerve cells—multipolar cells, bipolar cells, visual cells—each with its own identity, making it a very complicated system. The structure of the retinal membrane is so complex that no simple description can fully capture it. Essentially, the eye's mechanism consists of countless intricate systems. Yet, vision is a straightforward process. As soon as the eye opens, seeing happens. Because the act is simple, even the slightest flaw in the construction of this incredibly complex machine could render vision impossible. This contrast between the organ's complexity and the function's simplicity is striking.
A mechanistic theory is one which means to show us the gradual building-up of the machine under the influence of external circumstances intervening either directly by action on the tissues or indirectly by the selection of better-adapted ones. But, whatever form this theory may take, supposing it avails at all to explain the detail of the parts, it throws no light on their correlation.
A mechanistic theory aims to illustrate how a machine gradually develops due to external factors, either directly acting on the tissues or indirectly by selecting those that are better adapted. However, regardless of how this theory is presented, if it even helps explain the specifics of the parts, it doesn't clarify how those parts relate to each other.
Then comes the doctrine of finality, which says that the parts have been brought together on a preconceived plan with a view to a certain end. In this it likens the labor of nature to that of the workman, who also proceeds by the assemblage of parts with a view to the realization of an idea or the imitation of a model. Mechanism,[Pg 89] here, reproaches finalism with its anthropomorphic character, and rightly. But it fails to see that itself proceeds according to this method—somewhat mutilated! True, it has got rid of the end pursued or the ideal model. But it also holds that nature has worked like a human being by bringing parts together, while a mere glance at the development of an embryo shows that life goes to work in a very different way. Life does not proceed by the association and addition of elements, but by dissociation and division.
Then there's the idea of finality, which claims that the parts have been put together according to a planned design aimed at a specific goal. In this, it compares nature's work to that of a craftsman, who also works by combining parts to realize an idea or replicate a model. Mechanism,[Pg 89] criticizes finalism for being too human-centered, and justifiably so. However, it fails to recognize that it follows this same method—though somewhat distorted! True, it has eliminated the intended goal or the ideal model. But it also asserts that nature operates like a human by joining parts together, while just looking at how an embryo develops shows that life operates in a very different manner. Life doesn't work by combining and adding elements, but by separating and dividing.
We must get beyond both points of view, both mechanism and finalism being, at bottom, only standpoints to which the human mind has been led by considering the work of man. But in what direction can we go beyond them? We have said that in analyzing the structure of an organ, we can go on decomposing for ever, although the function of the whole is a simple thing. This contrast between the infinite complexity of the organ and the extreme simplicity of the function is what should open our eyes.
We need to move beyond both perspectives, as both mechanism and finalism are essentially just viewpoints shaped by how humans have viewed their own work. But where do we go from here? We've pointed out that when we analyze an organ's structure, we can keep breaking it down indefinitely, even though the function of the whole is quite straightforward. This difference between the organ's infinite complexity and the function's utter simplicity is what should make us more aware.
In general, when the same object appears in one aspect and in another as infinitely complex, the two aspects have by no means the same importance, or rather the same degree of reality. In such cases, the simplicity belongs to the object itself, and the infinite complexity to the views we take in turning around it, to the symbols by which our senses or intellect represent it to us, or, more generally, to elements of a different order, with which we try to imitate it artificially, but with which it remains incommensurable, being of a different nature. An artist of genius has painted a figure on his canvas. We can imitate his picture with many-colored squares of mosaic. And we shall reproduce the curves and shades of the model so much the better as our squares are smaller, more numerous and more varied in tone. But an infinity of elements infinitely small,[Pg 90] presenting an infinity of shades, would be necessary to obtain the exact equivalent of the figure that the artist has conceived as a simple thing, which he has wished to transport as a whole to the canvas, and which is the more complete the more it strikes us as the projection of an indivisible intuition. Now, suppose our eyes so made that they cannot help seeing in the work of the master a mosaic effect. Or suppose our intellect so made that it cannot explain the appearance of the figure on the canvas except as a work of mosaic. We should then be able to speak simply of a collection of little squares, and we should be under the mechanistic hypothesis. We might add that, beside the materiality of the collection, there must be a plan on which the artist worked; and then we should be expressing ourselves as finalists. But in neither case should we have got at the real process, for there are no squares brought together. It is the picture, i.e. the simple act, projected on the canvas, which, by the mere fact of entering into our perception, is decomposed before our eyes into thousands and thousands of little squares which present, as recomposed, a wonderful arrangement. So the eye, with its marvelous complexity of structure, may be only the simple act of vision, divided for us into a mosaic of cells, whose order seems marvelous to us because we have conceived the whole as an assemblage.
In general, when the same object appears in one form and in another as endlessly complex, the two forms don’t hold the same level of importance, or rather, the same degree of reality. In such situations, the simplicity belongs to the object itself, while the infinite complexity comes from the perspectives we use to view it, the symbols our senses or intellect use to represent it, or, more broadly, from elements of a different order that we try to mimic artificially, but which remain incomparable since they are of a different nature. A brilliant artist has painted a figure on his canvas. We can recreate his artwork using colorful mosaic tiles. The more tiles we use—specifically, if they are smaller, more numerous, and varied in tone—the better we will reproduce the curves and shades of the original figure. However, an infinite number of infinitely small elements presenting infinite shades would be needed to achieve the exact equivalent of the figure that the artist envisioned as a simple concept, which he intended to transfer in its entirety to the canvas, and which is most complete when it strikes us as the projection of an indivisible intuition. Now, imagine our eyes were such that they couldn’t help but see the masterpiece as a mosaic effect. Or suppose our intellect were such that it could only explain the appearance of the figure on the canvas as a work of mosaic. In that case, we would simply be able to talk about a collection of tiny squares, and we would be working under a mechanistic hypothesis. We might add that, aside from the materiality of the collection, there must be a plan that the artist followed; and at that point, we would be expressing ourselves in terms of purpose. But in neither scenario would we grasp the real process, because there are no squares brought together. It is the picture, i.e. the simple action, projected onto the canvas, which, as it enters our perception, is decomposed before our eyes into thousands and thousands of little squares that, when recomposed, form a stunning arrangement. Therefore, the eye, with its incredible complexity of structure, may just be the simple act of vision, divided for us into a mosaic of cells, whose order amazes us because we conceptualize the whole as an assembly.
If I raise my hand from A to B, this movement appears to me under two aspects at once. Felt from within, it is a simple, indivisible act. Perceived from without, it is the course of a certain curve, AB. In this curve I can distinguish as many positions as I please, and the line itself might be defined as a certain mutual coördination of these positions. But the positions, infinite in number, and the order in which they are connected, have sprung automatically from the indivisible act by which my hand[Pg 91] has gone from A to B. Mechanism, here, would consist in seeing only the positions. Finalism would take their order into account. But both mechanism and finalism would leave on one side the movement, which is reality itself. In one sense, the movement is more than the positions and than their order; for it is sufficient to make it in its indivisible simplicity to secure that the infinity of the successive positions as also their order be given at once—with something else which is neither order nor position but which is essential, the mobility. But, in another sense, the movement is less than the series of positions and their connecting order; for, to arrange points in a certain order, it is necessary first to conceive the order and then to realize it with points, there must be the work of assemblage and there must be intelligence, whereas the simple movement of the hand contains nothing of either. It is not intelligent, in the human sense of the word, and it is not an assemblage, for it is not made up of elements. Just so with the relation of the eye to vision. There is in vision more than the component cells of the eye and their mutual coördination: in this sense, neither mechanism nor finalism go far enough. But, in another sense, mechanism and finalism both go too far, for they attribute to Nature the most formidable of the labors of Hercules in holding that she has exalted to the simple act of vision an infinity of infinitely complex elements, whereas Nature has had no more trouble in making an eye than I have in lifting my hand. Nature's simple act has divided itself automatically into an infinity of elements which are then found to be coördinated to one idea, just as the movement of my hand has dropped an infinity of points which are then found to satisfy one equation.
If I raise my hand from A to B, this action appears to me in two ways at once. From within, it feels like a simple, indivisible act. From the outside, it represents a specific curve, AB. Within this curve, I can identify as many positions as I want, and the line itself can be described as a certain coordinated arrangement of these positions. However, the positions, which are infinite in number, and the order in which they connect have automatically arisen from the indivisible act of my hand moving from A to B. Mechanism, in this case, would involve seeing only the positions. Finalism would consider their order. Yet both mechanism and finalism overlook the movement itself, which is reality. In one sense, the movement is more than the positions and their order; simply performing it in its indivisible simplicity ensures that the infinity of successive positions and their order arise simultaneously, along with something else that is neither order nor position but is essential—the mobility. In another sense, the movement is less than the series of positions and their connecting order; to organize points in a specific order, one must first conceive the order and then achieve it with points, which requires a process of assembly and intelligence, neither of which is present in the simple movement of the hand. It’s not intelligent in the human sense, nor is it an assembly because it doesn’t consist of separate elements. This is also true for the relationship between the eye and vision. Vision contains more than the individual cells of the eye and their coordination; in this sense, neither mechanism nor finalism accurately capture it. However, in another sense, both mechanism and finalism overreach, suggesting that Nature has taken on the immense challenge of combining an infinite number of intricate elements into the simple act of vision, whereas Nature has experienced no more difficulty in creating an eye than I do in lifting my hand. Nature’s straightforward act has automatically divided into an infinity of elements, which are then found to be coordinated into one idea, just as the movement of my hand has traced an infinite number of points that ultimately satisfy one equation.
We find it very hard to see things in that light, because[Pg 92] we cannot help conceiving organization as manufacturing. But it is one thing to manufacture, and quite another to organize. Manufacturing is peculiar to man. It consists in assembling parts of matter which we have cut out in such manner that we can fit them together and obtain from them a common action. The parts are arranged, so to speak, around the action as an ideal centre. To manufacture, therefore, is to work from the periphery to the centre, or, as the philosophers say, from the many to the one. Organization, on the contrary, works from the centre to the periphery. It begins in a point that is almost a mathematical point, and spreads around this point by concentric waves which go on enlarging. The work of manufacturing is the more effective, the greater the quantity of matter dealt with. It proceeds by concentration and compression. The organizing act, on the contrary, has something explosive about it: it needs at the beginning the smallest possible place, a minimum of matter, as if the organizing forces only entered space reluctantly. The spermatozoon, which sets in motion the evolutionary process of the embryonic life, is one of the smallest cells of the organism; and it is only a small part of the spermatozoon which really takes part in the operation.
It's tough for us to see things this way because[Pg 92] we often think of organization as manufacturing. But manufacturing and organizing are two different things. Manufacturing is specific to humans. It involves putting together parts of material that we've cut in a way that they can fit together to create a unified action. The parts are arranged around the action like it’s the central idea. So, to manufacture is to work from the outside in, or, as philosophers say, from many to one. Organization, on the other hand, works from the center out. It starts from a point that is almost mathematical and spreads outward in concentric circles that keep expanding. Manufacturing is more effective the more material you work with. It relies on concentration and compression. In contrast, the act of organizing has an explosive quality: it begins with the smallest possible space and the least amount of material, as if the forces of organization hesitate to fill the space. The sperm cell, which kickstarts the evolutionary process of embryonic life, is one of the smallest cells in the body, and only a tiny part of the sperm cell is actually involved in this process.
But these are only superficial differences. Digging beneath them, we think, a deeper difference would be found.
But these are just surface-level differences. If we look deeper, we believe we'll find a more significant difference.
A manufactured thing delineates exactly the form of the work of manufacturing it. I mean that the manufacturer finds in his product exactly what he has put into it. If he is going to make a machine, he cuts out its pieces one by one and then puts them together: the machine, when made, will show both the pieces and their assemblage. The whole of the result represents the whole of the work; and to each part of the work corresponds a part of the result.[Pg 93]
A manufactured item clearly reflects the process of making it. What I mean is that the creator sees exactly what they have contributed in their product. If they're building a machine, they cut out each piece individually and then assemble them: the finished machine will display both the individual pieces and how they fit together. The entire result represents the total effort put in, and each part of the effort corresponds to a part of the finished product.[Pg 93]
Now I recognize that positive science can and should proceed as if organization was like making a machine. Only so will it have any hold on organized bodies. For its object is not to show us the essence of things, but to furnish us with the best means of acting on them. Physics and chemistry are well advanced sciences, and living matter lends itself to our action only so far as we can treat it by the processes of our physics and chemistry. Organization can therefore only be studied scientifically if the organized body has first been likened to a machine. The cells will be the pieces of the machine, the organism their assemblage, and the elementary labors which have organized the parts will be regarded as the real elements of the labor which has organized the whole. This is the standpoint of science. Quite different, in our opinion, is that of philosophy.
Now I understand that positive science can and should approach organization as if it were building a machine. Only then can it effectively engage with organized bodies. Its purpose isn't to reveal the essence of things but to provide us with the best tools for interacting with them. Physics and chemistry are advanced sciences, and living matter is manageable only to the extent that we can apply our principles of physics and chemistry to it. Therefore, organization can only be studied scientifically if the organized body is first compared to a machine. The cells will serve as the components of the machine, the organism will be their assembly, and the basic processes that organized the parts will be seen as the true elements of the work that has organized the whole. This is the scientific perspective. In our view, the perspective of philosophy is quite different.
For us, the whole of an organized machine may, strictly speaking, represent the whole of the organizing work (this is, however, only approximately true), yet the parts of the machine do not correspond to parts of the work, because the materiality of this machine does not represent a sum of means employed, but a sum of obstacles avoided: it is a negation rather than a positive reality. So, as we have shown in a former study, vision is a power which should attain by right an infinity of things inaccessible to our eyes. But such a vision would not be continued into action; it might suit a phantom, but not a living being. The vision of a living being is an effective vision, limited to objects on which the being can act: it is a vision that is canalized, and the visual apparatus simply symbolizes the work of canalizing. Therefore the creation of the visual apparatus is no more explained by the assembling of its anatomic elements than the digging of a canal could be explained by the heaping up of the earth which might have formed its banks. A mechanistic theory would maintain that the[Pg 94] earth had been brought cart-load by cart-load; finalism would add that it had not been dumped down at random, that the carters had followed a plan. But both theories would be mistaken, for the canal has been made in another way.
For us, the entire organized machine may, in a strict sense, represent the entirety of the organizing work (this is, however, only approximately true). Yet the parts of the machine do not correspond to parts of the work because the materiality of this machine does not represent a sum of means used, but a sum of obstacles avoided: it is more about what has been negated than a positive reality. As we previously discussed, vision is a power that should achieve by right an infinity of things that are out of reach of our eyes. However, such vision wouldn't translate into action; it might suit a ghost, but not a living being. The vision of a living being is an effective vision, limited to objects the being can act upon: it is a vision that is canalized, and the visual system merely symbolizes the work of canalizing. Therefore, the creation of the visual system cannot be explained by just assembling its anatomical elements any more than the digging of a canal could be explained by piling up the earth that forms its banks. A mechanistic theory might suggest that the[Pg 94] earth was brought in load by load; finalism would add that it wasn't just dumped randomly, and the workers followed a plan. But both theories would be wrong, because the canal was made in a different way.
With greater precision, we may compare the process by which nature constructs an eye to the simple act by which we raise the hand. But we supposed at first that the hand met with no resistance. Let us now imagine that, instead of moving in air, the hand has to pass through iron filings which are compressed and offer resistance to it in proportion as it goes forward. At a certain moment the hand will have exhausted its effort, and, at this very moment, the filings will be massed and coördinated in a certain definite form, to wit, that of the hand that is stopped and of a part of the arm. Now, suppose that the hand and arm are invisible. Lookers-on will seek the reason of the arrangement in the filings themselves and in forces within the mass. Some will account for the position of each filing by the action exerted upon it by the neighboring filings: these are the mechanists. Others will prefer to think that a plan of the whole has presided over the detail of these elementary actions: they are the finalists. But the truth is that there has been merely one indivisible act, that of the hand passing through the filings: the inexhaustible detail of the movement of the grains, as well as the order of their final arrangement, expresses negatively, in a way, this undivided movement, being the unitary form of a resistance, and not a synthesis of positive elementary actions. For this reason, if the arrangement of the grains is termed an "effect" and the movement of the hand a "cause," it may indeed be said that the whole of the effect is explained by the whole of the cause, but to parts of the cause parts of the effect will in no wise correspond. In[Pg 95] other words, neither mechanism nor finalism will here be in place, and we must resort to an explanation of a different kind. Now, in the hypothesis we propose, the relation of vision to the visual apparatus would be very nearly that of the hand to the iron filings that follow, canalize and limit its motion.
With more clarity, we can compare how nature creates an eye to the simple action of raising a hand. Initially, we thought the hand faced no resistance. Now, let’s imagine that instead of moving through air, the hand has to go through iron filings that are packed together and resist it as it moves forward. At some point, the hand will tire out, and at that very moment, the filings will be arranged and aligned in a specific shape, namely, that of the hand that has stopped moving and part of the arm. Now, suppose that the hand and arm are invisible. Observers will try to find the reason for the arrangement in the filings themselves and in the forces at play within the mass. Some will explain each filing's position based on the influence of the nearby filings: these are the mechanists. Others will prefer to believe that an overall plan has guided the details of these basic actions: they are the finalists. But the reality is that there has been only one indivisible action, that of the hand moving through the filings: the endless details of the movement of the grains, as well as how they end up arranged, reflect this unified movement in a way, representing a single form of resistance rather than a combination of individual actions. Therefore, if the arrangement of the grains is called an "effect" and the movement of the hand a "cause," it can rightly be said that the entire effect is explained by the entire cause, but parts of the cause won’t correspond to parts of the effect. In other words, neither mechanism nor finalism fits here, and we need to look for a different kind of explanation. In the hypothesis we propose, the relationship between vision and the visual system would be very similar to the relationship between the hand and the iron filings that follow, guide, and limit its movement.
The greater the effort of the hand, the farther it will go into the filings. But at whatever point it stops, instantaneously and automatically the filings coördinate and find their equilibrium. So with vision and its organ. According as the undivided act constituting vision advances more or less, the materiality of the organ is made of a more or less considerable number of mutually coördinated elements, but the order is necessarily complete and perfect. It could not be partial, because, once again, the real process which gives rise to it has no parts. That is what neither mechanism nor finalism takes into account, and it is what we also fail to consider when we wonder at the marvelous structure of an instrument such as the eye. At the bottom of our wondering is always this idea, that it would have been possible for a part only of this coördination to have been realized, that the complete realization is a kind of special favor. This favor the finalists consider as dispensed to them all at once, by the final cause; the mechanists claim to obtain it little by little, by the effect of natural selection; but both see something positive in this coördination, and consequently something fractionable in its cause,—something which admits of every possible degree of achievement. In reality, the cause, though more or less intense, cannot produce its effect except in one piece, and completely finished. According as it goes further and further in the direction of vision, it gives the simple pigmentary masses of a lower organism, or the rudimentary eye of[Pg 96] a Serpula, or the slightly differentiated eye of the Alciope, or the marvelously perfected eye of the bird; but all these organs, unequal as is their complexity, necessarily present an equal coördination. For this reason, no matter how distant two animal species may be from each other, if the progress toward vision has gone equally far in both, there is the same visual organ in each case, for the form of the organ only expresses the degree in which the exercise of the function has been obtained.
The harder you work with your hands, the deeper they'll dig into the filings. But no matter where you stop, the filings quickly and automatically organize themselves and find balance. The same goes for vision and its organ. As the unified act of seeing progresses more or less, the physical structure of the organ consists of a more or less significant number of coordinated elements, but the arrangement is always complete and perfect. It can’t be partial because, once again, the actual process that creates it has no parts. This is something neither mechanics nor finalism acknowledges, and it’s also what we overlook when we marvel at the incredible structure of an instrument like the eye. Underlying our awe is the idea that only a part of this coordination could have been achieved, and that the full realization is a special gift. The finalists see this gift as given all at once by the final cause, while the mechanists believe they get it gradually through natural selection; both see something real in this coordination and thus something divisible in its cause—something that allows for various degrees of fulfillment. In reality, the cause, while varying in intensity, cannot produce its effect in anything less than a whole and fully formed way. As it progresses toward vision, it gives rise to simple pigment clusters in lower organisms, the rudimentary eye of a Serpula, the somewhat developed eye of the Alciope, or the wonderfully refined eye of a bird; but all these organs, despite their differing complexities, necessarily exhibit an equal coordination. Therefore, no matter how distantly related two animal species are, if their advancement toward vision has gone the same distance, they each have the same visual organ, as the form of the organ simply reflects the extent to which the function has been realized.
But, in speaking of a progress toward vision, are we not coming back to the old notion of finality? It would be so, undoubtedly, if this progress required the conscious or unconscious idea of an end to be attained. But it is really effected in virtue of the original impetus of life; it is implied in this movement itself, and that is just why it is found in independent lines of evolution. If now we are asked why and how it is implied therein, we reply that life is, more than anything else, a tendency to act on inert matter. The direction of this action is not predetermined; hence the unforeseeable variety of forms which life, in evolving, sows along its path. But this action always presents, to some extent, the character of contingency; it implies at least a rudiment of choice. Now a choice involves the anticipatory idea of several possible actions. Possibilities of action must therefore be marked out for the living being before the action itself. Visual perception is nothing else:[50] the visible outlines of bodies are the design of our eventual action on them. Vision will be found, therefore, in different degrees in the most diverse animals, and it will appear in the same complexity of structure wherever it has reached the same degree of intensity.
But when we talk about making progress toward vision, aren’t we just returning to the old idea of finality? It certainly would be if this progress required the conscious or unconscious belief in a goal to achieve. However, it actually happens because of life’s original drive; it’s built into this movement itself, which is why it occurs in independent lines of evolution. If we’re asked why and how this is implied, we can say that life is primarily a drive to act on non-living matter. The direction of this action isn’t predetermined, which is why life creates such an unpredictable variety of forms as it evolves. Yet, this action always has an element of chance; it necessarily involves some degree of choice. A choice entails the expectation of several possible actions. So, potential actions must be outlined for a living being before they take action. Visual perception is exactly that: [50] the visible shapes of objects are the blueprint for our future actions toward them. Vision will, therefore, appear to varying extents in the most diverse animals, and it will exhibit the same complexity of structure wherever it has achieved the same level of intensity.
We have dwelt on these resemblances of structure[Pg 97] in general, and on the example of the eye in particular, because we had to define our attitude toward mechanism on the one hand and finalism on the other. It remains for us to describe it more precisely in itself. This we shall now do by showing the divergent results of evolution not as presenting analogies, but as themselves mutually complementary.
We have focused on these structural similarities[Pg 97] in general, and specifically on the eye, because we needed to clarify our stance on mechanism versus finalism. Now, we will describe it more clearly by demonstrating that the different outcomes of evolution are not just analogies but are actually complementary to each other.
FOOTNOTES:
[7] Metchnikoff, La Dégénérescence sénile (Année biologique, iii., 1897, pp. 249 ff.). Cf. by the same author, La Nature humaine, Paris, 1903, pp. 312 ff.
[7] Metchnikoff, Senile Degeneration (Biological Yearbook, iii., 1897, pp. 249 ff.). See also by the same author, The Human Nature, Paris, 1903, pp. 312 ff.
[9] The irreversibility of the series of living beings has been well set forth by Baldwin (Development and Evolution, New York, 1902; in particular p. 327).
[9] Baldwin clearly explains the irreversibility of the progression of living beings in his work (Development and Evolution, New York, 1902; especially p. 327).
[11] In his fine work on Genius in Art (Le Génie dans l'art), M. Séailles develops this twofold thesis, that art is a continuation of nature and that life is creation. We should willingly accept the second formula; but by creation must we understand, as the author does, a synthesis of elements? Where the elements pre-exist, the synthesis that will be made is virtually given, being only one of the possible arrangements. This arrangement a superhuman intellect could have perceived in advance among all the possible ones that surround it. We hold, on the contrary, that in the domain of life the elements have no real and separate existence. They are manifold mental views of an indivisible process. And for that reason there is radical contingency in progress, incommensurability between what goes before and what follows—in short, duration.
[11] In his excellent work on Genius in Art (Le Génie dans l'art), M. Séailles explores the idea that art continues nature and that life is a form of creation. We should readily accept the second idea; but when we talk about creation, do we mean, as the author suggests, a synthesis of different elements? If the elements already exist, then the synthesis that occurs is basically predetermined, being just one of the possible arrangements. A superior intellect could have potentially identified this arrangement among all the possibilities available. We believe, on the other hand, that in the realm of life, the elements don't truly have a separate existence. They are various mental perspectives of a unified process. Therefore, there is inherent randomness in progress, an incommensurable gap between what comes before and what comes after—in short, duration.
[14] Berthold, Studien über Protoplasmamechanik, Leipzig, 1886, p. 102. Cf. the explanation proposed by Le Dantec, Théorie nouvelle de la vie, Paris, 1896, p. 60.
[14] Berthold, Studies on Protoplasm Mechanics, Leipzig, 1886, p. 102. See the explanation suggested by Le Dantec, New Theory of Life, Paris, 1896, p. 60.
[16] Maupas, "Etude des infusoires ciliés" (Arch. de zoologie expérimentale, 1883, pp. 47, 491, 518, 549, in particular). P. Vignon, Recherches de cytologie générale sur les épithéliums, Paris, 1902, p. 655. A profound study of the motions of the Infusoria and a very penetrating criticism of the idea of tropism have been made recently by Jennings (Contributions to the Study of the Behavior of Lower Organisms, Washington, 1904). The "type of behavior" of these lower organisms, as Jennings defines it (pp. 237-252), is unquestionably of the psychological order.
[16] Maupas, "Study of Ciliated Infusoria" (Archives of Experimental Zoology, 1883, pp. 47, 491, 518, 549, in particular). P. Vignon, General Cytology Research on Epithelia, Paris, 1902, p. 655. A thorough study of the movements of Infusoria and a sharp critique of the concept of tropism have recently been conducted by Jennings (Contributions to the Study of the Behavior of Lower Organisms, Washington, 1904). The "type of behavior" of these lower organisms, as defined by Jennings (pp. 237-252), is undoubtedly psychological in nature.
[18] Dastre, La Vie et la mort, p. 43.
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ Dastre, Life and Death, p. 43.
[21] There are really two lines to follow in contemporary neo-vitalism: on the one hand, the assertion that pure mechanism is insufficient, which assumes great authority when made by such scientists as Driesch or Reinke, for example; and, on the other hand, the hypotheses which this vitalism superposes on mechanism (the "entelechies" of Driesch, and the "dominants" of Reinke, etc.). Of these two parts, the former is perhaps the more interesting. See the admirable studies of Driesch—Die Lokalisation morphogenetischer Vorgänge, Leipzig, 1899; Die organischen Regulationen, Leipzig, 1901; Naturbegriffe und Natururteile, Leipzig, 1904; Der Vitalismus als Geschichte und als Lehre, Leipzig, 1905; and of Reinke—Die Welt als Tat, Berlin, 1899; Einleitung in die theoretische Biologie, Berlin, 1901; Philosophie der Botanik, Leipzig, 1905.
[21] There are really two main ideas in modern neo-vitalism: on one side, the claim that pure mechanism isn't enough, which carries a lot of weight when stated by prominent scientists like Driesch or Reinke; and on the other side, the theories that this vitalism adds to mechanism (the "entelechies" of Driesch, and the "dominants" of Reinke, etc.). Of these two aspects, the first one is probably the more engaging. Check out the excellent studies by Driesch—Die Lokalisation morphogenetischer Vorgänge, Leipzig, 1899; Die organischen Regulationen, Leipzig, 1901; Naturbegriffe und Natururteile, Leipzig, 1904; Der Vitalismus als Geschichte und als Lehre, Leipzig, 1905; and by Reinke—Die Welt als Tat, Berlin, 1899; Einleitung in die theoretische Biologie, Berlin, 1901; Philosophie der Botanik, Leipzig, 1905.
[22] P. Guérin, Les Connaissances actuelles sur la fécondation chez les phanérogames, Paris, 1904, pp. 144-148. Cf. Delage, L'Hérédité, 2nd edition, 1903, pp. 140 ff.
[22] P. Guérin, Current Knowledge on Fertilization in Angiosperms, Paris, 1904, pp. 144-148. See also Delage, Heredity, 2nd edition, 1903, pp. 140 and following.
[23] Möbius, Beiträge zur Lehre von der Fortpflanzung der Gewächse, Jena, 1897, pp. 203-206 in particular. Cf. Hartog, "Sur les phénomènes de reproduction" (Année biologique, 1895, pp. 707-709).
[23] Möbius, Contributions to the Study of Plant Reproduction, Jena, 1897, pp. 203-206 in particular. See Hartog, "On Reproductive Phenomena" (Biological Yearbook, 1895, pp. 707-709).
[25] Ibid. p. 80.
[26] Darwin, Origin of Species, chap. ii.
[27] Bateson, Materials for the Study of Variation, London, 1894, especially pp. 567 ff. Cf. Scott, "Variations and Mutations" (American Journal of Science, Nov. 1894).
[27] Bateson, Materials for the Study of Variation, London, 1894, especially pp. 567 ff. See also Scott, "Variations and Mutations" (American Journal of Science, Nov. 1894).
[29] Darwin, Origin of Species, chap. vi.
[30] Darwin, Origin of Species, chap. i.
[31] On this homology of hair and teeth, see Brandt, "Über ... eine mutmassliche Homologie der Haare und Zahne" (Biol. Centralblatt, vol. xviii., 1898, especially pp. 262 ff.).
[31] For more on the similarity between hair and teeth, check out Brandt, "On a Suspected Homology of Hair and Teeth" (Biol. Centralblatt, vol. xviii., 1898, particularly pp. 262 ff.).
[32] It seems, from later observations, that the transformation of Artemia is a more complex phenomenon than was first supposed. See on this subject Samter and Heymons, "Die Variation bei Artemia Salina" (Anhang zu den Abhandlungen der k. preussischen Akad. der Wissenschaften, 1902).
[32] It appears, based on later observations, that the transformation of Artemia is a more complex process than originally thought. For more on this topic, see Samter and Heymons, "Die Variation bei Artemia Salina" (Anhang zu den Abhandlungen der k. preussischen Akad. der Wissenschaften, 1902).
[35] Ibid. pp. 165 ff.
[36] Salensky, "Heteroblastie" (Proc. of the Fourth International Congress of Zoology, London, 1899, pp. 111-118). Salensky has coined this word to designate the cases in which organs that are equivalent, but of different embryological origin, are formed at the same points in animals related to each other.
[36] Salensky, "Heteroblastie" (Proc. of the Fourth International Congress of Zoology, London, 1899, pp. 111-118). Salensky created this term to refer to situations where organs that are equivalent, but originate from different embryological sources, develop at the same locations in related animals.
[41] Brown-Séquard, "Nouvelles recherches sur l'épilepsie due à certaines lésions de la moelle épiniéere et des nerfs rachidiens" (Arch. de physiologie, vol. ii., 1866, pp. 211, 422, and 497).
[41] Brown-Séquard, "New Research on Epilepsy Caused by Certain Injuries to the Spinal Cord and Spinal Nerves" (Archives of Physiology, vol. ii., 1866, pp. 211, 422, and 497).
[44] Voisin and Peron, "Recherches sur la toxicité urinaire chez les épileptiques" (Arch. de neurologie, vol. xxiv., 1892, and xxv., 1893. Cf. the work of Voisin, L'Épilepsie, Paris, 1897, pp. 125-133).
[44] Voisin and Peron, "Research on Urinary Toxicity in Epileptics" (Archives of Neurology, vol. 24, 1892, and vol. 25, 1893. See Voisin's work, Epilepsy, Paris, 1897, pp. 125-133).
[45] Charrin, Delamare and Moussu, "Transmission expérimentale aux descendants de lésions développées chez les ascendants" (C.R. de l'Acad. des sciences, vol. cxxxv., 1902, p. 191). Cf. Morgan, Evolution and Adaptation, p. 257, and Delage, L'Hérédité, 2nd edition, p. 388.
[45] Charrin, Delamare and Moussu, "Experimental Transmission of Lesions Developed in Ancestors to Descendants" (Proceedings of the Academy of Sciences, vol. 135, 1902, p. 191). See also Morgan, Evolution and Adaptation, p. 257, and Delage, Heredity, 2nd edition, p. 388.
[49] Some analogous facts, however, have been noted, all in the vegetable world. See Blaringhem, "La Notion d'espèce et la théorie de la mutation" (Année psychologique, vol. xii., 1906, pp. 95 ff.), and De Vries, Species and Varieties, p. 655.
[49] However, some similar facts have been observed, all within the plant kingdom. See Blaringhem, "The Notion of Species and the Theory of Mutation" (Psychological Yearbook, vol. xii., 1906, pp. 95 ff.), and De Vries, Species and Varieties, p. 655.
CHAPTER II
THE DIVERGENT DIRECTIONS OF THE EVOLUTION OF LIFE. TORPOR, INTELLIGENCE, INSTINCT[Pg 98]
THE DIVERGENT DIRECTIONS OF THE EVOLUTION OF LIFE. TORPOR, INTELLIGENCE, INSTINCT[Pg 98]
The evolution movement would be a simple one, and we should soon have been able to determine its direction, if life had described a single course, like that of a solid ball shot from a cannon. But it proceeds rather like a shell, which suddenly bursts into fragments, which fragments, being themselves shells, burst in their turn into fragments destined to burst again, and so on for a time incommensurably long. We perceive only what is nearest to us, namely, the scattered movements of the pulverized explosions. From them we have to go back, stage by stage, to the original movement.
The evolution process would be straightforward, and we should have quickly figured out its direction if life had followed a single path, like a solid ball shot from a cannon. Instead, it acts more like a shell that suddenly shatters into pieces; those pieces, being shells themselves, break apart again, and this continues for an unimaginably long time. We can only see what’s immediately around us, which are the scattered movements of the shattered explosions. From there, we have to trace back, step by step, to the original movement.
When a shell bursts, the particular way it breaks is explained both by the explosive force of the powder it contains and by the resistance of the metal. So of the way life breaks into individuals and species. It depends, we think, on two series of causes: the resistance life meets from inert matter, and the explosive force—due to an unstable balance of tendencies—which life bears within itself.
When a shell explodes, the way it shatters is determined by both the explosive force of the gunpowder inside it and the strength of the metal. The same goes for how life divides into individuals and species. We believe it relies on two sets of factors: the resistance life encounters from non-living matter, and the explosive force—stemming from an unstable balance of tendencies—that life carries within.
The resistance of inert matter was the obstacle that had first to be overcome. Life seems to have succeeded in this by dint of humility, by making itself very small and very insinuating, bending to physical and chemical forces, consenting even to go a part of the way with them, like the switch that adopts for a while the direction of[Pg 99] the rail it is endeavoring to leave. Of phenomena in the simplest forms of life, it is hard to say whether they are still physical and chemical or whether they are already vital. Life had to enter thus into the habits of inert matter, in order to draw it little by little, magnetized, as it were, to another track. The animate forms that first appeared were therefore of extreme simplicity. They were probably tiny masses of scarcely differentiated protoplasm, outwardly resembling the amoeba observable to-day, but possessed of the tremendous internal push that was to raise them even to the highest forms of life. That in virtue of this push the first organisms sought to grow as much as possible, seems likely. But organized matter has a limit of expansion that is very quickly reached; beyond a certain point it divides instead of growing. Ages of effort and prodigies of subtlety were probably necessary for life to get past this new obstacle. It succeeded in inducing an increasing number of elements, ready to divide, to remain united. By the division of labor it knotted between them an indissoluble bond. The complex and quasi-discontinuous organism is thus made to function as would a continuous living mass which had simply grown bigger.
The resistance of inactive matter was the first challenge that had to be overcome. Life seems to have achieved this through humility, by making itself very small and subtle, adapting to physical and chemical forces, even agreeing to follow them part of the way, like a switch that temporarily aligns with the track it's trying to leave. It's difficult to determine whether the simplest forms of life are still physical and chemical or already vital. Life had to integrate into the habits of inert matter to gradually draw it, magnetized, to a different path. The first living forms that emerged were extremely simple. They were likely tiny masses of barely differentiated protoplasm, resembling today's amoeba, but with a powerful internal drive that would eventually elevate them to higher forms of life. It seems probable that these early organisms sought to grow as much as possible due to this drive. However, organized matter has a quick limit to its expansion; beyond a certain point, it divides instead of growing. It probably took ages of effort and incredible finesse for life to overcome this new obstacle. It succeeded in inducing an increasing number of elements, ready to divide, to stay united. Through the division of labor, it wove an unbreakable bond among them. Thus, the complex and nearly discontinuous organism functions as if it were a continuous living mass that had simply grown larger.
But the real and profound causes of division were those which life bore within its bosom. For life is tendency, and the essence of a tendency is to develop in the form of a sheaf, creating, by its very growth, divergent directions among which its impetus is divided. This we observe in ourselves, in the evolution of that special tendency which we call our character. Each of us, glancing back over his history, will find that his child-personality, though indivisible, united in itself divers persons, which could remain blended just because they were in their nascent state: this indecision, so charged with promise, is one of the[Pg 100] greatest charms of childhood. But these interwoven personalities become incompatible in course of growth, and, as each of us can live but one life, a choice must perforce be made. We choose in reality without ceasing; without ceasing, also, we abandon many things. The route we pursue in time is strewn with the remains of all that we began to be, of all that we might have become. But nature, which has at command an incalculable number of lives, is in no wise bound to make such sacrifices. She preserves the different tendencies that have bifurcated with their growth. She creates with them diverging series of species that will evolve separately.
But the real and deep reasons for division come from within life itself. Life is about growth, and the essence of growth is to develop like a bundle, creating, through its growth, many paths that split the energy it has. We can see this in ourselves, in the development of what we call our character. Each of us, looking back at our personal history, will find that our childhood selves—though they were one—contained many different aspects, which could remain blended just because they were still developing. This uncertainty, full of potential, is one of the greatest joys of childhood. But as we grow, these intertwined aspects can become incompatible, and since each of us can only live one life, a choice must inevitably be made. We continually make choices without realizing it; we also continually let go of many things. The path we take over time is littered with traces of all that we began to be, of all that we could have become. But nature, which has countless possibilities, doesn't have to make such sacrifices. It keeps the different tendencies that have branched out as they have grown. It generates diverging lines of species that will evolve on their own.
These series may, moreover, be of unequal importance. The author who begins a novel puts into his hero many things which he is obliged to discard as he goes on. Perhaps he will take them up later in other books, and make new characters with them, who will seem like extracts from, or rather like complements of, the first; but they will almost always appear somewhat poor and limited in comparison with the original character. So with regard to the evolution of life. The bifurcations on the way have been numerous, but there have been many blind alleys beside the two or three highways; and of these highways themselves, only one, that which leads through the vertebrates up to man, has been wide enough to allow free passage to the full breath of life. We get this impression when we compare the societies of bees and ants, for instance, with human societies. The former are admirably ordered and united, but stereotyped; the latter are open to every sort of progress, but divided, and incessantly at strife with themselves. The ideal would be a society always in progress and always in equilibrium, but this ideal is perhaps unrealizable: the two characteristics that would fain complete each other, which do complete each other in their[Pg 101] embryonic state, can no longer abide together when they grow stronger. If one could speak, otherwise than metaphorically, of an impulse toward social life, it might be said that the brunt of the impulse was borne along the line of evolution ending at man, and that the rest of it was collected on the road leading to the hymenoptera: the societies of ants and bees would thus present the aspect complementary to ours. But this would be only a manner of expression. There has been no particular impulse towards social life; there is simply the general movement of life, which on divergent lines is creating forms ever new. If societies should appear on two of these lines, they ought to show divergence of paths at the same time as community of impetus. They will thus develop two classes of characteristics which we shall find vaguely complementary of each other.
These series may also vary in importance. The author who starts a novel includes many traits in their hero that they end up discarding as the story progresses. They might revisit these traits later in other books, creating new characters that seem like offshoots or complements of the original, but these new characters usually come across as somewhat limited compared to the initial character. The same can be said about the evolution of life. There have been many branches in this journey, but also numerous dead ends alongside the few main routes; among these main routes, only one—leading from vertebrates to humans—has been broad enough to let the full spectrum of life flourish. This becomes clear when we compare bee and ant societies with human societies. The former are well-organized and cohesive, but rigid; the latter are open to all kinds of progress, yet fragmented, constantly in conflict with themselves. The ideal society would be one that is always evolving while maintaining balance, but this ideal might be unrealistic: these two traits, which would ideally complement each other and do so in their early stages, struggle to coexist as they become stronger. If we could discuss an impulse toward social life in a non-metaphorical way, we might say that much of this impulse has traveled along the evolutionary path leading to humans, while the remainder has gathered along the route toward hymenopterans: the societies of ants and bees would then serve as a complement to ours. However, this is merely a way of expressing it. There hasn't been a specific drive toward social life; instead, there's just the general movement of life, which creates ever-new forms along divergent paths. If societies were to emerge along two of those paths, they should show both divergence and a shared motivation. They would then develop two sets of characteristics that are somewhat complementary to each other.
So our study of the evolution movement will have to unravel a certain number of divergent directions, and to appreciate the importance of what has happened along each of them—in a word, to determine the nature of the dissociated tendencies and estimate their relative proportion. Combining these tendencies, then, we shall get an approximation, or rather an imitation, of the indivisible motor principle whence their impetus proceeds. Evolution will thus prove to be something entirely different from a series of adaptations to circumstances, as mechanism claims; entirely different also from the realization of a plan of the whole, as maintained by the doctrine of finality.
So our study of the evolution movement will need to explore various different paths and understand the significance of what has occurred along each of them—in short, to identify the nature of the separate tendencies and evaluate their relative importance. By combining these tendencies, we will get a close approximation, or rather a reflection, of the single driving principle from which their momentum comes. Evolution will therefore turn out to be something completely different from just a series of adaptations to circumstances, as mechanistic theory suggests; it will also differ entirely from the execution of a comprehensive plan, as proposed by the theory of finality.
That adaptation to environment is the necessary condition of evolution we do not question for a moment. It is quite evident that a species would disappear, should it fail to bend to the conditions of existence which are imposed on it. But it is one thing to recognize that outer[Pg 102] circumstances are forces evolution must reckon with, another to claim that they are the directing causes of evolution. This latter theory is that of mechanism. It excludes absolutely the hypothesis of an original impetus, I mean an internal push that has carried life, by more and more complex forms, to higher and higher destinies. Yet this impetus is evident, and a mere glance at fossil species shows us that life need not have evolved at all, or might have evolved only in very restricted limits, if it had chosen the alternative, much more convenient to itself, of becoming anchylosed in its primitive forms. Certain Foraminifera have not varied since the Silurian epoch. Unmoved witnesses of the innumerable revolutions that have upheaved our planet, the Lingulae are to-day what they were at the remotest times of the paleozoic era.
That adaptation to the environment is the essential condition of evolution that we don’t question for a moment. It’s clear that a species would go extinct if it didn’t adjust to the conditions of existence that are imposed on it. However, it’s one thing to acknowledge that external circumstances are forces evolution must deal with, and another to argue that they are the driving forces behind evolution. This latter idea is known as mechanism. It completely rules out the hypothesis of an original impetus, meaning an internal drive that has propelled life, through increasingly complex forms, toward higher and higher destinies. Yet this drive is obvious, and just a quick look at fossil species shows us that life didn't have to evolve at all, or could have evolved only within very limited confines, if it had opted for the much easier choice of remaining stagnant in its primitive forms. Certain Foraminifera have not changed since the Silurian epoch. Unmoved witnesses of the countless upheavals that have transformed our planet, the Lingulae are still the same as they were in the farthest times of the Paleozoic era.
The truth is that adaptation explains the sinuosities of the movement of evolution, but not its general directions, still less the movement itself.[51] The road that leads to the town is obliged to follow the ups and downs of the hills; it adapts itself to the accidents of the ground; but the accidents of the ground are not the cause of the road, nor have they given it its direction. At every moment they furnish it with what is indispensable, namely, the soil on which it lies; but if we consider the whole of the road, instead of each of its parts, the accidents of the ground appear only as impediments or causes of delay, for the road aims simply at the town and would fain be a straight line. Just so as regards the evolution of life and the circumstances through which it passes—with this difference, that evolution does not mark out a solitary route, that it takes directions without aiming at ends, and that it remains inventive even in its adaptations.[Pg 103]
The truth is that adaptation explains the twists and turns of evolution, but not its overall direction, let alone the movement itself.[51] The road to the town has to follow the ups and downs of the hills; it adapts itself to the bumps in the ground; but the bumps in the ground aren’t the reason for the road, nor do they determine its direction. At every moment, they provide what is essential, namely, the soil it rests on; but if we look at the entire road instead of each section, the bumps in the ground seem only to be obstacles or causes of delay, because the road simply aims for the town and would prefer to be a straight line. Similarly, when it comes to the evolution of life and the circumstances it encounters—with the difference that evolution doesn’t follow just one path, it takes multiple directions without aiming for specific ends, and it continues to be inventive even in its adaptations.[Pg 103]
But, if the evolution of life is something other than a series of adaptations to accidental circumstances, so also it is not the realization of a plan. A plan is given in advance. It is represented, or at least representable, before its realization. The complete execution of it may be put off to a distant future, or even indefinitely; but the idea is none the less formulable at the present time, in terms actually given. If, on the contrary, evolution is a creation unceasingly renewed, it creates, as it goes on, not only the forms of life, but the ideas that will enable the intellect to understand it, the terms which will serve to express it. That is to say that its future overflows its present, and can not be sketched out therein in an idea.
But if the evolution of life isn't just a series of adaptations to random events, it's also not the execution of a pre-set plan. A plan is established beforehand. It can be represented, or at least described, before it actually happens. The complete implementation of it might be delayed to a distant future, or maybe even indefinitely; however, the concept can still be articulated right now, with the details we have. On the other hand, if evolution is a constantly renewing creation, it not only creates forms of life as it progresses but also generates the ideas that will help us understand it, and the terms that will express it. This means that its future exceeds its present and can't be captured in a single idea.
There is the first error of finalism. It involves another, yet more serious.
There is the first mistake of finalism. It involves another, even more serious one.
If life realizes a plan, it ought to manifest a greater harmony the further it advances, just as the house shows better and better the idea of the architect as stone is set upon stone. If, on the contrary, the unity of life is to be found solely in the impetus that pushes it along the road of time, the harmony is not in front, but behind. The unity is derived from a vis a tergo: it is given at the start as an impulsion, not placed at the end as an attraction. In communicating itself, the impetus splits up more and more. Life, in proportion to its progress, is scattered in manifestations which undoubtedly owe to their common origin the fact that they are complementary to each other in certain aspects, but which are none the less mutually incompatible and antagonistic. So the discord between species will go on increasing. Indeed, we have as yet only indicated the essential cause of it. We have supposed, for the sake of simplicity, that each species received the impulsion in order to pass it on to others, and that,[Pg 104] in every direction in which life evolves, the propagation is in a straight line. But, as a matter of fact, there are species which are arrested; there are some that retrogress. Evolution is not only a movement forward; in many cases we observe a marking-time, and still more often a deviation or turning back. It must be so, as we shall show further on, and the same causes that divide the evolution movement often cause life to be diverted from itself, hypnotized by the form it has just brought forth. Thence results an increasing disorder. No doubt there is progress, if progress mean a continual advance in the general direction determined by a first impulsion; but this progress is accomplished only on the two or three great lines of evolution on which forms ever more and more complex, ever more and more high, appear; between these lines run a crowd of minor paths in which, on the contrary, deviations, arrests, and set-backs, are multiplied. The philosopher, who begins by laying down as a principle that each detail is connected with some general plan of the whole, goes from one disappointment to another as soon as he comes to examine the facts; and, as he had put everything in the same rank, he finds that, as the result of not allowing for accident, he must regard everything as accidental. For accident, then, an allowance must first be made, and a very liberal allowance. We must recognize that all is not coherent in nature. By so doing, we shall be led to ascertain the centres around which the incoherence crystallizes. This crystallization itself will clarify the rest; the main directions will appear, in which life is moving whilst developing the original impulse. True, we shall not witness the detailed accomplishment of a plan. Nature is more and better than a plan in course of realization. A plan is a term assigned to a labor: it closes the future whose form it indicates. Before the evolution of life, on[Pg 105] the contrary, the portals of the future remain wide open. It is a creation that goes on for ever in virtue of an initial movement. This movement constitutes the unity of the organized world—a prolific unity, of an infinite richness, superior to any that the intellect could dream of, for the intellect is only one of its aspects or products.
If life follows a plan, it should show greater harmony the further it goes, just like a house reveals the architect's vision as each stone is stacked. But if the unity of life comes only from the force pushing it through time, then harmony is found behind, not ahead. The unity comes from a vis a tergo: it’s there from the start as a driving force, not placed at the end as a goal. As it develops, this force fractures more and more. Life, as it progresses, becomes dispersed in manifestations that, while they share a common origin that makes them complementary in some ways, are still fundamentally incompatible and conflicting. Therefore, the discord among species will keep increasing. We've just touched on the main reason for this. For simplicity, we've assumed each species received the impulse to pass on, and that,[Pg 104] in every direction life evolves, this propagation is straightforward. However, in reality, some species stagnate or even regress. Evolution isn’t just forward movement; often, we see life pause, deviate, or turn back. This must be the case, as we will demonstrate later, and the same factors that disrupt evolutionary progress can also cause life to divert from its path, captivated by the form it just created. This leads to growing disorder. There is progress, if we define it as a continuous movement in a general direction set by an initial impulse. Yet, this progress occurs only along two or three main lines of evolution where increasingly complex and higher forms emerge; meanwhile, many smaller paths are filled with deviations, stagnation, and setbacks. The philosopher, starting with the principle that every detail connects to a larger whole, will be met with disappointment when he examines the facts; as he equalizes everything, he finds that by ignoring randomness, he must view everything as chance. Therefore, we must first account for randomness, and a generous account at that. We need to acknowledge that nature isn’t entirely coherent. By doing so, we will discover the centers around which this incoherence forms. This formation will clarify the rest; we will see the main directions in which life is moving as it develops from the original impulse. True, we won’t see the precise realization of a plan. Nature is more rich and complex than a mere unfolding plan. A plan implies a finished work that limits the form of the future. In contrast, before life's evolution, the future remains completely open. It’s a perpetual creation driven by an initial movement. This movement embodies the unity of the organized world—a fertile unity, infinitely rich, exceeding anything the intellect could envision, as the intellect is merely one of its aspects or products.
But it is easier to define the method than to apply it. The complete interpretation of the evolution movement in the past, as we conceive it, would be possible only if the history of the development of the organized world were entirely known. Such is far from being the case. The genealogies proposed for the different species are generally questionable. They vary with their authors, with the theoretic views inspiring them, and raise discussions to which the present state of science does not admit of a final settlement. But a comparison of the different solutions shows that the controversy bears less on the main lines of the movement than on matters of detail; and so, by following the main lines as closely as possible, we shall be sure of not going astray. Moreover, they alone are important to us; for we do not aim, like the naturalist, at finding the order of succession of different species, but only at defining the principal directions of their evolution. And not all of these directions have the same interest for us: what concerns us particularly is the path that leads to man. We shall therefore not lose sight of the fact, in following one direction and another, that our main business is to determine the relation of man to the animal kingdom, and the place of the animal kingdom itself in the organized world as a whole.
But it's easier to define the method than to actually apply it. The complete understanding of the evolution movement in the past, as we see it, would only be possible if we fully knew the history of the organized world’s development. That is far from the case. The family trees proposed for different species are usually questionable. They change depending on their authors, the theoretical views behind them, and lead to discussions that the current state of science cannot definitively resolve. However, comparing different solutions shows that the debate focuses less on the main aspects of the movement and more on details; therefore, by following the main lines as closely as possible, we can be sure not to stray. Furthermore, only these main lines are significant to us; we are not aiming, like the naturalist, to establish the order of succession of different species, but rather to define the principal directions of their evolution. Not all these directions are equally important to us: what matters most is the path that leads to humans. So, as we explore one direction and then another, we must keep in mind that our primary task is to determine the relationship between humans and the animal kingdom, as well as the animal kingdom’s place in the organized world as a whole.
To begin with the second point, let us say that no definite characteristic distinguishes the plant from the animal. Attempts to define the two kingdoms strictly have always[Pg 106] come to naught. There is not a single property of vegetable life that is not found, in some degree, in certain animals; not a single characteristic feature of the animal that has not been seen in certain species or at certain moments in the vegetable world. Naturally, therefore, biologists enamored of clean-cut concepts have regarded the distinction between the two kingdoms as artificial. They would be right, if definition in this case must be made, as in the mathematical and physical sciences, according to certain statical attributes which belong to the object defined and are not found in any other. Very different, in our opinion, is the kind of definition which befits the sciences of life. There is no manifestation of life which does not contain, in a rudimentary state—either latent or potential,—the essential characters of most other manifestations. The difference is in the proportions. But this very difference of proportion will suffice to define the group, if we can establish that it is not accidental, and that the group as it evolves, tends more and more to emphasize these particular characters. In a word, the group must not be defined by the possession of certain characters, but by its tendency to emphasize them. From this point of view, taking tendencies rather than states into account, we find that vegetables and animals may be precisely defined and distinguished, and that they correspond to two divergent developments of life.
To start with the second point, let's say that there’s no clear characteristic that separates plants from animals. Efforts to strictly define the two kingdoms have always[Pg 106] failed. There's not a single property of plant life that isn't found, in some form, in certain animals; nor is there a characteristic feature of animals that hasn't been observed in certain species or at certain times in the plant world. Naturally, biologists who favor clear-cut concepts see the distinction between the two kingdoms as artificial. They would be correct if definitions in this case had to be made like in mathematics and physical sciences, based on specific static attributes unique to the defined object and not found elsewhere. However, we believe that the type of definition suitable for life sciences is quite different. There's no expression of life that doesn’t include, in a basic state—either dormant or potential—the essential traits of most other expressions of life. The differences lie in the proportions. But this very difference in proportions can define the group if we can demonstrate that it’s not random and that the group, as it evolves, increasingly emphasizes these distinct traits. In short, the group should not be defined by certain characteristics it possesses, but by its tendency to emphasize them. From this perspective, focusing on tendencies rather than static states, we find that plants and animals can be clearly defined and differentiated, as they represent two diverging paths of life.
This divergence is shown, first, in the method of alimentation. We know that the vegetable derives directly from the air and water and soil the elements necessary to maintain life, especially carbon and nitrogen, which it takes in mineral form. The animal, on the contrary, cannot assimilate these elements unless they have already been fixed for it in organic substances by plants, or by animals which directly or indirectly owe them to plants;[Pg 107] so that ultimately the vegetable nourishes the animal. True, this law allows of many exceptions among vegetables. We do not hesitate to class amongst vegetables the Drosera, the Dionaea, the Pinguicula, which are insectivorous plants. On the other hand, the fungi, which occupy so considerable a place in the vegetable world, feed like animals: whether they are ferments, saprophytes or parasites, it is to already formed organic substances that they owe their nourishment. It is therefore impossible to draw from this difference any static definition such as would automatically settle in any particular case the question whether we are dealing with a plant or an animal. But the difference may provide the beginning of a dynamic definition of the two kingdoms, in that it marks the two divergent directions in which vegetables and animals have taken their course. It is a remarkable fact that the fungi, which nature has spread all over the earth in such extraordinary profusion, have not been able to evolve. Organically they do not rise above tissues which, in the higher vegetables, are formed in the embryonic sac of the ovary, and precede the germinative development of the new individual.[52] They might be called the abortive children of the vegetable world. Their different species are like so many blind alleys, as if, by renouncing the mode of alimentation customary amongst vegetables, they had been brought to a standstill on the highway of vegetable evolution. As to the Drosera, the Dionaea, and insectivorous plants in general, they are fed by their roots, like other plants; they too fix, by their green parts, the carbon of the carbonic acid in the atmosphere. Their faculty of capturing, absorbing and digesting insects must have arisen late, in quite exceptional cases where the soil was too poor to furnish sufficient nourishment. In a general way, then, if we attach less im[Pg 108]portance to the presence of special characters than to their tendency to develop, and if we regard as essential that tendency along which evolution has been able to continue indefinitely, we may say that vegetables are distinguished from animals by their power of creating organic matter out of mineral elements which they draw directly from the air and earth and water. But now we come to another difference, deeper than this, though not unconnected with it.
This difference is first seen in how they obtain food. We know that plants get the necessary elements for life, especially carbon and nitrogen, directly from air, water, and soil in mineral form. Animals, on the other hand, can only use these elements after they’ve been turned into organic matter by plants or by animals that have gotten them from plants; so ultimately, plants nourish animals. True, there are exceptions among plants. We readily include the Drosera, Dionaea, and Pinguicula, which are insect-eating plants. On the flip side, fungi, which play a significant role in the plant kingdom, feed like animals. Whether they are ferments, saprophytes, or parasites, they depend on already formed organic substances for nutrition. Therefore, it's impossible to establish a clear-cut definition that would determine whether something is a plant or an animal in every situation. But this difference might lead to a dynamic definition of the two kingdoms, highlighting the divergent paths that plants and animals have taken. It's remarkable that fungi, which nature has spread across the earth in such abundance, have not evolved much. Organically, they don’t advance beyond the tissues found in the embryonic sac of the ovary, which come before the germination of a new individual. They could be seen as the stunted offspring of the plant world. Their various types resemble numerous dead ends, as if by abandoning the typical plant feeding method, they’ve stagnated in their evolutionary journey. As for the Drosera, Dionaea, and other insect-eating plants, they nourish themselves through their roots, like other plants; they also absorb carbon from carbon dioxide in the atmosphere using their green parts. Their ability to catch, absorb, and digest insects likely developed later, in specific cases where the soil was too poor to provide enough nutrients. Generally speaking, if we focus less on unique characteristics and more on their potential for development, considering that ongoing evolution is essential, we can say that plants are distinct from animals because they can create organic matter from mineral elements taken directly from air, earth, and water. But now we arrive at another, deeper difference that is still related to this one.
The animal, being unable to fix directly the carbon and nitrogen which are everywhere to be found, has to seek for its nourishment vegetables which have already fixed these elements, or animals which have taken them from the vegetable kingdom. So the animal must be able to move. From the amoeba, which thrusts out its pseudopodia at random to seize the organic matter scattered in a drop of water, up to the higher animals which have sense-organs with which to recognize their prey, locomotor organs to go and seize it, and a nervous system to coördinate their movements with their sensations, animal life is characterized, in its general direction, by mobility in space. In its most rudimentary form, the animal is a tiny mass of protoplasm enveloped at most in a thin albuminous pellicle which allows full freedom for change of shape and movement. The vegetable cell, on the contrary, is surrounded by a membrane of cellulose, which condemns it to immobility. And, from the bottom to the top of the vegetable kingdom, there are the same habits growing more and more sedentary, the plant having no need to move, and finding around it, in the air and water and soil in which it is placed, the mineral elements it can appropriate directly. It is true that phenomena of movement are seen in plants. Darwin has written a well-known work on the movements of climbing plants. He studied also the contrivances of certain in[Pg 109]sectivorous plants, such as the Drosera and the Dionaea, to seize their prey. The leaf-movements of the acacia, the sensitive plant, etc., are well known. Moreover, the circulation of the vegetable protoplasm within its sheath bears witness to its relationship to the protoplasm of animals, whilst in a large number of animal species (generally parasites) phenomena of fixation, analogous to those of vegetables, can be observed.[53] Here, again, it would be a mistake to claim that fixity and mobility are the two characters which enable us to decide, by simple inspection alone, whether we have before us a plant or an animal. But fixity, in the animal, generally seems like a torpor into which the species has fallen, a refusal to evolve further in a certain direction; it is closely akin to parasitism and is accompanied by features that recall those of vegetable life. On the other hand, the movements of vegetables have neither the frequency nor the variety of those of animals. Generally, they involve only part of the organism and scarcely ever extend to the whole. In the exceptional cases in which a vague spontaneity appears in vegetables, it is as if we beheld the accidental awakening of an activity normally asleep. In short, although both mobility and fixity exist in the vegetable as in the animal world, the balance is clearly in favor of fixity in the one case and of mobility in the other. These two opposite tendencies are so plainly directive of the two evolutions that the two kingdoms might almost be defined by them. But fixity and mobility, again, are only superficial signs of tendencies that are still deeper.
The animal, unable to directly convert carbon and nitrogen found everywhere, must seek out its food in plants that have already processed these elements or in animals that have consumed those plants. Therefore, animals need to be able to move. From the amoeba, which extends its pseudopodia randomly to capture organic matter in a drop of water, to higher animals with sensory organs that help them identify their prey, locomotor organs for catching it, and a nervous system that coordinates movement with sensation, animal life is defined by its ability to move through space. Even in its simplest form, an animal is just a small mass of protoplasm, often encased in a thin albuminous layer that allows for changes in shape and movement. In contrast, a plant cell is surrounded by a cellulose membrane, which confines it to one spot. Across the entire plant kingdom, habits become increasingly sedentary, as plants have no need to move and can directly take in the minerals they need from the air, water, and soil around them. Although there are some movement phenomena observed in plants—like Darwin's famous studies on climbing plants and the mechanisms of certain carnivorous plants such as Drosera and Dionaea—these movements are limited. The leaf movements of the acacia and sensitive plants are well known. Additionally, the circulation of protoplasm within plants shows their connection to animal protoplasm, while many animal species (usually parasites) exhibit fixation behaviors similar to those of plants. It would be misleading to claim that fixity and mobility are the only traits we need to differentiate between plants and animals just by looking. However, fixity in animals often resembles a stagnation where a species has ceased to evolve in a particular direction; it is closely related to parasitism and features that remind us of plant life. On the flip side, plant movements happen less frequently and lack the variety seen in animal movement. Generally, they affect only parts of the organism and rarely engage the whole. In rare occurrences when plants show some spontaneous activity, it seems like an uncharacteristic awakening from a long dormancy. Ultimately, while both movement and stillness exist in both the plant and animal worlds, the balance clearly leans toward stillness for plants and movement for animals. These two opposing tendencies guide the evolution of both kingdoms so distinctly that they could almost be defined by them. Yet, fixity and mobility are merely surface indicators of deeper underlying trends.
Between mobility and consciousness there is an obvious relationship. No doubt, the consciousness of the higher organisms seems bound up with certain cerebral arrange[Pg 110]ments. The more the nervous system develops, the more numerous and more precise become the movements among which it can choose; the clearer, also, is the consciousness that accompanies them. But neither this mobility nor this choice nor consequently this consciousness involves as a necessary condition the presence of a nervous system; the latter has only canalized in definite directions, and brought up to a higher degree of intensity, a rudimentary and vague activity, diffused throughout the mass of the organized substance. The lower we descend in the animal series, the more the nervous centres are simplified, and the more, too, they separate from each other, till finally the nervous elements disappear, merged in the mass of a less differentiated organism. But it is the same with all the other apparatus, with all the other anatomical elements; and it would be as absurd to refuse consciousness to an animal because it has no brain as to declare it incapable of nourishing itself because it has no stomach. The truth is that the nervous system arises, like the other systems, from a division of labor. It does not create the function, it only brings it to a higher degree of intensity and precision by giving it the double form of reflex and voluntary activity. To accomplish a true reflex movement, a whole mechanism is necessary, set up in the spinal cord or the medulla. To choose voluntarily between several definite courses of action, cerebral centres are necessary, that is, crossways from which paths start, leading to motor mechanisms of diverse form but equal precision. But where nervous elements are not yet canalized, still less concentrated into a system, there is something from which, by a kind of splitting, both the reflex and the voluntary will arise, something which has neither the mechanical precision of the former nor the intelligent hesitations of the latter, but which, partaking of[Pg 111] both it may be infinitesimally, is a reaction simply undecided, and therefore vaguely conscious. This amounts to saying that the humblest organism is conscious in proportion to its power to move freely. Is consciousness here, in relation to movement, the effect or the cause? In one sense it is the cause, since it has to direct locomotion. But in another sense it is the effect; for it is the motor activity that maintains it, and, once this activity disappears, consciousness dies away or rather falls asleep. In crustaceans such as the rhizocephala, which must formerly have shown a more differentiated structure, fixity and parasitism accompany the degeneration and almost complete disappearance of the nervous system. Since, in such a case, the progress of organization must have localized all the conscious activity in nervous centres, we may conjecture that consciousness is even weaker in animals of this kind than in organisms much less differentiated, which have never had nervous centres but have remained mobile.
There’s a clear connection between movement and awareness. It's evident that the awareness of more complex organisms is linked to specific brain structures. As the nervous system develops, the variety and precision of movements it can choose from increases, and with that, the accompanying awareness becomes clearer. However, this movement, the ability to choose, and thus this awareness don’t necessarily require a nervous system; rather, the nervous system channels a basic, vague activity found throughout a less organized substance. As we look at simpler animals, the nervous centers become simpler and more distinct from one another until we reach a point where the nervous elements blend into a less specialized organism. The same applies to all other organs and anatomical features; it would be just as silly to deny awareness to an animal because it lacks a brain as it would be to say it can’t eat because it doesn’t have a stomach. The fact is that the nervous system, like other systems, emerges from a division of labor. It doesn’t generate the function; it enhances the intensity and precision by creating both reflex and voluntary actions. To execute a reflex movement, a complex mechanism is required in the spinal cord or medulla. To make a voluntary choice among several actions, brain centers are necessary; these are junctions from which various pathways lead to motor mechanisms that, while different in form, are equally precise. However, where nervous elements are not yet organized or focused into a system, there exists something from which both reflexes and voluntary actions emerge through a sort of division. This element has neither the mechanical accuracy of reflexes nor the thoughtful indecisiveness of voluntary actions, but it touches upon both, even if minimally, resulting in a reaction that is simply uncertain and therefore vaguely aware. This means that even the simplest organism has a level of awareness that corresponds to its ability to move freely. In this context, is awareness a result of movement or its cause? In one way, it is the cause since it must guide movement. However, in another way, it is the effect because motor activity sustains it; when this activity stops, awareness fades or essentially goes to sleep. In crustaceans like rhizocephala, which likely had a more complex structure at one point, the loss of movement and the shift to a parasitic lifestyle accompany the decline and near-total loss of the nervous system. As the level of organization in such cases would have concentrated all conscious activity in nervous centers, we can speculate that awareness is even weaker in these animals than in less complex organisms that have never had nervous centers but remain capable of movement.
How then could the plant, which is fixed in the earth and finds its food on the spot, have developed in the direction of conscious activity? The membrane of cellulose, in which the protoplasm wraps itself up, not only prevents the simplest vegetable organism from moving, but screens it also, in some measure, from those outer stimuli which act on the sensibility of the animal as irritants and prevent it from going to sleep.[54] The plant is therefore unconscious. Here again, however, we must beware of radical distinctions. "Unconscious" and "conscious" are not two labels which can be mechanically fastened, the one on every vegetable cell, the other on all animals. While consciousness sleeps in the animal which has degenerated into a motionless parasite, it probably awakens in the vegetable that has[Pg 112] regained liberty of movement, and awakens in just the degree to which the vegetable has reconquered this liberty. Nevertheless, consciousness and unconsciousness mark the directions in which the two kingdoms have developed, in this sense, that to find the best specimens of consciousness in the animal we must ascend to the highest representatives of the series, whereas, to find probable cases of vegetable consciousness, we must descend as low as possible in the scale of plants—down to the zoospores of the algae, for instance, and, more generally, to those unicellular organisms which may be said to hesitate between the vegetable form and animality. From this standpoint, and in this measure, we should define the animal by sensibility and awakened consciousness, the vegetable by consciousness asleep and by insensibility.
How then could a plant, which is rooted in the ground and gets its nutrients from its surroundings, develop towards conscious activity? The cellulose membrane that encases the protoplasm not only keeps even the simplest plant organism from moving, but also shields it, to some extent, from external stimuli that provoke the sensitivity of animals and keep them awake.[54] Therefore, the plant is unconscious. However, we must be cautious about making absolute distinctions. "Unconscious" and "conscious" are not just labels that can be easily attached—one to every plant cell and the other to all animals. While consciousness may be dormant in animals that have become immobile parasites, it likely awakens in plants that have regained their ability to move, and it awakens to the extent that the plant has reclaimed this freedom. Still, consciousness and unconsciousness indicate the paths in which the two kingdoms have progressed, in the sense that to find the best examples of consciousness in animals, we must ascend to the highest representatives of the group, while to find potential examples of plant consciousness, we must descend as low as we can in the plant hierarchy—right down to the zoospores of algae, for instance, and, more broadly, to those unicellular organisms that seem to waver between being plant-like and animal-like. From this perspective, and to this extent, we could define animals by their sensitivity and awakened consciousness, and plants by their dormant consciousness and insensitivity.
To sum up, the vegetable manufactures organic substances directly with mineral substances; as a rule, this aptitude enables it to dispense with movement and so with feeling. Animals, which are obliged to go in search of their food, have evolved in the direction of locomotor activity, and consequently of a consciousness more and more distinct, more and more ample.
To sum up, plants create organic substances directly from minerals; generally, this ability allows them to do without movement and therefore without sensation. Animals, which need to move around to find their food, have developed greater mobility and, as a result, a more distinct and expansive consciousness.
Now, it seems to us most probable that the animal cell and the vegetable cell are derived from a common stock, and that the first living organisms oscillated between the vegetable and animal form, participating in both at once. Indeed, we have just seen that the characteristic tendencies of the evolution of the two kingdoms, although divergent, coexist even now, both in the plant and in the animal. The proportion alone differs. Ordinarily, one of the two tendencies covers or crushes down the other, but in exceptional circumstances the suppressed one starts up and regains the place it had lost. The[Pg 113] mobility and consciousness of the vegetable cell are not so sound asleep that they cannot rouse themselves when circumstances permit or demand it; and, on the other hand, the evolution of the animal kingdom has always been retarded, or stopped, or dragged back, by the tendency it has kept toward the vegetative life. However full, however overflowing the activity of an animal species may appear, torpor and unconsciousness are always lying in wait for it. It keeps up its rôle only by effort, at the price of fatigue. Along the route on which the animal has evolved, there have been numberless shortcomings and cases of decay, generally associated with parasitic habits; they are so many shuntings on to the vegetative life. Thus, everything bears out the belief that vegetable and animal are descended from a common ancestor which united the tendencies of both in a rudimentary state.
Now, it seems likely that animal cells and plant cells come from a common origin, and that the first living organisms shifted between plant and animal forms, embodying both simultaneously. Indeed, we've just seen that the characteristic trends in the evolution of the two kingdoms, although different, still coexist today in both plants and animals. Only the balance differs. Usually, one of the two trends overshadows or suppresses the other, but in rare situations, the suppressed trend can emerge and reclaim its former place. The[Pg 113] mobility and consciousness of plant cells aren't so dormant that they can't awaken when the circumstances allow or require it; on the flip side, the evolution of the animal kingdom has always been slowed, halted, or set back by its tendency towards a more vegetative life. No matter how vibrant or overflowing the activity of an animal species may seem, lethargy and unconsciousness are always lurking nearby. It maintains its role only through effort, at the cost of exhaustion. Along the path that animals have evolved, there have been countless shortcomings and instances of decline, often linked to parasitic behaviors; these are various diversions towards a more vegetative existence. Thus, all evidence supports the idea that plants and animals share a common ancestor that combined the tendencies of both in a primitive form.
But the two tendencies mutually implied in this rudimentary form became dissociated as they grew. Hence the world of plants with its fixity and insensibility, hence the animals with their mobility and consciousness. There is no need, in order to explain this dividing into two, to bring in any mysterious force. It is enough to point out that the living being leans naturally toward what is most convenient to it, and that vegetables and animals have chosen two different kinds of convenience in the way of procuring the carbon and nitrogen they need. Vegetables continually and mechanically draw these elements from an environment that continually provides it. Animals, by action that is discontinuous, concentrated in certain moments, and conscious, go to find these bodies in organisms that have already fixed them. They are two different ways of being industrious, or perhaps we may prefer to say, of being idle. For this very reason we doubt whether nervous elements, however rudimentary, will ever be found[Pg 114] in the plant. What corresponds in it to the directing will of the animal is, we believe, the direction in which it bends the energy of the solar radiation when it uses it to break the connection of the carbon with the oxygen in carbonic acid. What corresponds in it to the sensibility of the animal is the impressionability, quite of its kind, of its chlorophyl light. Now, a nervous system being pre-eminently a mechanism which serves as intermediary between sensations and volitions, the true "nervous system" of the plant seems to be the mechanism or rather chemicism sui generis which serves as intermediary between the impressionability of its chlorophyl to light and the producing of starch: which amounts to saying that the plant can have no nervous elements, and that the same impetus that has led the animal to give itself nerves and nerve centres must have ended, in the plant, in the chlorophyllian function.[55]
But the two tendencies that were linked in this basic form became separate as they evolved. Thus, we have plants, which are fixed and unresponsive, and animals, which are mobile and aware. To explain this division, there’s no need to invoke any mysterious force. It’s enough to recognize that living beings naturally gravitate toward what is most beneficial for them, and plants and animals have opted for two distinct types of benefits in how they obtain the carbon and nitrogen they need. Plants continuously and mechanically absorb these elements from an environment that consistently supplies them. Animals, through actions that are intermittent, focused at certain times, and intentional, seek out these substances in organisms that have already assimilated them. They represent two different ways of being productive, or perhaps we might say, of being inactive. For this reason, we are unsure whether even rudimentary nervous elements will ever be discovered[Pg 114] in plants. What corresponds in plants to the directing will of animals is, we believe, the way they harness solar energy to break the bond between carbon and oxygen in carbon dioxide. What corresponds in plants to the sensibility of animals is their unique response to light through chlorophyll. Now, since a nervous system is primarily a mechanism that facilitates the relationship between sensations and actions, the true "nervous system" of the plant appears to be the mechanism, or rather its unique chemistry, that acts as an intermediary between the plant's light sensitivity through chlorophyll and starch production. This means that plants cannot have nervous elements, and that the same drive that has led animals to develop nerves and nerve centers must have resulted, in plants, in the function of chlorophyll.[55]
This first glance over the organized world will enable us to ascertain more precisely what unites the two kingdoms, and also what separates them.
This initial look at the organized world will help us understand more clearly what connects the two realms, as well as what sets them apart.
Suppose, as we suggested in the preceding chapter, that at the root of life there is an effort to engraft on to the necessity of physical forces the largest possible amount of indetermination. This effort cannot result in the creation of energy, or, if it does, the quantity created does not belong to the order of magnitude apprehended[Pg 115] by our senses and instruments of measurement, our experience and science. All that the effort can do, then, is to make the best of a pre-existing energy which it finds at its disposal. Now, it finds only one way of succeeding in this, namely, to secure such an accumulation of potential energy from matter, that it can get, at any moment, the amount of work it needs for its action, simply by pulling a trigger. The effort itself possesses only that power of releasing. But the work of releasing, although always the same and always smaller than any given quantity, will be the more effective the heavier the weight it makes fall and the greater the height—or, in other words, the greater the sum of potential energy accumulated and disposable. As a matter of fact, the principal source of energy usable on the surface of our planet is the sun. So the problem was this: to obtain from the sun that it should partially and provisionally suspend, here and there, on the surface of the earth, its continual outpour of usable energy, and store a certain quantity of it, in the form of unused energy, in appropriate reservoirs, whence it could be drawn at the desired moment, at the desired spot, in the desired direction. The substances forming the food of animals are just such reservoirs. Made of very complex molecules holding a considerable amount of chemical energy in the potential state, they are like explosives which only need a spark to set free the energy stored within them. Now, it is probable that life tended at the beginning to compass at one and the same time both the manufacture of the explosive and the explosion by which it is utilized. In this case, the same organism that had directly stored the energy of the solar radiation would have expended it in free movements in space. And for that reason we must presume that the first living beings sought on the one hand to accumulate, without[Pg 116] ceasing, energy borrowed from the sun, and on the other hand to expend it, in a discontinuous and explosive way, in movements of locomotion. Even to-day, perhaps, a chlorophyl-bearing Infusorian such as the Euglena may symbolize this primordial tendency of life, though in a mean form, incapable of evolving. Is the divergent development of the two kingdoms related to what one may call the oblivion of each kingdom as regards one of the two halves of the programme? Or rather, which is more likely, was the very nature of the matter, that life found confronting it on our planet, opposed to the possibility of the two tendencies evolving very far together in the same organism? What is certain is that the vegetable has trended principally in the first direction and the animal in the second. But if, from the very first, in making the explosive, nature had for object the explosion, then it is the evolution of the animal, rather than that of the vegetable, that indicates, on the whole, the fundamental direction of life.
Imagine, as we mentioned in the previous chapter, that at the core of life there’s an effort to attach as much indetermination as possible to the necessity of physical forces. This effort can't create energy, or if it does, the amount created isn’t detectable by our senses and measuring instruments, experience, and science. All this effort can do is make the best of the existing energy it finds available. It can only succeed by accumulating potential energy from matter so that it can obtain, whenever needed, the amount of work necessary for its actions simply by pulling a trigger. The effort itself only has the power to release energy. However, the act of releasing, while always the same and always less than any specific quantity, becomes more effective the heavier the weight it drops and the greater the height—meaning the more potential energy it has stored and ready to use. In fact, the main source of usable energy on Earth's surface is the sun. Therefore, the challenge was to capture a part of the sun’s continuous flow of usable energy, storing a certain amount of it as unused energy in suitable reservoirs, from which it could be drawn at the right time, in the right place, and in the right direction. The substances that make up animal food are precisely those reservoirs. Composed of very complex molecules with a significant amount of chemical energy stored in a potential state, they behave like explosives that only need a spark to release their energy. It’s likely that in the beginning, life aimed to achieve both the creation of the explosive and the explosion needed to use it. In such a case, the same organism that stored the energy from solar radiation would also have used it in free movement through space. For this reason, we must assume that the first living beings tried to continuously accumulate energy borrowed from the sun while also using it in abrupt, explosive movements for locomotion. Even today, perhaps, a chlorophyll-bearing organism like the Euglena may symbolize this basic tendency of life, though in a limited form that cannot evolve. Is the different development of plant and animal kingdoms connected to what we might call the ignorance of each kingdom regarding one of the two sides of the program? Or rather, more likely, was the very nature of the matter that life encountered on our planet incompatible with both tendencies developing much further together in the same organism? What is certain is that plants have mainly focused on the first direction while animals have concentrated on the second. But if nature’s goal in creating the explosive was the explosion itself, then it’s the evolution of animals, rather than plants, that primarily shows the fundamental direction of life.
The "harmony" of the two kingdoms, the complementary characters they display, might then be due to the fact that they develop two tendencies which at first were fused in one. The more the single original tendency grows, the harder it finds it to keep united in the same living being those two elements which in the rudimentary state implied each other. Hence a parting in two, hence two divergent evolutions; hence also two series of characters opposed in certain points, complementary in others, but, whether opposed or complementary, always preserving an appearance of kinship. While the animal evolved, not without accidents along the way, toward a freer and freer expenditure of discontinuous energy, the plant perfected rather its system of accumulation without moving. We shall not dwell on this second point. Suffice it to[Pg 117] say that the plant must have been greatly benefited, in its turn, by a new division, analogous to that between plants and animals. While the primitive vegetable cell had to fix by itself both its carbon and its nitrogen, it became able almost to give up the second of these two functions as soon as microscopic vegetables came forward which leaned in this direction exclusively, and even specialized diversely in this still complicated business. The microbes that fix the nitrogen of the air and those which convert the ammoniacal compounds into nitrous ones, and these again into nitrates, have, by the same splitting up of a tendency primitively one, rendered to the whole vegetable world the same kind of service as the vegetables in general have rendered to animals. If a special kingdom were to be made for these microscopic vegetables, it might be said that in the microbes of the soil, the vegetables and the animals, we have before us the analysis, carried out by the matter that life found at its disposal on our planet, of all that life contained, at the outset, in a state of reciprocal implication. Is this, properly speaking, a "division of labor"? These words do not give the exact idea of evolution, such as we conceive it. Wherever there is division of labor, there is association and also convergence of effort. Now, the evolution we are speaking of is never achieved by means of association, but by dissociation; it never tends toward convergence, but toward divergence of efforts. The harmony between terms that are mutually complementary in certain points is not, in our opinion, produced, in course of progress, by a reciprocal adaptation; on the contrary, it is complete only at the start. It arises from an original identity, from the fact that the evolutionary process, splaying out like a sheaf, sunders, in proportion to their simultaneous growth, terms which at first completed each other so well that they coalesced.[Pg 118]
The "harmony" of the two kingdoms, the complementary traits they show, might come from the fact that they develop two tendencies that were originally combined. As the original tendency expands, it struggles to keep those two elements, which initially relied on each other, united in one being. This leads to a split and two distinct paths of development; thus, we see two sets of traits that oppose each other in some areas and complement each other in others, but whether they are opposing or complementary, they always retain a sense of connection. While the animal evolved, often facing setbacks, toward a more free and varied use of energy, the plant refined its ability to store resources without moving. We won’t go into detail on this second point. It’s enough to say that the plant must have greatly benefited from a new division, similar to the separation between plants and animals. While the primitive plant cell had to capture both its carbon and nitrogen on its own, it was able to almost eliminate the need for the latter as soon as microscopic plants emerged that specialized in this task. The microbes that capture nitrogen from the air and those that convert ammonium compounds into nitrous compounds, and then into nitrates, have, through the same splitting of the originally unified tendency, provided the entire plant world with the same essential support that plants offer animals. If a separate kingdom were to be established for these microscopic plants, we could say that in the soil microbes, plants, and animals, we have an analysis, carried out by the materials that life found available on our planet, of everything life initially contained in an interdependent state. Is this, strictly speaking, a "division of labor"? This term doesn’t accurately convey the idea of evolution as we understand it. Where there is a division of labor, there is association and also convergence of effort. However, the evolution we’re discussing is never achieved through association but rather through dissociation; it does not aim for convergence, but for divergence of efforts. The harmony between elements that complement each other in certain respects is, in our view, not formed through a mutual adaptation as progress unfolds; instead, it is fully realized only at the beginning. It originates from an initial identity and stems from the fact that the evolutionary process, fanning out like a sheaf, separates terms that initially complemented each other so perfectly that they merged.[Pg 118]
Now, the elements into which a tendency splits up are far from possessing the same importance, or, above all, the same power to evolve. We have just distinguished three different kingdoms, if one may so express it, in the organized world. While the first comprises only microorganisms which have remained in the rudimentary state, animals and vegetables have taken their flight toward very lofty fortunes. Such, indeed, is generally the case when a tendency divides. Among the divergent developments to which it gives rise, some go on indefinitely, others come more or less quickly to the end of their tether. These latter do not issue directly from the primitive tendency, but from one of the elements into which it has divided; they are residual developments made and left behind on the way by some truly elementary tendency which continues to evolve. Now, these truly elementary tendencies, we think, bear a mark by which they may be recognized.
Now, the different elements that a tendency splits into don’t all have the same significance or, more importantly, the same ability to develop. We've just identified three distinct categories, if you will, in the organized world. The first includes only microorganisms that have stayed at a basic level, while animals and plants have soared toward much greater heights. This is generally what happens when a tendency branches out. Among the various paths it creates, some continue indefinitely, while others quickly reach their limits. These latter ones don’t come directly from the original tendency but from one of the branches it has split into; they are leftover developments made and dropped along the way by some truly fundamental tendency that keeps evolving. These truly fundamental tendencies, we believe, have a characteristic that allows them to be identified.
This mark is like a trace, still visible in each, of what was in the original tendency of which they represent the elementary directions. The elements of a tendency are not like objects set beside each other in space and mutually exclusive, but rather like psychic states, each of which, although it be itself to begin with, yet partakes of others, and so virtually includes in itself the whole personality to which it belongs. There is no real manifestation of life, we said, that does not show us, in a rudimentary or latent state, the characters of other manifestations. Conversely, when we meet, on one line of evolution, a recollection, so to speak, of what is developed along other lines, we must conclude that we have before us dissociated elements of one and the same original tendency. In this sense, vegetables and animals represent the two great divergent developments of life. Though the plant is[Pg 119] distinguished from the animal by fixity and insensibility, movement and consciousness sleep in it as recollections which may waken. But, beside these normally sleeping recollections, there are others awake and active, just those, namely, whose activity does not obstruct the development of the elementary tendency itself. We may then formulate this law: When a tendency splits up in the course of its development, each of the special tendencies which thus arise tries to preserve and develop everything in the primitive tendency that is not incompatible with the work for which it is specialized. This explains precisely the fact we dwelt on in the preceding chapter, viz., the formation of identical complex mechanisms on independent lines of evolution. Certain deep-seated analogies between the animal and the vegetable have probably no other cause: sexual generation is perhaps only a luxury for the plant, but to the animal it was a necessity, and the plant must have been driven to it by the same impetus which impelled the animal thereto, a primitive, original impetus, anterior to the separation of the two kingdoms. The same may be said of the tendency of the vegetable towards a growing complexity. This tendency is essential to the animal kingdom, ever tormented by the need of more and more extended and effective action. But the vegetable, condemned to fixity and insensibility, exhibits the same tendency only because it received at the outset the same impulsion. Recent experiments show that it varies at random when the period of "mutation" arrives; whereas the animal must have evolved, we believe, in much more definite directions. But we will not dwell further on this original doubling of the modes of life. Let us come to the evolution of animals, in which we are more particularly interested.[Pg 120]
This mark is like a trace, still visible in each, of what was in the original tendency that they represent with their basic directions. The elements of a tendency aren't like objects sitting beside each other in space and being mutually exclusive; instead, they're like mental states, each of which, while being its own entity at first, also takes part in others and thus essentially includes the whole personality it belongs to. There's no true expression of life that doesn't show us, even in a basic or hidden form, the characteristics of other expressions. On the flip side, when we encounter a reminder along one evolutionary path of what has developed on other paths, we can conclude that we're seeing separated elements from the same original tendency. In this sense, plants and animals represent the two major diverging developments of life. Although the plant is[Pg 119] defined by stability and insensitivity, movement and consciousness lie dormant within it as memories waiting to be awakened. But alongside these normally dormant memories, there are others that are awake and active, specifically those whose activity does not hinder the development of the basic tendency itself. We can then establish this rule: When a tendency diverges during its development, each of the specific tendencies that arise tries to maintain and develop everything in the original tendency that isn’t incompatible with its specialized function. This precisely explains the point we highlighted in the previous chapter, namely the formation of identical complex mechanisms along separate evolutionary paths. Certain deep similarities between animals and plants probably arise from no other reason: sexual reproduction may just be a luxury for the plant, while for the animal it was a necessity, and the plant must have been compelled toward it by the same drive that spurred the animal, a primitive and original drive that predates the split between the two kingdoms. The same can be said for the plant's tendency toward increased complexity. This tendency is crucial to the animal kingdom, which constantly grapples with the need for broader and more effective action. But the plant, bound to stability and insensitivity, displays the same tendency only because it initially received the same impulse. Recent experiments indicate that it changes randomly when the period of "mutation" arrives, while we believe the animal must have evolved in much more specific directions. However, we won't linger on this original bifurcation of life modes. Let’s move on to the evolution of animals, which is our main focus.[Pg 120]
What constitutes animality, we said, is the faculty of utilizing a releasing mechanism for the conversion of as much stored-up potential energy as possible into "explosive" actions. In the beginning the explosion is haphazard, and does not choose its direction. Thus the amoeba thrusts out its pseudopodic prolongations in all directions at once. But, as we rise in the animal scale, the form of the body itself is observed to indicate a certain number of very definite directions along which the energy travels. These directions are marked by so many chains of nervous elements. Now, the nervous element has gradually emerged from the barely differentiated mass of organized tissue. It may, therefore, be surmised that in the nervous element, as soon as it appears, and also in its appendages, the faculty of suddenly freeing the gradually stored-up energy is concentrated. No doubt, every living cell expends energy without ceasing, in order to maintain its equilibrium. The vegetable cell, torpid from the start, is entirely absorbed in this work of maintenance alone, as if it took for end what must at first have been only a means. But, in the animal, all points to action, that is, to the utilization of energy for movements from place to place. True, every animal cell expends a good deal—often the whole—of the energy at its disposal in keeping itself alive; but the organism as a whole tries to attract as much energy as possible to those points where the locomotive movements are effected. So that where a nervous system exists, with its complementary sense-organs and motor apparatus, everything should happen as if the rest of the body had, as its essential function, to prepare for these and pass on to them, at the moment required, that force which they are to liberate by a sort of explosion.
What defines animality, we said, is the ability to use a releasing mechanism to convert as much stored potential energy as possible into "explosive" actions. At first, the explosion is random, without a specific direction. For example, the amoeba extends its pseudopodia in all directions at the same time. However, as we move up the animal hierarchy, the shape of the body indicates specific directions along which the energy flows. These paths are marked by chains of nervous elements. The nervous element has gradually evolved from a barely differentiated mass of organized tissue. Thus, it's likely that as soon as the nervous element appears, and in its extensions, the ability to suddenly release stored energy is focused. No doubt, every living cell is constantly using energy to maintain its balance. The plant cell, which is inactive from the start, is completely focused on this maintenance, as if it sees this as its only purpose. But in animals, everything points to action, meaning the use of energy for movement. Indeed, every animal cell uses a lot—often all—of its available energy just to stay alive; however, the organism as a whole aims to direct as much energy as possible to the areas where movement occurs. Therefore, where there is a nervous system, along with its corresponding sense organs and motor systems, it seems that the rest of the body’s main role is to prepare for these movements and to supply them, at the right moment, with the energy they are to release in a sort of explosion.
The part played by food amongst the higher animals[Pg 121] is, indeed, extremely complex. In the first place it serves to repair tissues, then it provides the animal with the heat necessary to render it as independent as possible of changes in external temperature. Thus it preserves, supports, and maintains the organism in which the nervous system is set and on which the nervous elements have to live. But these nervous elements would have no reason for existence if the organism did not pass to them, and especially to the muscles they control, a certain energy to expend; and it may even be conjectured that there, in the main, is the essential and ultimate destination of food. This does not mean that the greater part of the food is used in this work. A state may have to make enormous expenditure to secure the return of taxes, and the sum which it will have to dispose of, after deducting the cost of collection, will perhaps be very small: that sum is, none the less, the reason for the tax and for all that has been spent to obtain its return. So it is with the energy which the animal demands of its food.
The role of food in higher animals[Pg 121] is very complex. First, it helps repair tissues and provides the heat needed for animals to maintain their body temperature, making them less dependent on changes in the outside environment. This keeps the organism stable, supports it, and sustains the nervous system that relies on it. However, these nervous elements would have no purpose if the organism didn’t provide them, and especially the muscles they control, with a certain amount of energy to use; it could even be said that this is primarily the main purpose of food. This doesn’t mean that most of the food is used for this task. A state might spend a lot to collect taxes, but the amount it has left after paying for collection might be quite small; still, that amount is the reason for the tax and for all the spending to get it back. The same goes for the energy animals get from food.
Many facts seem to indicate that the nervous and muscular elements stand in this relation towards the rest of the organism. Glance first at the distribution of alimentary substances among the different elements of the living body. These substances fall into two classes, one the quaternary or albuminoid, the other the ternary, including the carbohydrates and the fats. The albuminoids are properly plastic, destined to repair the tissues—although, owing to the carbon they contain, they are capable of providing energy on occasion. But the function of supplying energy has devolved more particularly on the second class of substances: these, being deposited in the cell rather than forming part of its substance, convey to it, in the form of chemical potential, an expansive energy that may be directly converted into either[Pg 122] movement or heat. In short, the chief function of the albuminoids is to repair the machine, while the function of the other class of substances is to supply power. It is natural that the albuminoids should have no specially allotted destination, since every part of the machine has to be maintained. But not so with the other substances. The carbohydrates are distributed very unequally, and this inequality of distribution seems to us in the highest degree instructive.
Many facts suggest that the nervous and muscular systems have a specific role in relation to the rest of the body. First, let's look at how nutrients are distributed among the various parts of the living body. These nutrients can be divided into two categories: one is the quaternary or albuminous group, and the other is the ternary group, which includes carbohydrates and fats. Albuminous substances are mainly used to build and repair tissues—though they can also provide energy because of the carbon they contain. However, supplying energy is primarily the job of the second group of substances; these are stored in cells rather than being part of the cell’s structure, and they provide chemical potential energy that can be converted directly into either[Pg 122] movement or heat. In summary, the main job of albuminous substances is to maintain the body's machinery, while the other group of substances is responsible for providing energy. It makes sense that albuminous substances don’t have a specific target since every part of the body needs to be supported. In contrast, carbohydrates are distributed very unevenly, and this uneven distribution is particularly enlightening.
Conveyed by the arterial blood in the form of glucose, these substances are deposited, in the form of glycogen, in the different cells forming the tissues. We know that one of the principal functions of the liver is to maintain at a constant level the quantity of glucose held by the blood, by means of the reserves of glycogen secreted by the hepatic cells. Now, in this circulation of glucose and accumulation of glycogen, it is easy to see that the effect is as if the whole effort of the organism were directed towards providing with potential energy the elements of both the muscular and the nervous tissues. The organism proceeds differently in the two cases, but it arrives at the same result. In the first case, it provides the muscle-cell with a large reserve deposited in advance: the quantity of glycogen contained in the muscles is, indeed, enormous in comparison with what is found in the other tissues. In the nervous tissue, on the contrary, the reserve is small (the nervous elements, whose function is merely to liberate the potential energy stored in the muscle, never have to furnish much work at one time); but the remarkable thing is that this reserve is restored by the blood at the very moment that it is expended, so that the nerve is instantly recharged with potential energy. Muscular tissue and nervous tissue are, therefore, both privileged, the one in that it is stocked with a large reserve of energy,[Pg 123] the other in that it is always served at the instant it is in need and to the exact extent of its requirements.
Carried by the bloodstream as glucose, these substances are stored as glycogen in various cells that make up the tissues. One of the liver's main jobs is to keep the blood's glucose level steady, using glycogen reserves produced by liver cells. In this cycle of glucose and glycogen storage, it’s clear that the entire system focuses on supplying potential energy to both muscle and nerve tissues. The body operates differently in each case, but achieves the same outcome. For muscles, it provides a large pre-deposited reserve: the amount of glycogen in muscles is significantly greater compared to other tissues. In contrast, nervous tissue has a smaller reserve (the nerve cells, which mainly release the potential energy stored in muscles, don’t usually need to do much work at one time); however, what's impressive is that this reserve is replenished by the blood the moment it's used, allowing the nerve to be instantly recharged with potential energy. Thus, both muscle and nerve tissues are prioritized, one because it has a large energy reserve,[Pg 123] and the other because it is always supplied exactly when needed and in the right amount.
More particularly, it is from the sensori-motor system that the call for glycogen, the potential energy, comes, as if the rest of the organism were simply there in order to transmit force to the nervous system and to the muscles which the nerves control. True, when we think of the part played by the nervous system (even the sensori-motor system) as regulator of the organic life, it may well be asked whether, in this exchange of good offices between it and the rest of the body, the nervous system is indeed a master that the body serves. But we shall already incline to this hypothesis when we consider, even in the static state only, the distribution of potential energy among the tissues; and we shall be entirely convinced of it when we reflect upon the conditions in which the energy is expended and restored. For suppose the sensori-motor system is a system like the others, of the same rank as the others. Borne by the whole of the organism, it will wait until an excess of chemical potential is supplied to it before it performs any work. In other words, it is the production of glycogen which will regulate the consumption by the nerves and muscles. On the contrary, if the sensori-motor system is the actual master, the duration and extent of its action will be independent, to a certain extent at least, of the reserve of glycogen that it holds, and even of that contained in the whole of the organism. It will perform work, and the other tissues will have to arrange as they can to supply it with potential energy. Now, this is precisely what does take place, as is shown in particular by the experiments of Morat and Dufourt.[56] While the glycogenic function of the liver depends on the action of the excitory nerves which control it, the[Pg 124] action of these nerves is subordinated to the action of those which stimulate the locomotor muscles—in this sense, that the muscles begin by expending without calculation, thus consuming glycogen, impoverishing the blood of its glucose, and finally causing the liver, which has had to pour into the impoverished blood some of its reserve of glycogen, to manufacture a fresh supply. From the sensori-motor system, then, everything starts; on that system everything converges; and we may say, without metaphor, that the rest of the organism is at its service.
More specifically, the call for glycogen, which is potential energy, comes from the sensory-motor system, almost as if the rest of the body exists solely to transmit force to the nervous system and the muscles controlled by those nerves. It's true that when we consider the nervous system's role (including the sensory-motor system) as a regulator of organic life, we might question whether the nervous system is truly the master that the body serves. However, we will lean toward this idea when we think about how potential energy is distributed among the tissues, and we will be fully convinced when we examine the conditions under which energy is used and restored. For instance, if we consider the sensory-motor system as being on par with other systems, supported by the entire organism, it would wait for a surplus of chemical potential to perform any work. In other words, the production of glycogen would dictate the energy consumption of nerves and muscles. Conversely, if the sensory-motor system is indeed the master, the duration and extent of its actions would be somewhat independent of the glycogen reserves it has, and even those present in the entire body. It would do its work, and the other tissues would need to figure out how to provide it with potential energy. This is exactly what happens, as shown particularly by the experiments of Morat and Dufourt.[56] While the liver's glycogenic function relies on the excitatory nerves that control it, the action of these nerves is subordinate to those that stimulate locomotor muscles—in the sense that the muscles initially expend energy without restraint, which consumes glycogen, depleting the blood of glucose, and ultimately forcing the liver, which must release some of its glycogen reserves into the depleted blood, to create a new supply. Thus, everything begins with the sensory-motor system; everything converges on that system; and we can say, without exaggeration, that the rest of the organism is at its service.
Consider again what happens in a prolonged fast. It is a remarkable fact that in animals that have died of hunger the brain is found to be almost unimpaired, while the other organs have lost more or less of their weight and their cells have undergone profound changes.[57] It seems as though the rest of the body had sustained the nervous system to the last extremity, treating itself simply as the means of which the nervous system is the end.
Consider again what happens during a long fast. It's quite remarkable that in animals that have died from starvation, the brain is nearly unaffected, while the other organs have lost varying amounts of weight and their cells have undergone significant changes.[57] It feels like the rest of the body supported the nervous system to the very end, considering itself just as a means to serve the nervous system.
To sum up: if we agree, in short, to understand by "the sensori-motor system" the cerebro-spinal nervous system together with the sensorial apparatus in which it is prolonged and the locomotor muscles it controls, we may say that a higher organism is essentially a sensori-motor system installed on systems of digestion, respiration, circulation, secretion, etc., whose function it is to repair, cleanse and protect it, to create an unvarying internal environment for it, and above all to pass it potential[Pg 125] energy to convert into locomotive movement.[58] It is true that the more the nervous function is perfected, the more must the functions required to maintain it develop, and the more exacting, consequently, they become for themselves. As the nervous activity has emerged from the protoplasmic mass in which it was almost drowned, it has had to summon around itself activities of all kinds for its support. These could only be developed on other activities, which again implied others, and so on indefinitely. Thus it is that the complexity of functioning of the higher organisms goes on to infinity. The study of one of these organisms therefore takes us round in a circle, as if everything was a means to everything else. But the circle has a centre, none the less, and that is the system of nervous elements stretching between the sensory organs and the motor apparatus.
To sum up: if we agree to define "the sensori-motor system" as the cerebro-spinal nervous system along with the sensory apparatus connected to it and the locomotor muscles it governs, we can say that a higher organism is essentially a sensori-motor system built on digestive, respiratory, circulatory, secretory systems, etc., whose job is to repair, clean, and protect it, create a stable internal environment, and, most importantly, provide it with potential energy to convert into movement.[Pg 125] It's true that as the nervous function becomes more advanced, the functions needed to maintain it also develop, which in turn makes them more demanding. As nervous activity has evolved from the protoplasmic mass where it was nearly submerged, it has had to gather various activities for its support. These could only develop from other activities, which led to more, and so on indefinitely. Therefore, the complexity of functioning in higher organisms continues infinitely. Studying one of these organisms takes us in circles, as if everything is a means to something else. But there is a center to this circle, and that's the system of nervous elements connecting the sensory organs and the motor apparatus.
We will not dwell here on a point we have treated at length in a former work. Let us merely recall that the progress of the nervous system has been effected both in the direction of a more precise adaptation of movements and in that of a greater latitude left to the living being to choose between them. These two tendencies may appear antagonistic, and indeed they are so; but a nervous chain, even in its most rudimentary form, successfully reconciles them. On the one hand, it marks a well-de[Pg 126]fined track between one point of the periphery and another, the one sensory, the other motor. It has therefore canalized an activity which was originally diffused in the protoplasmic mass. But, on the other hand, the elements that compose it are probably discontinuous; at any rate, even supposing they anastomose, they exhibit a functional discontinuity, for each of them ends in a kind of cross-road where probably the nervous current may choose its course. From the humblest Monera to the best endowed insects, and up to the most intelligent vertebrates, the progress realized has been above all a progress of the nervous system, coupled at every stage with all the new constructions and complications of mechanism that this progress required. As we foreshadowed in the beginning of this work, the rôle of life is to insert some indetermination into matter. Indeterminate, i.e. unforeseeable, are the forms it creates in the course of its evolution. More and more indeterminate also, more and more free, is the activity to which these forms serve as the vehicle. A nervous system, with neurones placed end to end in such wise that, at the extremity of each, manifold ways open in which manifold questions present themselves, is a veritable reservoir of indetermination. That the main energy of the vital impulse has been spent in creating apparatus of this kind is, we believe, what a glance over the organized world as a whole easily shows. But concerning the vital impulse itself a few explanations are necessary.
We won't spend too much time on a point we've covered extensively in a previous work. Let’s just remember that the development of the nervous system has led to both a more precise adaptation of movements and a greater freedom for living beings to choose between them. These two trends might seem to contradict each other, and in fact, they do; however, even the simplest nervous chain manages to balance them. On one side, it defines a clear path between one point on the periphery and another, one sensory and the other motor. It has therefore streamlined an activity that was originally spread out in the protoplasmic mass. On the other hand, the components of this chain are likely discontinuous; even if they connect, they show a functional discontinuity since each ends at a sort of crossroad where the nervous current can choose its direction. From the simplest Monera to the most advanced insects and up to the smartest vertebrates, the progress achieved has primarily been in the nervous system, combined at every stage with the new structures and complexities that this progress necessitated. As we hinted at the start of this work, the role of life is to introduce some indeterminacy into matter. The forms it creates during its evolution are indeterminate, meaning unpredictable. The activities these forms facilitate are also becoming increasingly indeterminate and free. A nervous system, with neurons lined up in such a way that at the end of each one multiple paths open up, posing numerous questions, is a true reservoir of indeterminacy. We believe that a quick look at the organized world as a whole clearly shows that most of the vital impulse's energy has been used to create such apparatuses. However, a few clarifications regarding the vital impulse itself are necessary.
It must not be forgotten that the force which is evolving throughout the organized world is a limited force, which is always seeking to transcend itself and always remains inadequate to the work it would fain produce. The errors and puerilities of radical finalism are due to the misapprehension of this point. It has represented[Pg 127] the whole of the living world as a construction, and a construction analogous to a human work. All the pieces have been arranged with a view to the best possible functioning of the machine. Each species has its reason for existence, its part to play, its allotted place; and all join together, as it were, in a musical concert, wherein the seeming discords are really meant to bring out a fundamental harmony. In short, all goes on in nature as in the works of human genius, where, though the result may be trifling, there is at least perfect adequacy between the object made and the work of making it.
It should not be overlooked that the force evolving throughout the organized world is a limited one, always trying to surpass itself but consistently falling short of the work it wishes to create. The mistakes and childishness of radical finalism stem from misunderstanding this point. It has portrayed[Pg 127] the entire living world as a construction, similar to a human creation. Every element has been arranged to ensure the best possible functioning of this system. Each species has its reason for existing, its role to fulfill, and its designated spot; all come together, in a way, like a musical performance, where the apparent discord is actually meant to highlight a fundamental harmony. In short, everything in nature operates like the works of human genius, where, even if the outcome may be trivial, there is at least a perfect match between the created object and the process of creating it.
Nothing of the kind in the evolution of life. There, the disproportion is striking between the work and the result. From the bottom to the top of the organized world we do indeed find one great effort; but most often this effort turns short, sometimes paralyzed by contrary forces, sometimes diverted from what it should do by what it does, absorbed by the form it is engaged in taking, hypnotized by it as by a mirror. Even in its most perfect works, though it seems to have triumphed over external resistances and also over its own, it is at the mercy of the materiality which it has had to assume. It is what each of us may experience in himself. Our freedom, in the very movements by which it is affirmed, creates the growing habits that will stifle it if it fails to renew itself by a constant effort: it is dogged by automatism. The most living thought becomes frigid in the formula that expresses it. The word turns against the idea.
Nothing like that in the evolution of life. The imbalance between effort and outcome is striking. From the bottom to the top of the organized world, we see one major effort, but often this effort falls short; sometimes it's hindered by opposing forces, and other times it's distracted from its purpose by what it’s doing, consumed by the form it’s trying to take, entranced by it like a reflection in a mirror. Even in its most accomplished endeavors, although it seems to have triumphed over external challenges and its own limitations, it remains vulnerable to the materiality it has had to adopt. This is something we can all experience within ourselves. Our freedom, in the very actions that affirm it, creates habits that will suffocate it if we don’t constantly renew it through effort: it is plagued by automatic behavior. The most vibrant thought can become lifeless in the formula used to express it. The word can turn against the idea.
The letter kills the spirit. And our most ardent enthusiasm, as soon as it is externalized into action, is so naturally congealed into the cold calculation of interest or vanity, the one takes so easily the shape of the other, that we might confuse them together, doubt our own sincerity,[Pg 128] deny goodness and love, if we did not know that the dead retain for a time the features of the living.
The letter kills the spirit. And our strongest enthusiasm, once it turns into action, quickly gets frozen into the cold calculations of self-interest or vanity; one easily morphs into the other, making us question our own sincerity,[Pg 128] deny goodness and love, if we didn't realize that the dead still hold onto some of the traits of the living for a while.
The profound cause of this discordance lies in an irremediable difference of rhythm. Life in general is mobility itself; particular manifestations of life accept this mobility reluctantly, and constantly lag behind. It is always going ahead; they want to mark time. Evolution in general would fain go on in a straight line; each special evolution is a kind of circle. Like eddies of dust raised by the wind as it passes, the living turn upon themselves, borne up by the great blast of life. They are therefore relatively stable, and counterfeit immobility so well that we treat each of them as a thing rather than as a progress, forgetting that the very permanence of their form is only the outline of a movement. At times, however, in a fleeting vision, the invisible breath that bears them is materialized before our eyes. We have this sudden illumination before certain forms of maternal love, so striking, and in most animals so touching, observable even in the solicitude of the plant for its seed. This love, in which some have seen the great mystery of life, may possibly deliver us life's secret. It shows us each generation leaning over the generation that shall follow. It allows us a glimpse of the fact that the living being is above all a thoroughfare, and that the essence of life is in the movement by which life is transmitted.
The deep reason for this disagreement comes from an irreversible difference in pace. Life, in general, is all about movement; specific expressions of life accept this movement reluctantly and constantly fall behind. Life always pushes forward; they prefer to stay in place. Evolution wants to progress in a straight line, while each specific evolution tends to go in circles. Like dust particles stirred up by the wind, living things turn inward, propelled by the powerful force of life. They are therefore relatively stable, and they imitate stillness so effectively that we see each of them as a thing instead of as a progress, forgetting that their seemingly permanent form is just a snapshot of movement. Sometimes, though, in a brief moment of clarity, the unseen force that carries them becomes visible before our eyes. We often experience this sudden insight when witnessing certain forms of maternal love, which can be so striking, and in many animals, so heartwarming, even observable in how plants care for their seeds. This love, which some interpret as the great mystery of life, might just reveal the secret of existence to us. It shows us each generation leaning toward the next. It gives us a glimpse into the idea that a living being is primarily a pathway, and that the essence of life lies in the movement through which life is passed on.
This contrast between life in general, and the forms in which it is manifested, has everywhere the same character. It might be said that life tends toward the utmost possible action, but that each species prefers to contribute the slightest possible effort. Regarded in what constitutes its true essence, namely, as a transition from species to species, life is a continually growing action. But each of the species, through which life passes, aims[Pg 129] only at its own convenience. It goes for that which demands the least labor. Absorbed in the form it is about to take, it falls into a partial sleep, in which it ignores almost all the rest of life; it fashions itself so as to take the greatest possible advantage of its immediate environment with the least possible trouble. Accordingly, the act by which life goes forward to the creation of a new form, and the act by which this form is shaped, are two different and often antagonistic movements. The first is continuous with the second, but cannot continue in it without being drawn aside from its direction, as would happen to a man leaping, if, in order to clear the obstacle, he had to turn his eyes from it and look at himself all the while.
This contrast between life in general and the ways it shows up is consistent everywhere. You could say that life strives for the greatest possible action, but each species prefers to contribute the least effort. When viewed in its true essence, which is as a transition from one species to another, life is an ever-growing action. However, each species that life moves through focuses only on its own convenience. It goes after what requires the least work. Immersed in the form it’s about to take, it falls into a kind of partial sleep, where it overlooks nearly all other aspects of life; it shapes itself to get the most out of its immediate surroundings with the least effort. As a result, the act through which life progresses to create a new form and the act of shaping that form are two different and often opposing movements. The first is continuous with the second, but it can’t proceed in it without being pulled off course, just like a person leaping would be if, to clear an obstacle, they had to look away from it and keep their eyes on themselves.
Living forms are, by their very definition, forms that are able to live. In whatever way the adaptation of the organism to its circumstances is explained, it has necessarily been sufficient, since the species has subsisted. In this sense, each of the successive species that paleontology and zoology describes was a success carried off by life. But we get a very different impression when we refer each species to the movement that has left it behind on its way, instead of to the conditions into which it has been set. Often this movement has turned aside; very often, too, it has stopped short; what was to have been a thoroughfare has become a terminus. From this new point of view, failure seems the rule, success exceptional and always imperfect. We shall see that, of the four main directions along which animal life bent its course, two have led to blind alleys, and, in the other two, the effort has generally been out of proportion to the result.
Living beings are, by definition, forms that can live. No matter how we explain how an organism adapts to its surroundings, it has been effective enough for the species to survive. In this sense, each of the successive species described by paleontology and zoology was a success achieved by life. However, we get a very different impression when we consider each species in relation to the evolutionary path that has left it behind, rather than the conditions it was placed in. Often, this path has veered off course; many times, it has even come to a standstill; what was meant to be a pathway has turned into a dead-end. From this perspective, failure seems to be the norm, with success being exceptional and always incomplete. We will see that of the four main directions animal life has taken, two have led to dead ends, and in the other two, the effort has typically been disproportionate to the outcomes.
Documents are lacking to reconstruct this history in detail, but we can make out its main lines. We have already said that animals and vegetables must have[Pg 130] separated soon from their common stock, the vegetable falling asleep in immobility, the animal, on the contrary, becoming more and more awake and marching on to the conquest of a nervous system. Probably the effort of the animal kingdom resulted in creating organisms still very simple, but endowed with a certain freedom of action, and, above all, with a shape so undecided that it could lend itself to any future determination. These animals may have resembled some of our worms, but with this difference, however, that the worms living to-day, to which they could be compared, are but the empty and fixed examples of infinitely plastic forms, pregnant with an unlimited future, the common stock of the echinoderms, molluscs, arthropods, and vertebrates.
Documents are missing to piece together this history in detail, but we can outline its main points. We have already mentioned that animals and plants must have[Pg 130] separated early from their common ancestor, with plants becoming dormant and immobile, while animals, on the other hand, grew increasingly active and began developing a nervous system. Likely, the efforts of the animal kingdom led to the creation of organisms that were still quite simple but had some freedom of movement and, importantly, an uncertain shape that could evolve in different directions. These animals might have looked like some of our worms, but with the key difference that today’s worms, to which they could be compared, are merely static examples of forms that were once highly adaptable, full of potential for the future, the common ancestor of echinoderms, mollusks, arthropods, and vertebrates.
One danger lay in wait for them, one obstacle which might have stopped the soaring course of animal life. There is one peculiarity with which we cannot help being struck when glancing over the fauna of primitive times, namely, the imprisonment of the animal in a more or less solid sheath, which must have obstructed and often even paralyzed its movements. The molluscs of that time had a shell more universally than those of to-day. The arthropods in general were provided with a carapace; most of them were crustaceans. The more ancient fishes had a bony sheath of extreme hardness.[59] The explanation of this general fact should be sought, we believe, in a tendency of soft organisms to defend themselves against one another by making themselves, as far as possible, undevourable. Each species, in the act by which it comes into being, trends towards that which is most expedient. Just as among primitive organisms there were some that turned towards animal life by re[Pg 131]fusing to manufacture organic out of inorganic material and taking organic substances ready made from organisms that had turned toward the vegetative life, so, among the animal species themselves, many contrived to live at the expense of other animals. For an organism that is animal, that is to say mobile, can avail itself of its mobility to go in search of defenseless animals, and feed on them quite as well as on vegetables. So, the more species became mobile, the more they became voracious and dangerous to one another. Hence a sudden arrest of the entire animal world in its progress towards higher and higher mobility; for the hard and calcareous skin of the echinoderm, the shell of the mollusc, the carapace of the crustacean and the ganoid breast-plate of the ancient fishes probably all originated in a common effort of the animal species to protect themselves against hostile species. But this breast-plate, behind which the animal took shelter, constrained it in its movements and sometimes fixed it in one place. If the vegetable renounced consciousness in wrapping itself in a cellulose membrane, the animal that shut itself up in a citadel or in armor condemned itself to a partial slumber. In this torpor the echinoderms and even the molluscs live to-day. Probably arthropods and vertebrates were threatened with it too. They escaped, however, and to this fortunate circumstance is due the expansion of the highest forms of life.
One danger was lurking for them, one hurdle that could have halted the rapid evolution of animal life. One striking feature when looking back at the animals of early times is their confinement in a more or less solid shell, which must have hindered and often even stopped their movement. The mollusks of that era had shells more commonly than those today. The arthropods generally were equipped with a hard outer layer; most were crustaceans. The older fish had a protective bony covering of extreme hardness.[59] We believe the explanation for this widespread phenomenon lies in soft organisms developing defenses against each other by becoming as inedible as possible. Each species, as it comes into existence, tends toward what is most beneficial. Just as among primitive organisms some evolved toward animal life by choosing not to create organic matter from inorganic materials, instead consuming organic substances that were produced by organisms leaning toward plant life, many animal species developed ways to thrive at the expense of other animals. A mobile organism can use its ability to move to seek out defenseless animals and feed on them just as easily as on plants. Therefore, as more species became mobile, they also became more voracious and threatening to one another. This led to a sudden halt in the entire animal kingdom's progression toward greater mobility; the hard, calcified skin of echinoderms, the shells of mollusks, the carapaces of crustaceans, and the bony plates of ancient fish likely all arose from a shared effort among animal species to defend against predation. But this protective layer, which allowed animals to hide, restricted their movement and sometimes trapped them in place. While plants renounced consciousness by surrounding themselves with a cellulose membrane, animals that encased themselves in armor or a shell condemned themselves to a state of partial dormancy. Today, echinoderms and even mollusks exist in this torpor. Arthropods and vertebrates likely faced similar threats but managed to escape, and it is this fortunate circumstance that allowed the highest forms of life to flourish.
In two directions, in fact, we see the impulse of life to movement getting the upper hand again. The fishes exchanged their ganoid breast-plate for scales. Long before that, the insects had appeared, also disencumbered of the breast-plate that had protected their ancestors. Both supplemented the insufficiency of their protective covering by an agility that enabled them to escape their enemies, and also to assume the offensive, to choose the[Pg 132] place and the moment of encounter. We see a progress of the same kind in the evolution of human armaments. The first impulse is to seek shelter; the second, which is the better, is to become as supple as possible for flight and above all for attack—attack being the most effective means of defense. So the heavy hoplite was supplanted by the legionary; the knight, clad in armor, had to give place to the light free-moving infantryman; and in a general way, in the evolution of life, just as in the evolution of human societies and of individual destinies, the greatest successes have been for those who have accepted the heaviest risks.
In two ways, we can see how life’s drive for movement takes charge again. Fish traded their ganoid armor for scales. Long before that, insects emerged, shedding the armor that protected their ancestors. Both of these groups compensated for their inadequate protection with agility, allowing them to escape predators and also go on the offensive, choosing the right place and moment for interaction. We observe similar progress in the development of human armor. The first instinct is to find shelter; the second, which is better, is to become as flexible as possible for fleeing and especially for attacking—since attack is the most effective form of defense. Thus, the heavy hoplite was replaced by the legionary; the armored knight made way for the light, agile infantryman; and in general, throughout the evolution of life, just like in human societies and individual paths, the greatest achievements have come to those who have taken the biggest risks.
Evidently, then, it was to the animal's interest to make itself more mobile. As we said when speaking of adaptation in general, any transformation of a species can be explained by its own particular interest. This will give the immediate cause of the variation, but often only the most superficial cause. The profound cause is the impulse which thrust life into the world, which made it divide into vegetables and animals, which shunted the animal on to suppleness of form, and which, at a certain moment, in the animal kingdom threatened with torpor, secured that, on some points at least, it should rouse itself up and move forward.
Clearly, it was in the animal's best interest to become more mobile. As we mentioned when discussing adaptation in general, any change in a species can be understood through its specific needs. This will provide the immediate reason for the change, but often it's only the most obvious one. The deeper reason is the drive that brought life into existence, causing it to split into plants and animals, pushing animals toward flexibility in form, and at a certain point, when the animal kingdom faced stagnation, ensuring that, in some respects at least, it would awaken and move forward.
On the two paths along which the vertebrates and arthropods have separately evolved, development (apart from retrogressions connected with parasitism or any other cause) has consisted above all in the progress of the sensori-motor nervous system. Mobility and suppleness were sought for, and also—through many experimental attempts, and not without a tendency to excess of substance and brute force at the start—variety of movements. But this quest itself took place in divergent directions. A glance at the nervous system of the arthro[Pg 133]pods and that of the vertebrates shows us the difference. In the arthropods, the body is formed of a series more or less long of rings set together; motor activity is thus distributed amongst a varying—sometimes a considerable—number of appendages, each of which has its special function. In the vertebrates, activity is concentrated in two pairs of members only, and these organs perform functions which depend much less strictly on their form.[60] The independence becomes complete in man, whose hand is capable of any kind of work.
On the two paths where vertebrates and arthropods have evolved separately, development (aside from setbacks related to parasitism or other factors) has mainly focused on advancing the sensori-motor nervous system. There was a drive for mobility and flexibility, and also—through many experimental efforts, sometimes leaning toward excess in size and brute strength at the beginning—a variety of movements. However, this pursuit went in different directions. A look at the nervous systems of arthropods and vertebrates highlights the differences. In arthropods, the body is made up of a series of rings connected together; thus, motor activity is spread across a varying—sometimes large—number of appendages, each with its specific function. In vertebrates, activity is focused on just two pairs of limbs, and these organs carry out functions that are much less strictly tied to their shape. The independence is complete in humans, whose hands can perform any kind of work.
That, at least, is what we see. But behind what is seen there is what may be surmised—two powers, immanent in life and originally intermingled, which were bound to part company in course of growth.
That, at least, is what we see. But behind what is visible, there is what can be inferred—two forces, inherent in life and originally intertwined, which were destined to separate as they developed.
To define these powers, we must consider, in the evolution both of the arthropods and the vertebrates, the species which mark the culminating point of each. How is this point to be determined? Here again, to aim at geometrical precision will lead us astray. There is no single simple sign by which we can recognize that one species is more advanced than another on the same line of evolution. There are manifold characters, that must be compared and weighed in each particular case, in order to ascertain to what extent they are essential or accidental and how far they must be taken into account.
To define these abilities, we need to look at the evolution of both arthropods and vertebrates, focusing on the species that represent the peak of each group. How do we determine this peak? Once again, trying for exact precision will mislead us. There isn’t one clear sign that tells us one species is more advanced than another along the same evolutionary path. There are many traits that need to be compared and evaluated for each specific case to figure out how essential or incidental they are and how much they should be considered.
It is unquestionable, for example, that success is the most general criterion of superiority, the two terms being, up to a certain point, synonymous. By success must be understood, so far as the living being is concerned, an aptitude to develop in the most diverse environments, through the greatest possible variety of obstacles, so as to cover the widest possible extent of ground. A species[Pg 134] which claims the entire earth for its domain is truly a dominating and consequently superior species. Such is the human species, which represents the culminating point of the evolution of the vertebrates. But such also are, in the series of the articulate, the insects and in particular certain hymenoptera. It has been said of the ants that, as man is lord of the soil, they are lords of the sub-soil.
It’s clear, for instance, that success is the most universal measure of superiority, with the two concepts being, to some extent, interchangeable. When we refer to success in relation to living beings, we mean the ability to thrive in a wide range of environments, overcoming various challenges, in order to cover the broadest possible territory. A species[Pg 134] that claims the entire planet as its territory is indeed a dominant and therefore superior species. This is true for humans, who represent the peak of vertebrate evolution. However, this also applies to insects, particularly certain types of hymenoptera, within the order of the segmented animals. It has been said that just as humans are the masters of the surface, ants are the rulers of the underground.
On the other hand, a group of species that has appeared late may be a group of degenerates; but, for that, some special cause of retrogression must have intervened. By right, this group should be superior to the group from which it is derived, since it would correspond to a more advanced stage of evolution. Now man is probably the latest comer of the vertebrates;[61] and in the insect series no species is later than the hymenoptera, unless it be the lepidoptera, which are probably degenerates, living parasitically on flowering plants.
On the other hand, a group of species that appeared later might be considered a group of degenerates; however, there must have been some special cause for their decline. Ideally, this group should be superior to the one it evolved from, as it would represent a more advanced stage of evolution. Now, humans are likely the most recent addition among vertebrates;[61] and in the insect world, no species is newer than the hymenoptera, unless it’s the lepidoptera, which are probably degenerates that live parasitically on flowering plants.
So, by different ways, we are led to the same conclusion. The evolution of the arthropods reaches its culminating point in the insect, and in particular in the hymenoptera, as that of the vertebrates in man. Now, since instinct is nowhere so developed as in the insect world, and in no group of insects so marvelously as in the hymenoptera, it may be said that the whole evolution of the animal kingdom, apart from retrogressions towards vegetative life, has taken place on two divergent paths, one of which led to instinct and the other to intelligence.[Pg 135]
So, in various ways, we arrive at the same conclusion. The evolution of arthropods peaks with insects, especially the hymenoptera, just as the evolution of vertebrates culminates in humans. Since instinct is nowhere more advanced than in the insect world, and particularly in the hymenoptera, we can say that the entire evolution of the animal kingdom, aside from any regressions toward a vegetative state, has unfolded along two diverging paths—one leading to instinct and the other to intelligence.[Pg 135]
Vegetative torpor, instinct, and intelligence—these, then, are the elements that coincided in the vital impulsion common to plants and animals, and which, in the course of a development in which they were made manifest in the most unforeseen forms, have been dissociated by the very fact of their growth. The cardinal error which, from Aristotle onwards, has vitiated most of the philosophies of nature, is to see in vegetative, instinctive and rational life, three successive degrees of the development of one and the same tendency, whereas they are three divergent directions of an activity that has split up as it grew. The difference between them is not a difference of intensity, nor, more generally, of degree, but of kind.
Vegetative dormancy, instinct, and intelligence—these are the elements that came together in the vital drive shared by plants and animals, and as they developed in surprising ways, they became separated due to their growth. The main mistake that has tainted most philosophies of nature since Aristotle is viewing vegetative, instinctive, and rational life as three successive stages of the same tendency, when they are actually three distinct directions of an activity that has branched out as it evolved. The difference between them is not a matter of intensity, or more generally, of degree, but of type.
It is important to investigate this point. We have seen in the case of vegetable and animal life how they are at once mutually complementary and mutually antagonistic. Now we must show that intelligence and instinct also are opposite and complementary. But let us first explain why we are generally led to regard them as activities of which one is superior to the other and based upon it, whereas in reality they are not things of the same order: they have not succeeded one another, nor can we assign to them different grades.
It’s important to look into this issue. We’ve seen with plants and animals how they can be both supportive and conflicting with each other. Now we need to demonstrate that intelligence and instinct are also opposing yet complementary. But first, let’s explain why we often view them as activities where one is better than the other, when in fact they aren’t comparable: they haven’t replaced each other, nor can we categorize them into different levels.
It is because intelligence and instinct, having originally been interpenetrating, retain something of their common origin. Neither is ever found in a pure state. We said that in the plant the consciousness and mobility of the animal, which lie dormant, can be awakened; and that the animal lives under the constant menace of being drawn aside to the vegetative life. The two tendencies—that of the plant and that of the animal—were so thoroughly interpenetrating, to begin with, that there has never been a complete severance between them: they[Pg 136] haunt each other continually; everywhere we find them mingled; it is the proportion that differs. So with intelligence and instinct. There is no intelligence in which some traces of instinct are not to be discovered, more especially no instinct that is not surrounded with a fringe of intelligence. It is this fringe of intelligence that has been the cause of so many misunderstandings. From the fact that instinct is always more or less intelligent, it has been concluded that instinct and intelligence are things of the same kind, that there is only a difference of complexity or perfection between them, and, above all, that one of the two is expressible in terms of the other. In reality, they accompany each other only because they are complementary, and they are complementary only because they are different, what is instinctive in instinct being opposite to what is intelligent in intelligence.
Intelligence and instinct originally intertwined, so they still share some common roots. Neither exists in a pure form. We mentioned that a plant can sometimes awaken the dormant consciousness and movement of an animal, and that animals constantly risk being pulled back into a vegetative existence. The two drives—those of the plant and the animal—were so deeply interconnected from the start that there has never been a full separation between them; they[Pg 136] always influence each other and are found mixed together everywhere; it’s just the balance that varies. The same goes for intelligence and instinct. There’s no intelligence without some traces of instinct, and no instinct that isn’t accompanied by an element of intelligence. This element of intelligence has led to many misunderstandings. Because instinct is always somewhat intelligent, it has been assumed that instinct and intelligence are fundamentally the same, differing only in complexity or refinement, and that one can be fully explained in terms of the other. In reality, they coexist because they complement each other, and they are complementary only because they are distinct—what is instinctive in instinct stands in contrast to what is intelligent in intelligence.
We are bound to dwell on this point. It is one of the utmost importance.
We need to focus on this point. It’s extremely important.
Let us say at the outset that the distinctions we are going to make will be too sharply drawn, just because we wish to define in instinct what is instinctive, and in intelligence what is intelligent, whereas all concrete instinct is mingled with intelligence, as all real intelligence is penetrated by instinct. Moreover, neither intelligence nor instinct lends itself to rigid definition: they are tendencies, and not things. Also, it must not be forgotten that in the present chapter we are considering intelligence and instinct as going out of life which deposits them along its course. Now the life manifested by an organism is, in our view, a certain effort to obtain certain things from the material world. No wonder, therefore, if it is the diversity of this effort that strikes us in instinct and intelligence, and if we see in these two modes of psychical activity, above all else, two different methods of action on inert matter.[Pg 137] This rather narrow view of them has the advantage of giving us an objective means of distinguishing them. In return, however, it gives us, of intelligence in general and of instinct in general, only the mean position above and below which both constantly oscillate. For that reason the reader must expect to see in what follows only a diagrammatic drawing, in which the respective outlines of intelligence and instinct are sharper than they should be, and in which the shading-off which comes from the indecision of each and from their reciprocal encroachment on one another is neglected. In a matter so obscure, we cannot strive too hard for clearness. It will always be easy afterwards to soften the outlines and to correct what is too geometrical in the drawing—in short, to replace the rigidity of a diagram by the suppleness of life.
Let's start by saying that the distinctions we're going to make will be overly clear-cut because we want to define what is instinctive in instinct and what is intelligent in intelligence. However, all genuine instinct is mixed with intelligence, just as all true intelligence is infused with instinct. Additionally, neither intelligence nor instinct can be rigidly defined; they are tendencies, not fixed entities. We should also remember that in this chapter, we are looking at intelligence and instinct as they arise from life, which leaves them in its wake. The life expressed by an organism is, in our view, a specific effort to acquire certain things from the material world. It’s no surprise, therefore, that it’s the variety of this effort that stands out in instinct and intelligence, and that we recognize these two forms of mental activity primarily as two distinct ways of acting upon inert matter.[Pg 137] This somewhat limited perspective on them helps us find an objective way to differentiate between the two. However, it gives us only a general view of intelligence and instinct, showing the average position from which both continually fluctuate. For this reason, the reader should expect to see a somewhat simplified representation in the following sections, where the outlines of intelligence and instinct are clearer than they should be, and where the blending that occurs from each one's ambiguity and their overlap is ignored. In such a complex area, we can’t push too hard for absolute clarity. It will always be easy later on to soften the outlines and adjust any overly geometric aspects in the representation—in other words, to replace the rigidity of a diagram with the flexibility of life.
To what date is it agreed to ascribe the appearance of man on the earth? To the period when the first weapons, the first tools, were made. The memorable quarrel over the discovery of Boucher de Perthes in the quarry of Moulin-Quignon is not forgotten. The question was whether real hatchets had been found or merely bits of flint accidentally broken. But that, supposing they were hatchets, we were indeed in the presence of intelligence, and more particularly of human intelligence, no one doubted for an instant. Now let us open a collection of anecdotes on the intelligence of animals: we shall see that besides many acts explicable by imitation or by the automatic association of images, there are some that we do not hesitate to call intelligent: foremost among them are those that bear witness to some idea of manufacture, whether the animal life succeeds in fashioning a crude instrument or uses for its profit an object made by man. The animals that rank immediately after man in[Pg 138] the matter of intelligence, the apes and elephants, are those that can use an artificial instrument occasionally. Below, but not very far from them, come those that recognize a constructed object: for example, the fox, which knows quite well that a trap is a trap. No doubt, there is intelligence wherever there is inference; but inference, which consists in an inflection of past experience in the direction of present experience, is already a beginning of invention. Invention becomes complete when it is materialized in a manufactured instrument. Towards that achievement the intelligence of animals tends as towards an ideal. And though, ordinarily, it does not yet succeed in fashioning artificial objects and in making use of them, it is preparing for this by the very variations which it performs on the instincts furnished by nature. As regards human intelligence, it has not been sufficiently noted that mechanical invention has been from the first its essential feature, that even to-day our social life gravitates around the manufacture and use of artificial instruments, that the inventions which strew the road of progress have also traced its direction. This we hardly realize, because it takes us longer to change ourselves than to change our tools. Our individual and even social habits survive a good while the circumstances for which they were made, so that the ultimate effects of an invention are not observed until its novelty is already out of sight. A century has elapsed since the invention of the steam-engine, and we are only just beginning to feel the depths of the shock it gave us. But the revolution it has effected in industry has nevertheless upset human relations altogether. New ideas are arising, new feelings are on the way to flower. In thousands of years, when, seen from the distance, only the broad lines of the present age will still be visible, our wars and our revolutions will count for[Pg 139] little, even supposing they are remembered at all; but the steam-engine, and the procession of inventions of every kind that accompanied it, will perhaps be spoken of as we speak of the bronze or of the chipped stone of prehistoric times: it will serve to define an age.[62] If we could rid ourselves of all pride, if, to define our species, we kept strictly to what the historic and the prehistoric periods show us to be the constant characteristic of man and of intelligence, we should say not Homo sapiens, but Homo faber. In short, intelligence, considered in what seems to be its original feature, is the faculty of manufacturing artificial objects, especially tools to make tools, and of indefinitely varying the manufacture.
To what date is it agreed to attribute the appearance of humans on Earth? To the time when the first weapons and tools were created. We can’t forget the memorable debate over the discovery by Boucher de Perthes in the Moulin-Quignon quarry. The question was whether real axes had been found or just broken pieces of flint. But no one doubted for a second that, assuming they were axes, we were indeed looking at intelligence, specifically human intelligence. Now, let's look at a collection of stories about animal intelligence: we’ll see that besides many actions explained by imitation or automatic associations, there are some we readily label as intelligent. Leading the way are actions that indicate some idea of creation, whether the animal successfully makes a basic tool or utilizes an object made by humans. The animals closest to humans in terms of intelligence, such as apes and elephants, are those that can occasionally use a man-made tool. Just below them are those that recognize a constructed item, like the fox, which understands that a trap is a trap. It's true that intelligence is found wherever there is inference; however, inference, which is an application of past experiences to current situations, is already the beginning of innovation. Innovation becomes complete when it is actualized in a created tool. Animal intelligence aims toward this goal as an ideal. Even though animals usually don’t yet succeed in making artificial objects and utilizing them, they are preparing for this by the variations they make on the instincts provided by nature. As for human intelligence, it hasn't been sufficiently acknowledged that mechanical invention has always been a defining feature. Even today, our social life revolves around the creation and use of artificial tools, and the inventions that pave the way for progress have also shaped its direction. We often fail to realize this because it takes us longer to adapt than it does to change our tools. Our individual and even social habits outlast the circumstances they were created for, so we don’t notice the ultimate effects of an invention until its novelty has faded. A century has passed since the steam engine was invented, and we are only just beginning to grasp the depth of the impact it had. However, the transformation it brought to industry has completely altered human relationships. New ideas are emerging, and new feelings are beginning to develop. In thousands of years, when viewed from a distance, only the broad strokes of this era will be apparent; our wars and revolutions will likely mean very little, even if they are remembered at all. But the steam engine, along with the wave of inventions that came with it, may be spoken of the way we discuss bronze or flint from prehistoric times: it will help define an era. If we could strip away all pride and strictly adhere to what history and prehistory show as the constant trait of humanity and intelligence, we wouldn’t say Homo sapiens, but rather Homo faber. In short, intelligence, in its likely original form, is the ability to create artificial objects, particularly tools to make tools, and to continually vary the creation.
Now, does an unintelligent animal also possess tools or machines? Yes, certainly, but here the instrument forms a part of the body that uses it; and, corresponding to this instrument, there is an instinct that knows how to use it. True, it cannot be maintained that all instincts consist in a natural ability to use an inborn mechanism. Such a definition would not apply to the instincts which Romanes called "secondary"; and more than one "primary" instinct would not come under it. But this definition, like that which we have provisionally given of intelligence, determines at least the ideal limit toward which the very numerous forms of instinct are traveling. Indeed, it has often been pointed out that most instincts are only the continuance, or rather the consummation, of the work of organization itself. Where does the activity of instinct begin? and where does that of nature end? We cannot tell. In the metamorphoses of the larva into the nymph and into the perfect insect, metamorphoses that[Pg 140] often require appropriate action and a kind of initiative on the part of the larva, there is no sharp line of demarcation between the instinct of the animal and the organizing work of living matter. We may say, as we will, either that instinct organizes the instruments it is about to use, or that the process of organization is continued in the instinct that has to use the organ. The most marvelous instincts of the insect do nothing but develop its special structure into movements: indeed, where social life divides the labor among different individuals, and thus allots them different instincts, a corresponding difference of structure is observed: the polymorphism of ants, bees, wasps and certain pseudoneuroptera is well known. Thus, if we consider only those typical cases in which the complete triumph of intelligence and of instinct is seen, we find this essential difference between them: instinct perfected is a faculty of using and even of constructing organized instruments; intelligence perfected is the faculty of making and using unorganized instruments.
Now, do unintelligent animals also use tools or machines? Yes, definitely, but in this case, the tool is part of the body that uses it, and there is an instinct that knows how to operate it. It's true that we can’t say that all instincts are simply a natural skill in using an innate mechanism. This definition wouldn’t fit the instincts that Romanes referred to as "secondary," and more than one "primary" instinct wouldn’t fit it either. However, this definition, like the one we've temporarily given for intelligence, at least sets an ideal limit toward which the many forms of instinct are evolving. In fact, it has often been noted that most instincts are just the continuation, or rather the culmination, of the organizing process itself. Where does instinctive activity begin, and where does nature’s role end? We can’t say. In the transformations of the larva into the nymph and into the mature insect, transformations that[Pg 140] often require appropriate actions and a kind of initiative from the larva, there isn't a clear boundary between the animal's instinct and the organizing efforts of living matter. We could say, as we might, either that instinct organizes the tools it is about to use or that the process of organization continues in the instinct that needs to use the organ. The most remarkable instincts of insects only develop their special structures into movements: in fact, when social life divides labor among various individuals, assigning them different instincts, a corresponding difference in structure can be observed: the polymorphism of ants, bees, wasps, and certain pseudoneuroptera is well known. Therefore, if we only consider typical cases where the complete success of intelligence and instinct is evident, we find this essential difference between them: perfected instinct is the ability to use and even build organized tools; perfected intelligence is the ability to create and use unorganized tools.
The advantages and drawbacks of these two modes of activity are obvious. Instinct finds the appropriate instrument at hand: this instrument, which makes and repairs itself, which presents, like all the works of nature, an infinite complexity of detail combined with a marvelous simplicity of function, does at once, when required, what it is called upon to do, without difficulty and with a perfection that is often wonderful. In return, it retains an almost invariable structure, since a modification of it involves a modification of the species. Instinct is therefore necessarily specialized, being nothing but the utilization of a specific instrument for a specific object. The instrument constructed intelligently, on the contrary, is an imperfect instrument. It costs an effort. It is generally troublesome to handle. But, as it is made of[Pg 141] unorganized matter, it can take any form whatsoever, serve any purpose, free the living being from every new difficulty that arises and bestow on it an unlimited number of powers. Whilst it is inferior to the natural instrument for the satisfaction of immediate wants, its advantage over it is the greater, the less urgent the need. Above all, it reacts on the nature of the being that constructs it; for in calling on him to exercise a new function, it confers on him, so to speak, a richer organization, being an artificial organ by which the natural organism is extended. For every need that it satisfies, it creates a new need; and so, instead of closing, like instinct, the round of action within which the animal tends to move automatically, it lays open to activity an unlimited field into which it is driven further and further, and made more and more free. But this advantage of intelligence over instinct only appears at a late stage, when intelligence, having raised construction to a higher degree, proceeds to construct constructive machinery. At the outset, the advantages and drawbacks of the artificial instrument and of the natural instrument balance so well that it is hard to foretell which of the two will secure to the living being the greater empire over nature.
The pros and cons of these two ways of functioning are clear. Instinct finds the right tool right away: this tool, which can create and fix itself, has an incredible complexity in detail combined with a beautiful simplicity in purpose. It does exactly what it needs to do effortlessly and perfectly when called upon. In exchange, it keeps a nearly unchanging structure because any change would also change the species. Therefore, instinct is specialized, as it's simply using a specific tool for a specific purpose. In contrast, the tool made through intelligence is imperfect. It requires effort to create and is usually difficult to use. However, since it is made from unorganized materials, it can take any shape, serve any function, help living beings overcome new challenges, and give them an unlimited range of abilities. While it may be less effective than the natural tool for immediate needs, its benefits are greater when the need is not urgent. Most importantly, it affects the nature of the being that creates it; by requiring the creator to take on a new role, it effectively enhances their capabilities, serving as an artificial organ that expands the natural organism. For every problem it solves, it creates a new one; thus, instead of confining action like instinct does, it opens up an endless field for activity, pushing forward and granting more freedom. However, this advantage of intelligence over instinct only becomes clear later when intelligence has elevated construction to a more advanced level and begins to build complex machinery. Initially, the strengths and weaknesses of both artificial and natural tools balance out so well that it's hard to predict which one will give living beings a greater control over nature.
We may surmise that they began by being implied in each other, that the original psychical activity included both at once, and that, if we went far enough back into the past, we should find instincts more nearly approaching intelligence than those of our insects, intelligence nearer to instinct than that of our vertebrates, intelligence and instinct being, in this elementary condition, prisoners of a matter which they are not yet able to control. If the force immanent in life were an unlimited force, it might perhaps have developed instinct and intelligence together, and to any extent, in the same organisms. But everything seems[Pg 142] to indicate that this force is limited, and that it soon exhausts itself in its very manifestation. It is hard for it to go far in several directions at once: it must choose. Now, it has the choice between two modes of acting on the material world: it can either effect this action directly by creating an organized instrument to work with; or else it can effect it indirectly through an organism which, instead of possessing the required instrument naturally, will itself construct it by fashioning inorganic matter. Hence intelligence and instinct, which diverge more and more as they develop, but which never entirely separate from each other. On the one hand, the most perfect instinct of the insect is accompanied by gleams of intelligence, if only in the choice of place, time and materials of construction: the bees, for example, when by exception they build in the open air, invent new and really intelligent arrangements to adapt themselves to such new conditions.[63] But, on the other hand, intelligence has even more need of instinct than instinct has of intelligence; for the power to give shape to crude matter involves already a superior degree of organization, a degree to which the animal could not have risen, save on the wings of instinct. So, while nature has frankly evolved in the direction of instinct in the arthropods, we observe in almost all the vertebrates the striving after rather than the expansion of intelligence. It is instinct still which forms the basis of their psychical activity; but intelligence is there, and would fain supersede it. Intelligence does not yet succeed in inventing instruments; but at least it tries to, by performing as many variations as possible on the instinct which it would like to dispense with. It gains complete self-possession only in man, and this triumph[Pg 143] is attested by the very insufficiency of the natural means at man's disposal for defense against his enemies, against cold and hunger. This insufficiency, when we strive to fathom its significance, acquires the value of a prehistoric document; it is the final leave-taking between intelligence and instinct. But it is no less true that nature must have hesitated between two modes of psychical activity—one assured of immediate success, but limited in its effects; the other hazardous, but whose conquests, if it should reach independence, might be extended indefinitely. Here again, then, the greatest success was achieved on the side of the greatest risk. Instinct and intelligence therefore represent two divergent solutions, equally fitting, of one and the same problem.
We can assume that they started out intertwined, with the original mental activity involving both simultaneously. If we go far enough back, we might find instincts that are closer to intelligence than those found in insects, and intelligence that is closer to instinct than that observed in vertebrates. In this basic state, both intelligence and instinct are trapped by a matter they can't yet control. If the force inherent in life were limitless, it might have developed both instinct and intelligence at the same time and to any degree within the same organisms. However, everything indicates that this force is limited, and it quickly runs out in its very expression. It struggles to advance in several directions at once; it must make a choice. Now, it has two ways to interact with the physical world: it can act directly by creating an organized tool to work with, or it can act indirectly through an organism that doesn’t naturally have the needed tool but constructs it from inorganic matter. Therefore, intelligence and instinct diverge further as they develop but never completely separate. On one hand, the most refined instinct of an insect is accompanied by flashes of intelligence, even in the choice of place, time, and materials for building: bees, for instance, when they occasionally build outdoors, come up with new and genuinely intelligent designs to adapt to these new conditions.[63] On the other hand, intelligence relies even more on instinct than instinct does on intelligence, as shaping raw matter already requires a higher level of organization, which the animal could only achieve through instinct. While nature has clearly evolved toward instinct in arthropods, we see almost all vertebrates striving towards rather than expanding their intelligence. Instinct remains the foundation of their mental activity, but intelligence is present and eager to replace it. Intelligence hasn't yet succeeded in inventing tools; instead, it attempts various modifications of the instinct it wishes to eliminate. True self-control is only achieved in humans, and this success is highlighted by the limitations of natural means available to humans for defense against threats, cold, and hunger. These inadequacies, when we try to understand their significance, serve as a historical document; they signify the final parting between intelligence and instinct. Nonetheless, it is also true that nature must have wavered between two ways of mental activity—one guaranteed immediate success but limited in its impact, the other uncertain yet potentially limitless if it achieves independence. Once again, the greatest accomplishments were made at the greatest risk. Instinct and intelligence thus represent two different solutions, both suitable, to the same problem.
There ensue, it is true, profound differences of internal structure between instinct and intelligence. We shall dwell only on those that concern our present study. Let us say, then, that instinct and intelligence imply two radically different kinds of knowledge. But some explanations are first of all necessary on the subject of consciousness in general.
There are indeed significant differences in the internal structure between instinct and intelligence. We will focus only on the aspects relevant to our current study. So, let’s say that instinct and intelligence involve two fundamentally different types of knowledge. However, we first need to clarify some points about consciousness in general.
It has been asked how far instinct is conscious. Our reply is that there are a vast number of differences and degrees, that instinct is more or less conscious in certain cases, unconscious in others. The plant, as we shall see, has instincts; it is not likely that these are accompanied by feeling. Even in the animal there is hardly any complex instinct that is not unconscious in some part at least of its exercise. But here we must point out a difference, not often noticed, between two kinds of unconsciousness, viz., that in which consciousness is absent, and that in which consciousness is nullified. Both are equal to zero, but in one case the zero expresses the fact that there is nothing, in the other that we have two equal quantities of opposite[Pg 144] sign which compensate and neutralize each other. The unconsciousness of a falling stone is of the former kind: the stone has no feeling of its fall. Is it the same with the unconsciousness of instinct, in the extreme cases in which instinct is unconscious? When we mechanically perform an habitual action, when the somnambulist automatically acts his dream, unconsciousness may be absolute; but this is merely due to the fact that the representation of the act is held in check by the performance of the act itself, which resembles the idea so perfectly, and fits it so exactly, that consciousness is unable to find room between them. Representation is stopped up by action. The proof of this is, that if the accomplishment of the act is arrested or thwarted by an obstacle, consciousness may reappear. It was there, but neutralized by the action which fulfilled and thereby filled the representation. The obstacle creates nothing positive; it simply makes a void, removes a stopper. This inadequacy of act to representation is precisely what we here call consciousness.
It's been asked how much of instinct is conscious. Our answer is that there are many differences and degrees; instinct can be partially conscious in some cases and completely unconscious in others. Plants, as we'll discuss, have instincts, but it's unlikely these come with feelings. Even in animals, there’s barely any complex instinct that isn’t at least partly unconscious during its execution. Here, we need to highlight a difference that often goes unnoticed between two types of unconsciousness: one where consciousness is absent, and one where consciousness is nullified. Both are essentially zero, but in one case, the zero indicates that there’s nothing, while in the other, it means we have two equal but opposite[Pg 144] forces that balance each other out. The unconsciousness of a falling stone is of the first type: the stone doesn’t feel its fall. Is it the same with instinct in those extreme cases where it’s unconscious? When we automatically perform a habitual action or when a sleepwalker acts out their dream, unconsciousness can be complete; but this simply happens because the idea of the action is suppressed by the action itself, which perfectly resembles and fits the idea, leaving no space for consciousness in between. Representation is blocked by action. The proof of this is that if the action is interrupted by an obstacle, consciousness can re-emerge. It was there, but neutralized by the action that completed and filled the representation. The obstacle doesn’t create anything new; it simply makes a void and removes a blockage. This inability of action to match representation is exactly what we refer to as consciousness.
If we examine this point more closely, we shall find that consciousness is the light that plays around the zone of possible actions or potential activity which surrounds the action really performed by the living being. It signifies hesitation or choice. Where many equally possible actions are indicated without there being any real action (as in a deliberation that has not come to an end), consciousness is intense. Where the action performed is the only action possible (as in activity of the somnambulistic or more generally automatic kind), consciousness is reduced to nothing. Representation and knowledge exist none the less in the case if we find a whole series of systematized movements the last of which is already pre-figured in the first, and if, besides, consciousness can flash out of them at the shock of an obstacle. From this point[Pg 145] of view, the consciousness of a living being may be defined as an arithmetical difference between potential and real activity. It measures the interval between representation and action.
If we take a closer look at this point, we’ll see that consciousness is the light that shines around the area of possible actions or potential activities surrounding the actual action taken by a living being. It represents hesitation or choice. When many equally possible actions are present without any real action happening (like in a deliberation that hasn’t been resolved), consciousness is heightened. When the action taken is the only one possible (like in the case of sleepwalking or other automatic behaviors), consciousness diminishes to nothing. Representation and knowledge still exist, especially if there is a series of organized movements where the last one is already anticipated in the first, and if consciousness can emerge from them when faced with an obstacle. From this perspective[Pg 145], the consciousness of a living being can be defined as an arithmetical difference between potential and real activity. It measures the gap between representation and action.
It may be inferred from this that intelligence is likely to point towards consciousness, and instinct towards unconsciousness. For, where the implement to be used is organized by nature, the material furnished by nature, and the result to be obtained willed by nature, there is little left to choice; the consciousness inherent in the representation is therefore counterbalanced, whenever it tends to disengage itself, by the performance of the act, identical with the representation, which forms its counterweight. Where consciousness appears, it does not so much light up the instinct itself as the thwartings to which instinct is subject; it is the deficit of instinct, the distance, between the act and the idea, that becomes consciousness so that consciousness, here, is only an accident. Essentially, consciousness only emphasizes the starting-point of instinct, the point at which the whole series of automatic movements is released. Deficit, on the contrary, is the normal state of intelligence. Laboring under difficulties is its very essence. Its original function being to construct unorganized instruments, it must, in spite of numberless difficulties, choose for this work the place and the time, the form and the matter. And it can never satisfy itself entirely, because every new satisfaction creates new needs. In short, while instinct and intelligence both involve knowledge, this knowledge is rather acted and unconscious in the case of instinct, thought and conscious in the case of intelligence. But it is a difference rather of degree than of kind. So long as consciousness is all we are concerned with, we close our eyes to what is, from the psychological point of view, the cardinal difference between instinct and intelligence.[Pg 146]
It can be concluded that intelligence tends to lead to consciousness, while instinct is more related to unconsciousness. When the tool being used is created by nature, the materials provided by nature, and the outcome intended by nature, there isn’t much room for choice; any consciousness within the representation is counterbalanced whenever it tries to separate itself by the execution of the act, which aligns with the representation and serves as its counterweight. When consciousness comes into play, it doesn’t really illuminate the instinct itself but rather the obstacles that instinct faces; it is the deficit of instinct, the gap between the act and the idea, that becomes consciousness, making consciousness just an occurrence. Essentially, consciousness only highlights the starting point of instinct, the moment when the entire series of automatic movements begins. In contrast, deficit is the normal condition of intelligence. Struggling through challenges is its very essence. Its primary role is to create unstructured tools, so it must, despite countless difficulties, decide the place and time, the form and materials for this task. It can never fully satisfy itself because every new satisfaction leads to new needs. In summary, while both instinct and intelligence involve knowledge, this knowledge is more acted and unconscious in the case of instinct, and thought and conscious in the case of intelligence. However, this is more a difference of degree than of nature. As long as we focus solely on consciousness, we ignore what is, from a psychological standpoint, the fundamental difference between instinct and intelligence.[Pg 146]
In order to get at this essential difference we must, without stopping at the more or less brilliant light which illumines these two modes of internal activity, go straight to the two objects, profoundly different from each other, upon which instinct and intelligence are directed.
To understand this key difference, we need to go directly to the two objects, which are fundamentally different from each other, without getting distracted by the varying brightness that highlights these two types of internal activity.
When the horse-fly lays its eggs on the legs or shoulders of the horse, it acts as if it knew that its larva has to develop in the horse's stomach and that the horse, in licking itself, will convey the larva into its digestive tract. When a paralyzing wasp stings its victim on just those points where the nervous centres lie, so as to render it motionless without killing it, it acts like a learned entomologist and a skilful surgeon rolled into one. But what shall we say of the little beetle, the Sitaris, whose story is so often quoted? This insect lays its eggs at the entrance of the underground passages dug by a kind of bee, the Anthophora. Its larva, after long waiting, springs upon the male Anthophora as it goes out of the passage, clings to it, and remains attached until the "nuptial flight," when it seizes the opportunity to pass from the male to the female, and quietly waits until it lays its eggs. It then leaps on the egg, which serves as a support for it in the honey, devours the egg in a few days, and, resting on the shell, undergoes its first metamorphosis. Organized now to float on the honey, it consumes this provision of nourishment, and becomes a nymph, then a perfect insect. Everything happens as if the larva of the Sitaris, from the moment it was hatched, knew that the male Anthophora would first emerge from the passage; that the nuptial flight would give it the means of conveying itself to the female, who would take it to a store of honey sufficient to feed it after its transformation; that, until this transformation, it could gradually eat the egg of the Anthophora, in such a way that it could at the same time feed itself, maintain itself at the surface[Pg 147] of the honey, and also suppress the rival that otherwise would have come out of the egg. And equally all this happens as if the Sitaris itself knew that its larva would know all these things. The knowledge, if knowledge there be, is only implicit. It is reflected outwardly in exact movements instead of being reflected inwardly in consciousness. It is none the less true that the behavior of the insect involves, or rather evolves, the idea of definite things existing or being produced in definite points of space and time, which the insect knows without having learned them.
When the horse-fly lays its eggs on the legs or shoulders of a horse, it seems to know that its larvae need to develop in the horse's stomach, and that the horse will transfer the larvae into its digestive system by licking itself. When a paralyzing wasp stings its prey precisely at the spots where the nerve centers are located, causing it to become motionless without killing it, it operates like a knowledgeable entomologist and a skilled surgeon combined. But what can we say about the little beetle, the Sitaris, often referenced? This insect lays its eggs at the entrance of underground tunnels dug by a type of bee called the Anthophora. Its larva, after waiting for a long time, leaps onto the male Anthophora as it exits the tunnel, clings to it, and stays attached until the "nuptial flight," when it takes the chance to move from the male to the female and patiently waits until she lays her eggs. It then jumps on the egg, which serves as a base for it in the honey, consumes the egg within a few days, and, resting on the shell, goes through its first transformation. Now organized to float on the honey, it eats this food supply and becomes a nymph, then a fully developed insect. Everything happens as if the Sitaris larva, from the moment it hatches, knows that the male Anthophora will be the first to emerge from the tunnel; that the nuptial flight will provide it the means to reach the female, who will lead it to a honey store sufficient to sustain it after its transformation; that, until this transformation occurs, it can gradually consume the Anthophora egg in a way that allows it to feed itself, stay at the surface[Pg 147] of the honey, and also eliminate the rival that would have emerged from the egg. And all of this seems to happen as if the Sitaris itself knew that its larva would understand all these things. The knowledge, if there is knowledge, is only implicit. It is shown outwardly through precise movements instead of being reflected inwardly in awareness. Nevertheless, the behavior of the insect implies, or rather develops, the idea that certain things exist or occur in specific places and times, which the insect seems to know without having learned them.
Now, if we look at intelligence from the same point of view, we find that it also knows certain things without having learned them. But the knowledge in the two cases is of a very different order. We must be careful here not to revive again the old philosophical dispute on the subject of innate ideas. So we will confine ourselves to the point on which every one is agreed, to wit, that the young child understands immediately things that the animal will never understand, and that in this sense intelligence, like instinct, is an inherited function, therefore an innate one. But this innate intelligence, although it is a faculty of knowing, knows no object in particular. When the new-born babe seeks for the first time its mother's breast, so showing that it has knowledge (unconscious, no doubt) of a thing it has never seen, we say, just because the innate knowledge is in this case of a definite object, that it belongs to instinct and not to intelligence. Intelligence does not then imply the innate knowledge of any object. And yet, if intelligence knows nothing by nature, it has nothing innate. What, then, if it be ignorant of all things, can it know? Besides things, there are relations. The new-born child, so far as intelligent, knows neither definite objects nor a definite property of any object;[Pg 148] but when, a little later on, he will hear an epithet being applied to a substantive, he will immediately understand what it means. The relation of attribute to subject is therefore seized by him naturally, and the same might be said of the general relation expressed by the verb, a relation so immediately conceived by the mind that language can leave it to be understood, as is instanced in rudimentary languages which have no verb. Intelligence, therefore, naturally makes use of relations of like with like, of content to container, of cause to effect, etc., which are implied in every phrase in which there is a subject, an attribute and a verb, expressed or understood. May one say that it has innate knowledge of each of these relations in particular? It is for logicians to discover whether they are so many irreducible relations, or whether they can be resolved into relations still more general. But, in whatever way we make the analysis of thought, we always end with one or several general categories, of which the mind possesses innate knowledge since it makes a natural use of them. Let us say, therefore, that whatever, in instinct and intelligence, is innate knowledge, bears in the first case on things and in the second on relations.
Now, if we view intelligence from the same perspective, we notice that it also knows certain things without having learned them. However, the knowledge in both cases is quite different. We need to be careful not to reignite the old philosophical debate about innate ideas. So, let's stick to the point everyone agrees on: that a young child understands things immediately that an animal will never grasp, and in this sense, intelligence, like instinct, is an inherited function, thus innate. But this innate intelligence, while it's a capacity for knowing, doesn't know any specific object. When a newborn baby searches for its mother's breast for the first time, demonstrating that it has an unconscious knowledge of something it has never seen, we say that because this innate knowledge is in this case related to a specific object, it falls under instinct rather than intelligence. Therefore, intelligence doesn't imply an innate knowledge of any specific object. Yet, if intelligence knows nothing by nature, it has nothing innate. What, then, if it’s unaware of everything, can it know? Besides things, there are relations. The newborn child, as far as intelligence goes, doesn't know specific objects or a particular property of any object;[Pg 148] but when, a bit later, it hears an adjective applied to a noun, it will immediately understand what it means. The relationship of attribute to subject is naturally grasped by the child, and the same could be said about the general relation expressed by the verb—a relation that the mind conceives so quickly that language can allow it to be understood, as seen in simple languages that lack a verb. Intelligence, therefore, naturally utilizes relationships such as like with like, content to container, cause to effect, etc., which are implied in every sentence containing a subject, an attribute, and a verb, whether expressed or understood. Can we say it has innate knowledge of each of these relations specifically? It is up to logicians to determine whether these are irreducible relations or if they can be broken down into even more general relations. But no matter how we analyze thought, we always end up with one or more general categories, of which the mind possesses innate knowledge since it uses them naturally. So let's conclude that whatever is innate knowledge, in instinct and intelligence, relates in the first case to things and in the second to relations.
Philosophers distinguish between the matter of our knowledge and its form. The matter is what is given by the perceptive faculties taken in the elementary state. The form is the totality of the relations set up between these materials in order to constitute a systematic knowledge. Can the form, without matter, be an object of knowledge? Yes, without doubt, provided that this knowledge is not like a thing we possess so much as like a habit we have contracted,—a direction rather than a state: it is, if we will, a certain natural bent of attention. The schoolboy, who knows that the master is going to dictate a fraction to him, draws a line before he knows[Pg 149] what numerator and what denominator are to come; he therefore has present to his mind the general relation between the two terms although he does not know either of them; he knows the form without the matter. So is it, prior to experience, with the categories into which our experience comes to be inserted. Let us adopt then words sanctioned by usage, and give the distinction between intelligence and instinct this more precise formula: Intelligence, in so far as it is innate, is the knowledge of a form; instinct implies the knowledge of a matter.
Philosophers differentiate between the content of our knowledge and its structure. The content refers to what is provided by our sensory perception in its basic state. The structure represents the complete set of relationships established between these elements to create organized knowledge. Can the structure, without content, be an object of knowledge? Yes, definitely, as long as this knowledge is more like a habit we've developed rather than something we own—it's more of a direction than a status: it is, if you will, a certain natural inclination of focus. The schoolboy, knowing that the teacher is about to tell him a fraction, draws a line before he understands what the numerator and denominator are; he thus has in his mind the general relationship between the two components even though he doesn't know what either is; he understands the structure without the content. Similarly, prior to experience, it's the same with the categories into which our experiences are organized. Let's then use familiar terminology and clarify the difference between intelligence and instinct with this more precise definition: Intelligence, as far as it is innate, is the understanding of a form; instinct involves the understanding of a matter.
From this second point of view, which is that of knowledge instead of action, the force immanent in life in general appears to us again as a limited principle, in which originally two different and even divergent modes of knowing coexisted and intermingled. The first gets at definite objects immediately, in their materiality itself. It says, "This is what is." The second gets at no object in particular; it is only a natural power of relating an object to an object, or a part to a part, or an aspect to an aspect—in short, of drawing conclusions when in possession of the premisses, of proceeding from what has been learnt to what is still unknown. It does not say, "This is;" it says only that "if the conditions are such, such will be the conditioned." In short, the first kind of knowledge, the instinctive, would be formulated in what philosophers call categorical propositions, while the second kind, the intellectual, would always be expressed hypothetically. Of these two faculties, the former seems, at first, much preferable to the other. And it would be so, in truth, if it extended to an endless number of objects. But, in fact, it applies only to one special object, and indeed only to a restricted part of that object. Of this, at least, its knowledge is intimate and full; not explicit, but implied in the accomplished action. The intellectual faculty, on the[Pg 150] contrary, possesses naturally only an external and empty knowledge; but it has thereby the advantage of supplying a frame in which an infinity of objects may find room in turn. It is as if the force evolving in living forms, being a limited force, had had to choose between two kinds of limitation in the field of natural or innate knowledge, one applying to the extension of knowledge, the other to its intension. In the first case, the knowledge may be packed and full, but it will then be confined to one specific object; in the second, it is no longer limited by its object, but that is because it contains nothing, being only a form without matter. The two tendencies, at first implied in each other, had to separate in order to grow. They both went to seek their fortune in the world, and turned out to be instinct and intelligence.
From this second perspective, which focuses on knowledge rather than action, the inherent force of life appears to us as a limited principle where two different, and even opposing, ways of knowing coexist and blend. The first one addresses specific objects directly, in their material reality, saying, "This is what is." The second doesn't focus on any particular object; it’s just a natural ability to relate one object to another, or a part to a part, or an aspect to an aspect—in short, it draws conclusions based on given premises, moving from what is known to what is still unknown. It doesn’t say, "This is;" it only states that "if the conditions are such, the result will be as stated." In summary, the first type of knowledge, the instinctive one, can be represented by what philosophers call categorical propositions, whereas the second type, the intellectual one, is always expressed hypothetically. At first glance, the former seems more desirable than the latter. And it would be true if it applied to an endless number of objects. However, it actually applies only to a specific object, and even then, just a limited aspect of that object. This knowledge is thorough and deep; not explicit, but implied through the action achieved. On the[Pg 150] other hand, the intellectual faculty only has an external and superficial understanding; but it benefits from providing a framework in which countless objects can fit. It’s as if the force evolving in living forms, being a limited force, had to choose between two types of limitations in the realm of natural or innate knowledge—one affecting the breadth of knowledge and the other its depth. In the first case, knowledge may be rich and comprehensive, but it will be restricted to a particular object; in the second, it’s no longer confined by its object, but that’s because it contains nothing, being merely a form without substance. The two tendencies, initially intertwined, had to separate to grow. They both ventured into the world, ultimately emerging as instinct and intelligence.
Such, then, are the two divergent modes of knowledge by which intelligence and instinct must be defined, from the standpoint of knowledge rather than that of action. But knowledge and action are here only two aspects of one and the same faculty. It is easy to see, indeed, that the second definition is only a new form of the first.
Such are the two different ways of understanding that intelligence and instinct need to be defined, focusing on knowledge rather than action. However, knowledge and action are really just two sides of the same ability. It’s clear that the second definition is just a rephrased version of the first.
If instinct is, above all, the faculty of using an organized natural instrument, it must involve innate knowledge (potential or unconscious, it is true), both of this instrument and of the object to which it is applied. Instinct is therefore innate knowledge of a thing. But intelligence is the faculty of constructing unorganized—that is to say artificial—instruments. If, on its account, nature gives up endowing the living being with the instruments that may serve him, it is in order that the living being may be able to vary his construction according to circumstances. The essential function of intelligence is therefore to see the way out of a difficulty in any circumstances whatever, to find what is most suitable, what answers best the question[Pg 151] asked. Hence it bears essentially on the relations between a given situation and the means of utilizing it. What is innate in intellect, therefore, is the tendency to establish relations, and this tendency implies the natural knowledge of certain very general relations, a kind of stuff that the activity of each particular intellect will cut up into more special relations. Where activity is directed toward manufacture, therefore, knowledge necessarily bears on relations. But this entirely formal knowledge of intelligence has an immense advantage over the material knowledge of instinct. A form, just because it is empty, may be filled at will with any number of things in turn, even with those that are of no use. So that a formal knowledge is not limited to what is practically useful, although it is in view of practical utility that it has made its appearance in the world. An intelligent being bears within himself the means to transcend his own nature.
If instinct is primarily the ability to use an organized natural tool, it must include some inherent knowledge (potential or unconscious, it's true) about both this tool and the object it’s applied to. Instinct is, then, an innate understanding of a thing. In contrast, intelligence is the ability to create unorganized—that is, artificial—tools. Nature might refrain from equipping living beings with the instruments they might need so that they can adjust their creations based on the situation. The main role of intelligence is to find a solution to any problem in any circumstance and determine what is most appropriate, what best addresses the question[Pg 151] at hand. Thus, it fundamentally relates to how a given situation connects to the means of handling it. What is innate in intellect is the inclination to create connections, which implies an inherent knowledge of certain very general relations—a kind of foundation that the efforts of each specific intellect will break down into more specialized relationships. Therefore, when activity is focused on creation, knowledge necessarily centers on relationships. But this entirely formal understanding of intelligence has a huge advantage over the material knowledge of instinct. A form, simply because it is empty, can be filled with a variety of things in turn, even with things that are useless. So, formal knowledge is not confined to what is practically useful, although it emerges with practical utility in mind. An intelligent being possesses the means to rise above their own nature.
He transcends himself, however, less than he wishes, less also than he imagines himself to do. The purely formal character of intelligence deprives it of the ballast necessary to enable it to settle itself on the objects that are of the most powerful interest to speculation. Instinct, on the contrary, has the desired materiality, but it is incapable of going so far in quest of its object; it does not speculate. Here we reach the point that most concerns our present inquiry. The difference that we shall now proceed to denote between instinct and intelligence is what the whole of this analysis was meant to bring out. We formulate it thus: There are things that intelligence alone is able to seek, but which, by itself, it will never find. These things instinct alone could find; but it will never seek them.
He surpasses himself, but not as much as he wishes, and less than he thinks he does. The purely formal nature of intelligence prevents it from grounding itself in the objects that are most compelling for speculation. Instinct, on the other hand, has the desired substance, but it can’t go very far in pursuing its object; it doesn’t speculate. Here we arrive at the point that is most relevant to our current discussion. The difference that we are about to highlight between instinct and intelligence is what this entire analysis aimed to reveal. We put it this way: There are things that intelligence alone can seek but will never find. These things instinct alone could find, but it will never seek them.
It is necessary here to consider some preliminary details that concern the mechanism of intelligence. We[Pg 152] have said that the function of intelligence is to establish relations. Let us determine more precisely the nature of these relations. On this point we are bound to be either vague or arbitrary so long as we see in the intellect a faculty intended for pure speculation. We are then reduced to taking the general frames of the understanding for something absolute, irreducible and inexplicable. The understanding must have fallen from heaven with its form, as each of us is born with his face. This form may be defined, of course, but that is all; there is no asking why it is what it is rather than anything else. Thus, it will be said that the function of the intellect is essentially unification, that the common object of all its operations is to introduce a certain unity into the diversity of phenomena, and so forth. But, in the first place, "unification" is a vague term, less clear than "relation" or even "thought," and says nothing more. And, moreover, it might be asked if the function of intelligence is not to divide even more than to unite. Finally, if the intellect proceeds as it does because it wishes to unite, and if it seeks unification simply because it has need of unifying, the whole of our knowledge becomes relative to certain requirements of the mind that probably might have been entirely different from what they are: for an intellect differently shaped, knowledge would have been different. Intellect being no longer dependent on anything, everything becomes dependent on it; and so, having placed the understanding too high, we end by putting too low the knowledge it gives us. Knowledge becomes relative, as soon as the intellect is made a kind of absolute.—We regard the human intellect, on the contrary, as relative to the needs of action. Postulate action, and the very form of the intellect can be deduced from it. This form is therefore neither irreducible nor inexplicable. And, precisely because it is not independent,[Pg 153] knowledge cannot be said to depend on it: knowledge ceases to be a product of the intellect and becomes, in a certain sense, part and parcel of reality.
It’s important to look at some initial details regarding how intelligence works. We’ve mentioned that the role of intelligence is to establish connections. Let's clarify what these connections are. Here, we’re either going to be vague or arbitrary as long as we view the intellect as a faculty meant purely for speculation. This leads us to treat the general frameworks of understanding as absolute, unchangeable, and inexplicable. The understanding must have come down from above with its form, just like each of us is born with our own face. This form can certainly be defined, but that’s all; we can’t really ask why it is what it is instead of something else. Thus, it might be stated that the primary function of the intellect is to create unity, that the main goal of all its activities is to bring some unity into the variety of phenomena, and so on. However, first of all, "unification" is a vague term, less clear than "relation" or even "thought," and it doesn’t convey much more than that. Furthermore, one might ask whether the function of intelligence is actually to divide more than to unite. Finally, if the intellect operates as it does because it wants to unite, and if it seeks unification simply out of a need for unity, then all of our knowledge becomes relative to certain needs of the mind that could have been entirely different. If the intellect were structured differently, knowledge would also have been different. With the intellect no longer dependent on anything, everything else becomes dependent on it; therefore, by elevating the understanding too much, we end up undervaluing the knowledge it provides. Knowledge becomes relative as soon as we treat the intellect as some sort of absolute. In contrast, we view the human intellect as relative to the needs of action. Assuming action exists, we can derive the very form of the intellect from it. This form is neither absolute nor inexplicable. And precisely because it’s not independent, knowledge can’t be said to rely on it: knowledge stops being a product of the intellect and instead becomes, in a certain sense, part of reality.
Philosophers will reply that action takes place in an ordered world, that this order is itself thought, and that we beg the question when we explain the intellect by action, which presupposes it. They would be right if our point of view in the present chapter was to be our final one. We should then be dupes of an illusion like that of Spencer, who believed that the intellect is sufficiently explained as the impression left on us by the general characters of matter: as if the order inherent in matter were not intelligence itself! But we reserve for the next chapter the question up to what point and with what method philosophy can attempt a real genesis of the intellect at the same time as of matter. For the moment, the problem that engages our attention is of a psychological order. We are asking what is the portion of the material world to which our intellect is specially adapted. To reply to this question, there is no need to choose a system of philosophy: it is enough to take up the point of view of common sense.
Philosophers would argue that actions happen in an ordered world, that this order is actually thought, and that we are assuming the conclusion when we explain the intellect through action, which relies on it. They would be correct if our perspective in this chapter were meant to be the final one. We would then be victims of an illusion like Spencer's, who thought that the intellect could be fully explained by the impressions left on us by the general properties of matter: as if the order that exists in matter weren't intelligence itself! However, we will address in the next chapter the extent to which and how philosophy can genuinely explore the origins of the intellect alongside matter. For now, the issue we are focusing on is psychological. We want to know which part of the material world our intellect is specifically designed for. To answer this question, we don’t need to adopt a specific philosophical system; it's enough to approach it from a common-sense perspective.
Let us start, then, from action, and lay down that the intellect aims, first of all, at constructing. This fabrication is exercised exclusively on inert matter, in this sense, that even if it makes use of organized material, it treats it as inert, without troubling about the life which animated it. And of inert matter itself, fabrication deals only with the solid; the rest escapes by its very fluidity. If, therefore, the tendency of the intellect is to fabricate, we may expect to find that whatever is fluid in the real will escape it in part, and whatever is life in the living will escape it altogether. Our intelligence, as it leaves the hands of nature, has for its chief object the unorganized solid.
Let’s begin with action and assert that the intellect primarily focuses on creating. This process works exclusively with inert matter, meaning that even when it uses organized material, it treats it as lifeless, without regard for the life it once had. Additionally, in terms of inert matter, the process only deals with the solid; anything fluid is excluded by its very nature. Therefore, if the intellect's goal is to create, we can expect that anything fluid in reality will be partially ignored, and anything alive will be completely overlooked. Our intelligence, as it emerges from nature, primarily targets unorganized solids.
When we pass in review the intellectual functions,[Pg 154] we see that the intellect is never quite at its ease, never entirely at home, except when it is working upon inert matter, more particularly upon solids. What is the most general property of the material world? It is extended: it presents to us objects external to other objects, and, in these objects, parts external to parts. No doubt, it is useful to us, in view of our ulterior manipulation, to regard each object as divisible into parts arbitrarily cut up, each part being again divisible as we like, and so on ad infinitum. But it is above all necessary, for our present manipulation, to regard the real object in hand, or the real elements into which we have resolved it, as provisionally final, and to treat them as so many units. To this possibility of decomposing matter as much as we please, and in any way we please, we allude when we speak of the continuity of material extension; but this continuity, as we see it, is nothing else but our ability, an ability that matter allows to us to choose the mode of discontinuity we shall find in it. It is always, in fact, the mode of discontinuity once chosen that appears to us as the actually real one and that which fixes our attention, just because it rules our action. Thus discontinuity is thought for itself; it is thinkable in itself; we form an idea of it by a positive act of our mind; while the intellectual representation of continuity is negative, being, at bottom, only the refusal of our mind, before any actually given system of decomposition, to regard it as the only possible one. Of the discontinuous alone does the intellect form a clear idea.
When we examine the intellectual functions,[Pg 154] we find that the intellect is never fully comfortable or at home, except when it's dealing with inert matter, especially solids. What is the most general characteristic of the material world? It's that it is extended: it presents us with objects that are separate from other objects, and within those objects, parts that are separate from parts. It's definitely useful for our future handling to think of each object as being made up of parts that we can arbitrarily divide, each part further divisible as we wish, and so on ad infinitum. However, it is crucial for our current handling to consider the actual object we have, or the real elements we've broken it down into, as provisionally final, and to treat them as distinct units. When we talk about the continuity of material extension, we refer to this possibility of breaking down matter as much as we want, and in any way we prefer; but this continuity, as we perceive it, is merely our ability, granted by matter, to choose how we will find discontinuity within it. In essence, it is always the chosen mode of discontinuity that appears to us as the truly real one and captures our attention because it guides our actions. Therefore, discontinuity is something we can contemplate; it's thinkable in itself, and we can form a clear idea of it through a positive act of our mind, whereas the intellectual representation of continuity is negative, essentially being just our mind’s refusal to accept any given system of decomposition as the only possible one. Only of the discontinuous does the intellect form a clear idea.
On the other hand, the objects we act on are certainly mobile objects, but the important thing for us to know is whither the mobile object is going and where it is at any moment of its passage. In other words, our interest is directed, before all, to its actual or future positions, and not to the progress by which it passes from one position[Pg 155] to another, progress which is the movement itself. In our actions, which are systematized movements, what we fix our mind on is the end or meaning of the movement, its design as a whole—in a word, the immobile plan of its execution. That which really moves in action interests us only so far as the whole can be advanced, retarded, or stopped by any incident that may happen on the way. From mobility itself our intellect turns aside, because it has nothing to gain in dealing with it. If the intellect were meant for pure theorizing, it would take its place within movement, for movement is reality itself, and immobility is always only apparent or relative. But the intellect is meant for something altogether different. Unless it does violence to itself, it takes the opposite course; it always starts from immobility, as if this were the ultimate reality: when it tries to form an idea of movement, it does so by constructing movement out of immobilities put together. This operation, whose illegitimacy and danger in the field of speculation we shall show later on (it leads to dead-locks, and creates artificially insoluble philosophical problems), is easily justified when we refer it to its proper goal. Intelligence, in its natural state, aims at a practically useful end. When it substitutes for movement immobilities put together, it does not pretend to reconstitute the movement such as it actually is; it merely replaces it with a practical equivalent. It is the philosophers who are mistaken when they import into the domain of speculation a method of thinking which is made for action. But of this more anon. Suffice it now to say that to the stable and unchangeable our intellect is attached by virtue of its natural disposition. Of immobility alone does the intellect form a clear idea.
On the flip side, the objects we interact with are definitely mobile, but what really matters for us to understand is where the mobile object is headed and where it is at any given moment. In other words, our main focus is on its current or future locations, not on the progress it makes as it moves from one position[Pg 155] to another, which is the movement itself. In our actions, which are organized movements, we concentrate on the purpose or significance of the movement, its overall design—essentially, the unchanging plan for its execution. What truly moves in action interests us only to the extent that the whole can be advanced, slowed down, or halted by anything that happens along the way. Our intellect generally overlooks mobility because it has nothing to gain from it. If intellect were meant for pure theorizing, it would engage with movement, since movement is reality itself, and immobility is always just an illusion or a relative state. But intellect is intended for something entirely different. Unless it forces itself to go against its nature, it takes the opposite approach; it always begins with immobility, as if that were the ultimate reality: when it tries to conceptualize movement, it does so by piecing together immobilities. This process, which we will later demonstrate is illegitimate and risky in the realm of speculation (leading to dead ends and creating artificially unsolvable philosophical dilemmas), is easily justified when we consider its actual purpose. Intelligence, in its natural state, aims for something practically useful. When it replaces movement with constructed immobilities, it doesn't aim to recreate movement as it truly exists; it merely swaps it out for a practical equivalent. It's the philosophers who err when they bring into speculation a thinking method designed for action. But more on that later. For now, it's enough to say that our intellect is naturally inclined towards the stable and unchanging. Only immobility allows the intellect to form a clear idea.
Now, fabricating consists in carving out the form of an object in matter. What is the most important is[Pg 156] the form to be obtained. As to the matter, we choose that which is most convenient; but, in order to choose it, that is to say, in order to go and seek it among many others, we must have tried, in imagination at least, to endow every kind of matter with the form of the object conceived. In other words, an intelligence which aims at fabricating is an intelligence which never stops at the actual form of things nor regards it as final, but, on the contrary, looks upon all matter as if it were carvable at will. Plato compares the good dialectician to the skilful cook who carves the animal without breaking its bones, by following the articulations marked out by nature.[64] An intelligence which always proceeded thus would really be an intelligence turned toward speculation. But action, and in particular fabrication, requires the opposite mental tendency: it makes us consider every actual form of things, even the form of natural things, as artificial and provisional; it makes our thought efface from the object perceived, even though organized and living, the lines that outwardly mark its inward structure; in short, it makes us regard its matter as indifferent to its form. The whole of matter is made to appear to our thought as an immense piece of cloth in which we can cut out what we will and sew it together again as we please. Let us note, in passing, that it is this power that we affirm when we say that there is a space, that is to say, a homogeneous and empty medium, infinite and infinitely divisible, lending itself indifferently to any mode of decomposition whatsoever. A medium of this kind is never perceived; it is only conceived. What is perceived is extension colored, resistant, divided according to the lines which mark out the boundaries of real bodies or of their real elements. But when we think of our power over this matter, that is to say,[Pg 157] of our faculty of decomposing and recomposing it as we please, we project the whole of these possible decompositions and recompositions behind real extension in the form of a homogeneous space, empty and indifferent, which is supposed to underlie it. This space is therefore, pre-eminently, the plan of our possible action on things, although, indeed, things have a natural tendency, as we shall explain further on, to enter into a frame of this kind. It is a view taken by mind. The animal has probably no idea of it, even when, like us, it perceives extended things. It is an idea that symbolizes the tendency of the human intellect to fabrication. But this point must not detain us now. Suffice it to say that the intellect is characterized by the unlimited power of decomposing according to any law and of recomposing into any system.
Now, creating involves shaping an object out of material. The most important aspect is[Pg 156] the form we want to achieve. When it comes to the material, we choose what’s most suitable; but to decide, we need to have at least imagined giving every type of material the form of the object we envision. In other words, a mind focused on creating doesn’t settle for the existing form of things nor sees it as final. Instead, it views all material as something that can be shaped at will. Plato compares a good dialectician to a skilled cook who carves the meat without breaking the bones, following the natural joints.[64] A mind that operates this way would truly be one focused on speculation. However, action, especially creation, requires a different mindset: it prompts us to view every actual form of things, including natural forms, as artificial and temporary; it leads us to erase from perception the lines that indicate the inner structure of the object we observe, even if it is organized and living; in short, it makes us see its material as separate from its form. All material appears to our minds as an enormous piece of fabric from which we can cut out shapes and stitch them back together as we wish. It’s worth noting that we affirm this capacity when we speak of space, referring to a uniform and empty medium that is infinite and infinitely divisible, which can accommodate any process of decomposition. Such a medium is never directly perceived; it is only imagined. What we perceive is extension that is colored, resistant, and divided by the boundaries that define real objects or their real components. However, when we consider our ability to manipulate this material, meaning [Pg 157] to decompose and recompose it as we desire, we envision all these possible decompositions and recompositions behind real extension in the form of a uniform, empty space that is thought to underlie it. This space represents our potential actions on things, even though, as we’ll explain later, things naturally tend to fit into such a framework. It is a perspective of the mind. Animals likely do not grasp this concept, even when they, like us, perceive extended things. It symbolizes the tendency of the human intellect toward creation. But we shouldn’t dwell on this now. It’s enough to say that the intellect is defined by its unlimited ability to decompose according to any rule and to recompose into any system.
We have now enumerated a few of the essential features of human intelligence. But we have hitherto considered the individual in isolation, without taking account of social life. In reality, man is a being who lives in society. If it be true that the human intellect aims at fabrication, we must add that, for that as well as for other purposes, it is associated with other intellects. Now, it is difficult to imagine a society whose members do not communicate by signs. Insect societies probably have a language, and this language must be adapted, like that of man, to the necessities of life in common. By language community of action is made possible. But the requirements of joint action are not at all the same in a colony of ants and in a human society. In insect societies there is generally polymorphism, the subdivision of labor is natural, and each individual is riveted by its structure to the function it performs. In any case, these societies are based on instinct, and consequently on certain actions or fabrications that are more or less dependent on the form of the organs. So if the ants,[Pg 158] for instance, have a language, the signs which compose it must be very limited in number, and each of them, once the species is formed, must remain invariably attached to a certain object or a certain operation: the sign is adherent to the thing signified. In human society, on the contrary, fabrication and action are of variable form, and, moreover, each individual must learn his part, because he is not preordained to it by his structure. So a language is required which makes it possible to be always passing from what is known to what is yet to be known. There must be a language whose signs—which cannot be infinite in number—are extensible to an infinity of things. This tendency of the sign to transfer itself from one object to another is characteristic of human language. It is observable in the little child as soon as he begins to speak. Immediately and naturally he extends the meaning of the words he learns, availing himself of the most accidental connection or the most distant analogy to detach and transfer elsewhere the sign that had been associated in his hearing with a particular object. "Anything can designate anything;" such is the latent principle of infantine language. This tendency has been wrongly confused with the faculty of generalizing. The animals themselves generalize; and, moreover, a sign—even an instinctive sign—always to some degree represents a genus. But what characterizes the signs of human language is not so much their generality as their mobility. The instinctive sign is adherent, the intelligent sign is mobile.
We have now listed some key features of human intelligence. However, so far we've looked at the individual in isolation, without considering their social life. In reality, humans are social beings. If it's true that human intellect aims for creation, we must also acknowledge it works together with other minds for that and many other reasons. It's hard to picture a society where members don’t communicate through signs. Insect societies likely have their own form of language, which must be adapted, like that of humans, to meet the needs of shared life. Language enables collective action. However, the needs for teamwork are very different in an ant colony compared to a human society. In insect societies, there’s usually polymorphism, the division of labor is natural, and each individual is tied to the function it performs by its structure. In any case, these societies rely on instinct, which links certain actions or creations to the way their bodies are built. So, if ants, [Pg 158] for instance, have a language, the signs that make it up must be quite limited, and each sign, once established within the species, must stay connected to a specific object or action: the sign stays attached to what it represents. In contrast, human society's creations and actions vary greatly, and each individual has to learn their role since they aren't predetermined by their physical makeup. Thus, a language is needed that allows for continual transition from what is known to what is yet to be discovered. We need a language whose signs—though not infinite—can be expanded to cover countless things. This tendency for signs to adapt from one object to another is a hallmark of human language. You can see it in young children as soon as they start to talk. Right away and naturally, they expand the meanings of the words they learn, using the most random connections or distant analogies to detach and transfer a sign that had once been linked in their mind to a particular object. "Anything can represent anything;" this is the underlying principle of child language. This tendency is often mistakenly mixed up with the ability to generalize. Animals can also generalize; furthermore, a sign—even an instinctive one—always somewhat represents a category. However, what sets human language signs apart is not their generality but their adaptability. The instinctive sign is fixed, the intelligent sign is flexible.
Now, this mobility of words, that makes them able to pass from one thing to another, has enabled them to be extended from things to ideas. Certainly, language would not have given the faculty of reflecting to an intelligence entirely externalized and incapable of turn[Pg 159]ing homeward. An intelligence which reflects is one that originally had a surplus of energy to spend, over and above practically useful efforts. It is a consciousness that has virtually reconquered itself. But still the virtual has to become actual. Without language, intelligence would probably have remained riveted to the material objects which it was interested in considering. It would have lived in a state of somnambulism, outside itself, hypnotized on its own work. Language has greatly contributed to its liberation. The word, made to pass from one thing to another, is, in fact, by nature transferable and free. It can therefore be extended, not only from one perceived thing to another, but even from a perceived thing to a recollection of that thing, from the precise recollection to a more fleeting image, and finally from an image fleeting, though still pictured, to the picturing of the act by which the image is pictured, that is to say, to the idea. Thus is revealed to the intelligence, hitherto always turned outwards, a whole internal world—the spectacle of its own workings. It required only this opportunity, at length offered by language. It profits by the fact that the word is an external thing, which the intelligence can catch hold of and cling to, and at the same time an immaterial thing, by means of which the intelligence can penetrate even to the inwardness of its own work. Its first business was indeed to make instruments, but this fabrication is possible only by the employment of certain means which are not cut to the exact measure of their object, but go beyond it and thus allow intelligence a supplementary—that is to say disinterested work. From the moment that the intellect, reflecting upon its own doings, perceives itself as a creator of ideas, as a faculty of representation in general, there is no object of which it may not wish to have the idea, even though that object be without direct re[Pg 160]lation to practical action. That is why we said there are things that intellect alone can seek. Intellect alone, indeed, troubles itself about theory; and its theory would fain embrace everything—not only inanimate matter, over which it has a natural hold, but even life and thought.
The ability of words to move from one thing to another lets them evolve from objects to ideas. Certainly, language wouldn’t have given the power of reflection to a mind that is completely externalized and unable to turn back inward. A reflective mind is one that initially had excess energy to use beyond practical efforts. It’s a consciousness that has practically reclaimed itself. However, the potential still needs to become real. Without language, intelligence would likely have stayed fixated on the material objects it was interested in analyzing. It would have existed in a state of sleepwalking, consumed by its work. Language has played a significant role in its freedom. The word, capable of moving between things, is naturally transferable and free. This means it can extend not just from one observed thing to another, but also from an observed thing to a memory of that thing, from an exact memory to a more fleeting image, and finally from a fleeting image, even if still visualized, to the act of picturing that image, which means, to the idea. This reveals to the intelligence, which had always been focused outward, an entire inner world—the view of its own processes. It only needed this opportunity, finally provided by language. It takes advantage of the fact that a word is an external object that the mind can grasp and hold onto, while also being an immaterial thing that allows the mind to explore its own internal workings. Initially, its main task was to create tools, but this creation is only possible by using certain means that aren't perfectly fitted to their purpose, thus allowing intelligence to engage in supplementary—meaning more than practical—work. Once the intellect reflects on its own actions and sees itself as the creator of ideas, as a faculty of representation in general, it becomes possible to seek the idea of any object, even if that object has no direct connection to practical actions. That’s why we said there are things that only the intellect can pursue. The intellect alone indeed concerns itself with theory, and its theories aim to encompass everything—not just lifeless matter, which it naturally understands, but also life and thought.
By what means, what instruments, in short by what method it will approach these problems, we can easily guess. Originally, it was fashioned to the form of matter. Language itself, which has enabled it to extend its field of operations, is made to designate things, and nought but things: it is only because the word is mobile, because it flies from one thing to another, that the intellect was sure to take it, sooner or later, on the wing, while it was not settled on anything, and apply it to an object which is not a thing and which, concealed till then, awaited the coming of the word to pass from darkness to light. But the word, by covering up this object, again converts it into a thing. So intelligence, even when it no longer operates upon its own object, follows habits it has contracted in that operation: it applies forms that are indeed those of unorganized matter. It is made for this kind of work. With this kind of work alone is it fully satisfied. And that is what intelligence expresses by saying that thus only it arrives at distinctness and clearness.
By what means, what tools, in short, by what method it will tackle these problems, we can easily guess. It was initially shaped to fit the form of matter. Language itself, which has allowed it to expand its range of operations, is designed to identify things, and only things: it’s only because words are flexible, because they move from one thing to another, that the mind eventually seized it, sooner or later, while it wasn’t fixed on anything, and applied it to an object that isn’t a thing and that, until then hidden, waited for the word to emerge from darkness into light. But the word, by masking this object, again turns it back into a thing. So, even when the mind no longer engages with its original object, it follows the habits formed during that engagement: it applies forms that are indeed those of unstructured matter. It is made for this kind of work. With this type of work alone is it completely satisfied. And that’s what intelligence expresses by saying that this is the only way it achieves distinctness and clearness.
It must, therefore, in order to think itself clearly and distinctly, perceive itself under the form of discontinuity. Concepts, in fact, are outside each other, like objects in space; and they have the same stability as such objects, on which they have been modeled. Taken together, they constitute an "intelligible world," that resembles the world of solids in its essential characters, but whose elements are lighter, more diaphanous, easier for the intellect to deal with than the image of concrete things:[Pg 161] they are not, indeed, the perception itself of things, but the representation of the act by which the intellect is fixed on them. They are, therefore, not images, but symbols. Our logic is the complete set of rules that must be followed in using symbols. As these symbols are derived from the consideration of solids, as the rules for combining these symbols hardly do more than express the most general relations among solids, our logic triumphs in that science which takes the solidity of bodies for its object, that is, in geometry. Logic and geometry engender each other, as we shall see a little further on. It is from the extension of a certain natural geometry, suggested by the most general and immediately perceived properties of solids, that natural logic has arisen; then from this natural logic, in its turn, has sprung scientific geometry, which extends further and further the knowledge of the external properties of solids.[65] Geometry and logic are strictly applicable to matter; in it they are at home, and in it they can proceed quite alone. But, outside this domain, pure reasoning needs to be supervised by common sense, which is an altogether different thing.
To think clearly and distinctly, one must perceive itself as having discontinuities. Concepts exist independently of each other, like objects in space, and have the same stability as those objects. Together, they form an "intelligible world" that is similar to the world of solids in its fundamental characteristics, but its elements are lighter, more transparent, and easier for the mind to handle than the images of concrete things:[Pg 161] they are not the actual perception of things but the representation of the act through which the mind focuses on them. Thus, they are not images but symbols. Our logic is the complete set of rules for using symbols. Since these symbols are based on the study of solids, and the rules for combining them mostly express the most general relationships among solids, our logic excels in the science that focuses on the solidity of bodies, specifically in geometry. Logic and geometry influence each other, as we will explore later. Natural logic emerged from the extension of a certain natural geometry, informed by the most fundamental and immediately observable properties of solids; from this natural logic, scientific geometry subsequently arose, which continues to expand our understanding of the external properties of solids.[65] Geometry and logic are specifically suited to matter; they thrive within it and can function independently there. However, outside this realm, pure reasoning needs the guidance of common sense, which is something entirely different.
Thus, all the elementary forces of the intellect tend to transform matter into an instrument of action, that is, in the etymological sense of the word, into an organ. Life, not content with producing organisms, would fain give them as an appendage inorganic matter itself, converted into an immense organ by the industry of the living being. Such is the initial task it assigns to intelligence. That is why the intellect always behaves as if it were fascinated by the contemplation of inert matter. It is life looking outward, putting itself outside itself, adopting the ways of unorganized nature in principle, in order to direct them in fact. Hence its bewilderment when it[Pg 162] turns to the living and is confronted with organization. It does what it can, it resolves the organized into the unorganized, for it cannot, without reversing its natural direction and twisting about on itself, think true continuity, real mobility, reciprocal penetration—in a word, that creative evolution which is life.
Thus, all the basic forces of the mind aim to turn matter into a tool for action, which, in the true sense of the word, makes it an organ. Life, not satisfied with just creating organisms, also wants to give them inorganic matter as an extension, transformed into a huge organ through the efforts of the living being. This is the primary job assigned to intelligence. That’s why the intellect often seems captivated by the observation of lifeless matter. It represents life looking outward, stepping outside itself, adopting the characteristics of unorganized nature in principle, to effectively direct them. Therefore, it becomes confused when it turns to the living and encounters organization. It does what it can, breaking the organized down into the unorganized, because it can't, without reversing its natural course and getting twisted around, truly conceive of continuity, genuine movement, and mutual integration—in a word, that creative evolution which is life.
Consider continuity. The aspect of life that is accessible to our intellect—as indeed to our senses, of which our intellect is the extension—is that which offers a hold to our action. Now, to modify an object, we have to perceive it as divisible and discontinuous. From the point of view of positive science, an incomparable progress was realized when the organized tissues were resolved into cells. The study of the cell, in its turn, has shown it to be an organism whose complexity seems to grow, the more thoroughly it is examined. The more science advances, the more it sees the number grow of heterogeneous elements which are placed together, outside each other, to make up a living being. Does science thus get any nearer to life? Does it not, on the contrary, find that what is really life in the living seems to recede with every step by which it pushes further the detail of the parts combined? There is indeed already among scientists a tendency to regard the substance of the organism as continuous, and the cell as an artificial entity.[66] But, supposing this view were finally to prevail, it could only lead, on deeper study, to some other mode of analyzing of the living being, and so to a new discontinuity—although less removed, perhaps, from the real continuity of life. The truth is that this continuity cannot be thought by the intellect while it follows its natural movement. It implies at once the multiplicity of elements and the interpenetration of all by all, two conditions that can hardly be reconciled[Pg 163] in the field in which our industry, and consequently our intellect, is engaged.
Consider continuity. The part of life that we can understand with our minds—as well as our senses, which our minds extend from—is what allows us to take action. To change something, we need to see it as separate and not continuous. In the realm of positive science, a significant advancement was made when organized tissues were broken down into cells. The study of cells has revealed that they are complex organisms, and their complexity seems to increase the more we investigate. As science progresses, it identifies more and more diverse elements that come together, outside of each other, to form a living being. Does science get closer to understanding life this way? Or does it actually find that what is truly alive appears to become more distant as it digs deeper into the details of the components? Scientists already tend to view the substance of an organism as continuous, considering the cell to be an artificial construct.[66] However, if this perspective ultimately gains acceptance, it would lead to a different way of examining living beings, creating a new kind of discontinuity—though perhaps closer to the true continuity of life. The reality is that this continuity can't be fully grasped by the intellect when it operates in its normal way. It involves both a variety of elements and the way all things are interconnected, two conditions that are difficult to reconcile in the areas where our industry, and therefore our intellect, is focused.[Pg 163]
Just as we separate in space, we fix in time. The intellect is not made to think evolution, in the proper sense of the word—that is to say, the continuity of a change that is pure mobility. We shall not dwell here on this point, which we propose to study in a special chapter. Suffice it to say that the intellect represents becoming as a series of states, each of which is homogeneous with itself and consequently does not change. Is our attention called to the internal change of one of these states? At once we decompose it into another series of states which, reunited, will be supposed to make up this internal modification. Each of these new states must be invariable, or else their internal change, if we are forced to notice it, must be resolved again into a fresh series of invariable states, and so on to infinity. Here again, thinking consists in reconstituting, and, naturally, it is with given elements, and consequently with stable elements, that we reconstitute. So that, though we may do our best to imitate the mobility of becoming by an addition that is ever going on, becoming itself slips through our fingers just when we think we are holding it tight.
Just as we separate in space, we also fix in time. The mind isn’t designed to think about evolution in the true sense—it’s about the continuity of change that is purely about movement. We won’t focus on that here, as we plan to examine it in a separate chapter. For now, it’s enough to say that the mind represents becoming as a series of states, each of which is consistent with itself and therefore doesn’t change. If we notice an internal change in one of these states, we quickly break it down into another series of states that we assume together explain this internal modification. Each of these new states must be unchanged, or if there is internal change and we need to recognize it, we have to break it down again into another series of unchanged states, and this process continues infinitely. Here again, thinking involves reconstituting, and naturally, we reconstitute using given elements, which means stable elements. So, even though we try to mimic the fluidity of becoming by constantly adding, the reality of becoming slips away just when we think we have a grip on it.
Precisely because it is always trying to reconstitute, and to reconstitute with what is given, the intellect lets what is new in each moment of a history escape. It does not admit the unforeseeable. It rejects all creation. That definite antecedents bring forth a definite consequent, calculable as a function of them, is what satisfies our intellect. That a definite end calls forth definite means to attain it, is what we also understand. In both cases we have to do with the known which is combined with the known, in short, with the old which is repeated. Our intellect is there at its ease; and, whatever be the object,[Pg 164] it will abstract, separate, eliminate, so as to substitute for the object itself, if necessary, an approximate equivalent in which things will happen in this way. But that each instant is a fresh endowment, that the new is ever upspringing, that the form just come into existence (although, when once produced, it may be regarded as an effect determined by its causes) could never have been foreseen—because the causes here, unique in their kind, are part of the effect, have come into existence with it, and are determined by it as much as they determine it—all this we can feel within ourselves and also divine, by sympathy, outside ourselves, but we cannot think it, in the strict sense of the word, nor express it in terms of pure understanding. No wonder at that: we must remember what our intellect is meant for. The causality it seeks and finds everywhere expresses the very mechanism of our industry, in which we go on recomposing the same whole with the same parts, repeating the same movements to obtain the same result. The finality it understands best is the finality of our industry, in which we work on a model given in advance, that is to say, old or composed of elements already known. As to invention properly so called, which is, however, the point of departure of industry itself, our intellect does not succeed in grasping it in its upspringing, that is to say, in its indivisibility, nor in its fervor, that is to say, in its creativeness. Explaining it always consists in resolving it, it the unforeseeable and new, into elements old or known, arranged in a different order. The intellect can no more admit complete novelty than real becoming; that is to say, here again it lets an essential aspect of life escape, as if it were not intended to think such an object.
Because it’s always trying to reconstruct and using what it has, the intellect misses the new moment in any history. It doesn’t accept the unexpected. It dismisses all creation. The idea that specific antecedents lead to specific consequences, which can be calculated based on those antecedents, is what satisfies our intellect. The understanding that a specific goal requires specific means to achieve it is also clear to us. In both cases, we’re dealing with what’s known combined with what’s known—essentially, the old being repeated. Our intellect feels comfortable there; whatever the subject, [Pg 164] it will abstract, separate, and eliminate, possibly replacing the actual object with an approximate equivalent where events happen in a familiar way. However, that each moment is a new gift, that the new is always emerging, and that the form that has just come into existence (although, once produced, it can be seen as an effect determined by its causes) could never have been anticipated—because the causes, unique in their nature, are part of the effect, coming into existence alongside it and being defined by it as much as they define it—this is something we can sense within ourselves and also intuit, through empathy, beyond ourselves, but we can’t really think about it or express it purely in terms of understanding. It’s not surprising; we must remember what our intellect is designed for. The causality it seeks and finds everywhere reflects the very mechanism of our efforts, where we keep recomposing the same whole using the same parts, repeating the same actions to achieve the same outcome. The kind of finality it best understands is the finality of our work, where we operate based on a pre-existing model, meaning old or composed of elements we already know. As for true invention, which is the starting point of industry itself, our intellect struggles to grasp it in its upspringing, or its indivisibility, and in its fervor, or its creativeness. To explain it always means breaking it down into familiar elements rearranged differently. The intellect can’t fully accept complete novelty or true becoming; once again, it lets an essential aspect of life slip away, as if it weren’t meant to think about such a subject.
All our analyses bring us to this conclusion. But it is hardly necessary to go into such long details concerning the mechanism of intellectual working; it is enough to[Pg 165] consider the results. We see that the intellect, so skilful in dealing with the inert, is awkward the moment it touches the living. Whether it wants to treat the life of the body or the life of the mind, it proceeds with the rigor, the stiffness and the brutality of an instrument not designed for such use. The history of hygiene or of pedagogy teaches us much in this matter. When we think of the cardinal, urgent and constant need we have to preserve our bodies and to raise our souls, of the special facilities given to each of us, in this field, to experiment continually on ourselves and on others, of the palpable injury by which the wrongness of a medical or pedagogical practise is both made manifest and punished at once, we are amazed at the stupidity and especially at the persistence of errors. We may easily find their origin in the natural obstinacy with which we treat the living like the lifeless and think all reality, however fluid, under the form of the sharply defined solid. We are at ease only in the discontinuous, in the immobile, in the dead. The intellect is characterized by a natural inability to comprehend life.
All our analyses lead us to this conclusion. But it’s really not necessary to go into such lengthy details about how intellectual processes work; it's enough to consider the results. We see that the intellect, which is so skilled at dealing with the inanimate, struggles the moment it encounters the living. Whether it’s trying to address physical health or mental well-being, it operates with the rigidity, stiffness, and brutality of a tool not meant for such purposes. The history of hygiene and education provides us with a lot of insight on this issue. When we reflect on the crucial, urgent, and ongoing need we have to care for our bodies and uplift our spirits, on the unique opportunities we each have in this area to constantly experiment on ourselves and others, and on the obvious harm that results from incorrect medical or educational practices being immediately evident, we can’t help but be amazed at the foolishness and, especially, the persistence of these mistakes. We can easily trace their roots to our natural stubbornness when it comes to treating the living like the lifeless and perceiving all reality, no matter how fluid, as if it were a sharply defined solid. We only feel comfortable in the disconnected, the immobile, and the dead. The intellect is characterized by a natural inability to comprehend life.
Instinct, on the contrary, is molded on the very form of life. While intelligence treats everything mechanically, instinct proceeds, so to speak, organically. If the consciousness that slumbers in it should awake, if it were wound up into knowledge instead of being wound off into action, if we could ask and it could reply, it would give up to us the most intimate secrets of life. For it only carries out further the work by which life organizes matter—so that we cannot say, as has often been shown, where organization ends and where instinct begins. When the little chick is breaking its shell with a peck of its beak, it is acting by instinct, and yet it does but carry on the movement which has borne it through embryonic life.[Pg 166] Inversely, in the course of embryonic life itself (especially when the embryo lives freely in the form of a larva), many of the acts accomplished must be referred to instinct. The most essential of the primary instincts are really, therefore, vital processes. The potential consciousness that accompanies them is generally actualized only at the outset of the act, and leaves the rest of the process to go on by itself. It would only have to expand more widely, and then dive into its own depth completely, to be one with the generative force of life.
Instinct, on the other hand, is shaped by the very nature of life. While intelligence approaches everything in a mechanical way, instinct operates, so to speak, in an organic manner. If the consciousness that lies dormant within it were to awaken, if it were to transform into knowledge instead of becoming mere action, if we could ask it questions and it could respond, it would reveal to us the deepest secrets of life. It simply continues the work through which life organizes matter—so we can't clearly define where organization ends and where instinct begins, as has often been demonstrated. When a little chick is breaking its shell with a peck of its beak, it is acting instinctively, yet it is merely continuing a movement that has carried it through its embryonic stage.[Pg 166] Conversely, during embryonic development itself (especially when the embryo exists freely as a larva), many of the actions performed are attributed to instinct. Therefore, the most fundamental primary instincts are essentially vital processes. The underlying consciousness that accompanies them is typically activated only at the beginning of the action and leaves the rest of the process to unfold on its own. It would simply need to broaden its awareness and then dive deep into itself to become one with the generative force of life.
When we see in a living body thousands of cells working together to a common end, dividing the task between them, living each for itself at the same time as for the others, preserving itself, feeding itself, reproducing itself, responding to the menace of danger by appropriate defensive reactions, how can we help thinking of so many instincts? And yet these are the natural functions of the cell, the constitutive elements of its vitality. On the other hand, when we see the bees of a hive forming a system so strictly organized that no individual can live apart from the others beyond a certain time, even though furnished with food and shelter, how can we help recognizing that the hive is really, and not metaphorically, a single organism, of which each bee is a cell united to the others by invisible bonds? The instinct that animates the bee is indistinguishable, then, from the force that animates the cell, or is only a prolongation of that force. In extreme cases like this, instinct coincides with the work of organization.
When we see a living body made up of thousands of cells working together towards a common goal, dividing the tasks among themselves, each one living for itself while also for the others, maintaining itself, nourishing itself, reproducing itself, and reacting appropriately to threats, how can we not think of all those instincts? Yet, these are just the natural functions of the cell, the basic components of its vitality. Similarly, when we observe bees in a hive forming such a tightly organized system that no individual can survive alone for long—even if it has food and shelter—it's hard not to see that the hive is truly, and not just metaphorically, a single organism, where each bee is a cell connected to the others by invisible bonds. The instinct driving the bee is then indistinguishable from the force that drives the cell, or is simply an extension of that force. In extreme cases like this, instinct aligns perfectly with the work of organization.
Of course there are degrees of perfection in the same instinct. Between the humble-bee, and the honey-bee, for instance, the distance is great; and we pass from one to the other through a great number of intermediaries, which correspond to so many complications of the social life. But the same diversity is found in the functioning[Pg 167] of histological elements belonging to different tissues more or less akin. In both cases there are manifold variations on one and the same theme. The constancy of the theme is manifest, however, and the variations only fit it to the diversity of the circumstances.
Of course, there are different levels of perfection in the same instinct. For example, there’s a big difference between the humble bee and the honey bee; and we transition from one to the other through many intermediaries, which reflect the various complexities of social life. This same diversity appears in the functioning[Pg 167] of histological elements from different but related tissues. In both cases, there are numerous variations on a single theme. However, the consistency of the theme is clear, and the variations simply adapt it to the different circumstances.
Now, in both cases, in the instinct of the animal and in the vital properties of the cell, the same knowledge and the same ignorance are shown. All goes on as if the cell knew, of the other cells, what concerns itself; as if the animal knew, of the other animals, what it can utilize—all else remaining in shade. It seems as if life, as soon as it has become bound up in a species, is cut off from the rest of its own work, save at one or two points that are of vital concern to the species just arisen. Is it not plain that life goes to work here exactly like consciousness, exactly like memory? We trail behind us, unawares, the whole of our past; but our memory pours into the present only the odd recollection or two that in some way complete our present situation. Thus the instinctive knowledge which one species possesses of another on a certain particular point has its root in the very unity of life, which is, to use the expression of an ancient philosopher, a "whole sympathetic to itself." It is impossible to consider some of the special instincts of the animal and of the plant, evidently arisen in extraordinary circumstances, without relating them to those recollections, seemingly forgotten, which spring up suddenly under the pressure of an urgent need.
Now, in both cases, in the instincts of animals and in the vital functions of cells, the same knowledge and ignorance are evident. It all happens as if the cell understands, among other cells, what pertains to itself; as if the animal knows, among other animals, what it can use—everything else remains unclear. It seems that life, once it becomes part of a species, is separated from the rest of its activities, except for one or two aspects that are crucial to the newly formed species. Isn’t it clear that life operates here just like consciousness, just like memory? We unknowingly carry our entire past with us; yet our memory streams into the present only the few recollections that somehow complete our current situation. Thus, the instinctive knowledge that one species has of another regarding a specific point is rooted in the very unity of life, which is, as one ancient philosopher put it, a "whole sympathetic to itself." It's impossible to examine some of the special instincts of animals and plants, which clearly arose in unique circumstances, without connecting them to those memories, seemingly forgotten, that suddenly emerge under the pressure of urgent needs.
No doubt many secondary instincts, and also many varieties of primary instinct, admit of a scientific explanation. Yet it is doubtful whether science, with its present methods of explanation, will ever succeed in analyzing instinct completely. The reason is that instinct and intelligence are two divergent developments[Pg 168] of one and the same principle, which in the one case remains within itself, in the other steps out of itself and becomes absorbed in the utilization of inert matter. This gradual divergence testifies to a radical incompatibility, and points to the fact that it is impossible for intelligence to reabsorb instinct. That which is instinctive in instinct cannot be expressed in terms of intelligence, nor, consequently, can it be analyzed.
There’s no doubt that many secondary instincts, as well as various types of primary instincts, can be explained scientifically. However, it's uncertain whether science, with its current methods, will ever fully analyze instinct. The reason is that instinct and intelligence represent two different developments[Pg 168] of the same principle. In one case, it remains self-contained, while in the other, it extends outward and focuses on using non-living matter. This gradual divergence shows a fundamental incompatibility and indicates that intelligence cannot reclaim instinct. What is instinctive about instinct cannot be described in terms of intelligence, and therefore, cannot be analyzed.
A man born blind, who had lived among others born blind, could not be made to believe in the possibility of perceiving a distant object without first perceiving all the objects in between. Yet vision performs this miracle. In a certain sense the blind man is right, since vision, having its origin in the stimulation of the retina, by the vibrations of the light, is nothing else, in fact, but a retinal touch. Such is indeed the scientific explanation, for the function of science is just to express all perceptions in terms of touch. But we have shown elsewhere that the philosophical explanation of perception (if it may still be called an explanation) must be of another kind.[67] Now instinct also is a knowledge at a distance. It has the same relation to intelligence that vision has to touch. Science cannot do otherwise than express it in terms of intelligence; but in so doing it constructs an imitation of instinct rather than penetrates within it.
A man who was born blind, and had lived among others who were also blind, found it hard to believe that one could see a distant object without first seeing all the things in between. Yet, vision accomplishes this miracle. In some ways, the blind man has a point, since vision originates from the stimulation of the retina through light vibrations, and is essentially a form of retinal touch. This is indeed the scientific explanation, as science aims to describe all perceptions in terms of touch. However, we have shown elsewhere that the philosophical explanation of perception (if it can still be called that) needs to be different.[67] Instinct is also a form of knowledge at a distance. It relates to intelligence in the same way that vision relates to touch. Science can only express it through the lens of intelligence; but by doing so, it creates a copy of instinct instead of truly understanding it.
Any one can convince himself of this by studying the ingenious theories of evolutionist biology. They may be reduced to two types, which are often intermingled. One type, following the principles of neo-Darwinism, regards instinct as a sum of accidental differences preserved by selection: such and such a useful behavior, naturally adopted by the individual in virtue of an accidental predisposition of the germ, has been transmitted from germ[Pg 169] to germ, waiting for chance to add fresh improvements to it by the same method. The other type regards instinct as lapsed intelligence: the action, found useful by the species or by certain of its representatives, is supposed to have engendered a habit, which, by hereditary transmission, has become an instinct. Of these two types of theory, the first has the advantage of being able to bring in hereditary transmission without raising grave objection; for the accidental modification which it places at the origin of the instinct is not supposed to have been acquired by the individual, but to have been inherent in the germ. But, on the other hand, it is absolutely incapable of explaining instincts as sagacious as those of most insects. These instincts surely could not have attained, all at once, their present degree of complexity; they have probably evolved; but, in a hypothesis like that of the neo-Darwinians, the evolution of instinct could have come to pass only by the progressive addition of new pieces which, in some way, by happy accidents, came to fit into the old. Now it is evident that, in most cases, instinct could not have perfected itself by simple accretion: each new piece really requires, if all is not to be spoiled, a complete recasting of the whole. How could mere chance work a recasting of the kind? I agree that an accidental modification of the germ may be passed on hereditarily, and may somehow wait for fresh accidental modifications to come and complicate it. I agree also that natural selection may eliminate all those of the more complicated forms of instinct that are not fit to survive. Still, in order that the life of the instinct may evolve, complications fit to survive have to be produced. Now they will be produced only if, in certain cases, the addition of a new element brings about the correlative change of all the old elements. No one will maintain that chance could perform such a[Pg 170] miracle: in one form or another we shall appeal to intelligence. We shall suppose that it is by an effort, more or less conscious, that the living being develops a higher instinct. But then we shall have to admit that an acquired habit can become hereditary, and that it does so regularly enough to ensure an evolution. The thing is doubtful, to put it mildly. Even if we could refer the instincts of animals to habits intelligently acquired and hereditarily transmitted, it is not clear how this sort of explanation could be extended to the vegetable world, where effort is never intelligent, even supposing it is sometimes conscious. And yet, when we see with what sureness and precision climbing plants use their tendrils, what marvelously combined manœuvres the orchids perform to procure their fertilization by means of insects,[68] how can we help thinking that these are so many instincts?
Anyone can convince themselves of this by studying the clever theories of evolutionary biology. They can be categorized into two types that often overlap. One type, following neo-Darwinism, views instinct as a collection of random traits that have been preserved through natural selection: a certain useful behavior, adopted by the individual due to a random predisposition in the germ, has been passed down from germ to germ, waiting for chance to add new improvements the same way. The other type sees instinct as lost intelligence: the actions deemed useful by the species or certain members are thought to have led to habits that have become instincts through hereditary transmission. Of these two theories, the first has the advantage of incorporating hereditary transmission without significant objections; the accidental change it posits as the origin of instinct is not seen as acquired by the individual but rather as inherent in the germ. However, it fails to explain the complex instincts of many insects. These instincts clearly could not have achieved their current level of complexity all at once; they have likely evolved, but in the neo-Darwinian framework, the evolution of instinct could only occur through a gradual addition of new components that, by some happy accident, fit into the old ones. It is clear that, in most cases, instinct could not have refined itself through simple addition: each new component actually requires a complete restructuring of the whole to avoid degradation. How could mere chance possibly cause such a restructuring? I agree that an accidental change in the germ can be passed down and may wait for further random changes to complicate it. I also agree that natural selection can eliminate the more complex instinct forms that aren't fit to survive. However, for the instinct to evolve, viable complexities must be produced. These will only be created if, in certain instances, adding a new element leads to changes in all the old elements. No one would argue that chance could accomplish such a miracle: we must appeal to intelligence in some form. We would need to assume that it is through some more or less conscious effort that living beings develop more advanced instincts. But then we would have to accept that an acquired habit can become hereditary and that this happens often enough to result in evolution. This is, to put it mildly, uncertain. Even if we could trace animal instincts to intelligently acquired habits passed down through generations, it’s unclear how this explanation could apply to the plant kingdom, where effort is never intelligent, even if it is sometimes conscious. Yet, when we observe with what certainty and precision climbing plants use their tendrils, and the wonderfully coordinated maneuvers orchids perform to attract insects for fertilization, how can we not think that these are numerous instincts?
This is not saying that the theory of the neo-Darwinians must be altogether rejected, any more than that of the neo-Lamarckians. The first are probably right in holding that evolution takes place from germ to germ rather than from individual to individual; the second are right in saying that at the origin of instinct there is an effort (although it is something quite different, we believe, from an intelligent effort). But the former are probably wrong when they make the evolution of instinct an accidental evolution, and the latter when they regard the effort from which instinct proceeds as an individual effort. The effort by which a species modifies its instinct, and modifies itself as well, must be a much deeper thing, dependent solely neither on circumstances nor on individuals. It is not purely accidental, although accident has a large place in it; and it does not depend solely on the initia[Pg 171]tive of individuals, although individuals collaborate in it.
This doesn't mean that we should completely dismiss the theory of the neo-Darwinians any more than we should reject that of the neo-Lamarckians. The neo-Darwinians are likely correct in believing that evolution occurs from germ to germ rather than from individual to individual; the neo-Lamarckians are right in saying that there is an effort at the root of instinct (even though we think it's something quite different from an intelligent effort). However, the former are probably mistaken in claiming that the evolution of instinct is an accidental evolution, and the latter are wrong to see the effort that leads to instinct as an individual effort. The effort through which a species alters its instinct and transforms itself must be much more profound, not solely dependent on circumstances or individuals. It isn’t entirely random, though chance plays a significant role in it; and it doesn’t rely entirely on the initiative of individuals, even while individuals do contribute to it.
Compare the different forms of the same instinct in different species of hymenoptera. The impression derived is not always that of an increasing complexity made of elements that have been added together one after the other. Nor does it suggest the idea of steps up a ladder. Rather do we think, in many cases at least, of the circumference of a circle, from different points of which these different varieties have started, all facing the same centre, all making an effort in that direction, but each approaching it only to the extent of its means, and to the extent also to which this central point has been illumined for it. In other words, instinct is everywhere complete, but it is more or less simplified, and, above all, simplified differently. On the other hand, in cases where we do get the impression of an ascending scale, as if one and the same instinct had gone on complicating itself more and more in one direction and along a straight line, the species which are thus arranged by their instincts into a linear series are by no means always akin. Thus, the comparative study, in recent years, of the social instinct in the different apidae proves that the instinct of the meliponines is intermediary in complexity between the still rudimentary tendency of the humble bees and the consummate science of the true bees; yet there can be no kinship between the bees and the meliponines.[69] Most likely, the degree of complexity of these different societies has nothing to do with any greater or smaller number of added elements. We seem rather to be before a musical theme, which had first been transposed, the theme as a whole, into a certain number of tones and on which, still the whole theme, different variations had been played, some very simple, others very skilful.[Pg 172] As to the original theme, it is everywhere and nowhere. It is in vain that we try to express it in terms of any idea: it must have been, originally, felt rather than thought. We get the same impression before the paralyzing instinct of certain wasps. We know that the different species of hymenoptera that have this paralyzing instinct lay their eggs in spiders, beetles or caterpillars, which, having first been subjected by the wasp to a skilful surgical operation, will go on living motionless a certain number of days, and thus provide the larvae with fresh meat. In the sting which they give to the nerve-centres of their victim, in order to destroy its power of moving without killing it, these different species of hymenoptera take into account, so to speak, the different species of prey they respectively attack. The Scolia, which attacks a larva of the rose-beetle, stings it in one point only, but in this point the motor ganglia are concentrated, and those ganglia alone: the stinging of other ganglia might cause death and putrefaction, which it must avoid.[70] The yellow-winged Sphex, which has chosen the cricket for its victim, knows that the cricket has three nerve-centres which serve its three pairs of legs—or at least it acts as if it knew this. It stings the insect first under the neck, then behind the prothorax, and then where the thorax joins the abdomen.[71] The Ammophila Hirsuta gives nine successive strokes of its sting upon nine nerve-centres of its caterpillar, and then seizes the head and squeezes it in its mandibles, enough to cause paralysis without death.[72] The general theme is "the necessity of paralyzing without killing"; the variations are subordinated to the structure of the victim on which they are played. No doubt the operation is not[Pg 173] always perfect. It has recently been shown that the Ammophila sometimes kills the caterpillar instead of paralyzing it, that sometimes also it paralyzes it incompletely.[73] But, because instinct is, like intelligence, fallible, because it also shows individual deviations, it does not at all follow that the instinct of the Ammophila has been acquired, as has been claimed, by tentative intelligent experiments. Even supposing that the Ammophila has come in course of time to recognize, one after another, by tentative experiment, the points of its victim which must be stung to render it motionless, and also the special treatment that must be inflicted on the head to bring about paralysis without death, how can we imagine that elements so special of a knowledge so precise have been regularly transmitted, one by one, by heredity? If, in all our present experience, there were a single indisputable example of a transmission of this kind, the inheritance of acquired characters would be questioned by no one. As a matter of fact, the hereditary transmission of a contracted habit is effected in an irregular and far from precise manner, supposing it is ever really effected at all.
Compare the different ways the same instinct shows up in various species of hymenoptera. The impression we get isn't always that of increasing complexity built from one element added after another. It doesn’t evoke the idea of climbing a ladder either. Instead, we often think of a circle, with different varieties starting from various points but all facing the same center, all making an effort in that direction, but only reaching it according to their capabilities and how much that center is understood. In other words, instinct is complete everywhere, but it's simplified to varying degrees, and, most importantly, simplified in different ways. On the other hand, when we do perceive an ascending scale, as if one instinct has become more and more complex in one direction along a straight line, the species lined up by their instincts in a series aren’t necessarily closely related. Recent comparative studies of the social instincts among different apidae show that the instinct of meliponines is in between the still basic tendencies of humble bees and the advanced behavior of true bees; yet there’s no direct kinship between the bees and meliponines.[69] It's likely that the complexity of these various societies isn't directly related to a greater or lesser number of added elements. It feels more like a musical theme that has been transposed into several tones, with various interpretations performed on it, some very simple and others quite skillful.[Pg 172] As for the original theme, it's present everywhere and nowhere. It’s pointless to try to articulate it with any single idea: it must have been originally felt rather than thought. We have a similar impression with the paralyzing instinct of certain wasps. We know that the various hymenoptera species with this paralyzing instinct lay their eggs in spiders, beetles, or caterpillars, which, after being skillfully operated on by the wasp, continue to live without moving for several days, providing fresh meat for the larvae. When they sting the nerve centers of their victim to paralyze it without killing it, these hymenoptera take into account, so to speak, the different types of prey they target. The Scolia, which preys on a rose-beetle larva, stings it in just one specific spot, where the motor ganglia are concentrated, and only those ganglia; stinging other ganglia might cause death and rotting, which they need to avoid.[70] The yellow-winged Sphex, which targets crickets, knows that crickets have three nerve centers for their three pairs of legs—or at least it acts as if it knows this. It first stings the insect under the neck, then behind the prothorax, and finally where the thorax meets the abdomen.[71] The Ammophila Hirsuta delivers nine consecutive stings to nine nerve centers of its caterpillar, and then grips the head with its mandibles tightly enough to cause paralysis but not death.[72] The overall theme is "the need to paralyze without killing"; the variations depend on the victim's structure. Of course, the operation isn't[Pg 173] always flawless. It has recently been shown that the Ammophila sometimes kills the caterpillar instead of paralyzing it, and at times it also partially paralyzes it.[73] However, because instinct is fallible like intelligence and shows individual variations, it doesn’t mean that the Ammophila's instinct was developed through intelligent trial and error as has been suggested. Even if the Ammophila has gradually learned, through experimentation, which parts to sting to immobilize its victim and the specific treatment needed on the head to cause paralysis without death, how can we conceive of such specialized knowledge being passed down, element by element, through heredity? If there were even one clear example of such a transmission in all our experience, no one would question the inheritance of acquired traits. In reality, the hereditary transmission of a learned behavior happens in a random and imprecise way, assuming it ever truly occurs.
But the whole difficulty comes from our desire to express the knowledge of the hymenoptera in terms of intelligence. It is this that compels us to compare the Ammophila with the entomologist, who knows the caterpillar as he knows everything else—from the outside, and without having on his part a special or vital interest. The Ammophila, we imagine, must learn, one by one, like the entomologist, the positions of the nerve-centres of the caterpillar—must acquire at least the practical knowledge of these positions by trying the effects of its sting. But there is no need for such a view if we suppose a sympathy (in the etymological sense of the word) between[Pg 174] the Ammophila and its victim, which teaches it from within, so to say, concerning the vulnerability of the caterpillar. This feeling of vulnerability might owe nothing to outward perception, but result from the mere presence together of the Ammophila and the caterpillar, considered no longer as two organisms, but as two activities. It would express, in a concrete form, the relation of the one to the other. Certainly, a scientific theory cannot appeal to considerations of this kind. It must not put action before organization, sympathy before perception and knowledge. But, once more, either philosophy has nothing to see here, or its rôle begins where that of science ends.
But the whole challenge comes from our urge to explain the knowledge of the hymenoptera in terms of intelligence. This makes us compare the Ammophila to the entomologist, who understands the caterpillar just like he does everything else—from an outside perspective, without having a special or deep interest in it. We imagine that the Ammophila must learn, one by one, like the entomologist, the locations of the nerve-centers of the caterpillar—it must gain at least practical knowledge of these positions by testing the effects of its sting. However, this perspective isn't necessary if we think of a sympathy (in the original sense of the word) between[Pg 174] the Ammophila and its victim, which inherently teaches it about the caterpillar's vulnerabilities. This sense of vulnerability might not come from external observation, but rather from the mere coexistence of the Ammophila and the caterpillar, viewed not as two separate organisms, but as two interacting activities. It would express, in a tangible way, the relation of one to the other. Certainly, a scientific theory shouldn't rely on ideas like this. It must prioritize action over organization, and sympathy over perception and knowledge. But once again, either philosophy has nothing to contribute here, or its role begins where science's ends.
Whether it makes instinct a "compound reflex," or a habit formed intelligently that has become automatism, or a sum of small accidental advantages accumulated and fixed by selection, in every case science claims to resolve instinct completely either into intelligent actions, or into mechanisms built up piece by piece like those combined by our intelligence. I agree indeed that science is here within its function. It gives us, in default of a real analysis of the object, a translation of this object in terms of intelligence. But is it not plain that science itself invites philosophy to consider things in another way? If our biology was still that of Aristotle, if it regarded the series of living beings as unilinear, if it showed us the whole of life evolving towards intelligence and passing, to that end, through sensibility and instinct, we should be right, we, the intelligent beings, in turning back towards the earlier and consequently inferior manifestations of life and in claiming to fit them, without deforming them, into the molds of our understanding. But one of the clearest results of biology has been to show that evolution has taken place along divergent lines. It is at the extremity of two of these lines—the two principal—that we find[Pg 175] intelligence and instinct in forms almost pure. Why, then, should instinct be resolvable into intelligent elements? Why, even, into terms entirely intelligible? Is it not obvious that to think here of the intelligent, or of the absolutely intelligible, is to go back to the Aristotelian theory of nature? No doubt it is better to go back to that than to stop short before instinct as before an unfathomable mystery. But, though instinct is not within the domain of intelligence, it is not situated beyond the limits of mind. In the phenomena of feeling, in unreflecting sympathy and antipathy, we experience in ourselves—though under a much vaguer form, and one too much penetrated with intelligence—something of what must happen in the consciousness of an insect acting by instinct. Evolution does but sunder, in order to develop them to the end, elements which, at their origin, interpenetrated each other. More precisely, intelligence is, before anything else, the faculty of relating one point of space to another, one material object to another; it applies to all things, but remains outside them; and of a deep cause it perceives only the effects spread out side by side. Whatever be the force that is at work in the genesis of the nervous system of the caterpillar, to our eyes and our intelligence it is only a juxtaposition of nerves and nervous centres. It is true that we thus get the whole outer effect of it. The Ammophila, no doubt, discerns but a very little of that force, just what concerns itself; but at least it discerns it from within, quite otherwise than by a process of knowledge—by an intuition (lived rather than represented), which is probably like what we call divining sympathy.
Whether it turns instinct into a "compound reflex," or a habit that has become automatic through intelligent formation, or a collection of small accidental advantages that have been established and refined by selection, science claims to fully break down instinct into either intelligent actions or mechanisms that are constructed piece by piece in the way our intelligence operates. I do agree that science is operating within its purpose here. Lacking a true analysis of the subject, it gives us a version of this subject in terms of intelligence. But isn't it clear that science itself encourages philosophy to look at things in a different way? If our biology still followed Aristotle, viewing the series of living beings as a straight line, showing life evolving toward intelligence and passing through sensitivity and instinct along the way, then we, the intelligent beings, would be justified in turning back to the earlier and therefore lesser expressions of life and insisting on fitting them, without distorting them, into the frameworks of our understanding. However, one of biology's clearest findings has been to demonstrate that evolution has occurred along diverging paths. At the ends of two of these paths—the two main ones—we find[Pg 175] intelligence and instinct in nearly pure forms. So, why should instinct be broken down into intelligent components? Why should it even be explained in fully understandable terms? Isn't it evident that trying to think of the intelligent or the completely intelligible leads us back to the Aristotelian view of nature? Certainly, it's better to return to that than to stop short before instinct as if it were a mystery we can't grasp. But while instinct may not fall within the realm of intelligence, it is not beyond the limits of the mind. In feelings, in unthought sympathy and antipathy, we can experience—though in a much vaguer manner, one too intertwined with intelligence—something similar to what must occur in an insect’s consciousness acting on instinct. Evolution merely separates elements to develop them fully, elements that were originally interwoven. More specifically, intelligence is, above all, the ability to relate one point in space to another, one material object to another; it applies to everything but remains outside of them, and recognizes only the effects of a deep cause laid out beside each other. Whatever the force behind the development of the nervous system in the caterpillar, to our eyes and our understanding, it appears merely as a collection of nerves and nerve centers. It is true that we thus comprehend the entire external effect of this system. The Ammophila likely perceives only a small part of that force, only what is relevant to itself; yet it perceives it from within, in a way that is completely different from a process of knowledge—through an intuition (lived rather than represented), which likely resembles what we call instinctive empathy.
A very significant fact is the swing to and fro of scientific theories of instinct, from regarding it as intelligent to regarding it as simply intelligible, or, shall I say, between likening it to an intelligence "lapsed" and reducing it[Pg 176] to a pure mechanism.[74] Each of these systems of explanation triumphs in its criticism of the other, the first when it shows us that instinct cannot be a mere reflex, the other when it declares that instinct is something different from intelligence, even fallen into unconsciousness. What can this mean but that they are two symbolisms, equally acceptable in certain respects, and, in other respects, equally inadequate to their object? The concrete explanation, no longer scientific, but metaphysical, must be sought along quite another path, not in the direction of intelligence, but in that of "sympathy."
A very important point is the back-and-forth movement of scientific theories about instinct, from seeing it as intelligent to viewing it as simply understandable, or, should I say, swinging between comparing it to a "lapsed" intelligence and reducing it to just a mechanical process. Each of these explanations succeeds in critiquing the other: the first one shows us that instinct can’t just be a reflex, while the second argues that instinct is distinct from intelligence, even if it has slipped into unconsciousness. What does this mean except that they are two symbols, equally valid in some ways, and, in other aspects, equally insufficient for their purpose? The concrete explanation, no longer scientific but metaphysical, must be sought along a completely different path, not toward intelligence, but toward "sympathy."
Instinct is sympathy. If this sympathy could extend its object and also reflect upon itself, it would give us the key to vital operations—just as intelligence, developed and disciplined, guides us into matter. For—we cannot too often repeat it—intelligence and instinct are turned in opposite directions, the former towards inert matter, the latter towards life. Intelligence, by means of science, which is its work, will deliver up to us more and more completely the secret of physical operations; of life it brings us, and moreover only claims to bring us, a translation in terms of inertia. It goes all round life, taking from outside the greatest possible number of views of it, drawing it into itself instead of entering into it. But it is to the very inwardness of life that intuition leads us—by intuition I mean instinct that has become disinterested, self-conscious, capable of reflecting upon its object and of enlarging it indefinitely.
Instinct is empathy. If this empathy could broaden its focus and also reflect on itself, it would unlock the secrets to vital processes—just like intelligence, when developed and trained, helps us understand the physical world. We can’t say this enough—intelligence and instinct point in opposite directions, the former toward lifeless matter, the latter toward living things. Intelligence, through science, which is its product, will progressively reveal to us the secrets of physical processes; regarding life, it brings us, and claims to bring us, only a translation in terms of inertia. It moves around life, gathering as many perspectives as possible from the outside, pulling them into itself instead of engaging with them directly. But it is to the very essence of life that intuition guides us—by intuition, I mean instinct that has become unbiased, self-aware, able to reflect on its focus and expand it infinitely.
That an effort of this kind is not impossible, is proved[Pg 177] by the existence in man of an aesthetic faculty along with normal perception. Our eye perceives the features of the living being, merely as assembled, not as mutually organized. The intention of life, the simple movement that runs through the lines, that binds them together and gives them significance, escapes it. This intention is just what the artist tries to regain, in placing himself back within the object by a kind of sympathy, in breaking down, by an effort of intuition, the barrier that space puts up between him and his model. It is true that this aesthetic intuition, like external perception, only attains the individual. But we can conceive an inquiry turned in the same direction as art, which would take life in general for its object, just as physical science, in following to the end the direction pointed out by external perception, prolongs the individual facts into general laws. No doubt this philosophy will never obtain a knowledge of its object comparable to that which science has of its own. Intelligence remains the luminous nucleus around which instinct, even enlarged and purified into intuition, forms only a vague nebulosity. But, in default of knowledge properly so called, reserved to pure intelligence, intuition may enable us to grasp what it is that intelligence fails to give us, and indicate the means of supplementing it. On the one hand, it will utilize the mechanism of intelligence itself to show how intellectual molds cease to be strictly applicable; and on the other hand, by its own work, it will suggest to us the vague feeling, if nothing more, of what must take the place of intellectual molds. Thus, intuition may bring the intellect to recognize that life does not quite go into the category of the many nor yet into that of the one; that neither mechanical causality nor finality can give a sufficient interpretation of the vital process. Then, by the sympathetic communication which[Pg 178] it establishes between us and the rest of the living, by the expansion of our consciousness which it brings about, it introduces us into life's own domain, which is reciprocal interpenetration, endlessly continued creation. But, though it thereby transcends intelligence, it is from intelligence that has come the push that has made it rise to the point it has reached. Without intelligence, it would have remained in the form of instinct, riveted to the special object of its practical interest, and turned outward by it into movements of locomotion.
The fact that this kind of effort isn’t impossible is shown[Pg 177] by humanity's ability to appreciate aesthetics alongside normal perception. Our eyes see the characteristics of living beings merely as combinations, not as interconnected parts. The essence of life—the simple movement that flows through the lines, connecting them and giving them meaning—eludes us. This essence is what the artist seeks to capture by empathizing with the subject, breaking down the barrier that space creates between them and their model through intuition. It’s true that this aesthetic intuition, like external perception, can only grasp the individual. However, we can imagine a study aimed in the same direction as art, focusing on life in general, just as physical science extends individual observations into general laws. This philosophy may never gain an understanding of its subject that matches the clarity that science has of its own. Intelligence remains the bright core around which instinct, even when refined into intuition, forms only a hazy cloud. But, lacking the kind of knowledge reserved for pure intelligence, intuition can help us understand what intelligence doesn’t provide and suggest ways to fill that gap. On one hand, it will use the tools of intelligence to show how intellectual frameworks become less applicable; on the other hand, through its own work, it will hint at the vague awareness, if nothing else, of what should replace those frameworks. In this way, intuition can lead the intellect to recognize that life doesn’t fit neatly into the categories of many or one; that neither mechanical causality nor purpose can sufficiently explain the process of life. Then, through the empathetic connection[Pg 178] it establishes between us and other living beings, and the expansion of our consciousness it fosters, it introduces us into the realm of life itself, which is about mutual interconnection and endless creation. Even though it goes beyond intelligence, it is intelligence that has driven it to reach this point. Without intelligence, it would have remained as instinct, focused solely on its immediate practical interests and directed outward in movements of locomotion.
How theory of knowledge must take account of these two faculties, intellect and intuition, and how also, for want of establishing a sufficiently clear distinction between them, it becomes involved in inextricable difficulties, creating phantoms of ideas to which there cling phantoms of problems, we shall endeavor to show a little further on. We shall see that the problem of knowledge, from this point of view, is one with the metaphysical problem, and that both one and the other depend upon experience. On the one hand, indeed, if intelligence is charged with matter and instinct with life, we must squeeze them both in order to get the double essence from them; metaphysics is therefore dependent upon theory of knowledge. But, on the other hand, if consciousness has thus split up into intuition and intelligence, it is because of the need it had to apply itself to matter at the same time as it had to follow the stream of life. The double form of consciousness is then due to the double form of the real, and theory of knowledge must be dependent upon metaphysics. In fact, each of these two lines of thought leads to the other; they form a circle, and there can be no other centre to the circle but the empirical study of evolution. It is only in seeing consciousness run through matter, lose itself there and find itself there again, divide and reconstitute[Pg 179] itself, that we shall form an idea of the mutual opposition of the two terms, as also, perhaps, of their common origin. But, on the other hand, by dwelling on this opposition of the two elements and on this identity of origin, perhaps we shall bring out more clearly the meaning of evolution itself.
How the theory of knowledge has to consider these two faculties, intellect and intuition, and how, due to the lack of a clear distinction between them, it gets caught up in complicated issues that create illusions of ideas, which then lead to illusions of problems, we will try to explain a bit further on. We'll see that the issue of knowledge, from this perspective, is closely related to the metaphysical problem, and both depend on experience. On one hand, if intellect deals with matter and intuition with life, we need to extract a dual essence from both; therefore, metaphysics is dependent on the theory of knowledge. On the other hand, if consciousness splits into intuition and intellect, it’s because it needs to engage with matter while also tracking the flow of life. The dual nature of consciousness arises from the dual nature of reality, and the theory of knowledge must rely on metaphysics. In fact, each of these perspectives leads to the other; they form a cycle, and the only center of this cycle is the empirical study of evolution. By observing consciousness as it interacts with matter, gets lost and found again within it, divides, and reassembles itself, we can begin to understand the mutual opposition of these two concepts, and perhaps their shared origin. However, by focusing on this opposition of the two elements and this shared origin, we might also clarify the meaning of evolution itself.
Such will be the aim of our next chapter. But the facts that we have just noticed must have already suggested to us the idea that life is connected either with consciousness or with something that resembles it.
Such will be the goal of our next chapter. However, the facts we've just pointed out should have already given us the idea that life is linked to either consciousness or something that resembles it.
Throughout the whole extent of the animal kingdom, we have said, consciousness seems proportionate to the living being's power of choice. It lights up the zone of potentialities that surrounds the act. It fills the interval between what is done and what might be done. Looked at from without, we may regard it as a simple aid to action, a light that action kindles, a momentary spark flying up from the friction of real action against possible actions. But we must also point out that things would go on in just the same way if consciousness, instead of being the effect, were the cause. We might suppose that consciousness, even in the most rudimentary animal, covers by right an enormous field, but is compressed in fact in a kind of vise: each advance of the nervous centres, by giving the organism a choice between a larger number of actions, calls forth the potentialities that are capable of surrounding the real, thus opening the vise wider and allowing consciousness to pass more freely. In this second hypothesis, as in the first, consciousness is still the instrument of action; but it is even more true to say that action is the instrument of consciousness; for the complicating of action with action, and the opposing of action to action, are for the imprisoned consciousness the only possible means to set itself free. How, then, shall we choose between the two hypotheses?[Pg 180] If the first is true, consciousness must express exactly, at each instant, the state of the brain; there is strict parallelism (so far as intelligible) between the psychical and the cerebral state. On the second hypothesis, on the contrary, there is indeed solidarity and interdependence between the brain and consciousness, but not parallelism: the more complicated the brain becomes, thus giving the organism greater choice of possible actions, the more does consciousness outrun its physical concomitant. Thus, the recollection of the same spectacle probably modifies in the same way a dog's brain and a man's brain, if the perception has been the same; yet the recollection must be very different in the man's consciousness from what it is in the dog's. In the dog, the recollection remains the captive of perception; it is brought back to consciousness only when an analogous perception recalls it by reproducing the same spectacle, and then it is manifested by the recognition, acted rather than thought, of the present perception much more than by an actual reappearance of the recollection itself. Man, on the contrary, is capable of calling up the recollection at will, at any moment, independently of the present perception. He is not limited to playing his past life again; he represents and dreams it. The local modification of the brain to which the recollection is attached being the same in each case, the psychological difference between the two recollections cannot have its ground in a particular difference of detail between the two cerebral mechanisms, but in the difference between the two brains taken each as a whole. The more complex of the two, in putting a greater number of mechanisms in opposition to one another, has enabled consciousness to disengage itself from the restraint of one and all and to reach independence. That things do happen in this way, that the second of the two hypotheses is that which must[Pg 181] be chosen, is what we have tried to prove, in a former work, by the study of facts that best bring into relief the relation of the conscious state to the cerebral state, the facts of normal and pathological recognition, in particular the forms of aphasia.[75] But it could have been proved by pure reasoning, before even it was evidenced by facts. We have shown on what self-contradictory postulate, on what confusion of two mutually incompatible symbolisms, the hypothesis of equivalence between the cerebral state and the psychic state rests.[76]
Throughout the entire animal kingdom, we’ve noted that consciousness seems to relate directly to a living being's ability to make choices. It illuminates the range of possibilities that surrounds an action. It fills the gap between what is done and what could be done. Looking from the outside, we can see it as a simple aid to action, a light sparked by the friction of real actions against possible ones. However, it's important to recognize that things would continue in the same manner even if consciousness were the cause rather than the effect. We might think that consciousness, even in the most basic animal, inherently covers a vast area but is actually constrained in a kind of vise: each development of the nervous system gives the organism more choices, thus triggering the potential surrounding the real, which loosens the vise and allows consciousness to flow more freely. In this second scenario, as in the first, consciousness is still a tool for action; however, it’s even more accurate to say that action serves as a tool for consciousness. The interplay of actions and the opposition of actions provide the trapped consciousness its only means of liberation. So, how should we choose between the two theories? If the first is true, consciousness must precisely reflect the brain's state at every moment; there is a strict parallel (as far as we can understand) between the mental and brain states. In contrast, the second theory shows that while there is a connection and interdependence between the brain and consciousness, there isn’t a parallel: as the brain becomes more complex, offering the organism a broader range of actions, consciousness exceeds its physical counterpart. For example, the memory of the same experience probably affects a dog’s brain and a human’s brain similarly if their perception is the same; yet the memory must be very different in the human’s consciousness compared to that of the dog. In the dog, the memory remains bound to perception; it resurfaces in consciousness only when a similar perception recalls it by recreating the same experience, and it’s shown more by the recognition of the present perception than by an actual reappearance of the memory itself. In contrast, a human can summon that memory at will, at any moment, regardless of current perception. They are not restricted to merely replaying their past; they can represent and dream it. Since the local change in the brain related to the memory is the same in both cases, the psychological differences in the two memories cannot stem from specific differences in the details of the two brain mechanisms, but rather from the differences in the overall complexity of the two brains. The more complex brain, which has more mechanisms interacting with each other, has allowed consciousness to free itself from all constraints and achieve independence. We have argued that this is how things operate, and that the second of the two theories is the one to adopt, as we attempted to demonstrate in a previous work by examining facts that highlight the connection between the conscious state and the brain state, particularly looking at normal and pathological recognition, including different forms of aphasia. But it could have been proved logically, before it was supported by facts. We have explained the self-contradictory assumptions and the confusion of two inconsistent symbolisms upon which the hypothesis of equivalence between the brain state and the mental state is based.
The evolution of life, looked at from this point, receives a clearer meaning, although it cannot be subsumed under any actual idea. It is as if a broad current of consciousness had penetrated matter, loaded, as all consciousness is, with an enormous multiplicity of interwoven potentialities. It has carried matter along to organization, but its movement has been at once infinitely retarded and infinitely divided. On the one hand, indeed, consciousness has had to fall asleep, like the chrysalis in the envelope in which it is preparing for itself wings; and, on the other hand, the manifold tendencies it contained have been distributed among divergent series of organisms which, moreover, express these tendencies outwardly in movements rather than internally in representations. In the course of this evolution, while some beings have fallen more and more asleep, others have more and more completely awakened, and the torpor of some has served the activity of others. But the waking could be effected in two different ways. Life, that is to say consciousness launched into matter, fixed its attention either on its own movement or on the matter it was passing through; and it has thus[Pg 182] been turned either in the direction of intuition or in that of intellect. Intuition, at first sight, seems far preferable to intellect, since in it life and consciousness remain within themselves. But a glance at the evolution of living beings shows us that intuition could not go very far. On the side of intuition, consciousness found itself so restricted by its envelope that intuition had to shrink into instinct, that is, to embrace only the very small portion of life that interested it; and this it embraces only in the dark, touching it while hardly seeing it. On this side, the horizon was soon shut out. On the contrary, consciousness, in shaping itself into intelligence, that is to say in concentrating itself at first on matter, seems to externalize itself in relation to itself; but, just because it adapts itself thereby to objects from without, it succeeds in moving among them and in evading the barriers they oppose to it, thus opening to itself an unlimited field. Once freed, moreover, it can turn inwards on itself, and awaken the potentialities of intuition which still slumber within it.
The evolution of life, viewed from this perspective, becomes clearer, although it can't be fully captured by any single idea. It's as if a broad stream of consciousness has infused matter, carrying with it a vast array of intertwined possibilities. This current has moved matter toward organization, but its progress has been both incredibly slow and widely scattered. On one hand, consciousness has had to "fall asleep," like a chrysalis encased in its shell, preparing for its wings; on the other hand, the many tendencies within it have branched out among different series of organisms, which express these tendencies through actions rather than internal thoughts. Throughout this evolution, while some beings have become increasingly dormant, others have awakened more fully, and the inactivity of some has fueled the activity of others. However, awakening could happen in two distinct ways. Life, meaning consciousness embodied in matter, either focused on its own movement or on the matter it was moving through; as a result, it has been directed either towards intuition or towards intellect. At first glance, intuition seems more appealing than intellect since, within it, life and consciousness remain self-contained. But a look at the evolution of living beings reveals that intuition could only go so far. On the intuitive side, consciousness became so constrained by its shell that intuition had to shrink into instinct, meaning it could only engage with a tiny aspect of life that caught its attention, and even then, it did so in a vague manner, barely perceiving it. Here, the horizon quickly closed off. In contrast, as consciousness developed into intelligence—essentially by focusing on matter—it seems to externalize itself. However, because it adapts to external objects, it can navigate among them and get around the barriers they present, thus opening an unlimited expanse. Once freed, it can also turn inward on itself and awaken the latent potentialities of intuition that still lie within.
From this point of view, not only does consciousness appear as the motive principle of evolution, but also, among conscious beings themselves, man comes to occupy a privileged place. Between him and the animals the difference is no longer one of degree, but of kind. We shall show how this conclusion is arrived at in our next chapter. Let us now show how the preceding analyses suggest it.
From this perspective, consciousness not only seems to be the driving force of evolution, but among conscious beings, humans hold a unique position. The difference between humans and animals is no longer just a matter of degree, but a matter of type. We'll demonstrate how this conclusion is reached in our next chapter. For now, let's explore how the earlier analyses lead to this idea.
A noteworthy fact is the extraordinary disproportion between the consequences of an invention and the invention itself. We have said that intelligence is modeled on matter and that it aims in the first place at fabrication. But does it fabricate in order to fabricate or does it not pursue involuntarily, and even unconsciously, something entirely different? Fabricating consists in shaping matter, in making it supple and in bending it, in converting it into[Pg 183] an instrument in order to become master of it. It is this mastery that profits humanity, much more even than the material result of the invention itself. Though we derive an immediate advantage from the thing made, as an intelligent animal might do, and though this advantage be all the inventor sought, it is a slight matter compared with the new ideas and new feelings that the invention may give rise to in every direction, as if the essential part of the effect were to raise us above ourselves and enlarge our horizon. Between the effect and the cause the disproportion is so great that it is difficult to regard the cause as producer of its effect. It releases it, whilst settling, indeed, its direction. Everything happens as though the grip of intelligence on matter were, in its main intention, to let something pass that matter is holding back.
A notable point is the huge gap between the effects of an invention and the invention itself. We have mentioned that intelligence is based on physical matter and primarily aims at creating things. But does it create just for the sake of creating, or is it inadvertently and even unconsciously pursuing something completely different? Creating involves shaping matter, making it flexible and malleable, turning it into[Pg 183] a tool to gain control over it. It is this control that benefits humanity far more than the actual material result of the invention. While we gain immediate benefits from the created item, like any intelligent animal might, and even if this benefit is all the inventor aimed for, it pales in comparison to the new ideas and feelings that the invention can inspire in many ways, as if the real purpose of the effect is to elevate us and broaden our perspectives. The gap between the effect and the cause is so vast that it's challenging to see the cause as the creator of its effect. It releases it while certainly determining its direction. Everything seems to suggest that the main goal of intelligence's hold on matter is to allow something to emerge that matter is suppressing.
The same impression arises when we compare the brain of man with that of the animals. The difference at first appears to be only a difference of size and complexity. But, judging by function, there must be something else besides. In the animal, the motor mechanisms that the brain succeeds in setting up, or, in other words, the habits contracted voluntarily, have no other object nor effect than the accomplishment of the movements marked out in these habits, stored in these mechanisms. But, in man, the motor habit may have a second result, out of proportion to the first: it can hold other motor habits in check, and thereby, in overcoming automatism, set consciousness free. We know what vast regions in the human brain language occupies. The cerebral mechanisms that correspond to the words have this in particular, that they can be made to grapple with other mechanisms, those, for instance, that correspond to the things themselves, or even be made to grapple with one another. Meanwhile consciousness, which would have been dragged down and[Pg 184] drowned in the accomplishment of the act, is restored and set free.[77]
The same impression comes up when we compare the human brain with that of animals. At first, the difference seems to be just a matter of size and complexity. However, looking at it from a functional perspective, there must be more to it than that. In animals, the motor functions that the brain establishes, or in other words, the habits developed voluntarily, serve no other purpose or effect than to execute the movements defined by these habits, which are stored in those mechanisms. But in humans, a motor habit can have a secondary effect, out of proportion to the first: it can suppress other motor habits, and in doing so, overcome automatic responses and free consciousness. We see how much space language occupies in the human brain. The brain mechanisms that relate to words have a unique feature: they can interact with other mechanisms, such as those that relate to things themselves, or even engage with one another. Meanwhile, consciousness, which would have been pulled down and overwhelmed by the performance of the action, is restored and liberated.[Pg 184][77]
The difference must therefore be more radical than a superficial examination would lead us to suppose. It is the difference between a mechanism which engages the attention and a mechanism from which it can be diverted. The primitive steam-engine, as Newcomen conceived it, required the presence of a person exclusively employed to turn on and off the taps, either to let the steam into the cylinder or to throw the cold spray into it in order to condense the steam. It is said that a boy employed on this work, and very tired of having to do it, got the idea of tying the handles of the taps, with cords, to the beam of the engine. Then the machine opened and closed the taps itself; it worked all alone. Now, if an observer had compared the structure of this second machine with that of the first without taking into account the two boys left to watch over them, he would have found only a slight difference of complexity. That is, indeed, all we can perceive when we look only at the machines. But if we cast a glance at the two boys, we shall see that whilst one is wholly taken up by the watching, the other is free to go and play as he chooses, and that, from this point of view, the difference between the two machines is radical, the first holding the attention captive, the second setting it at liberty. A difference of the same kind, we think, would be found between the brain of an animal and the human brain.
The difference must be more fundamental than a quick look might suggest. It’s the difference between a system that demands constant attention and one that you can easily step away from. The early steam engine, as Newcomen envisioned it, needed a person dedicated to turning the valves on and off, either allowing steam into the cylinder or spraying cold water to condense it. It’s said that a boy, tired of this job, came up with the idea of tying the valve handles with cords to the engine's beam. This way, the machine could open and close the valves on its own; it operated independently. Now, if someone compared the setup of this new machine with the first one, ignoring the two boys watching over them, they’d notice only a minor difference in complexity. That’s really all we see when focusing solely on the machines. But if we look at the boys, we see that while one is completely focused on monitoring the engine, the other is free to play as he likes. From this perspective, the difference between the two machines becomes significant: the first one keeps attention locked in, while the second one releases it. We believe a similar distinction exists between an animal's brain and the human brain.
If, now, we should wish to express this in terms of[Pg 185] finality, we should have to say that consciousness, after having been obliged, in order to set itself free, to divide organization into two complementary parts, vegetables on one hand and animals on the other, has sought an issue in the double direction of instinct and of intelligence. It has not found it with instinct, and it has not obtained it on the side of intelligence except by a sudden leap from the animal to man. So that, in the last analysis, man might be considered the reason for the existence of the entire organization of life on our planet. But this would be only a manner of speaking. There is, in reality, only a current of existence and the opposing current; thence proceeds the whole evolution of life. We must now grasp more closely the opposition of these two currents. Perhaps we shall thus discover for them a common source. By this we shall also, no doubt, penetrate the most obscure regions of metaphysics. However, as the two directions we have to follow are clearly marked, in intelligence on the one hand, in instinct and intuition on the other, we are not afraid of straying. A survey of the evolution of life suggests to us a certain conception of knowledge, and also a certain metaphysics, which imply each other. Once made clear, this metaphysics and this critique may throw some light, in their turn, on evolution as a whole.
If we want to sum this up in terms of[Pg 185] finality, we would need to say that consciousness, in its effort to break free, has divided life into two complementary parts: plants on one side and animals on the other. It has looked for a way out through both instinct and intelligence. It hasn't found it through instinct, and only achieved it through intelligence by making a sudden leap from animals to humans. Therefore, in the end, one could argue that humans exist to justify the entire organization of life on our planet. But that's just a way of putting it. In reality, there's just a flow of existence and its opposite; this is what drives the whole evolution of life. Now we need to look more closely at the contrast between these two flows. Maybe we'll find a common source for them. By doing this, we'll likely delve into the most complicated areas of metaphysics. However, since we have two clearly defined paths to follow—intelligence on one side, and instinct and intuition on the other—we won't stray off course. Examining the evolution of life gives us a specific view of knowledge and a corresponding metaphysics that are interconnected. Once clarified, this metaphysics and critique could, in turn, shed light on evolution as a whole.
FOOTNOTES:
[51] This view of adaptation has been noted by M.F. Marin in a remarkable article on the origin of species, "L'Origine des espèces" (Revue scientifique, Nov. 1901, p. 580).
[51] M.F. Marin pointed out this perspective on adaptation in a fascinating article about the origin of species, "L'Origine des espèces" (Revue scientifique, Nov. 1901, p. 580).
[54] Cope, op. cit. p. 76.
[55] Just as the plant, in certain cases, recovers the faculty of moving actively which slumbers in it, so the animal, in exceptional circumstances, can replace itself in the conditions of the vegetative life and develop in itself an equivalent of the chlorophyllian function. It appears, indeed, from recent experiments of Maria von Linden, that the chrysalides and the caterpillars of certain lepidoptera, under the influence of light, fix the carbon of the carbonic acid contained in the atmosphere (M. von Linden, "L'Assimilation de l'acide carbonique par les chrysalides de Lépidoptères," C.R. de la Soc. de biologie, 1905, pp. 692 ff.).
[55] Just like some plants can regain the ability to move actively that lies dormant within them, animals, in rare situations, can revert to a state of vegetative life and develop a function similar to chlorophyll. Recent experiments by Maria von Linden show that the chrysalises and caterpillars of certain butterflies can, under the influence of light, absorb carbon from the carbon dioxide in the atmosphere (M. von Linden, "L'Assimilation de l'acide carbonique par les chrysalides de Lépidoptères," C.R. de la Soc. de biologie, 1905, pp. 692 ff.).
[56] Archives de physiologie, 1892.
[57] De Manacéine, "Quelques observations expérimentales sur l'influence de l'insomnie absolue" (Arch. ital. de biologie, t. xxi., 1894, pp. 322 ff.). Recently, analogous observations have been made on a man who died of inanition after a fast of thirty-five days. See, on this subject, in the Année biologique of 1898, p. 338, the résumé of an article (in Russian) by Tarakevitch and Stchasny.
[57] De Manacéine, "Some Experimental Observations on the Influence of Absolute Insomnia" (Arch. ital. de biologie, vol. xxi, 1894, pp. 322 ff.). Recently, similar observations have been recorded about a man who died of starvation after fasting for thirty-five days. For more on this topic, see the summary of an article (in Russian) by Tarakevitch and Stchasny in the Année biologique of 1898, p. 338.
[58] Cuvier said: "The nervous system is, at bottom, the whole animal; the other systems are there only to serve it." ("Sur un nouveau rapprochement à établir entre les classes qui composent le regne animal," Arch. du Muséum d'histoire naturelle, Paris, 1812, pp. 73-84.) Of course, it would be necessary to apply a great many restrictions to this formula—for example, to allow for the cases of degradation and retrogression in which the nervous system passes into the background. And, moreover, with the nervous system must be included the sensorial apparatus on the one hand and the motor on the other, between which it acts as intermediary. Cf. Foster, art. "Physiology," in the Encyclopaedia Britannica, Edinburgh, 1885, p. 17.
[58] Cuvier said: "The nervous system is essentially the whole animal; the other systems exist solely to support it." ("Sur un nouveau rapprochement à établir entre les classes qui composent le regne animal," Arch. du Muséum d'histoire naturelle, Paris, 1812, pp. 73-84.) Clearly, many limitations need to be applied to this statement—for instance, to consider cases of degradation and retrogression where the nervous system becomes less important. Additionally, the nervous system must include both the sensory apparatus on one side and the motor on the other, acting as a link between the two. Cf. Foster, art. "Physiology," in the Encyclopaedia Britannica, Edinburgh, 1885, p. 17.
[61] This point is disputed by M. René Quinton, who regards the carnivorous and ruminant mammals, as well as certain birds, as subsequent to man (R. Quinton, L'Eau de mer milieu organique, Paris, 1904, p. 435). We may say here that our general conclusions, although very different from M. Quinton's, are not irreconcilable with them; for if evolution has really been such as we represent it, the vertebrates must have made an effort to maintain themselves in the most favorable conditions of activity—the very conditions, indeed, which life had chosen in the beginning.
[61] This point is challenged by M. René Quinton, who considers carnivorous and ruminant mammals, along with certain birds, to have come after humans (R. Quinton, L'Eau de mer milieu organique, Paris, 1904, p. 435). We can say here that our overall conclusions, while quite different from M. Quinton's, are not completely incompatible; because if evolution has truly occurred as we describe, the vertebrates must have strived to stay in the most advantageous conditions for their activities—the very conditions that life initially chose.
[62] M. Paul Lacombe has laid great stress on the important influence that great inventions have exercised on the evolution of humanity (P. Lacombe, De l'histoire considérée comme science, Paris, 1894. See, in particular, pp. 168-247).
[62] M. Paul Lacombe has emphasized the significant impact that major inventions have had on the development of humanity (P. Lacombe, De l'histoire considérée comme science, Paris, 1894. See, in particular, pp. 168-247).
[64] Plato, Phaedrus, 265 E.
[67] Matière et mémoire, chap. i.
[74] See, in particular, among recent works, Bethe, "Dürfen wir den Ameisen und Bienen psychische Qualitäten zuschreiben?" (Arch. f. d. ges. Physiologie, 1898), and Forel, "Un Aperçu de psychologie comparée" (Année psychologique, 1895).
[74] Check out, especially in recent works, Bethe, "Can we attribute mental qualities to ants and bees?" (Arch. f. d. ges. Physiologie, 1898), and Forel, "An Overview of Comparative Psychology" (Année psychologique, 1895).
[77] A geologist whom we have already had occasion to cite, N.S. Shaler, well says that "when we come to man, it seems as if we find the ancient subjection of mind to body abolished, and the intellectual parts develop with an extraordinary rapidity, the structure of the body remaining identical in essentials" (Shaler, The Interpretation of Nature, Boston, 1899, p. 187).
[77] A geologist we've referenced before, N.S. Shaler, accurately states that "when it comes to humans, it appears that the old dominance of the mind over the body has disappeared, and the intellectual side develops at an extraordinary pace, while the body's structure remains fundamentally the same" (Shaler, The Interpretation of Nature, Boston, 1899, p. 187).
CHAPTER III
ON THE MEANING OF LIFE—THE ORDER OF NATURE AND THE FORM OF INTELLIGENCE[Pg 186]
ON THE MEANING OF LIFE—THE ORDER OF NATURE AND THE FORM OF INTELLIGENCE[Pg 186]
In the course of our first chapter we traced a line of demarcation between the inorganic and the organized, but we pointed out that the division of unorganized matter into separate bodies is relative to our senses and to our intellect, and that matter, looked at as an undivided whole, must be a flux rather than a thing. In this we were preparing the way for a reconciliation between the inert and the living.
In the first chapter, we drew a distinction between the inorganic and the organized, but we noted that the separation of unorganized matter into distinct entities depends on our senses and our understanding. When viewed as a single entity, matter should be seen as a constant flow rather than as a solid object. This set the stage for reconciling the inert with the living.
On the other side, we have shown in our second chapter that the same opposition is found again between instinct and intelligence, the one turned to certain determinations of life, the other molded on the configuration of matter. But instinct and intelligence, we have also said, stand out from the same background, which, for want of a better name, we may call consciousness in general, and which must be coextensive with universal life. In this way, we have disclosed the possibility of showing the genesis of intelligence in setting out from general consciousness, which embraces it.
On the other hand, we've demonstrated in our second chapter that a similar opposition exists between instinct and intelligence. Instinct is geared toward specific life decisions, while intelligence is shaped by the structure of matter. However, we’ve also noted that both instinct and intelligence emerge from the same background, which we can refer to as consciousness in general, and which should encompass universal life. Thus, we've revealed the potential to trace the development of intelligence starting from this general consciousness that includes it.
We are now, then, to attempt a genesis of intellect at the same time as a genesis of material bodies—two enterprises that are evidently correlative, if it be true that the main lines of our intellect mark out the general form of our action on matter, and that the detail of matter is ruled by the requirements of our action. Intellectuality[Pg 187] and materiality have been constituted, in detail, by reciprocal adaptation. Both are derived from a wider and higher form of existence. It is there that we must replace them, in order to see them issue forth.
We are now going to explore the origin of intellect alongside the origin of physical bodies—two tasks that are clearly interconnected, since it's true that the main aspects of our intellect shape how we interact with matter, and the specifics of matter are determined by our needs for action. Intellect[Pg 187] and physicality have been formed in detail through mutual adaptation. Both come from a broader and more elevated form of existence. It’s there that we need to place them to understand how they emerge.
Such an attempt may appear, at first, more daring than the boldest speculations of metaphysicians. It claims to go further than psychology, further than cosmology, further than traditional metaphysics; for psychology, cosmology and metaphysics take intelligence, in all that is essential to it, as given, instead of, as we now propose, engendering it in its form and in its matter. The enterprise is in reality much more modest, as we are going to show. But let us first say how it differs from others.
Such an attempt might seem, at first, more daring than the most audacious theories of philosophers. It aims to go beyond psychology, beyond cosmology, and beyond traditional metaphysics; because psychology, cosmology, and metaphysics assume intelligence as a given in all its essential aspects, whereas we propose to create it in both its form and substance. However, this endeavor is actually much more modest, as we are about to demonstrate. But first, let’s explain how it differs from others.
To begin with psychology, we are not to believe that it engenders intelligence when it follows the progressive development of it through the animal series. Comparative psychology teaches us that the more an animal is intelligent, the more it tends to reflect on the actions by which it makes use of things, and thus to approximate to man. But its actions have already by themselves adopted the principal lines of human action; they have made out the same general directions in the material world as we have; they depend upon the same objects bound together by the same relations; so that animal intelligence, although it does not form concepts properly so called, already moves in a conceptual atmosphere. Absorbed at every instant by the actions it performs and the attitudes it must adopt, drawn outward by them and so externalized in relation to itself, it no doubt plays rather than thinks its ideas; this play none the less already corresponds, in the main, to the general plan of human intelligence.[78] To explain the intelligence of man by that of the animal consists[Pg 188] then simply in following the development of an embryo of humanity into complete humanity. We show how a certain direction has been followed further and further by beings more and more intelligent. But the moment we admit the direction, intelligence is given.
To start exploring psychology, we shouldn't think that it creates intelligence as it follows its progressive development through the animal kingdom. Comparative psychology shows us that the more intelligent an animal is, the more it tends to reflect on its actions involving the things it uses, thus becoming more like humans. However, its actions already exhibit the main patterns of human behavior; they follow the same general directions in the physical world as we do; they rely on the same objects connected by the same relationships. Therefore, while animal intelligence may not formulate proper concepts, it already operates in a conceptual environment. Constantly engaged in its actions and the positions it must take, it is likely more engaged in play than in thought about its ideas; yet this play still largely aligns with the overall framework of human intelligence.[78] Explaining human intelligence through animal intelligence simply involves tracing the development of a human embryo into full humanity. We illustrate how a certain path has been progressively followed by increasingly intelligent beings. But once we acknowledge that direction, intelligence is established.[Pg 188]
In a cosmogony like that of Spencer, intelligence is taken for granted, as matter also at the same time. We are shown matter obeying laws, objects connected with objects and facts with facts by constant relations, consciousness receiving the imprint of these relations and laws, and thus adopting the general configuration of nature and shaping itself into intellect. But how can we fail to see that intelligence is supposed when we admit objects and facts? A priori and apart from any hypothesis on the nature of the matter, it is evident that the materiality of a body does not stop at the point at which we touch it: a body is present wherever its influence is felt; its attractive force, to speak only of that, is exerted on the sun, on the planets, perhaps on the entire universe. The more physics advances, the more it effaces the individuality of bodies and even of the particles into which the scientific imagination began by decomposing them: bodies and corpuscles tend to dissolve into a universal interaction. Our perceptions give us the plan of our eventual action on things much more than that of things themselves. The outlines we find in objects simply mark what we can attain and modify in them. The lines we see traced through matter are just the paths on which we are called to move. Outlines and paths have declared themselves in the measure and proportion that consciousness has prepared for action on unorganized matter—that is to say, in the measure and proportion that intelligence has been formed. It is doubtful whether animals built on a different plan—a mollusc or an insect, for instance—cut matter up[Pg 189] along the same articulations. It is not indeed necessary that they should separate it into bodies at all. In order to follow the indications of instinct, there is no need to perceive objects, it is enough to distinguish properties. Intelligence, on the contrary, even in its humblest form, already aims at getting matter to act on matter. If on one side matter lends itself to a division into active and passive bodies, or more simply into coexistent and distinct fragments, it is from this side that intelligence will regard it; and the more it busies itself with dividing, the more it will spread out in space, in the form of extension adjoining extension, a matter that undoubtedly itself has a tendency to spatiality, but whose parts are yet in a state of reciprocal implication and interpenetration. Thus the same movement by which the mind is brought to form itself into intellect, that is to say, into distinct concepts, brings matter to break itself up into objects excluding one another. The more consciousness is intellectualized, the more is matter spatialized. So that the evolutionist philosophy, when it imagines in space a matter cut up on the very lines that our action will follow, has given itself in advance, ready made, the intelligence of which it claims to show the genesis.
In a cosmology like Spencer's, intelligence is assumed, just like matter is. We're shown matter following laws, objects linked to other objects and facts connected to facts through constant relationships, with consciousness reflecting these relationships and laws, thereby taking on the overall structure of nature and transforming into intellect. But how can we overlook the fact that intelligence is implied when we acknowledge objects and facts? A priori, and regardless of any theories about the nature of matter, it’s clear that the materiality of a body doesn’t end where we touch it; a body is present wherever its influence is felt. Its gravitational pull, for instance, affects the sun, the planets, and perhaps the entire universe. As physics progresses, it increasingly blurs the individuality of bodies and even the particles that scientific imagination initially broke them down into: bodies and particles tend to dissolve into a universal interaction. Our perceptions guide our eventual actions on things far more than they reveal the nature of the things themselves. The shapes we see in objects simply indicate what we can reach and alter within them. The lines we perceive in matter are just the paths we're meant to follow. These shapes and paths have manifested to the extent that consciousness has prepared for action on unorganized matter—that is, to the extent that intelligence has developed. It’s uncertain whether animals built on a different design—a mollusk or an insect, for instance—segment matter along the same lines we do. They may not even need to separate it into bodies at all. To follow instinct's cue, there’s no need to perceive objects; it's sufficient to recognize properties. Intelligence, on the other hand, even at its most basic level, aims to make matter act on matter. If on one side matter can be divided into active and passive bodies, or simply into coexisting and distinct fragments, that’s how intelligence will view it; and the more it focuses on division, the more it expands in space, in the form of extensions next to each other, accepting that matter has its own inclination towards spatiality, even as its parts exist in a state of mutual implication and interpenetration. Thus, the same movement that leads the mind to develop into intellect, which means forming distinct concepts, causes matter to break itself down into mutually exclusive objects. The more consciousness becomes intellectualized, the more matter is spatialized. Therefore, the evolutionist philosophy, when it envisions in space a matter divided along the exact lines our action will take, has preemptively created the intelligence it claims to demonstrate the origin of.
Metaphysics applies itself to a work of the same kind, though subtler and more self-conscious, when it deduces a priori the categories of thought. It compresses intellect, reduces it to its quintessence, holds it tight in a principle so simple that it can be thought empty: from this principle we then draw out what we have virtually put into it. In this way we may no doubt show the coherence of intelligence, define intellect, give its formula, but we do not trace its genesis. An enterprise like that of Fichte, although more philosophical than that of Spencer, in that it pays more respect to the true order of things, hardly leads us any further. Fichte takes thought in a concentrated[Pg 190] state, and expands it into reality; Spencer starts from external reality, and condenses it into intellect. But, in the one case as in the other, the intellect must be taken at the beginning as given—either condensed or expanded, grasped in itself by a direct vision or perceived by reflection in nature, as in a mirror.
Metaphysics focuses on a similar task, though in a subtler and more aware way, when it deduces a priori the categories of thought. It distills the intellect, reducing it to its essence, holding it tightly in such a simple principle that it might seem empty: from this principle, we draw out what we have essentially placed into it. This method may indeed demonstrate the coherence of intelligence, define intellect, and provide its formula, but we don’t trace its origin. An effort like Fichte’s, while more philosophical than Spencer’s because it respects the true order of things more, hardly advances us any further. Fichte takes thought in a concentrated[Pg 190] form and expands it into reality; Spencer starts from external reality and condenses it into intellect. However, in both cases, the intellect must first be accepted as given—either condensed or expanded, grasped directly or reflected in nature, like in a mirror.
The agreement of most philosophers on this point comes from the fact that they are at one in affirming the unity of nature, and in representing this unity under an abstract and geometrical form. Between the organized and the unorganized they do not see and they will not see the cleft. Some start from the inorganic, and, by compounding it with itself, claim to form the living; others place life first, and proceed towards matter by a skilfully managed decrescendo; but, for both, there are only differences of degree in nature—degrees of complexity in the first hypothesis, of intensity in the second. Once this principle is admitted, intelligence becomes as vast as reality; for it is unquestionable that whatever is geometrical in things is entirely accessible to human intelligence, and if the continuity between geometry and the rest is perfect, all the rest must indeed be equally intelligible, equally intelligent. Such is the postulate of most systems. Any one can easily be convinced of this by comparing doctrines that seem to have no common point, no common measure, those of Fichte and Spencer for instance, two names that we happen to have just brought together.
Most philosophers agree on this point because they all affirm the unity of nature and represent this unity in an abstract and geometric way. They don’t see or won’t acknowledge a divide between organized and unorganized matter. Some start with the inorganic and claim to create the living by combining it with itself, while others prioritize life and move toward matter through a carefully managed decrease in complexity. For both, there are only differences of degree in nature—degrees of complexity in the first case and degrees of intensity in the second. Once this principle is accepted, intelligence becomes as vast as reality itself; it’s undeniable that anything geometric is completely understandable to human intelligence. And if the link between geometry and everything else is perfect, then everything else must also be equally intelligible and intelligent. This is the assumption of most systems. Anyone can easily see this by comparing doctrines that seem unrelated, like those of Fichte and Spencer, for example, two names we happen to have just mentioned.
At the root of these speculations, then, there are the two convictions correlative and complementary, that nature is one and that the function of intellect is to embrace it in its entirety. The faculty of knowing being supposed coextensive with the whole of experience, there can no longer be any question of engendering it. It is already given, and we merely have to use it, as we use our sight to[Pg 191] take in the horizon. It is true that opinions differ as to the value of the result. For some, it is reality itself that the intellect embraces; for others, it is only a phantom. But, phantom or reality, what intelligence grasps is thought to be all that can be attained.
At the core of these ideas, there are two related beliefs: that nature is unified and that our intellect’s job is to understand it completely. Our ability to know is assumed to cover all of our experiences, so there's no question of creating it—it’s already there, and we just need to utilize it, like we use our vision to see the horizon. It's true that opinions vary regarding the value of the outcome. For some, the intellect captures reality itself; for others, it only captures an illusion. But whether it’s an illusion or reality, what our intelligence understands is seen as everything that can be achieved.
Hence the exaggerated confidence of philosophy in the powers of the individual mind. Whether it is dogmatic or critical, whether it admits the relativity of our knowledge or claims to be established within the absolute, a philosophy is generally the work of a philosopher, a single and unitary vision of the whole. It is to be taken or left.
Hence the overly confident belief of philosophy in the abilities of the individual mind. Whether it is assertive or analytical, whether it acknowledges the limitations of our knowledge or insists on existing within the absolute, a philosophy is usually the creation of a philosopher, a singular and unified perspective on everything. It's up to you to accept it or reject it.
More modest, and also alone capable of being completed and perfected, is the philosophy we advocate. Human intelligence, as we represent it, is not at all what Plato taught in the allegory of the cave. Its function is not to look at passing shadows nor yet to turn itself round and contemplate the glaring sun. It has something else to do. Harnessed, like yoked oxen, to a heavy task, we feel the play of our muscles and joints, the weight of the plow and the resistance of the soil. To act and to know that we are acting, to come into touch with reality and even to live it, but only in the measure in which it concerns the work that is being accomplished and the furrow that is being plowed, such is the function of human intelligence. Yet a beneficent fluid bathes us, whence we draw the very force to labor and to live. From this ocean of life, in which we are immersed, we are continually drawing something, and we feel that our being, or at least the intellect that guides it, has been formed therein by a kind of local concentration. Philosophy can only be an effort to dissolve again into the Whole. Intelligence, reabsorbed into its principle, may thus live back again its own genesis. But the enterprise cannot be achieved in one stroke; it is[Pg 192] necessarily collective and progressive. It consists in an interchange of impressions which, correcting and adding to each other, will end by expanding the humanity in us and making us even transcend it.
The philosophy we support is simpler and the only one that can be completed and refined. Human intelligence, as we see it, is not at all what Plato described in the allegory of the cave. Its role isn’t to stare at fleeting shadows or to turn around and face the blinding sun. It has a different purpose. Like oxen pulling a heavy load, we feel the strength of our muscles and joints, the weight of the plow, and the push of the soil. To take action and be aware that we’re acting, to connect with reality and even live it, but only in relation to the task at hand and the furrow we're plowing—this is the role of human intelligence. Yet, a nurturing energy surrounds us, from which we draw the very force needed to work and to live. From this sea of life, in which we are submerged, we are constantly drawing something, and we sense that our existence, or at least the intellect that guides it, has been shaped by a sort of local concentration. Philosophy can only be an attempt to dissolve back into the Whole. Intelligence, reintegrated into its source, may then revisit its own origins. However, this endeavor cannot be accomplished in one go; it is[Pg 192] necessarily collective and gradual. It involves a sharing of insights that, by correcting and adding to one another, will ultimately enlarge our humanity and enable us to transcend it.
But this method has against it the most inveterate habits of the mind. It at once suggests the idea of a vicious circle. In vain, we shall be told, you claim to go beyond intelligence: how can you do that except by intelligence? All that is clear in your consciousness is intelligence. You are inside your own thought; you cannot get out of it. Say, if you like, that the intellect is capable of progress, that it will see more and more clearly into a greater and greater number of things; but do not speak of engendering it, for it is with your intellect itself that you would have to do the work.
But this method faces the most deeply ingrained habits of the mind. It immediately brings to mind the idea of a vicious cycle. We might hear that, despite your claims of going beyond intelligence, how can you do that except through intelligence? Everything clear in your consciousness is intelligence. You are trapped within your own thoughts; you can't escape them. You might say that the intellect is capable of progress, that it will gain a clearer understanding of more and more things; but don't talk about creating it, because you would have to use your own intellect to do the work.
The objection presents itself naturally to the mind. But the same reasoning would prove also the impossibility of acquiring any new habit. It is of the essence of reasoning to shut us up in the circle of the given. But action breaks the circle. If we had never seen a man swim, we might say that swimming is an impossible thing, inasmuch as, to learn to swim, we must begin by holding ourselves up in the water and, consequently, already know how to swim. Reasoning, in fact, always nails us down to the solid ground. But if, quite simply, I throw myself into the water without fear, I may keep myself up well enough at first by merely struggling, and gradually adapt myself to the new environment: I shall thus have learnt to swim. So, in theory, there is a kind of absurdity in trying to know otherwise than by intelligence; but if the risk be frankly accepted, action will perhaps cut the knot that reasoning has tied and will not unloose.
The objection naturally comes to mind. But the same reasoning would also suggest that it's impossible to acquire any new habit. Reasoning tends to confine us to what we already know. However, action breaks that cycle. If we’d never seen someone swim, we might think that swimming is impossible, since to learn to swim, we must start by keeping ourselves afloat in the water and, therefore, already know how to swim. In fact, reasoning keeps us grounded. But if I simply jump into the water without fear, I might manage to stay afloat at first just by struggling, and gradually adjust to the new environment: I will learn to swim. So, theoretically, there’s a kind of absurdity in trying to understand anything without being smart about it; but if we openly accept the risk, action might just untie the knot that reasoning has tied up.
Besides, the risk will appear to grow less, the more our point of view is adopted. We have shown that in[Pg 193]tellect has detached itself from a vastly wider reality, but that there has never been a clean cut between the two; all around conceptual thought there remains an indistinct fringe which recalls its origin. And further we compared the intellect to a solid nucleus formed by means of condensation. This nucleus does not differ radically from the fluid surrounding it. It can only be reabsorbed in it because it is made of the same substance. He who throws himself into the water, having known only the resistance of the solid earth, will immediately be drowned if he does not struggle against the fluidity of the new environment: he must perforce still cling to that solidity, so to speak, which even water presents. Only on this condition can he get used to the fluid's fluidity. So of our thought, when it has decided to make the leap.
Besides, the risk seems to decrease the more our perspective is embraced. We’ve shown that intellect has separated itself from a much broader reality, but there has never been a clear division between the two; all around conceptual thought, there’s still a blurry edge that hints at its origins. Moreover, we compared the intellect to a solid core formed through condensation. This core isn’t fundamentally different from the fluid surrounding it. It can only be reabsorbed into it because it’s made of the same material. Someone who dives into water, having only experienced the resistance of solid ground, will quickly drown if they don’t adapt to the fluidity of the new environment: they must still cling to a sense of solidity, so to speak, that even water offers. Only under this condition can they acclimate to the fluid's nature. The same applies to our thought once it decides to take the plunge.
But leap it must, that is, leave its own environment. Reason, reasoning on its powers, will never succeed in extending them, though the extension would not appear at all unreasonable once it were accomplished. Thousands and thousands of variations on the theme of walking will never yield a rule for swimming: come, enter the water, and when you know how to swim, you will understand how the mechanism of swimming is connected with that of walking. Swimming is an extension of walking, but walking would never have pushed you on to swimming. So you may speculate as intelligently as you will on the mechanism of intelligence; you will never, by this method, succeed in going beyond it. You may get something more complex, but not something higher nor even something different. You must take things by storm: you must thrust intelligence outside itself by an act of will.
But it has to take that leap, which means it has to leave its own environment. Reason, when trying to understand and expand its own abilities, will never succeed in doing so, even though it wouldn’t seem unreasonable once it’s achieved. Thousands of variations on the idea of walking will never create a rule for swimming: come on in, and once you learn how to swim, you’ll see how the process of swimming connects to walking. Swimming is an extension of walking, but walking won’t push you into swimming. So, you can theorize all you want about how intelligence works; you’ll never push past it through this method. You may develop something more complex, but not something higher or even something different. You have to seize the moment: you need to push intelligence beyond itself through a deliberate act of will.
So the vicious circle is only apparent. It is, on the contrary, real, we think, in every other method of philosophy. This we must try to show in a few words, if only[Pg 194] to prove that philosophy cannot and must not accept the relation established by pure intellectualism between the theory of knowledge and the theory of the known, between metaphysics and science.
So the vicious circle seems only to be an illusion. In reality, we believe it exists in every other approach to philosophy. We need to try to express this in a few words, if only[Pg 194] to demonstrate that philosophy cannot and must not accept the connection that pure intellectualism establishes between the theory of knowledge and the theory of what is known, between metaphysics and science.
At first sight, it may seem prudent to leave the consideration of facts to positive science, to let physics and chemistry busy themselves with matter, the biological and psychological sciences with life. The task of the philosopher is then clearly defined. He takes facts and laws from the scientists' hand; and whether he tries to go beyond them in order to reach their deeper causes, or whether he thinks it impossible to go further and even proves it by the analysis of scientific knowledge, in both cases he has for the facts and relations, handed over by science, the sort of respect that is due to a final verdict. To this knowledge he adds a critique of the faculty of knowing, and also, if he thinks proper, a metaphysic; but the matter of knowledge he regards as the affair of science and not of philosophy.
At first glance, it might seem wise to leave the examination of facts to the natural sciences, allowing physics and chemistry to handle matter, while the biological and psychological sciences deal with life. The philosopher's role becomes clear. He takes the facts and laws provided by scientists and whether he attempts to go beyond them in search of deeper causes, or believes it’s impossible to go any further and supports this by analyzing scientific knowledge, in both cases, he holds the facts and relationships handed over by science in the high regard that a final verdict deserves. To this understanding, he adds a critique of the knowing process, and if he deems it necessary, a metaphysical perspective; however, he sees the matter of knowledge as the domain of science, not philosophy.
But how does he fail to see that the real result of this so-called division of labor is to mix up everything and confuse everything? The metaphysic or the critique that the philosopher has reserved for himself he has to receive, ready-made, from positive science, it being already contained in the descriptions and analyses, the whole care of which he left to the scientists. For not having wished to intervene, at the beginning, in questions of fact, he finds himself reduced, in questions of principle, to formulating purely and simply in more precise terms the unconscious and consequently inconsistent metaphysic and critique which the very attitude of science to reality marks out. Let us not be deceived by an apparent analogy between natural things and human things. Here we are not in the judiciary domain, where the description of fact and the[Pg 195] judgment on the fact are two distinct things, distinct for the very simple reason that above the fact, and independent of it, there is a law promulgated by a legislator. Here the laws are internal to the facts and relative to the lines that have been followed in cutting the real into distinct facts. We cannot describe the outward appearance of the object without prejudging its inner nature and its organization. Form is no longer entirely isolable from matter, and he who has begun by reserving to philosophy questions of principle, and who has thereby tried to put philosophy above the sciences, as a "court of cassation" is above the courts of assizes and of appeal, will gradually come to make no more of philosophy than a registration court, charged at most with wording more precisely the sentences that are brought to it, pronounced and irrevocable.
But how can he not see that the real outcome of this so-called division of labor is just to mix everything up and create confusion? The metaphysics or critiques that the philosopher keeps for himself must be taken, fully formed, from positive science, as it’s already included in the descriptions and analyses, all of which he left to the scientists. Because he chose not to get involved in factual questions from the start, he now finds himself, when it comes to principle, just rephrasing the unconscious and thus inconsistent metaphysics and critiques that the very approach of science to reality outlines. Let's not be fooled by a misleading similarity between natural things and human issues. Here we aren't in the judicial realm, where facts and judgments about those facts are separate things, simply because there’s a law enacted by a legislator that exists above and independently of the fact. Here, the laws are embedded within the facts and relate to the methods used to separate reality into distinct facts. We can't describe the external appearance of an object without presupposing its inner nature and structure. Form can no longer be completely separated from matter, and someone who initially reserves questions of principle for philosophy, trying to elevate philosophy above the sciences like a "court of cassation" looks above lower courts, will eventually reduce philosophy to nothing more than a registration office, tasked at most with wording more precisely the sentences that have been presented to it, already declared and unchangeable.
Positive science is, in fact, a work of pure intellect. Now, whether our conception of the intellect be accepted or rejected, there is one point on which everybody will agree with us, and that is that the intellect is at home in the presence of unorganized matter. This matter it makes use of more and more by mechanical inventions, and mechanical inventions become the easier to it the more it thinks matter as mechanism. The intellect bears within itself, in the form of natural logic, a latent geometrism that is set free in the measure and proportion that the intellect penetrates into the inner nature of inert matter. Intelligence is in tune with this matter, and that is why the physics and metaphysics of inert matter are so near each other. Now, when the intellect undertakes the study of life, it necessarily treats the living like the inert, applying the same forms to this new object, carrying over into this new field the same habits that have succeeded so well in the old; and it is right to do so, for only on such[Pg 196] terms does the living offer to our action the same hold as inert matter. But the truth we thus arrive at becomes altogether relative to our faculty of action. It is no more than a symbolic verity. It cannot have the same value as the physical verity, being only an extension of physics to an object which we are a priori agreed to look at only in its external aspect. The duty of philosophy should be to intervene here actively, to examine the living without any reservation as to practical utility, by freeing itself from forms and habits that are strictly intellectual. Its own special object is to speculate, that is to say, to see; its attitude toward the living should not be that of science, which aims only at action, and which, being able to act only by means of inert matter, presents to itself the rest of reality in this single respect. What must the result be, if it leave biological and psychological facts to positive science alone, as it has left, and rightly left, physical facts? It will accept a priori a mechanistic conception of all nature, a conception unreflected and even unconscious, the outcome of the material need. It will a priori accept the doctrine of the simple unity of knowledge and of the abstract unity of nature.
Positive science is essentially a product of pure intellect. Whether or not we agree on what the intellect is, there's one thing everyone can agree on: the intellect thrives when dealing with unorganized matter. It increasingly utilizes this matter through mechanical inventions, which become easier to understand the more we see matter as a mechanism. The intellect inherently contains a kind of natural logic, similar to geometry, that is unleashed as it digs deeper into the essence of inert matter. Intelligence resonates with this matter, which explains why the physics and metaphysics of inert matter are so closely related. When the intellect studies life, it inevitably treats living things like inert matter, applying the same principles to this new subject and transferring the successful methods from the old to the new field. This approach is justified because only under these conditions does life provide the same leverage for our actions as inert matter. However, the conclusions we reach in this way are entirely dependent on our ability to act; they are merely a symbolic truth. They can't hold the same weight as physical truths since they only extend the principles of physics to a subject we have agreed to view solely from its external perspective. Philosophy should step in here and examine living beings without being constrained by practical utility, shedding the purely intellectual forms and habits. Its main aim is to speculate—to observe—and its approach to living things shouldn't mirror that of science, which focuses solely on action and understands reality only through the lens of inert matter. What happens if we leave biological and psychological facts solely to positive science, just as we have appropriately done with physical facts? It will uncritically adopt a mechanistic view of all nature, an idea that is often unreflected and even unconscious, stemming from material needs. It will uncritically accept the notion of a simple unity of knowledge and the abstract unity of nature.
The moment it does so, its fate is sealed. The philosopher has no longer any choice save between a metaphysical dogmatism and a metaphysical skepticism, both of which rest, at bottom, on the same postulate, and neither of which adds anything to positive science. He may hypostasize the unity of nature, or, what comes to the same thing, the unity of science, in a being who is nothing since he does nothing, an ineffectual God who simply sums up in himself all the given; or in an eternal Matter from whose womb have been poured out the properties of things and the laws of nature; or, again, in a pure Form which endeavors to seize an unseizable multiplicity, and which is,[Pg 197] as we will, the form of nature or the form of thought. All these philosophies tell us, in their different languages, that science is right to treat the living as the inert, and that there is no difference of value, no distinction to be made between the results which intellect arrives at in applying its categories, whether it rests on inert matter or attacks life.
The moment it happens, its fate is sealed. The philosopher has no choice but to pick between metaphysical dogmatism and metaphysical skepticism, both of which ultimately rely on the same assumption, and neither of which contributes anything to positive science. He might attribute the unity of nature, or essentially the unity of science, to a being that doesn’t truly exist since it doesn’t do anything, an ineffective God who merely encompasses everything given; or to an eternal Matter that has given birth to the properties of things and the laws of nature; or, again, to a pure Form that tries to grasp an ungraspable multiplicity, and which is, [Pg 197] in whatever form we choose, the form of nature or the form of thought. All these philosophies, in their various ways, tell us that science is justified in treating the living like the inert, and that there’s no difference in value, no distinction to be made between the outcomes that the intellect reaches when applying its categories, whether it focuses on inert matter or engages with life.
In many cases, however, we feel the frame cracking. But as we did not begin by distinguishing between the inert and the living, the one adapted in advance to the frame in which we insert it, the other incapable of being held in the frame otherwise than by a convention which eliminates from it all that is essential, we find ourselves, in the end, reduced to regarding everything the frame contains with equal suspicion. To a metaphysical dogmatism, which has erected into an absolute the factitious unity of science, there succeeds a skepticism or a relativism that universalizes and extends to all the results of science the artificial character of some among them. So philosophy swings to and fro between the doctrine that regards absolute reality as unknowable and that which, in the idea it gives us of this reality, says nothing more than science has said. For having wished to prevent all conflict between science and philosophy, we have sacrificed philosophy without any appreciable gain to science. And for having tried to avoid the seeming vicious circle which consists in using the intellect to transcend the intellect, we find ourselves turning in a real circle, that which consists in laboriously rediscovering by metaphysics a unity that we began by positing a priori, a unity that we admitted blindly and unconsciously by the very act of abandoning the whole of experience to science and the whole of reality to the pure understanding.
In many cases, though, we can sense the framework breaking down. But since we didn’t start by distinguishing between what’s inert and what’s alive—the former already fitting into the framework we place it in, while the latter can only be contained in the framework by a convention that strips away everything essential—we end up looking at everything in that framework with equal suspicion. The metaphysical certainty that has turned the artificial unity of science into an absolute gives way to a skepticism or relativism that applies the artificial nature of some scientific results to all of them. So, philosophy swings back and forth between the belief that absolute reality is unknowable and the idea that, in describing this reality, it's saying nothing more than what science has said. In trying to prevent any conflict between science and philosophy, we have sacrificed philosophy without gaining anything significant for science. And in our attempt to avoid the seemingly vicious cycle of using the mind to go beyond the mind, we find ourselves trapped in a real cycle: laboriously rediscovering through metaphysics a unity we initially assumed a priori, a unity we blindly accepted by abandoning all experience to science and all reality to pure understanding.
Let us begin, on the contrary, by tracing a line of de[Pg 198]marcation between the inert and the living. We shall find that the inert enters naturally into the frames of the intellect, but that the living is adapted to these frames only artificially, so that we must adopt a special attitude towards it and examine it with other eyes than those of positive science. Philosophy, then, invades the domain of experience. She busies herself with many things which hitherto have not concerned her. Science, theory of knowledge, and metaphysics find themselves on the same ground. At first there may be a certain confusion. All three may think they have lost something. But all three will profit from the meeting.
Let’s start by drawing a clear line between the non-living and the living. We’ll see that the non-living easily fits into our understanding, while the living only fits into these understandings artificially, requiring us to take a different approach and view it from perspectives beyond just positive science. Philosophy, then, steps into the realm of experience. It engages with many subjects that haven’t been its concern before. Science, theories of knowledge, and metaphysics now find themselves on common ground. Initially, there might be some confusion. All three might feel like they’ve lost something. But in the end, they will all benefit from this collaboration.
Positive science, indeed, may pride itself on the uniform value attributed to its affirmations in the whole field of experience. But, if they are all placed on the same footing, they are all tainted with the same relativity. It is not so, if we begin by making the distinction which, in our view, is forced upon us. The understanding is at home in the domain of unorganized matter. On this matter human action is naturally exercised; and action, as we said above, cannot be set in motion in the unreal. Thus, of physics—so long as we are considering only its general form and not the particular cutting out of matter in which it is manifested—we may say that it touches the absolute. On the contrary, it is by accident—chance or convention, as you please—that science obtains a hold on the living analogous to the hold it has on matter. Here the use of conceptual frames is no longer natural. I do not wish to say that it is not legitimate, in the scientific meaning of the term. If science is to extend our action on things, and if we can act only with inert matter for instrument, science can and must continue to treat the living as it has treated the inert. But, in doing so, it must be understood that the further it penetrates the[Pg 199] depths of life, the more symbolic, the more relative to the contingencies of action, the knowledge it supplies to us becomes. On this new ground philosophy ought then to follow science, in order to superpose on scientific truth a knowledge of another kind, which may be called metaphysical. Thus combined, all our knowledge, both scientific and metaphysical, is heightened. In the absolute we live and move and have our being. The knowledge we possess of it is incomplete, no doubt, but not external or relative. It is reality itself, in the profoundest meaning of the word, that we reach by the combined and progressive development of science and of philosophy.
Positive science can certainly take pride in the consistent value assigned to its claims across all areas of experience. However, if all these claims are treated equally, they also share the same relativity. This changes if we start by making a crucial distinction. Understanding is grounded in the realm of unorganized matter. Human action is naturally exercised on this matter, and, as stated above, action cannot occur in the unreal. In terms of physics—if we consider only its general principles and not the specific forms of matter it examines—we can say it touches on the absolute. On the other hand, science's connection to the living world is incidental—due to chance or convention, if you prefer—compared to its grasp on matter. In this context, using conceptual frameworks is no longer straightforward. I don’t mean to imply that it's not valid, in the scientific sense. If science is meant to expand our ability to affect things, and if we can only interact with inert matter as our tools, science can and should continue to approach the living in the same way it does the inert. However, it must be understood that the deeper it goes into the depths of life, the more symbolic and contingent the knowledge it provides becomes, relative to the circumstances of action. On this new foundation, philosophy should follow science to layer another type of understanding—a metaphysical one—over scientific truth. This combination elevates all our knowledge, both scientific and metaphysical. We live, move, and exist in the absolute. The knowledge we have of it is incomplete, surely, but it is neither external nor relative. It is reality itself, in the deepest sense, that we access through the combined and ongoing development of science and philosophy.
Thus, in renouncing the factitious unity which the understanding imposes on nature from outside, we shall perhaps find its true, inward and living unity. For the effort we make to transcend the pure understanding introduces us into that more vast something out of which our understanding is cut, and from which it has detached itself. And, as matter is determined by intelligence, as there is between them an evident agreement, we cannot make the genesis of the one without making the genesis of the other. An identical process must have cut out matter and the intellect, at the same time, from a stuff that contained both. Into this reality we shall get back more and more completely, in proportion as we compel ourselves to transcend pure intelligence.
Thus, by letting go of the artificial unity that our understanding imposes on nature from the outside, we might discover its true, inner, and living unity. The effort we make to move beyond pure understanding connects us with that larger reality from which our understanding is shaped and has separated itself. Since matter is shaped by intelligence, and there is a clear relationship between the two, we cannot discuss the origin of one without also discussing the origin of the other. A similar process must have formed both matter and intellect simultaneously from a substance that contained both. We will increasingly reconnect with this reality as we push ourselves to move beyond pure intelligence.
Let us then concentrate attention on that which we have that is at the same time the most removed from externality and the least penetrated with intellectuality. Let us seek, in the depths of our experience, the point where we feel ourselves most intimately within our own life. It is into pure duration that we then plunge back, a duration in which the past, always moving on, is swelling[Pg 200] unceasingly with a present that is absolutely new. But, at the same time, we feel the spring of our will strained to its utmost limit. We must, by a strong recoil of our personality on itself, gather up our past which is slipping away, in order to thrust it, compact and undivided, into a present which it will create by entering. Rare indeed are the moments when we are self-possessed to this extent: it is then that our actions are truly free. And even at these moments we do not completely possess ourselves. Our feeling of duration, I should say the actual coinciding of ourself with itself, admits of degrees. But the more the feeling is deep and the coincidence complete, the more the life in which it replaces us absorbs intellectuality by transcending it. For the natural function of the intellect is to bind like to like, and it is only facts that can be repeated that are entirely adaptable to intellectual conceptions. Now, our intellect does undoubtedly grasp the real moments of real duration after they are past; we do so by reconstituting the new state of consciousness out of a series of views taken of it from the outside, each of which resembles as much as possible something already known; in this sense we may say that the state of consciousness contains intellectuality implicitly. Yet the state of consciousness overflows the intellect; it is indeed incommensurable with the intellect, being itself indivisible and new.
Let’s focus on what we have that is both the most detached from the outside world and the least influenced by intellect. Let’s explore, deep within our experiences, the point where we feel most connected to our own life. We then dive into pure duration, where the past, always advancing, is continually expanding with a present that is completely fresh. However, at the same time, we feel our will stretched to its maximum. We have to strongly pull our personality back onto itself to gather the slipping past, so we can push it, whole and undivided, into a present that it will help to create by joining in. Such moments when we are this self-aware are rare: it’s then that our actions become truly free. Even in these moments, we don’t fully possess ourselves. Our sense of duration, or the actual alignment of ourself with itself, can vary in intensity. The deeper the feeling and the greater the alignment, the more the life we experience absorbs intellect by going beyond it. The natural role of intellect is to connect similar things, and only facts that can be repeated fit completely into intellectual concepts. Admittedly, our intellect does grasp the genuine moments of real duration after they have passed; we do this by reconstructing the new state of consciousness from a series of outside viewpoints, each resembling something already familiar. In this sense, we can say that the state of consciousness implicitly contains intellect. Yet the state of consciousness surpasses intellect; it is indeed immeasurable against the intellect, being indivisible and new.
Now let us relax the strain, let us interrupt the effort to crowd as much as possible of the past into the present. If the relaxation were complete, there would no longer be either memory or will—which amounts to saying that, in fact, we never do fall into this absolute passivity, any more than we can make ourselves absolutely free. But, in the limit, we get a glimpse of an existence made of a present which recommences unceasingly—devoid of real[Pg 201] duration, nothing but the instantaneous which dies and is born again endlessly. Is the existence of matter of this nature? Not altogether, for analysis resolves it into elementary vibrations, the shortest of which are of very slight duration, almost vanishing, but not nothing. It may be presumed, nevertheless, that physical existence inclines in this second direction, as psychical existence in the first.
Now let's ease the tension and pause the effort to squeeze as much of the past into the present as we can. If we were to relax completely, there would be no memory or will—meaning we can never reach that total passivity, just as we can't make ourselves completely free. However, at the limit, we catch a glimpse of an existence made up of an ever-restarting present—lacking real[Pg 201] duration, composed only of the moment that dies and is reborn endlessly. Is matter's existence like that? Not entirely, since analysis breaks it down into basic vibrations, the shortest of which last only a brief moment, almost disappearing, but not completely nothing. Still, it can be assumed that physical existence leans in this second direction, while mental existence leans in the first.
Behind "spirituality" on the one hand, and "materiality" with intellectuality on the other, there are then two processes opposite in their direction, and we pass from the first to the second by way of inversion, or perhaps even by simple interruption, if it is true that inversion and interruption are two terms which in this case must be held to be synonymous, as we shall show at more length later on. This presumption is confirmed when we consider things from the point of view of extension, and no longer from that of duration alone.
Behind "spirituality" on one side and "materiality" with intellect on the other, there are two processes that oppose each other, and we transition from the first to the second through inversion, or maybe even just a break, if it’s accurate to say that inversion and interruption mean the same thing in this instance, as we will explain in more detail later. This assumption is supported when we look at things from the perspective of extension, rather than just duration alone.
The more we succeed in making ourselves conscious of our progress in pure duration, the more we feel the different parts of our being enter into each other, and our whole personality concentrate itself in a point, or rather a sharp edge, pressed against the future and cutting into it unceasingly. It is in this that life and action are free. But suppose we let ourselves go and, instead of acting, dream. At once the self is scattered; our past, which till then was gathered together into the indivisible impulsion it communicated to us, is broken up into a thousand recollections made external to one another. They give up interpenetrating in the degree that they become fixed. Our personality thus descends in the direction of space. It coasts around it continually in sensation. We will not dwell here on a point we have studied elsewhere. Let us merely recall that extension[Pg 202] admits of degrees, that all sensation is extensive in a certain measure, and that the idea of unextended sensations, artificially localized in space, is a mere view of the mind, suggested by an unconscious metaphysic much more than by psychological observation.
The more we become aware of our progress over time, the more we feel different parts of ourselves connect with each other, and our entire personality focuses on a single point, or really a sharp edge, pressing into the future and constantly reaching out into it. This is where life and action are truly free. But if we allow ourselves to drift and instead of acting, we just dream, the self becomes fragmented; our past, which had been unified in the singular drive it gave us, breaks apart into countless separate memories. They stop merging as they become more fixed. Our personality starts to move away into space. It constantly flows around it through sensation. We won’t linger on a point we’ve covered before. Let’s just remember that extension[Pg 202] has degrees, that all sensation has some extent, and that the notion of unextended sensations, artificially placed in space, is just a mental perspective, influenced more by an unconscious metaphysics than by psychological observation.
No doubt we make only the first steps in the direction of the extended, even when we let ourselves go as much as we can. But suppose for a moment that matter consists in this very movement pushed further, and that physics is simply psychics inverted. We shall now understand why the mind feels at its ease, moves about naturally in space, when matter suggests the more distinct idea of it. This space it already possessed as an implicit idea in its own eventual detension, that is to say, of its own possible extension. The mind finds space in things, but could have got it without them if it had had imagination strong enough to push the inversion of its own natural movement to the end. On the other hand, we are able to explain how matter accentuates still more its materiality, when viewed by the mind. Matter, at first, aided mind to run down its own incline; it gave the impulsion. But, the impulsion once received, mind continues its course. The idea that it forms of pure space is only the schema of the limit at which this movement would end. Once in possession of the form of space, mind uses it like a net with meshes that can be made and unmade at will, which, thrown over matter, divides it as the needs of our action demand. Thus, the space of our geometry and the spatiality of things are mutually engendered by the reciprocal action and reaction of two terms which are essentially the same, but which move each in the direction inverse of the other. Neither is space so foreign to our nature as we imagine, nor is matter as completely extended in space as our senses and intellect represent it.[Pg 203]
We certainly have only taken the first steps toward a broader understanding, even when we allow ourselves to explore as much as possible. But, let's suppose for a moment that matter is just this very movement taken further, and that physics is simply psychology flipped around. This helps us see why the mind feels comfortable and navigates naturally in space when matter presents a clearer idea of it. This space was already an implicit idea within its own possible release, meaning its potential for expansion. The mind discovers space in objects but could have found it without them if it had enough imagination to fully explore the inversion of its natural movement. On the flip side, we can explain how matter emphasizes its physicality even more when viewed by the mind. Initially, matter helped the mind descend its own slope; it provided the momentum. However, once this momentum is gained, the mind continues its path. The concept it forms of pure space is merely the framework of the point at which this movement would stop. Once the mind grasps the concept of space, it uses it like a net with openings that can be created and removed at will, casting it over matter to divide it according to the needs of our actions. Thus, the space of our geometry and the spatial nature of things are created through the mutual interaction of two elements that are essentially the same but move in opposite directions. Neither is space as foreign to our nature as we think, nor is matter as fully extended in space as our senses and intellect suggest it is.[Pg 203]
We have treated of the first point elsewhere. As to the second, we will limit ourselves to pointing out that perfect spatiality would consist in a perfect externality of parts in their relation to one another, that is to say, in a complete reciprocal independence. Now, there is no material point that does not act on every other material point. When we observe that a thing really is there where it acts, we shall be led to say (as Faraday[79] was) that all the atoms interpenetrate and that each of them fills the world. On such a hypothesis, the atom or, more generally, the material point, becomes simply a view of the mind, a view which we come to take when we continue far enough the work (wholly relative to our faculty of acting) by which we subdivide matter into bodies. Yet it is undeniable that matter lends itself to this subdivision, and that, in supposing it breakable into parts external to one another, we are constructing a science sufficiently representative of the real. It is undeniable that if there be no entirely isolated system, yet science finds means of cutting up the universe into systems relatively independent of each other, and commits no appreciable error in doing so. What else can this mean but that matter extends itself in space without being absolutely extended therein, and that in regarding matter as decomposable into isolated systems, in attributing to it quite distinct elements which change in relation to each other without changing in themselves (which are "displaced," shall we say, without being "altered"), in short, in conferring on matter the properties of pure space, we are transporting ourselves to the terminal point of the movement of which matter simply indicates the direction?
We have already discussed the first point elsewhere. Regarding the second point, we'll just note that perfect spatiality would mean a complete externality of parts in relation to each other, which means total independence among them. However, no material point exists that doesn't influence every other material point. When we notice that something truly exists where it acts, we might follow Faraday[79] in saying that all atoms interpenetrate and each one fills the world. Under this assumption, the atom, or more generally, the material point, becomes merely a concept in our minds, a concept we adopt when we push further in the process (entirely relative to our ability to act) of dividing matter into bodies. Yet, it’s clear that matter can be divided this way, and by assuming it can be broken down into parts that are external to one another, we are building a scientific understanding that represents reality adequately. It’s undeniable that, even if there is no completely isolated system, science finds a way to break the universe into systems that are relatively independent of each other without making significant errors in the process. What else could this imply except that matter extends itself in space without being absolutely extended, and that by viewing matter as divisible into isolated systems, by assigning it distinct elements that change in relation to one another without changing themselves (which we might say are "displaced" without being "altered"), in short, by giving matter the characteristics of pure space, we are reaching the endpoint of a movement where matter merely indicates the direction?
What the Transcendental Aesthetic of Kant appears[Pg 204] to have established once for all is that extension is not a material attribute of the same kind as others. We cannot reason indefinitely on the notions of heat, color, or weight: in order to know the modalities of weight or of heat, we must have recourse to experience. Not so of the notion of space. Supposing even that it is given empirically by sight and touch (and Kant has not questioned the fact) there is this about it that is remarkable that our mind, speculating on it with its own powers alone, cuts out in it, a priori, figures whose properties we determine a priori: experience, with which we have not kept in touch, yet follows us through the infinite complications of our reasonings and invariably justifies them. That is the fact. Kant has set it in clear light. But the explanation of the fact, we believe, must be sought in a different direction to that which Kant followed.
What Kant's Transcendental Aesthetic seems to have established[Pg 204] is that extension isn't a physical quality like others. We can't endlessly debate concepts like heat, color, or weight; to understand weight or heat, we need to rely on experience. The same can't be said for space. Even if it's perceived through sight and touch (which Kant accepts), what's interesting is that our minds can, on their own, abstract a priori shapes from it, whose properties we also define a priori: experience, even when we're not directly using it, still aligns with our complex reasoning and always validates it. That's the reality. Kant clarified this well. However, we believe the explanation for this reality needs to be explored in a different way than Kant approached.
Intelligence, as Kant represents it to us, is bathed in an atmosphere of spatiality to which it is as inseparably united as the living body to the air it breathes. Our perceptions reach us only after having passed through this atmosphere. They have been impregnated in advance by our geometry, so that our faculty of thinking only finds again in matter the mathematical properties which our faculty of perceiving has already deposed there. We are assured, therefore, of seeing matter yield itself with docility to our reasonings; but this matter, in all that it has that is intelligible, is our own work; of the reality "in itself" we know nothing and never shall know anything, since we only get its refraction through the forms of our faculty of perceiving. So that if we claim to affirm something of it, at once there rises the contrary affirmation, equally demonstrable, equally plausible. The ideality of space is proved directly by the analysis of knowledge indirectly by the antinomies to which the opposite theory[Pg 205] leads. Such is the governing idea of the Kantian criticism. It has inspired Kant with a peremptory refutation of "empiricist" theories of knowledge. It is, in our opinion, definitive in what it denies. But, in what it affirms, does it give us the solution of the problem?
Intelligence, as Kant describes it, exists in a space that it is as closely tied to as a living body is to the air it breathes. Our perceptions only reach us after going through this space. They are already shaped by our understanding of geometry, so our thinking only rediscovers the mathematical properties in matter that our perceptions have already laid down. We can be confident that matter will conform to our reasoning, but this matter, in all its intelligible aspects, is our own creation; we know nothing of the "thing in itself" and never will, since we only experience its reflection through our perception. Therefore, if we try to claim something about it, the opposite claim arises, which is equally demonstrable and plausible. The ideality of space is proven directly through the analysis of knowledge and indirectly by the contradictions that arise from the opposing theory[Pg 205]. This is the central idea of Kantian critique. It has led Kant to decisively challenge "empiricist" theories of knowledge. In our view, it is definitive in what it negates. But, in what it asserts, does it provide a solution to the problem?
With Kant, space is given as a ready-made form of our perceptive faculty—a veritable deus ex machina, of which we see neither how it arises, nor why it is what it is rather than anything else. "Things-in-themselves" are also given, of which he claims that we can know nothing: by what right, then, can he affirm their existence, even as "problematic"? If the unknowable reality projects into our perceptive faculty a "sensuous manifold" capable of fitting into it exactly, is it not, by that very fact, in part known? And when we examine this exact fitting, shall we not be led, in one point at least, to suppose a pre-established harmony between things and our mind—an idle hypothesis, which Kant was right in wishing to avoid? At bottom, it is for not having distinguished degrees in spatiality that he has had to take space ready-made as given—whence the question how the "sensuous manifold" is adapted to it. It is for the same reason that he has supposed matter wholly developed into parts absolutely external to one another;—whence antinomies, of which we may plainly see that the thesis and antithesis suppose the perfect coincidence of matter with geometrical space, but which vanish the moment we cease to extend to matter what is true only of pure space. Whence, finally, the conclusion that there are three alternatives, and three only, among which to choose a theory of knowledge: either the mind is determined by things, or things are determined by the mind, or between mind and things we must suppose a mysterious agreement.
With Kant, space is presented as an inherent part of our perception—like a deus ex machina, where we don't see how it comes to be or why it exists in its current form instead of another. “Things-in-themselves” are also given, and he claims we can know nothing about them: so on what basis can he assert their existence, even as "problematic"? If the unknowable reality projects a "sensuous manifold" into our perception that fits it perfectly, isn't it, by that very fact, partially known? And when we examine this precise fitting, aren’t we led to consider a pre-established harmony between reality and our minds—an unnecessary hypothesis that Kant wanted to avoid? Ultimately, it’s because he failed to recognize different levels of spatiality that he accepted space as given—hence the question of how the "sensuous manifold" aligns with it. For the same reason, he assumed matter was completely divided into parts that are entirely separate from each other—leading to dilemmas that clearly show the thesis and antithesis depend on the perfect alignment of matter with geometrical space, which disappear once we stop applying concepts true only of pure space to matter. Thus, we reach the conclusion that there are three options, and only three, for a theory of knowledge: either the mind is shaped by things, or things are shaped by the mind, or we must assume a mysterious agreement between the mind and things.
But the truth is that there is a fourth, which does not[Pg 206] seem to have occurred to Kant—in the first place because he did not think that the mind overflowed the intellect, and in the second place (and this is at bottom the same thing) because he did not attribute to duration an absolute existence, having put time, a priori, on the same plane as space. This alternative consists, first of all, in regarding the intellect as a special function of the mind, essentially turned toward inert matter; then in saying that neither does matter determine the form of the intellect, nor does the intellect impose its form on matter, nor have matter and intellect been regulated in regard to one another by we know not what pre-established harmony, but that intellect and matter have progressively adapted themselves one to the other in order to attain at last a common form. This adaptation has, moreover, been brought about quite naturally, because it is the same inversion of the same movement which creates at once the intellectuality of mind and the materiality of things.
But the truth is that there’s a fourth option that doesn’t[Pg 206] seem to have occurred to Kant. First, he didn’t believe that the mind overspills the intellect, and second (which is essentially the same point) he didn’t see duration as having absolute existence, treating time, a priori, as being on the same level as space. This alternative starts by viewing the intellect as a specific function of the mind that is mainly focused on inert matter. It then suggests that matter doesn’t shape the intellect, nor does the intellect impose its structure on matter, and neither have matter and intellect been coordinated by some unknown pre-established harmony. Instead, intellect and matter have progressively adapted to one another to ultimately reach a common form. This adaptation has also occurred quite naturally, as it is the same inversion of the same movement that simultaneously creates the intellectuality of the mind and the materiality of things.
From this point of view the knowledge of matter that our perception on one hand and science on the other give to us appears, no doubt, as approximative, but not as relative. Our perception, whose rôle it is to hold up a light to our actions, works a dividing up of matter that is always too sharply defined, always subordinated to practical needs, consequently always requiring revision. Our science, which aspires to the mathematical form, over-accentuates the spatiality of matter; its formulae are, in general, too precise, and ever need remaking. For a scientific theory to be final, the mind would have to embrace the totality of things in block and place each thing in its exact relation to every other thing; but in reality we are obliged to consider problems one by one, in terms which are, for that very reason, provisional, so that the solution of each problem will have to be corrected indefi[Pg 207]nitely by the solution that will be given to the problems that will follow: thus, science as a whole is relative to the particular order in which the problems happen to have been put. It is in this meaning, and to this degree, that science must be regarded as conventional. But it is a conventionality of fact so to speak, and not of right. In principle, positive science bears on reality itself, provided it does not overstep the limits of its own domain, which is inert matter.
From this perspective, the understanding of matter that we gain from both our perception and science seems, without a doubt, approximate but not relative. Our perception, which is meant to illuminate our actions, tends to oversimplify matter, always shaped by practical needs and forever in need of adjustments. Our science, aiming for mathematical clarity, tends to exaggerate the spatial aspects of matter; its formulas are generally too precise and always need reworking. For a scientific theory to be definitive, the mind would have to comprehend everything as a whole and accurately place each entity in relation to every other entity. However, in reality, we must tackle problems one at a time, which makes our solutions provisional. Each solution will inevitably need to be adjusted by subsequent solutions to later problems: thus, science as a whole is relative to the specific order in which problems have been presented. In this sense, science has to be viewed as conventional. But it's a form of conventionality based on fact rather than entitlement. In principle, positive science pertains to reality itself, as long as it doesn't go beyond the limits of its domain, which is inert matter.
Scientific knowledge, thus regarded, rises to a higher plane. In return, the theory of knowledge becomes an infinitely difficult enterprise, and which passes the powers of the intellect alone. It is not enough to determine, by careful analysis, the categories of thought; we must engender them. As regards space, we must, by an effort of mind sui generis, follow the progression or rather the regression of the extra-spatial degrading itself into spatiality. When we make ourselves self-conscious in the highest possible degree and then let ourselves fall back little by little, we get the feeling of extension: we have an extension of the self into recollections that are fixed and external to one another, in place of the tension it possessed as an indivisible active will. But this is only a beginning. Our consciousness, sketching the movement, shows us its direction and reveals to us the possibility of continuing it to the end; but consciousness itself does not go so far. Now, on the other hand, if we consider matter, which seems to us at first coincident with space, we find that the more our attention is fixed on it, the more the parts which we said were laid side by side enter into each other, each of them undergoing the action of the whole, which is consequently somehow present in it. Thus, although matter stretches itself out in the direction of space, it does not completely attain it; whence[Pg 208] we may conclude that it only carries very much further the movement that consciousness is able to sketch within us in its nascent state. We hold, therefore, the two ends of the chain, though we do not succeed in seizing the intermediate links. Will they always escape us? We must remember that philosophy, as we define it, has not yet become completely conscious of itself. Physics understands its rôle when it pushes matter in the direction of spatiality; but has metaphysics understood its rôle when it has simply trodden in the steps of physics, in the chimerical hope of going further in the same direction? Should not its own task be, on the contrary, to remount the incline that physics descends, to bring back matter to its origins, and to build up progressively a cosmology which would be, so to speak, a reversed psychology? All that which seems positive to the physicist and to the geometrician would become, from this new point of view, an interruption or inversion of the true positivity, which would have to be defined in psychological terms.
Scientific knowledge, viewed this way, elevates itself to a higher level. In turn, the theory of knowledge becomes an incredibly challenging task that goes beyond the capabilities of intellect alone. It’s not enough to carefully analyze the categories of thought; we need to create them. Regarding space, we must, through a unique mental effort, trace the process or rather the breakdown of the non-spatial degrading into spatiality. When we become fully self-aware and then gradually allow ourselves to fall back, we experience the feeling of extension: we extend ourselves into memories that are fixed and separate from one another, instead of the tension we had as an indivisible active will. But this is just the beginning. Our consciousness, outlining the movement, shows us its direction and reveals the possibility of continuing it to completion; however, consciousness itself doesn’t go that far. On the other hand, if we look at matter, which initially seems identical to space, we find that the more we focus on it, the more the parts we thought were side by side start to merge, each undergoing the influence of the whole, which is somehow present within it. Thus, even though matter extends itself in the direction of space, it doesn’t fully achieve it; hence, we can conclude that it only takes the movement consciousness can outline within us in its early state much further. Therefore, we hold the two ends of the chain, although we can’t seem to grasp the links in between. Will they always evade us? We must remember that philosophy, as we define it, hasn’t yet fully achieved self-awareness. Physics understands its role when it pushes matter toward spatiality; but has metaphysics grasped its purpose when it simply follows in the footsteps of physics, with the illusory hope of going further in the same direction? Shouldn’t its true task be, conversely, to ascend the slope that physics descends, to return matter to its origins, and to progressively construct a cosmology that could, so to speak, be a reverse psychology? Everything that seems positive to the physicist and the geometer would become, from this new perspective, a disruption or reversal of true positivity, which would need to be defined in psychological terms.
When we consider the admirable order of mathematics, the perfect agreement of the objects it deals with, the immanent logic in numbers and figures, our certainty of always getting the same conclusion, however diverse and complex our reasonings on the same subject, we hesitate to see in properties apparently so positive a system of negations, the absence rather than the presence of a true reality. But we must not forget that our intellect, which finds this order and wonders at it, is directed in the same line of movement that leads to the materiality and spatiality of its object. The more complexity the intellect puts into its object by analyzing it, the more complex is the order it finds there. And this order and this complexity necessarily appear to the intellect as a positive reality, since[Pg 209] reality and intellectuality are turned in the same direction.
When we think about the impressive structure of mathematics, the perfect agreement of the things it studies, the inherent logic in numbers and shapes, and our assurance of always reaching the same conclusion no matter how varied and complicated our reasoning is on the same topic, we might struggle to see in these seemingly certain properties a system of negations, indicating the absence rather than the presence of genuine reality. However, we should remember that our mind, which recognizes this order and marvels at it, is focused in the same direction that leads to the physical and spatial nature of its subject. The more complexity our mind adds to the object by breaking it down, the more intricate the order it discovers. This order and complexity inevitably appear to the mind as a tangible reality, since[Pg 209] reality and intellect are aligned in the same direction.
When a poet reads me his verses, I can interest myself enough in him to enter into his thought, put myself into his feelings, live over again the simple state he has broken into phrases and words. I sympathize then with his inspiration, I follow it with a continuous movement which is, like the inspiration itself, an undivided act. Now, I need only relax my attention, let go the tension that there is in me, for the sounds, hitherto swallowed up in the sense, to appear to me distinctly, one by one, in their materiality. For this I have not to do anything; it is enough to withdraw something. In proportion as I let myself go, the successive sounds will become the more individualized; as the phrases were broken into words, so the words will scan in syllables which I shall perceive one after another. Let me go farther still in the direction of dream: the letters themselves will become loose and will be seen to dance along, hand in hand, on some fantastic sheet of paper. I shall then admire the precision of the interweavings, the marvelous order of the procession, the exact insertion of the letters into the syllables, of the syllables into the words and of the words into the sentences. The farther I pursue this quite negative direction of relaxation, the more extension and complexity I shall create; and the more the complexity in its turn increases, the more admirable will seem to be the order which continues to reign, undisturbed, among the elements. Yet this complexity and extension represent nothing positive; they express a deficiency of will. And, on the other hand, the order must grow with the complexity, since it is only an aspect of it. The more we perceive, symbolically, parts in an indivisible whole, the more the number of the relations that the parts have between themselves necessarily increases, since the same undividedness of the real whole continues to hover over[Pg 210] the growing multiplicity of the symbolic elements into which the scattering of the attention has decomposed it. A comparison of this kind will enable us to understand, in some measure, how the same suppression of positive reality, the same inversion of a certain original movement, can create at once extension in space and the admirable order which mathematics finds there. There is, of course, this difference between the two cases, that words and letters have been invented by a positive effort of humanity, while space arises automatically, as the remainder of a subtraction arises once the two numbers are posited.[80] But, in the one case as in the other, the infinite complexity of the parts and their perfect coördination among themselves are created at one and the same time by an inversion which is, at bottom, an interruption, that is to say, a diminution of positive reality.
When a poet shares his verses with me, I can become interested enough in him to connect with his thoughts, feel his emotions, and relive the simple state he's expressed in phrases and words. I then empathize with his inspiration, following it in a fluid motion that is, like the inspiration itself, a seamless act. Now, I just need to ease my focus, release the tension within me, for the sounds, previously absorbed in meaning, to emerge distinctly, one by one, in their physical form. For this, I don't have to do anything; it’s enough to let go of something. As I relax, the sounds will become more distinct; just as phrases break into words, the words will break down into syllables that I will notice one after another. If I go even further into this dreamlike state, the letters themselves will loosen and appear to dance together on some whimsical piece of paper. I will admire the precision of their interweaving, the incredible order of their sequence, the exact placement of the letters into the syllables, the syllables into the words, and the words into the sentences. The more I pursue this direction of relaxation, the more extension and complexity I will create; and as the complexity increases, the more amazing the order will seem to remain untouched among the elements. Yet this complexity and extension don’t represent anything concrete; they reflect a lack of will. On the other hand, the order must increase with the complexity, since it is merely a facet of it. The more we symbolically recognize parts within an indivisible whole, the more the number of relationships among those parts inevitably grows, since the same unity of the real whole continues to linger over the expanding multiplicity of the symbolic elements into which my scattered attention has broken it down. This kind of comparison will help us understand, to some extent, how the same suspension of positive reality, the same reversal of a certain initial movement, can simultaneously create spatial extension and the remarkable order that mathematics discovers there. Of course, there is a difference between the two scenarios: words and letters are the result of humanity's deliberate effort, while space emerges automatically, like the remainder of a subtraction once both numbers are established. But in both cases, the infinite complexity of the parts and their perfect coordination among themselves are generated simultaneously by a reversal that is essentially an interruption, that is to say, a reduction of positive reality.
All the operations of our intellect tend to geometry, as to the goal where they find their perfect fulfilment.[Pg 211] But, as geometry is necessarily prior to them (since these operations have not as their end to construct space and cannot do otherwise than take it as given) it is evident that it is a latent geometry, immanent in our idea of space, which is the main spring of our intellect and the cause of its working. We shall be convinced of this if we consider the two essential functions of intellect, the faculty of deduction and that of induction.
All our intellectual processes aim towards geometry as the ultimate goal where they achieve their fullest expression.[Pg 211] However, since geometry must come before these processes (because their goal isn't to create space and can only assume it as already existing), it’s clear that a hidden geometry, inherent in our understanding of space, drives our intellect and motivates its functioning. We will see this is true if we reflect on the two essential functions of the intellect: the ability to deduce and the ability to induce.
Let us begin with deduction. The same movement by which I trace a figure in space engenders its properties: they are visible and tangible in the movement itself; I feel, I see in space the relation of the definition to its consequences, of the premisses to the conclusion. All the other concepts of which experience suggests the idea to me are only in part constructible a priori; the definition of them is therefore imperfect, and the deductions into which these concepts enter, however closely the conclusion is linked to the premisses, participate in this imperfection. But when I trace roughly in the sand the base of a triangle, as I begin to form the two angles at the base, I know positively, and understand absolutely, that if these two angles are equal the sides will be equal also, the figure being then able to be turned over on itself without there being any change whatever. I know it before I have learnt geometry. Thus, prior to the science of geometry, there is a natural geometry whose clearness and evidence surpass the clearness and evidence of other deductions. Now, these other deductions bear on qualities, and not on magnitudes purely. They are, then, likely to have been formed on the model of the first, and to borrow their force from the fact that, behind quality, we see magnitude vaguely showing through. We may notice, as a fact, that questions of situation and of magnitude are the first that present themselves to our activity, those which in[Pg 212]telligence externalized in action resolves even before reflective intelligence has appeared. The savage understands better than the civilized man how to judge distances, to determine a direction, to retrace by memory the often complicated plan of the road he has traveled, and so to return in a straight line to his starting-point.[81] If the animal does not deduce explicitly, if he does not form explicit concepts, neither does he form the idea of a homogeneous space. You cannot present this space to yourself without introducing, in the same act, a virtual geometry which will, of itself, degrade itself into logic. All the repugnance that philosophers manifest towards this manner of regarding things comes from this, that the logical work of the intellect represents to their eyes a positive spiritual effort. But, if we understand by spirituality a progress to ever new creations, to conclusions incommensurable with the premisses and indeterminable by relation to them, we must say of an idea that moves among relations of necessary determination, through premisses which contain their conclusion in advance, that it follows the inverse direction, that of materiality. What appears, from the point of view of the intellect, as an effort, is in itself a letting go. And while, from the point of view of the intellect, there is a petitio principii in making geometry arise automatically from space, and logic from geometry—on the contrary, if space is the ultimate goal of the mind's movement of detension, space cannot be given without positing also logic and geometry, which are along the course of the movement of which pure spatial intuition is the goal.
Let's start with deduction. The same action that allows me to outline a shape in space also creates its properties: they are clear and tangible within that action; I can feel and see in space how the definition relates to its consequences, and how the premises connect to the conclusion. Other concepts that experience brings to mind can only be partly constructed a priori; thus, their definitions are imperfect, and the deductions involving those concepts, regardless of how closely the conclusion aligns with the premises, also carry that imperfection. However, when I sketch roughly in the sand the base of a triangle, as I begin to form the two angles at the base, I clearly know that if those two angles are equal, the sides will also be equal, allowing the figure to be flipped over without any change. I know this before I ever learn geometry. So, prior to the study of geometry, there exists a natural geometry whose clarity and evidence exceed that of other deductions. The other deductions concern qualities, rather than purely magnitudes. They likely were formed based on the first and draw their power from the fact that, behind quality, we can vaguely perceive magnitude. It’s evident that questions about position and size are the first ones we confront, the ones that our intelligence externalized in action solves even before reflective intelligence emerges. A savage understands better than a civilized person how to judge distances, determine direction, and remember the often complicated route he has traveled, allowing him to return in a straight line to his starting point. If an animal doesn’t deduce explicitly or form clear concepts, it also doesn’t form the idea of a homogeneous space. You can’t conceive this space without simultaneously introducing a virtual geometry that will inevitably simplify into logic. The disdain that philosophers show towards this perspective comes from the belief that the logical effort of the intellect represents a real spiritual struggle. However, if we define spirituality as a progression towards new creations and conclusions that are unmatched by the premises and are not determinable in relation to them, we must say that an idea moving among relations of necessary determination—through premises that already hold their conclusion—moves in the opposite direction, which is that of materiality. What appears to the intellect as struggle is, in reality, a release. From the standpoint of the intellect, there may be a petitio principii in suggesting that geometry automatically arises from space and that logic arises from geometry—on the other hand, if space is the ultimate aim of the mind's movement of detension, space cannot be conceived without simultaneously establishing logic and geometry as part of the movement towards pure spatial intuition.
It has not been enough noticed how feeble is the reach of deduction in the psychological and moral sciences. From a proposition verified by facts, verifiable consequences can here be drawn only up to a certain point, only in a[Pg 213] certain measure. Very soon appeal has to be made to common sense, that is to say, to the continuous experience of the real, in order to inflect the consequences deduced and bend them along the sinuosities of life. Deduction succeeds in things moral only metaphorically, so to speak, and just in the measure in which the moral is transposable into the physical, I should say translatable into spatial symbols. The metaphor never goes very far, any more than a curve can long be confused with its tangent. Must we not be struck by this feebleness of deduction as something very strange and even paradoxical? Here is a pure operation of the mind, accomplished solely by the power of the mind. It seems that, if anywhere it should feel at home and evolve at ease, it would be among the things of the mind, in the domain of the mind. Not at all; it is there that it is immediately at the end of its tether. On the contrary, in geometry, in astronomy, in physics, where we have to do with things external to us, deduction is all-powerful! Observation and experience are undoubtedly necessary in these sciences to arrive at the principle, that is, to discover the aspect under which things must be regarded; but, strictly speaking, we might, by good luck, have hit upon it at once; and, as soon as we possess this principle, we may draw from it, at any length, consequences which experience will always verify. Must we not conclude, therefore, that deduction is an operation governed by the properties of matter, molded on the mobile articulations of matter, implicitly given, in fact, with the space that underlies matter? As long as it turns upon space or spatialized time, it has only to let itself go. It is duration that puts spokes in its wheels.
It hasn’t been sufficiently acknowledged how limited deduction is in the psychological and moral sciences. From a statement supported by facts, we can only draw verifiable consequences to a certain extent and in a specific way. Eventually, we need to rely on common sense, meaning continual experience of reality, to adjust the deduced consequences and adapt them to the complexities of life. Deduction works in moral matters only metaphorically, if you will, and only to the degree that morals can be translated into the physical realm, or spatial symbols. This metaphor has its limits, just as a curve cannot be mistaken for its tangent for long. Isn’t it surprising and even paradoxical how weak deduction appears? This is a pure mental operation, done solely through the power of thought. If there’s any area where it should operate naturally and flourish, it would be within the realm of the mind. Yet, that is precisely where it reaches its limits. In contrast, in geometry, astronomy, and physics, which deal with external matters, deduction is incredibly powerful! Observation and experience are indeed crucial in these sciences to find the principle, which means discovering how to perceive things; however, theoretically, we could have stumbled upon it immediately. Once we have this principle, we can draw endless consequences from it that experience will always confirm. Therefore, shouldn’t we conclude that deduction is shaped by the properties of matter, designed around its flexible structures, and inherently given along with the space that makes up matter? As long as it focuses on space or spatialized time, it can flow freely. It’s **duration** that creates obstacles.
Deduction, then, does not work unless there be spatial intuition behind it. But we may say the same of induction.[Pg 214] It is not necessary indeed to think geometrically, nor even to think at all, in order to expect from the same conditions a repetition of the same fact. The consciousness of the animal already does this work, and indeed, independently of all consciousness, the living body itself is so constructed that it can extract from the successive situations in which it finds itself the similarities which interest it, and so respond to the stimuli by appropriate reactions. But it is a far cry from a mechanical expectation and reaction of the body, to induction properly so called, which is an intellectual operation. Induction rests on the belief that there are causes and effects, and that the same effects follow the same causes. Now, if we examine this double belief, this is what we find. It implies, in the first place, that reality is decomposable into groups, which can be practically regarded as isolated and independent. If I boil water in a kettle on a stove, the operation and the objects that support it are, in reality, bound up with a multitude of other objects and a multitude of other operations; in the end, I should find that our entire solar system is concerned in what is being done at this particular point of space. But, in a certain measure, and for the special end I am pursuing, I may admit that things happen as if the group water-kettle-stove were an independent microcosm. That is my first affirmation. Now, when I say that this microcosm will always behave in the same way, that the heat will necessarily, at the end of a certain time, cause the boiling of the water, I admit that it is sufficient that a certain number of elements of the system be given in order that the system should be complete; it completes itself automatically, I am not free to complete it in thought as I please. The stove, the kettle and the water being given, with a certain interval of duration, it seems to me that the boiling, which experience showed[Pg 215] me yesterday to be the only thing wanting to complete the system, will complete it to-morrow, no matter when to-morrow may be. What is there at the base of this belief? Notice that the belief is more or less assured, according as the case may be, but that it is forced upon the mind as an absolute necessity when the microcosm considered contains only magnitudes. If two numbers be given, I am not free to choose their difference. If two sides of a triangle and the contained angle are given, the third side arises of itself and the triangle completes itself automatically. I can, it matters not where and it matters not when, trace the same two sides containing the same angle: it is evident that the new triangles so formed can be superposed on the first, and that consequently the same third side will come to complete the system. Now, if my certitude is perfect in the case in which I reason on pure space determinations, must I not suppose that, in the other cases, the certitude is greater the nearer it approaches this extreme case? Indeed, may it not be the limiting case which is seen through all the others and which colors them, accordingly as they are more or less transparent, with a more or less pronounced tinge of geometrical necessity?[82] In fact, when I say that the water on the fire will boil to-day as it did yesterday, and that this is an absolute necessity, I feel vaguely that my imagination is placing the stove of yesterday on that of to-day, kettle on kettle, water on water, duration on duration, and it seems then that the rest must coincide also, for the same reason that, when two triangles are superposed and two of their sides coincide, their third sides coincide also. But my imagination acts thus only because it shuts its eyes to two essential points. For the[Pg 216] system of to-day actually to be superimposed on that of yesterday, the latter must have waited for the former, time must have halted, and everything become simultaneous: that happens in geometry, but in geometry alone. Induction therefore implies first that, in the world of the physicist as in that of the geometrician, time does not count. But it implies also that qualities can be superposed on each other like magnitudes. If, in imagination, I place the stove and fire of to-day on that of yesterday, I find indeed that the form has remained the same; it suffices, for that, that the surfaces and edges coincide; but what is the coincidence of two qualities, and how can they be superposed one on another in order to ensure that they are identical? Yet I extend to the second order of reality all that applies to the first. The physicist legitimates this operation later on by reducing, as far as possible, differences of quality to differences of magnitude; but, prior to all science, I incline to liken qualities to quantities, as if I perceived behind the qualities, as through a transparency, a geometrical mechanism.[83] The more complete this transparency, the more it seems to me that in the same conditions there must be a repetition of the same fact. Our inductions are certain, to our eyes, in the exact degree in which we make the qualitative differences melt into the homogeneity of the space which subtends them, so that geometry is the ideal limit of our inductions as well as of our deductions. The movement at the end of which is spatiality lays down along its course the faculty of induction as well as that of deduction, in fact, intellectuality entire.
Deduction doesn't really work without some sort of spatial intuition behind it. But we can say the same about induction.[Pg 214] You don’t actually need to think geometrically, or even think at all, to expect the same results from the same conditions. Animals do this all the time, and even without any consciousness, living beings are built so they can recognize similar situations and react appropriately to stimuli. However, there’s a big difference between a mechanical expectation and reaction of the body and what we truly call induction, which is an intellectual process. Induction is based on the belief that causes lead to effects, and that the same effects follow the same causes. Now, if we look closely at this belief, we see it implies, first, that reality can be broken down into groups that we can treat as isolated and independent. If I boil water in a kettle on a stove, the process and the items involved are actually connected to countless other objects and processes; ultimately, we’d find that our entire solar system is involved in what's happening in this particular spot. But, to some extent, for the specific purpose I have in mind, I can treat the water-kettle-stove group as its own little universe. That’s my first point. Now, when I say that this little universe will always behave in the same way, that the heat will inevitably boil the water after a certain time, I’m acknowledging that it only takes certain elements being present for the system to complete itself; I can’t just decide how to complete it in my head. Given the stove, the kettle, and the water, along with some duration of time, I believe that the boiling—which experience showed[Pg 215] me yesterday is the only thing needed to finish the system—will happen tomorrow, no matter when that tomorrow is. What underpins this belief? Notice that this belief is more or less certain depending on the situation, but it feels absolutely necessary when the little universe considers only measurable quantities. If I’m given two numbers, I can’t arbitrarily choose their difference. If I have two sides of a triangle and the angle between them, the third side naturally follows, and the triangle completes itself on its own. I can draw these same two sides with the same angle anywhere or at any time, and it’s clear that the new triangles can be placed on top of the first, meaning the same third side will complete the system. Now, if I'm completely certain in cases where I'm working with pure spatial dimensions, shouldn’t I think that in other situations, the certainty increases the closer it gets to this ideal case? Could it be that this ideal situation is what we see influencing all the others, coloring them based on how clear they are, with varying degrees of geometrical necessity?[82] In fact, when I say that the water on the stove will boil today just like it did yesterday, and that this is an absolute necessity, I somewhat realize that I’m imagining yesterday's stove sitting on today’s stove, yesterday’s kettle on today’s kettle, yesterday’s water on today’s water, with time overlapping, making it seem obvious that everything else must match up, for the same reason that when two triangles line up and two of their sides are the same, the third sides must match too. But my imagination does this only because it overlooks two crucial points. For today’s system to actually stack on yesterday’s, the former would have to wait for the latter; time would have to stop, making everything simultaneous—this happens in geometry, but only in geometry. Therefore, induction first implies that in the physical world just like in the geometric world, time doesn’t matter. But it also suggests that qualities can be layered like quantities. If I mentally place today's stove and fire with yesterday's, I see that the shape remains the same; it only requires the surfaces and edges to align. But what does it mean for two qualities to align, and how can they be layered to ensure they’re identical? Still, I extend to the second level of reality what’s true for the first. The physicist later legitimizes this process by reducing differences in quality to differences in quantity, but before any science kicks in, I tend to compare qualities to quantities, as if I see a geometrical mechanism behind the qualities,[83] and the clearer this perception is, the more I feel that under the same conditions, the same outcome should repeat itself. Our inductions appear certain to us to the exact degree that we make qualitative differences blend into the homogeneity of the space beneath them, making geometry the ideal limit of our inductions as well as our deductions. The movement that ultimately leads to spatiality establishes the capacity for induction and deduction, encompassing all of intellectual activity.
It creates them in the mind. But it creates also, in things, the "order" which our induction, aided by de[Pg 217]duction, finds there. This order, on which our action leans and in which our intellect recognizes itself, seems to us marvelous. Not only do the same general causes always produce the same general effects, but beneath the visible causes and effects our science discovers an infinity of infinitesimal changes which work more and more exactly into one another, the further we push the analysis: so much so that, at the end of this analysis, matter becomes, it seems to us, geometry itself. Certainly, the intellect is right in admiring here the growing order in the growing complexity; both the one and the other must have a positive reality for it, since it looks upon itself as positive. But things change their aspect when we consider the whole of reality as an undivided advance forward to successive creations. It seems to us, then, that the complexity of the material elements and the mathematical order that binds them together must arise automatically when within the whole a partial interruption or inversion is produced. Moreover, as the intellect itself is cut out of mind by a process of the same kind, it is attuned to this order and complexity, and admires them because it recognizes itself in them. But what is admirable in itself, what really deserves to provoke wonder, is the ever-renewed creation which reality, whole and undivided, accomplishes in advancing; for no complication of the mathematical order with itself, however elaborate we may suppose it, can introduce an atom of novelty into the world, whereas this power of creation once given (and it exists, for we are conscious of it in ourselves, at least when we act freely) has only to be diverted from itself to relax its tension, only to relax its tension to extend, only to extend for the mathematical order of the elements so distinguished and the inflexible determinism connecting them to manifest the interruption of the creative act: in fact, inflexible determinism[Pg 218] and mathematical order are one with this very interruption.
It forms them in the mind. But it also establishes, in things, the "order" that our induction, supported by deduction, finds there. This order, which our actions rely on and in which our intellect recognizes itself, seems amazing to us. Not only do the same general causes always produce the same general effects, but beneath the visible causes and effects, our science uncovers countless tiny changes that fit together more precisely the deeper we delve into the analysis: so much so that, at the end of this analysis, matter appears to us as geometry itself. Certainly, the intellect is justified in admiring the increasing order within the growing complexity; both must hold a real significance for it since it perceives itself as real. However, things look different when we view the entirety of reality as a continuous advance toward successive creations. It then seems to us that the complexity of the material elements and the mathematical order connecting them must emerge automatically when a partial interruption or reversal occurs within the whole. Moreover, since the intellect itself is shaped by a similar process, it resonates with this order and complexity, admiring them because it sees itself reflected in them. But what is truly admirable in itself, what genuinely deserves our awe, is the constantly renewed creation that reality, whole and undivided, achieves as it progresses; for no complexity of the mathematical order by itself, no matter how intricate we may imagine it, can introduce a single atom of novelty into the world, whereas this power of creation, once granted (and it exists, as we are aware of it within ourselves, especially when we act freely), only needs to be directed away from itself to ease its tension, only to ease its tension to expand, only to expand for the mathematical order of the distinguished elements and the unyielding determinism connecting them to reveal the interruption of the creative act: in fact, inflexible determinism and mathematical order are united with this very interruption.
It is this merely negative tendency that the particular laws of the physical world express. None of them, taken separately, has objective reality; each is the work of an investigator who has regarded things from a certain bias, isolated certain variables, applied certain conventional units of measurement. And yet there is an order approximately mathematical immanent in matter, an objective order, which our science approaches in proportion to its progress. For if matter is a relaxation of the inextensive into the extensive and, thereby, of liberty into necessity, it does not indeed wholly coincide with pure homogeneous space, yet is constituted by the movement which leads to space, and is therefore on the way to geometry. It is true that laws of mathematical form will never apply to it completely. For that, it would have to be pure space and step out of duration.
It's this purely negative tendency that the specific laws of the physical world show. None of them, on their own, truly exist in an objective sense; each is created by a researcher who has viewed things through a particular lens, isolated specific variables, and used certain standard units of measurement. Still, there’s a sort of mathematical order inherent in matter, an objective order that our science gets closer to as it advances. Because if matter represents a transition from the non-extended to the extended, and from freedom to necessity, it doesn’t exactly match pure homogeneous space, but is shaped by the movement that leads to space, and is thus on the path to geometry. It’s true that laws with a mathematical structure will never fully apply to it. For that to happen, it would need to be pure space and exist outside of time.
We cannot insist too strongly that there is something artificial in the mathematical form of a physical law, and consequently in our scientific knowledge of things.[84] Our standards of measurement are conventional, and, so to say, foreign to the intentions of nature: can we suppose that nature has related all the modalities of heat to the expansion of the same mass of mercury, or to the change of pressure of the same mass of air kept at a constant volume? But we may go further. In a general way, measuring is a wholly human operation, which implies that we really or ideally superpose two objects one on another a certain number of times. Nature did not dream of this superposition. It does not measure, nor does it count. Yet physics counts, measures, relates "quantitative" variations to one another to obtain laws, and it succeeds. Its success would be inexplicable,[Pg 219] if the movement which constitutes materiality were not the same movement which, prolonged by us to its end, that is to say, to homogeneous space, results in making us count, measure, follow in their respective variations terms that are functions one of another. To effect this prolongation of the movement, our intellect has only to let itself go, for it runs naturally to space and mathematics, intellectuality and materiality being of the same nature and having been produced in the same way.
We can't stress enough that there’s something artificial about the mathematical structure of a physical law, and therefore in our scientific understanding of things.[84] Our methods of measurement are conventional and, in a sense, separate from nature's intentions: can we really believe that nature has tied all the different aspects of heat to the expansion of the same amount of mercury, or to the pressure change of the same amount of air at a consistent volume? But we can go even further. Generally speaking, measuring is entirely a human activity, suggesting that we effectively or conceptually layer one object over another a certain number of times. Nature never considered this layering. It does not measure or count. Yet physics does count, measures, and connects "quantitative" changes to establish laws, and it is successful in doing so. Its success would be puzzling,[Pg 219] if the motion that makes up materiality wasn't the same motion that, when extended by us to its conclusion—meaning homogeneous space—allows us to count, measure, and track variations that are related to one another. To carry out this extension of motion, our intellect merely has to let itself flow, as it naturally gravitates towards space and mathematics, since intellect and materiality are of the same essence and have been formed in the same way.
If the mathematical order were a positive thing, if there were, immanent in matter, laws comparable to those of our codes, the success of our science would have in it something of the miraculous. What chances should we have indeed of finding the standard of nature and of isolating exactly, in order to determine their reciprocal relations, the very variables which nature has chosen? But the success of a science of mathematical form would be no less incomprehensible, if matter did not already possess everything necessary to adapt itself to our formulae. One hypothesis only, therefore, remains plausible, namely, that the mathematical order is nothing positive, that it is the form toward which a certain interruption tends of itself, and that materiality consists precisely in an interruption of this kind. We shall understand then why our science is contingent, relative to the variables it has chosen, relative to the order in which it has successively put the problems, and why nevertheless it succeeds. It might have been, as a whole, altogether different, and yet have succeeded. This is so, just because there is no definite system of mathematical laws, at the base of nature, and because mathematics in general represents simply the side to which matter inclines. Put one of those little cork dolls with leaden feet in any posture, lay it on its back, turn it up on its head, throw it into the air: it will always[Pg 220] stand itself up again, automatically. So likewise with matter: we can take it by any end and handle it in any way, it will always fall back into some one of our mathematical formulae, because it is weighted with geometry.
If the mathematical order were a good thing, and if there were inherent laws in matter similar to those in our codes, then the success of our science would feel almost miraculous. What chance would we really have of discovering nature's standards and accurately isolating the very variables that nature has chosen to determine their relationships? However, a science based on mathematical forms would still be baffling if matter didn't already contain everything needed to align with our formulas. So, only one hypothesis remains plausible: the mathematical order is not a positive entity; it’s a form that a certain interruption naturally aims for, and materiality itself consists of this kind of interruption. We can then understand why our science is contingent and relative to the variables it selects and the order in which it poses problems, yet it still succeeds. It could have been entirely different and still succeeded. This is precisely because there is no definite system of mathematical laws underlying nature and because mathematics, in general, simply represents the direction in which matter tends. Put one of those little cork dolls with lead feet in any position, lay it on its back, turn it upside down, throw it into the air: it will always[Pg 220] right itself automatically. Similarly, matter can be handled in any way, yet it will always revert to one of our mathematical formulas because it is influenced by geometry.
But the philosopher will perhaps refuse to found a theory of knowledge on such considerations. They will be repugnant to him, because the mathematical order, being order, will appear to him to contain something positive. It is in vain that we assert that this order produces itself automatically by the interruption of the inverse order, that it is this very interruption. The idea persists, none the less, that there might be no order at all, and that the mathematical order of things, being a conquest over disorder, possesses a positive reality. In examining this point, we shall see what a prominent part the idea of disorder plays in problems relative to the theory of knowledge. It does not appear explicitly, and that is why it escapes our attention. It is, however, with the criticism of this idea that a theory of knowledge ought to begin, for if the great problem is to know why and how reality submits itself to an order, it is because the absence of every kind of order appears possible or conceivable. It is this absence of order that realists and idealists alike believe they are thinking of—the realist when he speaks of the regularity that "objective" laws actually impose on a virtual disorder of nature, the idealist when he supposes a "sensuous manifold" which is coördinated (and consequently itself without order) under the organizing influence of our understanding. The idea of disorder, in the sense of absence of order, is then what must be analyzed first. Philosophy borrows it from daily life. And it is unquestionable that, when ordinarily we speak of disorder, we are thinking of something. But of what?[Pg 221]
But the philosopher might refuse to base a theory of knowledge on such ideas. They would find them unappealing because the mathematical order, being orderly, seems to contain something positive. It’s pointless to claim that this order arises automatically from the interruption of the reverse order, that it is that very interruption. The idea remains, nonetheless, that there might be no order at all, and that the mathematical order of things, being a triumph over disorder, has a positive reality. By examining this point, we will see how significant the idea of disorder is in discussions about the theory of knowledge. It doesn’t appear explicitly, which is why it often goes unnoticed. However, a theory of knowledge should start with critiquing this idea, because if the main issue is to understand why and how reality organizes itself, it’s because the absence of any kind of order seems possible or conceivable. It is this lack of order that both realists and idealists seem to be considering—the realist when discussing the regularity that "objective" laws impose on nature’s potential disorder, and the idealist when positing a "sensuous manifold" that is coordinated (and thus itself unordered) under the organizing influence of our understanding. The notion of disorder, in the sense of absence of order, is what needs to be analyzed first. Philosophy draws it from everyday life. It’s clear that when we usually talk about disorder, we are thinking of something. But what? [Pg 221]
It will be seen in the next chapter how hard it is to determine the content of a negative idea, and what illusions one is liable to, what hopeless difficulties philosophy falls into, for not having undertaken this task. Difficulties and illusions are generally due to this, that we accept as final a manner of expression essentially provisional. They are due to our bringing into the domain of speculation a procedure made for practice. If I choose a volume in my library at random, I may put it back on the shelf after glancing at it and say, "This is not verse." Is this what I have really seen in turning over the leaves of the book? Obviously not. I have not seen, I never shall see, an absence of verse. I have seen prose. But as it is poetry I want, I express what I find as a function of what I am looking for, and instead of saying, "This is prose," I say, "This is not verse." In the same way, if the fancy takes me to read prose, and I happen on a volume of verse, I shall say, "This is not prose," thus expressing the data of my perception, which shows me verse, in the language of my expectation and attention, which are fixed on the idea of prose and will hear of nothing else. Now, if Mons. Jourdain heard me, he would infer, no doubt, from my two exclamations that prose and poetry are two forms of language reserved for books, and that these learned forms have come and overlaid a language which was neither prose nor verse. Speaking of this thing which is neither verse nor prose, he would suppose, moreover, that he was thinking of it: it would be only a pseudo-idea, however. Let us go further still: the pseudo-idea would create a pseudo-problem, if M. Jourdain were to ask his professor of philosophy how the prose form and the poetry form have been superadded to that which possessed neither the one nor the other, and if he wished the professor to construct a theory of the imposition of[Pg 222] these two forms upon this formless matter. His question would be absurd, and the absurdity would lie in this, that he was hypostasizing as the substratum of prose and poetry the simultaneous negation of both, forgetting that the negation of the one consists in the affirmation of the other.
It will be shown in the next chapter how difficult it is to figure out the content of a negative idea and what misconceptions can arise, along with the frustrating challenges philosophy faces when it skips this task. The problems and misunderstandings generally stem from treating a way of expressing things as final when it is really just temporary. They arise from bringing a method designed for practice into the realm of theory. If I randomly pick a book from my library, I might flip through it and then put it back on the shelf, saying, "This isn't poetry." But is that what I actually observed when I skimmed through the pages? Clearly not. I haven’t seen, nor will I ever see, a lack of poetry. I’ve seen prose. But since I’m looking for poetry, I describe what I find based on what I want, and instead of saying, "This is prose," I say, "This isn't poetry." Similarly, if I’m in the mood for prose and I come across a poetry book, I’ll say, "This isn't prose," thereby expressing what I perceive as poetry in terms of my expectation and focus, which are set on the idea of prose and are unwilling to consider anything else. Now, if Monsieur Jourdain heard me, he might conclude from my two comments that prose and poetry are two types of language reserved for books, and that these learned forms have covered up a language that is neither prose nor poetry. While discussing this thing that is neither, he would probably think he understands it: however, it would only be a pseudo-idea. Let’s go even further: this pseudo-idea would generate a pseudo-problem if M. Jourdain were to ask his philosophy professor how the forms of prose and poetry have been added to something that had neither, and if he wanted the professor to come up with a theory about how[Pg 222] these two forms apply to this formless material. His question would be ridiculous, and the absurdity comes from him treating the simultaneous absence of both as the foundation of prose and poetry, forgetting that the absence of one is actually the affirmation of the other.
Now, suppose that there are two species of order, and that these two orders are two contraries within one and the same genus. Suppose also that the idea of disorder arises in our mind whenever, seeking one of the two kinds of order, we find the other. The idea of disorder would then have a clear meaning in the current practice of life: it would objectify, for the convenience of language, the disappointment of a mind that finds before it an order different from what it wants, an order with which it is not concerned at the moment, and which, in this sense, does not exist for it. But the idea would not admit a theoretical use. So if we claim, notwithstanding, to introduce it into philosophy, we shall inevitably lose sight of its true meaning. It denotes the absence of a certain order, but to the profit of another (with which we are not concerned); only, as it applies to each of the two in turn, and as it even goes and comes continually between the two, we take it on the way, or rather on the wing, like a shuttlecock between two battledores, and treat it as if it represented, not the absence of the one or other order as the case may be, but the absence of both together—a thing that is neither perceived nor conceived, a simple verbal entity. So there arises the problem how order is imposed on disorder, form on matter. In analyzing the idea of disorder thus subtilized, we shall see that it represents nothing at all, and at the same time the problems that have been raised around it will vanish.
Now, let’s say there are two kinds of order, and these two orders are opposites within the same category. Also, imagine that the concept of disorder pops into our heads whenever, while looking for one type of order, we come across the other. The idea of disorder would then have a clear meaning in everyday life: it would represent, for the sake of communication, the feeling of disappointment we experience when we encounter an order that isn't what we wanted, something that doesn't concern us at that moment and, in that sense, doesn’t exist for us. However, this idea wouldn’t really have a theoretical use. So if we try to bring it into philosophy anyway, we will likely lose track of its true meaning. It signifies the lack of a certain order but to the benefit of another (which we are not focused on); since it applies to each of the two orders in turn and constantly shifts back and forth between them, we catch it in motion, like a shuttlecock between two rackets, and treat it as if it represented the absence of both orders at once—a concept that is neither seen nor thought of, just a verbal construct. This raises the question of how order is enforced on disorder, and form on matter. By breaking down the idea of disorder in this nuanced way, we’ll find that it really represents nothing at all, and the problems surrounding it will disappear.
It is true that we must begin by distinguishing, and even by opposing one to the other, two kinds of order[Pg 223] which we generally confuse. As this confusion has created the principal difficulties of the problem of knowledge, it will not be useless to dwell once more on the marks by which the two orders are distinguished.
It’s important to start by differentiating, and even contrasting, two types of order[Pg 223] that we usually mix up. Since this confusion has led to the main challenges in understanding knowledge, it’s worthwhile to revisit the signs that distinguish the two orders.
In a general way, reality is ordered exactly to the degree in which it satisfies our thought. Order is therefore a certain agreement between subject and object. It is the mind finding itself again in things. But the mind, we said, can go in two opposite ways. Sometimes it follows its natural direction: there is then progress in the form of tension, continuous creation, free activity. Sometimes it inverts it, and this inversion, pushed to the end, leads to extension, to the necessary reciprocal determination of elements externalized each by relation to the others, in short, to geometrical mechanism. Now, whether experience seems to us to adopt the first direction or whether it is drawn in the direction of the second, in both cases we say there is order, for in the two processes the mind finds itself again. The confusion between them is therefore natural. To escape it, different names would have to be given to the two kinds of order, and that is not easy, because of the variety and variability of the forms they take. The order of the second kind may be defined as geometry, which is its extreme limit; more generally, it is that kind of order that is concerned whenever a relation of necessary determination is found between causes and effects. It evokes ideas of inertia, of passivity, of automatism. As to the first kind of order, it oscillates no doubt around finality; and yet we cannot define it as finality, for it is sometimes above, sometimes below. In its highest forms, it is more than finality, for of a free action or a work of art we may say that they show a perfect order, and yet they can only be expressed in terms of ideas approximately, and after the event. Life in its entirety, regarded as a[Pg 224] creative evolution, is something analogous; it transcends finality, if we understand by finality the realization of an idea conceived or conceivable in advance. The category of finality is therefore too narrow for life in its entirety. It is, on the other hand, often too wide for a particular manifestation of life taken separately. Be that as it may, it is with the vital that we have here to do, and the whole present study strives to prove that the vital is in the direction of the voluntary. We may say then that this first kind of order is that of the vital or of the willed, in opposition to the second, which is that of the inert and the automatic. Common sense instinctively distinguishes between the two kinds of order, at least in the extreme cases; instinctively, also, it brings them together. We say of astronomical phenomena that they manifest an admirable order, meaning by this that they can be foreseen mathematically. And we find an order no less admirable in a symphony of Beethoven, which is genius, originality, and therefore unforeseeability itself.
In general, reality is ordered to the extent that it aligns with our thoughts. Order is essentially the agreement between the subject and the object. It’s the mind recognizing itself in things. However, the mind can go in two opposite directions. Sometimes it follows its natural path, resulting in progress marked by tension, continuous creation, and free activity. Other times, it flips this direction, and when this inversion is taken to the extreme, it leads to extension and the necessary reciprocal determination of elements defined by their relationships with each other, essentially to geometrical mechanics. Whether experience seems to lean towards the first direction or is drawn towards the second, we recognize order in both cases because the mind identifies itself again in both processes. Therefore, the confusion between them is natural. To clarify this, we would need to assign different names to the two kinds of order, which is not easy due to the variety and variability of their manifestations. The second type of order can be defined as geometry, which represents its extreme limit; more broadly, it’s the kind of order observable whenever there’s a necessary relationship between causes and effects. It brings to mind concepts of inertia, passivity, and automatism. As for the first type of order, it likely revolves around purpose, but we can't strictly define it as purpose, as it can sometimes be above or below that. In its finest forms, it transcends purpose; for instance, a free action or a work of art can exhibit perfect order, yet they can only be articulated in approximate terms and often only after the fact. Life in its entirety, viewed as a[Pg 224] creative evolution, resembles this; it transcends purpose if we interpret purpose as the realization of an idea conceived beforehand. Thus, the concept of purpose is too limited for life as a whole. Conversely, it is often too broad for particular instances of life when considered individually. Regardless, we are dealing with the vital, and the current study aims to demonstrate that the vital aligns with the voluntary. We can say that this first type of order is that of the vital or the willed, opposed to the second, which is characterized by the inert and the automatic. Common sense naturally recognizes the distinction between the two types of order, at least in extreme cases; it also instinctively relates them. We describe astronomical phenomena as exhibiting admirable order, implying they can be predicted mathematically. Similarly, we find an equally admirable order in a symphony by Beethoven, which represents genius, originality, and therefore, unpredictability itself.
But it is exceptional for order of the first kind to take so distinct a form. Ordinarily, it presents features that we have every interest in confusing with those of the opposite order. It is quite certain, for instance, that if we could view the evolution of life in its entirety, the spontaneity of its movement and the unforeseeability of its procedures would thrust themselves on our attention. But what we meet in our daily experience is a certain determinate living being, certain special manifestations of life, which repeat, almost, forms and facts already known; indeed, the similarity of structure that we find everywhere between what generates and what is generated—a similarity that enables us to include any number of living individuals in the same group—is to our[Pg 225] eyes the very type of the generic: the inorganic genera seem to us to take living genera as models. Thus the vital order, such as it is offered to us piecemeal in experience, presents the same character and performs the same function as the physical order: both cause experience to repeat itself, both enable our mind to generalize. In reality, this character has entirely different origins in the two cases, and even opposite meanings. In the second case, the type of this character, its ideal limit, as also its foundation, is the geometrical necessity in virtue of which the same components give the same resultant. In the first case, this character involves, on the contrary, the intervention of something which manages to obtain the same total effect although the infinitely complex elementary causes may be quite different. We insisted on this last point in our first chapter, when we showed how identical structures are to be met with on independent lines of evolution. But, without looking so far, we may presume that the reproduction only of the type of the ancestor by his descendants is an entirely different thing from the repetition of the same composition of forces which yields an identical resultant. When we think of the infinity of infinitesimal elements and of infinitesimal causes that concur in the genesis of a living being, when we reflect that the absence or the deviation of one of them would spoil everything, the first impulse of the mind is to consider this army of little workers as watched over by a skilled foreman, the "vital principle," which is ever repairing faults, correcting effects of neglect or absentmindedness, putting things back in place: this is how we try to express the difference between the physical and the vital order, the former making the same combination of causes give the same combined effect, the latter securing the constancy of the effect even when there is some wavering[Pg 226] in the causes. But that is only a comparison; on reflection, we find that there can be no foreman, for the very simple reason that there are no workers. The causes and elements that physico-chemical analysis discovers are real causes and elements, no doubt, as far as the facts of organic destruction are concerned; they are then limited in number. But vital phenomena, properly so called, or facts of organic creation open up to us, when we analyze them, the perspective of an analysis passing away to infinity: whence it may be inferred that the manifold causes and elements are here only views of the mind, attempting an ever closer and closer imitation of the operation of nature, while the operation imitated is an indivisible act. The likeness between individuals of the same species has thus an entirely different meaning, an entirely different origin, to that of the likeness between complex effects obtained by the same composition of the same causes. But in the one case as in the other, there is likeness, and consequently possible generalization. And as that is all that interests us in practice, since our daily life is and must be an expectation of the same things and the same situations, it is natural that this common character, essential from the point of view of our action, should bring the two orders together, in spite of a merely internal diversity between them which interests speculation only. Hence the idea of a general order of nature, everywhere the same, hovering over life and over matter alike. Hence our habit of designating by the same word and representing in the same way the existence of laws in the domain of inert matter and that of genera in the domain of life.
But it’s unusual for the first kind of order to take such a clear form. Usually, it has features that we tend to confuse with those of the opposite kind. For example, if we could see the evolution of life as a whole, the spontaneity of its movement and the unpredictability of its processes would stand out. However, what we encounter in our daily lives are specific living beings and distinct manifestations of life that, almost, repeat forms and facts we already know; indeed, the structural similarities that we find everywhere between what creates and what is created—a similarity that allows us to group many living individuals together—is, to our eyes, the very essence of the generic: inorganic groups seem to use living groups as templates. Thus, the vital order, as we experience it piece by piece, exhibits the same character and fulfills the same function as the physical order: both cause experiences to repeat themselves, and both allow our minds to generalize. In reality, this characteristic originates from entirely different sources in each case, and has even opposite meanings. In the second case, the ideal standard of this characteristic, as well as its foundation, is the geometrical necessity that ensures the same components yield the same result. In the first case, this characteristic requires the presence of something that manages to achieve the same overall effect, even though the infinitely complex underlying causes may be quite different. We emphasized this point in our first chapter when we demonstrated how identical structures can arise through independent evolutionary paths. However, without needing to look that far, we can assume that reproducing the type of the ancestor by their descendants is completely different from repeating the same combination of forces that produce an identical result. When we consider the vast number of tiny elements and infinitesimal causes involved in the creation of a living being, and realize that the absence or deviation of any single one of them could ruin everything, our initial instinct is to envision these countless tiny workers being overseen by a skilled manager, the "vital principle," which is constantly fixing mistakes, correcting lapses in attention, and putting things back on track: this is how we try to articulate the difference between the physical and vital orders, with the former ensuring that the same combination of causes results in the same combined effect, while the latter maintains the consistency of the effect even when there are some fluctuations in the causes. But that’s just a comparison; upon reflection, we realize there can't be a manager, for a very simple reason: there are no workers. The causes and elements that physical and chemical analysis identifies are indeed real causes and elements regarding organic decay; they are then limited in number. However, vital phenomena, or organic creation, when analyzed, reveal an infinite complexity: thus, we can infer that the various causes and elements are merely mental constructs, attempting to mimic nature’s processes more and more closely, while the operation being imitated is an indivisible action. The similarities between individuals of the same species thus have a completely different significance and entirely different origins from those of the similarities between complex effects produced by the same combinations of the same causes. But in both cases, there is likeness, and consequently, possible generalization. And since that’s all that interests us practically, as our daily lives revolve around anticipating the same events and situations, it makes sense that this shared characteristic, essential from our perspective, would connect the two orders together, despite a merely internal diversity between them which only intrigues speculation. Hence the concept of a general order of nature, which is the same everywhere, encompassing both life and matter alike. This explains our tendency to use the same term and to represent the existence of laws in the realm of inert matter and genera in the realm of life in the same manner.
Now, it will be found that this confusion is the origin of most of the difficulties raised by the problem of knowledge, among the ancients as well as among the moderns. The generality of laws and that of genera having been[Pg 227] designated by the same word and subsumed under the same idea, the geometrical order and the vital order are accordingly confused together. According to the point of view, the generality of laws is explained by that of genera, or that of genera by that of laws. The first view is characteristic of ancient thought; the second belongs to modern philosophy. But in both ancient and modern philosophy the idea of "generality" is an equivocal idea, uniting in its denotation and in its connotation incompatible objects and elements. In both there are grouped under the same concept two kinds of order which are alike only in the facility they give to our action on things. We bring together the two terms in virtue of a quite external likeness, which justifies no doubt their designation by the same word for practice, but which does not authorize us at all, in the speculative domain, to confuse them in the same definition.
Now, it turns out that this confusion is the root of most of the problems related to knowledge, both for ancient thinkers and modern ones. The fact that laws and categories have been[Pg 227] referred to by the same term and placed under the same concept has led to a mix-up between geometric order and biological order. Depending on the perspective, the generality of laws can be explained in terms of categories or vice versa. The first perspective is typical of ancient thought, while the second is associated with modern philosophy. However, in both ancient and modern philosophy, the concept of "generality" is ambiguous, combining incompatible objects and elements in its meaning. Both schools of thought group two types of order under the same idea, which are only similar in the ease they provide for us to act upon things. We connect these two concepts based on a superficial similarity, which may justify their practical designation by the same term, but does not allow us to conflate them in theoretical discussions.
The ancients, indeed, did not ask why nature submits to laws, but why it is ordered according to genera. The idea of genus corresponds more especially to an objective reality in the domain of life, where it expresses an unquestionable fact, heredity. Indeed, there can only be genera where there are individual objects; now, while the organized being is cut out from the general mass of matter by his very organization, that is to say naturally, it is our perception which cuts inert matter into distinct bodies. It is guided in this by the interests of action, by the nascent reactions that our body indicates—that is, as we have shown elsewhere,[85] by the potential genera that are trying to gain existence. In this, then, genera and individuals determine one another by a semi-artificial operation entirely relative to our future action on things. Nevertheless the ancients did not hesitate to put all genera[Pg 228] in the same rank, to attribute the same absolute existence to all of them. Reality thus being a system of genera, it is to the generality of the genera (that is, in effect, to the generality expressive of the vital order) that the generality of laws itself had to be brought. It is interesting, in this respect, to compare the Aristotelian theory of the fall of bodies with the explanation furnished by Galileo. Aristotle is concerned solely with the concepts "high" and "low," "own proper place" as distinguished from "place occupied," "natural movement" and "forced movement;"[86] the physical law in virtue of which the stone falls expresses for him that the stone regains the "natural place" of all stones, to wit, the earth. The stone, in his view, is not quite stone so long as it is not in its normal place; in falling back into this place it aims at completing itself, like a living being that grows, thus realizing fully the essence of the genus stone.[87] If this conception of the physical law were exact, the law would no longer be a mere relation established by the mind; the subdivision of matter into bodies would no longer be relative to our faculty of perceiving; all bodies would have the same individuality as living bodies, and the laws of the physical universe would express relations of real kinship between real genera. We know what kind of physics grew out of this, and how, for having believed in a science unique and final, embracing the totality of the real and at one with the absolute, the ancients were confined, in fact, to a more or less clumsy interpretation of the physical in terms of the vital.
The ancients didn’t question why nature follows laws, but rather why it’s organized by categories. The concept of category particularly relates to an objective reality in life, where it reflects an undeniable fact: heredity. Categories can only exist where there are individual objects; while an organized being is separated from the general mass of matter by its organization—or naturally—our perception segments inert matter into distinct bodies. This perception is influenced by our actions and the instinctive responses our bodies indicate, which means, as we’ve shown elsewhere,[85] that these potential categories strive for existence. Thus, categories and individuals define each other through a somewhat artificial process that is wholly connected to our future actions on things. Nevertheless, the ancients didn’t hesitate to rank all categories equally, assigning the same absolute existence to all of them. Consequently, since reality is a system of categories, the generality of categories (essentially, the generality that expresses the vital order) had to be reflected in the generality of laws themselves. In this context, it’s interesting to compare Aristotle’s theory of falling bodies with Galileo’s explanation. Aristotle focuses on concepts like "high" and "low," "proper place" versus "occupied place," "natural movement" and "forced movement;"[86] for him, the physical law governing a stone’s fall represents the stone returning to the "natural place" of all stones, which is the earth. According to Aristotle, a stone isn’t fully a stone unless it’s in its rightful position; when it falls back into this place, it seeks completeness, similar to a living being that grows, thereby fully realizing the essence of the category stone.[87] If this understanding of physical law were accurate, the law wouldn’t merely be a relationship defined by the mind; the division of matter into bodies wouldn’t depend on our perception; all bodies would share the same individuality as living beings, and the laws of the physical universe would represent genuine relationships of kinship among real categories. We know what kind of physics emerged from this belief and how, by assuming a unique and final science that encompassed the entirety of reality, the ancients ended up with a rather clumsy interpretation of the physical realm in terms of the vital.
But there is the same confusion in the moderns, with this difference, however, that the relation between the[Pg 229] two terms is inverted: laws are no longer reduced to genera, but genera to laws; and science, still supposed to be uniquely one, becomes altogether relative, instead of being, as the ancients wished, altogether at one with the absolute. A noteworthy fact is the eclipse of the problem of genera in modern philosophy. Our theory of knowledge turns almost entirely on the question of laws: genera are left to make shift with laws as best they can. The reason is, that modern philosophy has its point of departure in the great astronomical and physical discoveries of modern times. The laws of Kepler and of Galileo have remained for it the ideal and unique type of all knowledge. Now, a law is a relation between things or between facts. More precisely, a law of mathematical form expresses the fact that a certain magnitude is a function of one or several other variables appropriately chosen. Now, the choice of the variable magnitudes, the distribution of nature into objects and into facts, has already something of the contingent and the conventional. But, admitting that the choice is hinted at, if not prescribed, by experience, the law remains none the less a relation, and a relation is essentially a comparison; it has objective reality only for an intelligence that represents to itself several terms at the same time. This intelligence may be neither mine nor yours: a science which bears on laws may therefore be an objective science, which experience contains in advance and which we simply make it disgorge; but it is none the less true that a comparison of some kind must be effected here, impersonally if not by any one in particular, and that an experience made of laws, that is, of terms related to other terms, is an experience made of comparisons, which, before we receive it, has already had to pass through an atmosphere of intellectuality. The idea of a science and of an experience entirely relative to the[Pg 230] human understanding was therefore implicitly contained in the conception of a science one and integral, composed of laws: Kant only brought it to light. But this conception is the result of an arbitrary confusion between the generality of laws and that of genera. Though an intelligence be necessary to condition terms by relation to each other, we may conceive that in certain cases the terms themselves may exist independently. And if, beside relations of term to term, experience also presents to us independent terms, the living genera being something quite different from systems of laws, one half, at least, of our knowledge bears on the "thing-in-itself," the very reality. This knowledge may be very difficult, just because it no longer builds up its own object and is obliged, on the contrary, to submit to it; but, however little it cuts into its object, it is into the absolute itself that it bites. We may go further: the other half of knowledge is no longer so radically, so definitely relative as certain philosophers say, if we can establish that it bears on a reality of inverse order, a reality which we always express in mathematical laws, that is to say in relations that imply comparisons, but which lends itself to this work only because it is weighted with spatiality and consequently with geometry. Be that as it may, it is the confusion of two kinds of order that lies behind the relativism of the moderns, as it lay behind the dogmatism of the ancients.
But there's the same confusion in modern thinkers, with one key difference: the relationship between the two concepts is flipped. Laws are no longer simplified into categories; instead, categories are simplified into laws. Science, which is still believed to be singular, becomes completely relative, rather than being, as the ancients desired, fully aligned with the absolute. It's noteworthy that the issue of categories has faded in modern philosophy. Our understanding of knowledge largely hinges on the question of laws: categories are left to manage with laws as best they can. This is because modern philosophy is rooted in the significant astronomical and physical discoveries of recent times. The laws of Kepler and Galileo have remained the ideal and unique model of all knowledge. A law is a relationship between things or facts. More specifically, a mathematical law expresses the fact that a specific magnitude is a function of one or more other appropriately chosen variables. However, the selection of variable magnitudes and the categorization of nature into objects and facts already has some element of chance and convention. But even if this choice is suggested, if not determined, by experience, the law is still a relationship, and a relationship is fundamentally a comparison; it has objective reality only for an intelligence that can conceive of several terms simultaneously. This intelligence may not be mine or yours: a science based on laws can therefore be an objective science that experience holds in advance, which we simply extract; yet it's still true that some kind of comparison must take place here, impersonally if not by anyone in particular, and that an experience made of laws—meaning terms related to other terms—is an experience composed of comparisons that has already had to navigate through an intellectual atmosphere before we accept it. The idea of a science and an experience entirely relative to human understanding was thus implicitly included in the notion of a unified and integral science composed of laws: Kant merely brought it to light. However, this notion arises from a false confusion between the generality of laws and that of categories. Although some form of intelligence is essential for relating terms to each other, we can imagine that, in certain instances, the terms themselves might exist independently. And if, alongside relationships between terms, experience also presents us with independent terms, the living categories being something entirely different from systems of laws, at least half of our knowledge pertains to the "thing-in-itself," the true reality. This knowledge may be quite challenging because it doesn’t construct its own object and must, instead, submit to it; yet, however minimally it engages with its object, it still penetrates the absolute itself. We can go even further: the other half of knowledge is not as fundamentally, as definitively relative as some philosophers claim, if we can establish that it relates to a reality of an inverse order, a reality which we always express in mathematical laws, meaning in relationships that imply comparisons, but which can only lend itself to this work because it's grounded in spatiality and, consequently, in geometry. Regardless, it is the confusion of two types of order that lies behind the relativism of modern thinkers, just as it did behind the dogmatism of the ancients.
We have said enough to mark the origin of this confusion. It is due to the fact that the "vital" order, which is essentially creation, is manifested to us less in its essence than in some of its accidents, those which imitate the physical and geometrical order; like it, they present to us repetitions that make generalization possible, and in that we have all that interests us. There is no doubt that life as a whole is an evolution, that is, an unceasing[Pg 231] transformation. But life can progress only by means of the living, which are its depositaries. Innumerable living beings, almost alike, have to repeat each other in space and in time for the novelty they are working out to grow and mature. It is like a book that advances towards a new edition by going through thousands of reprints with thousands of copies. There is, however, this difference between the two cases, that the successive impressions are identical, as well as the simultaneous copies of the same impression, whereas representatives of one and the same species are never entirely the same, either in different points of space or at different moments of time. Heredity does not only transmit characters; it transmits also the impetus in virtue of which the characters are modified, and this impetus is vitality itself. That is why we say that the repetition which serves as the base of our generalizations is essential in the physical order, accidental in the vital order. The physical order is "automatic;" the vital order is, I will not say voluntary, but analogous to the order "willed."
We've said enough to highlight the source of this confusion. It stems from the fact that the "vital" order, which is fundamentally about creation, shows itself more in its characteristics than in its essence, particularly those that imitate the physical and geometric order. Like that, they offer us patterns that allow for generalization, and in that, we find everything that interests us. There's no doubt that life as a whole is an evolution, meaning it's a continuous[Pg 231] transformation. However, life can only progress through the living beings that carry it. Countless living organisms, almost identical, must repeat each other in both space and time for the new developments they're creating to grow and evolve. It's similar to a book moving towards a new edition by going through thousands of reprints with countless copies. There is, however, a key difference: the successive impressions are identical, as are the simultaneous copies of the same impression, while representatives of the same species are never completely the same, whether in different locations or at different times. Heredity doesn't just pass down traits; it also carries the drive that modifies those traits, and that drive is vitality itself. That's why we say that the repetition that forms the basis of our generalizations is essential in the physical order but accidental in the vital order. The physical order is "automatic"; the vital order is not exactly "voluntary," but it resembles an order that is "willed."
Now, as soon as we have clearly distinguished between the order that is "willed" and the order that is "automatic," the ambiguity that underlies the idea of disorder is dissipated, and, with it, one of the principal difficulties of the problem of knowledge.
Now, once we clearly differentiate between the order that is "willed" and the order that is "automatic," the confusion around the concept of disorder disappears, along with one of the main challenges in understanding knowledge.
The main problem of the theory of knowledge is to know how science is possible, that is to say, in effect, why there is order and not disorder in things. That order exists is a fact. But, on the other hand, disorder, which appears to us to be less than order, is, it seems, of right. The existence of order is then a mystery to be cleared up, at any rate a problem to be solved. More simply, when we undertake to found order, we regard it as contingent, if not in things, at least as viewed by the mind: of a thing that we do not judge to be contingent we[Pg 232] do not require an explanation. If order did not appear to us as a conquest over something, or as an addition to something (which something is thought to be the "absence of order"), ancient realism would not have spoken of a "matter" to which the Idea superadded itself, nor would modern idealism have supposed a "sensuous manifold" that the understanding organizes into nature. Now, it is unquestionable that all order is contingent, and conceived as such. But contingent in relation to what?
The main issue in the theory of knowledge is figuring out how science is possible, essentially asking why there is order instead of chaos in the world. The fact that order exists is undeniable. However, disorder, which seems less prevalent than order, appears to have a certain legitimacy. Therefore, the existence of order is a mystery that needs to be solved, or at least understood. Simply put, when we try to establish order, we see it as dependent, if not in reality, at least from our perspective: for something we don’t see as dependent, we don’t need an explanation. If order didn’t seem like a victory over something or an addition to something (which is thought of as the "absence of order"), ancient realism wouldn’t have referred to a "matter" added to the Idea, nor would modern idealism have imagined a "sensuous manifold" that the mind organizes into nature. Now, it's clear that all order is seen as dependent. But dependent on what?
The reply, to our thinking, is not doubtful. An order is contingent, and seems so, in relation to the inverse order, as verse is contingent in relation to prose and prose in relation to verse. But, just as all speech which is not prose is verse and necessarily conceived as verse, just as all speech which is not verse is prose and necessarily conceived as prose, so any state of things that is not one of the two orders is the other and is necessarily conceived as the other. But it may happen that we do not realize what we are actually thinking of, and perceive the idea really present to our mind only through a mist of affective states. Any one can be convinced of this by considering the use we make of the idea of disorder in daily life. When I enter a room and pronounce it to be "in disorder," what do I mean? The position of each object is explained by the automatic movements of the person who has slept in the room, or by the efficient causes, whatever they may be, that have caused each article of furniture, clothing, etc., to be where it is: the order, in the second sense of the word, is perfect. But it is order of the first kind that I am expecting, the order that a methodical person consciously puts into his life, the willed order and not the automatic: so I call the absence of this order "disorder." At bottom, all there is that is real, perceived and even conceived, in this absence[Pg 233] of one of the two kinds of order, is the presence of the other. But the second is indifferent to me, I am interested only in the first, and I express the presence of the second as a function of the first, instead of expressing it, so to speak, as a function of itself, by saying it is disorder. Inversely, when we affirm that we are imagining a chaos, that is to say a state of things in which the physical world no longer obeys laws, what are we thinking of? We imagine facts that appear and disappear capriciously. First we think of the physical universe as we know it, with effects and causes well proportioned to each other; then, by a series of arbitrary decrees, we augment, diminish, suppress, so as to obtain what we call disorder. In reality we have substituted will for the mechanism of nature; we have replaced the "automatic order" by a multitude of elementary wills, just to the extent that we imagine the apparition or vanishing of phenomena. No doubt, for all these little wills to constitute a "willed order," they must have accepted the direction of a higher will. But, on looking closely at them, we see that that is just what they do: our own will is there, which objectifies itself in each of these capricious wills in turn, and takes good care not to connect the same with the same, nor to permit the effect to be proportional to the cause—in fact makes one simple intention hover over the whole of the elementary volitions. Thus, here again, the absence of one of the two orders consists in the presence of the other. In analyzing the idea of chance, which is closely akin to the idea of disorder, we find the same elements. When the wholly mechanical play of the causes which stop the wheel on a number makes me win, and consequently acts like a good genius, careful of my interests, or when the wholly mechanical force of the wind tears a tile off the roof and throws it on to my head, that is to say acts like a[Pg 234] bad genius, conspiring against my person: in both cases I find a mechanism where I should have looked for, where, indeed, it seems as if I ought to have found, an intention. That is what I express in speaking of chance. And of an anarchical world, in which phenomena succeed each other capriciously, I should say again that it is a realm of chance, meaning that I find before me wills, or rather decrees, when what I am expecting is mechanism. Thus is explained the singular vacillation of the mind when it tries to define chance. Neither efficient cause nor final cause can furnish the definition sought. The mind swings to and fro, unable to rest, between the idea of an absence of final cause and that of an absence of efficient cause, each of these definitions sending it back to the other. The problem remains insoluble, in fact, so long as the idea of chance is regarded as a pure idea, without mixture of feeling. But, in reality, chance merely objectifies the state of mind of one who, expecting one of the two kinds of order, finds himself confronted with the other. Chance and disorder are therefore necessarily conceived as relative. So if we wish to represent them to ourselves as absolute, we perceive that we are going to and fro like a shuttle between the two kinds of order, passing into the one just at the moment at which we might catch ourself in the other, and that the supposed absence of all order is really the presence of both, with, besides, the swaying of a mind that cannot rest finally in either. Neither in things nor in our idea of things can there be any question of presenting this disorder as the substratum of order, since it implies the two kinds of order and is made of their combination.
The response, in our view, is clear. An order is dependent and appears so in relation to the opposite order, just as verse is dependent on prose and prose on verse. However, just as all speech that isn't prose is verse and must be understood as verse, and all speech that isn't verse is prose and must be understood as prose, so too any situation that isn't one of the two orders is the other and must be understood as such. But sometimes we might not realize what we're really thinking about and only recognize the idea present in our minds through a haze of emotions. Anyone can see this by reflecting on how we use the idea of disorder in everyday life. When I walk into a room and say it’s "in disorder," what do I mean? Each object's placement can be attributed to the automatic actions of the person who slept in the room, or by the various causes that put each piece of furniture, clothing, and so on in its place: the order, in that sense, is perfect. But I am expecting the first kind of order, the organized arrangement a methodical person intentionally establishes in their life, the willed order rather than the automatic one; hence, I label the absence of this order as "disorder." Ultimately, what is real, observed, and even imagined in this absence of one of the two kinds of order is the presence of the other. But the second is irrelevant to me; I care only about the first, and I express the presence of the second as an effect of the first, instead of expressing it, so to speak, as something that stands on its own, by calling it disorder. Conversely, when we claim we are envisioning chaos—a state where the physical world no longer obeys laws—what are we really thinking of? We imagine facts that come and go randomly. First, we envision the physical universe as we know it, with causes and effects matched well to one another; then, through a series of arbitrary decisions, we add, subtract, or eliminate elements to create what we call disorder. In truth, we have replaced will for the mechanisms of nature; we have swapped "automatic order" for a multitude of individual wills, exactly to the degree that we imagine events appearing or disappearing. Certainly, for all these little wills to create a "willed order," they must agree to follow a higher will. But, on closer inspection, that's precisely what happens: our own will is present, manifesting in each of these whimsical wills in turn, ensuring not to connect the same with the same, nor to allow the effect to correspond proportionally to the cause—in fact, it makes one single intention hover over all the basic volitions. Thus, again, the absence of one of the two orders means the presence of the other. When we analyze the concept of chance, which is closely related to the idea of disorder, we find the same components. When the purely mechanical play of causes that stops the wheel on a number makes me win, acting like a benevolent force looking out for my interests, or when the mechanical force of the wind knocks a tile off the roof and hits me on the head, acting like a [Pg 234] malevolent force conspiring against me: in both scenarios, I find a mechanism where I expected, indeed, it seems I should have found, intention. That is what I refer to as chance. And regarding a chaotic world, in which phenomena follow one another randomly, I'd again say it’s a realm of chance, meaning that I see wills, or rather decrees, where I expected to find mechanism. This explains the peculiar hesitation of the mind when it tries to define chance. Neither efficient cause nor final cause can provide the sought-after definition. The mind swings back and forth, unable to settle, between the idea of an absence of final cause and that of an absence of efficient cause, each of these definitions leading it to the other. The problem remains unsolvable, in fact, as long as the concept of chance is viewed as a pure idea, devoid of emotion. But, in reality, chance simply objectifies the state of mind of someone who, expecting one of the two kinds of order, faces the other. Hence, chance and disorder are necessarily understood as relative. Therefore, if we want to think of them as absolute, we find ourselves moving back and forth like a shuttle between the two types of order, slipping into one just as we might catch ourselves in the other, and that the presumed absence of all order is, in fact, the presence of both, alongside a mind that cannot settle in either. Neither in things nor in our concept of things can we truly regard this disorder as the foundation of order, since it encompasses both types of order and is formed from their combination.
But our intelligence is not stopped by this. By a simple sic jubeo it posits a disorder which is an "absence of order." In so doing it thinks a word or a set of words, nothing more. If it seeks to attach[Pg 235] an idea to the word, it finds that disorder may indeed be the negation of order, but that this negation is then the implicit affirmation of the presence of the opposite order, which we shut our eyes to because it does not interest us, or which we evade by denying the second order in its turn—that is, at bottom, by re-establishing the first. How can we speak, then, of an incoherent diversity which an understanding organizes? It is no use for us to say that no one supposes this incoherence to be realized or realizable: when we speak of it, we believe we are thinking of it; now, in analyzing the idea actually present, we find, as we said before, only the disappointment of the mind confronted with an order that does not interest it, or a swaying of the mind between two kinds of order, or, finally, the idea pure and simple of the empty word that we have created by joining a negative prefix to a word which itself signifies something. But it is this analysis that we neglect to make. We omit it, precisely because it does not occur to us to distinguish two kinds of order that are irreducible to one another.
But our understanding doesn't stop here. With a simple sic jubeo, it establishes a disorder, which is essentially "an absence of order." In doing so, it thinks of a word or a collection of words, nothing more. If it tries to link [Pg 235] an idea to the word, it realizes that disorder can indeed be the opposite of order, but this negation implicitly confirms the existence of the opposite order, which we ignore because it doesn't interest us, or which we evade by denying the second order in turn—that is, ultimately, by re-establishing the first. How can we talk about a confusing diversity that understanding organizes? It's pointless to say that no one thinks this incoherence is real or achievable: when we mention it, we believe we're thinking about it; now, in analyzing the concept actually at hand, we find, as we stated before, only the disappointment of the mind faced with an order that doesn't engage it, or a back-and-forth of the mind between two types of order, or, finally, the simple idea of the empty word we've created by attaching a negative prefix to a word that itself means something. Yet it's this analysis that we fail to undertake. We overlook it, precisely because we don't think to distinguish between two kinds of order that cannot be reduced to each other.
We said, indeed, that all order necessarily appears as contingent. If there are two kinds of order, this contingency of order is explained: one of the forms is contingent in relation to the other. Where I find the geometrical order, the vital was possible; where the order is vital, it might have been geometrical. But suppose that the order is everywhere of the same kind, and simply admits of degrees which go from the geometrical to the vital: if a determinate order still appears to me to be contingent, and can no longer be so by relation to an order of another kind, I shall necessarily believe that the order is contingent by relation to an absence of itself, that is to say by relation to a state of things "in which there is no order at all."[Pg 236] And this state of things I shall believe that I am thinking of, because it is implied, it seems, in the very contingency of order, which is an unquestionable fact. I shall therefore place at the summit of the hierarchy the vital order; then, as a diminution or lower complication of it, the geometrical order; and finally, at the bottom of all, an absence of order, incoherence itself, on which order is superposed. This is why incoherence has the effect on me of a word behind which there must be something real, if not in things, at least in thought. But if I observe that the state of things implied by the contingency of a determinate order is simply the presence of the contrary order, and if by this very fact I posit two kinds of order, each the inverse of the other, I perceive that no intermediate degrees can be imagined between the two orders, and that there is no going down from the two orders to the "incoherent." Either the incoherent is only a word, devoid of meaning, or, if I give it a meaning, it is on condition of putting incoherence midway between the two orders, and not below both of them. There is not first the incoherent, then the geometrical, then the vital; there is only the geometrical and the vital, and then, by a swaying of the mind between them, the idea of the incoherent. To speak of an uncoördinated diversity to which order is superadded is therefore to commit a veritable petitio principii; for in imagining the uncoördinated we really posit an order, or rather two.
We indeed said that all order seems to be contingent. If there are two types of order, this contingency is clarified: one form depends on the other. Where I see geometric order, vital order was possible; where the order is vital, it could have been geometric. But suppose that the order everywhere is of the same type and simply varies from geometric to vital: if a specific order still seems contingent and cannot be deemed so in relation to an order of a different type, I will inevitably think that the order is contingent in relation to an absence of itself, meaning in relation to a state of things "where there is no order at all."[Pg 236] I will believe this state of things is what I'm considering because it seems implied in the very contingency of order, which is an undeniable fact. Therefore, I will place the vital order at the top of the hierarchy; then, below it, as a lesser or more complicated version, the geometric order; and lastly, at the bottom, an absence of order, actual incoherence, upon which order is built. This is why incoherence feels to me like a term that must signify something real, if not in reality, then at least in thought. But if I observe that the state of things suggested by the contingency of a specific order is just the presence of the opposing order, and by this very observation I establish two types of order, each the opposite of the other, I realize that no intermediate stages can exist between the two orders, and there’s no way to descend from the two orders to the "incoherent." Either incoherence is merely a term without meaning, or if I give it a meaning, it must be positioned between the two orders, not beneath both. There isn't first the incoherent, then the geometric, then the vital; there are only the geometric and the vital, and then, through a mental sway between them, the concept of the incoherent. To talk about an uncoordinated diversity to which order is added is therefore to commit a genuine petitio principii; for by imagining the uncoordinated, we really affirm the existence of an order, or rather two.
This long analysis was necessary to show how the real can pass from tension to extension and from freedom to mechanical necessity by way of inversion. It was not enough to prove that this relation between the two terms is suggested to us, at once, by consciousness and by sensible experience. It was necessary to prove that the geometrical[Pg 237] order has no need of explanation, being purely and simply the suppression of the inverse order. And, for that, it was indispensable to prove that suppression is always a substitution and is even necessarily conceived as such: it is the requirements of practical life alone that suggest to us here a way of speaking that deceives us both as to what happens in things and as to what is present to our thought. We must now examine more closely the inversion whose consequences we have just described. What, then, is the principle that has only to let go its tension—may we say to detend—in order to extend, the interruption of the cause here being equivalent to a reversal of the effect?
This in-depth analysis was necessary to show how reality can shift from tension to extension and from freedom to mechanical necessity through inversion. It wasn't enough to demonstrate that the relationship between the two concepts is suggested to us both by awareness and by sensory experience. We had to establish that the geometric[Pg 237] order doesn’t require explanation, as it is simply the removal of the inverse order. To do this, it was crucial to show that suppression is always a substitution and is even necessarily understood as such: it’s the demands of practical life that lead us to use language that misleads us about what occurs with things and what is clear in our thoughts. We now need to examine more closely the inversion whose effects we’ve just outlined. So, what is the principle that only needs to release its tension—can we say to detend—to extend, where the interruption of the cause is equivalent to a reversal of the effect?
For want of a better word we have called it consciousness. But we do not mean the narrowed consciousness that functions in each of us. Our own consciousness is the consciousness of a certain living being, placed in a certain point of space; and though it does indeed move in the same direction as its principle, it is continually drawn the opposite way, obliged, though it goes forward, to look behind. This retrospective vision is, as we have shown, the natural function of the intellect, and consequently of distinct consciousness. In order that our consciousness shall coincide with something of its principle, it must detach itself from the already-made and attach itself to the being-made. It needs that, turning back on itself and twisting on itself, the faculty of seeing should be made to be one with the act of willing—a painful effort which we can make suddenly, doing violence to our nature, but cannot sustain more than a few moments. In free action, when we contract our whole being in order to thrust it forward, we have the more or less clear consciousness of motives and of impelling forces, and even, at rare moments, of the becoming by which they are organized into[Pg 238] an act: but the pure willing, the current that runs through this matter, communicating life to it, is a thing which we hardly feel, which at most we brush lightly as it passes. Let us try, however, to instal ourselves within it, if only for a moment; even then it is an individual and fragmentary will that we grasp. To get to the principle of all life, as also of all materiality, we must go further still. Is it impossible? No, by no means; the history of philosophy is there to bear witness. There is no durable system that is not, at least in some of its parts, vivified by intuition. Dialectic is necessary to put intuition to the proof, necessary also in order that intuition should break itself up into concepts and so be propagated to other men; but all it does, often enough, is to develop the result of that intuition which transcends it. The truth is, the two procedures are of opposite direction: the same effort, by which ideas are connected with ideas, causes the intuition which the ideas were storing up to vanish. The philosopher is obliged to abandon intuition, once he has received from it the impetus, and to rely on himself to carry on the movement by pushing the concepts one after another. But he soon feels he has lost foothold; he must come into touch with intuition again; he must undo most of what he has done. In short, dialectic is what ensures the agreement of our thought with itself. But by dialectic—which is only a relaxation of intuition—many different agreements are possible, while there is only one truth. Intuition, if it could be prolonged beyond a few instants, would not only make the philosopher agree with his own thought, but also all philosophers with each other. Such as it is, fugitive and incomplete, it is, in each system, what is worth more than the system and survives it. The object of philosophy would be reached if this intuition could be sustained, generalized[Pg 239] and, above all, assured of external points of reference in order not to go astray. To that end a continual coming and going is necessary between nature and mind.
For lack of a better term, we've called it consciousness. However, we don't mean the limited consciousness that operates in each of us. Our consciousness reflects a specific living being, positioned in a particular spot in space; and while it does move in the same direction as its source, it is constantly pulled the other way, compelled, even while moving forward, to look back. This backward gaze is, as we've shown, the natural function of the intellect and, therefore, of distinct consciousness. For our consciousness to align with something of its essence, it must detach from what is already-made and connect with the being-made. It requires that, by turning in on itself and twisting around, the faculty of seeing merges with the act of willing—a difficult effort that we can make suddenly, forcing ourselves against our nature, but can't maintain for long. In free action, when we gather our entire being to push it forward, we have a somewhat clear awareness of our motives and driving forces, and occasionally, during rare moments, a sense of the becoming that organizes them into[Pg 238] an action: yet the pure willing, the current that flows through this matter, giving it life, is something we barely notice; at most, we only lightly perceive it as it passes. Let’s try, however, to immerse ourselves within it, even if just for a moment; even then, it's an individual and fragmented will that we grasp. To reach the essence of all life, as well as of all material existence, we need to go even further. Is it impossible? Not at all; the history of philosophy proves this. No lasting system exists that isn't, at least in part, brought to life by intuition. Dialectic is essential for testing intuition, and also necessary for breaking intuition down into concepts to share with others; yet often, it merely develops the outcome of that intuition which exceeds it. The reality is, the two methods move in opposite directions: the effort to connect ideas to one another causes the intuition those ideas were building up to disappear. The philosopher has to let go of intuition, once he has drawn inspiration from it, and rely on himself to continue the movement by pushing concepts forward one by one. But he soon realizes he's lost his footing; he needs to reconnect with intuition; he must undo much of what he's done. In short, dialectic ensures consistency within our thoughts. However, through dialectic—which is merely a relaxation of intuition—many different consistencies are possible, while there's only one truth. If intuition could be extended beyond a few moments, it wouldn't just help the philosopher align with his own thoughts, but it would also unify all philosophers with each other. As it stands, fleeting and incomplete, it is, in each system, what holds more value than the system itself and outlives it. Philosophy would achieve its goal if this intuition could be sustained, generalized[Pg 239], and, most importantly, secured with external points of reference to prevent it from going astray. To achieve this, there must be a continuous back and forth between nature and the mind.
When we put back our being into our will, and our will itself into the impulsion it prolongs, we understand, we feel, that reality is a perpetual growth, a creation pursued without end. Our will already performs this miracle. Every human work in which there is invention, every voluntary act in which there is freedom, every movement of an organism that manifests spontaneity, brings something new into the world. True, these are only creations of form. How could they be anything else? We are not the vital current itself; we are this current already loaded with matter, that is, with congealed parts of its own substance which it carries along its course. In the composition of a work of genius, as in a simple free decision, we do, indeed, stretch the spring of our activity to the utmost and thus create what no mere assemblage of materials could have given (what assemblage of curves already known can ever be equivalent to the pencil-stroke of a great artist?) but there are, none the less, elements here that pre-exist and survive their organization. But if a simple arrest of the action that generates form could constitute matter (are not the original lines drawn by the artist themselves already the fixation and, as it were, congealment of a movement?), a creation of matter would be neither incomprehensible nor inadmissible. For we seize from within, we live at every instant, a creation of form, and it is just in those cases in which the form is pure, and in which the creative current is momentarily interrupted, that there is a creation of matter. Consider the letters of the alphabet that enter into the composition of everything that has ever been written: we do not conceive that new letters spring up[Pg 240] and come to join themselves to the others in order to make a new poem. But that the poet creates the poem and that human thought is thereby made richer, we understand very well: this creation is a simple act of the mind, and action has only to make a pause, instead of continuing into a new creation, in order that, of itself, it may break up into words which dissociate themselves into letters which are added to all the letters there are already in the world. Thus, that the number of atoms composing the material universe at a given moment should increase runs counter to our habits of mind, contradicts the whole of our experience; but that a reality of quite another order, which contrasts with the atom as the thought of the poet with the letters of the alphabet, should increase by sudden additions, is not inadmissible; and the reverse of each addition might indeed be a world, which we then represent to ourselves, symbolically, as an assemblage of atoms.
When we integrate our existence into our will, and our will into the drive it extends, we realize that reality is a continuous growth, an endless creation. Our will already achieves this miracle. Every act of human creativity that involves invention, every voluntary decision made with freedom, every spontaneous movement of an organism adds something new to the world. Sure, these are only creations of form. How could they be anything else? We are not the vital flow itself; we are this flow already filled with matter, that is, with solidified parts of its own substance that it carries along its path. In crafting a work of genius, as in making a simple, free decision, we do stretch the limits of our activity and thus create something that no mere combination of materials could produce (what combination of known curves could ever match the brushstroke of a great artist?). Yet, there are still elements here that existed before and will outlive their organization. However, if a simple halt in the action that creates form could produce matter (aren't the original lines drawn by the artist already the capture and, in a way, solidification of a movement?), then creating matter wouldn't be incomprehensible or unacceptable. For we grasp, from within, we experience at every moment a creation of form, and it is precisely in those instances where the form is pure, and the creative current is temporarily paused, that matter is created. Think about the letters of the alphabet that make up everything ever written: we don't imagine that new letters suddenly appear and combine with the others to form a new poem. But we do understand that the poet creates the poem and enriches human thought: this creation is simply a mental act, and action only needs to pause, instead of moving into a new creation, so that it can break into words, which then split into letters that add to all the letters that already exist in the world. Thus, the idea that the number of atoms making up the material universe at any moment could increase goes against our usual thinking, contradicts all our experience; but the notion that a reality of a completely different nature, which contrasts with the atom as the poet's thought does with the letters of the alphabet, could increase through sudden additions is not out of the question; and the opposite of each addition could indeed represent a world, which we then symbolically imagine as a collection of atoms.
The mystery that spreads over the existence of the universe comes in great part from this, that we want the genesis of it to have been accomplished at one stroke or the whole of matter to be eternal. Whether we speak of creation or posit an uncreated matter, it is the totality of the universe that we are considering at once. At the root of this habit of mind lies the prejudice which we will analyze in our next chapter, the idea, common to materialists and to their opponents, that there is no really acting duration, and that the absolute—matter or mind—can have no place in concrete time, in the time which we feel to be the very stuff of our life. From which it follows that everything is given once for all, and that it is necessary to posit from all eternity either material multiplicity itself, or the act creating this multiplicity, given in block in the divine essence. Once this prejudice is eradicated, the idea of creation becomes more clear, for it is merged[Pg 241] in that of growth. But it is no longer then of the universe in its totality that we must speak.
The mystery surrounding the existence of the universe largely stems from our desire to believe that its origin happened all at once or that matter is eternal. Whether we consider creation or assume uncreated matter, we’re looking at the universe as a whole. At the core of this mindset is a bias we’ll examine in the next chapter—the idea, shared by both materialists and their critics, that there is no real duration and that the absolute—whether matter or mind—cannot exist in concrete time, the time we experience as the essence of our lives. This leads to the conclusion that everything is provided at once and that we must assume either material diversity has existed eternally or the act of creation of this diversity is present in the divine essence from the beginning. Once we remove this bias, the concept of creation becomes clearer, as it merges[Pg 241] with the idea of growth. However, we then can no longer talk about the universe as a whole.
Why should we speak of it? The universe is an assemblage of solar systems which we have every reason to believe analogous to our own. No doubt they are not absolutely independent of one another. Our sun radiates heat and light beyond the farthest planet, and, on the other hand, our entire solar system is moving in a definite direction as if it were drawn. There is, then, a bond between the worlds. But this bond may be regarded as infinitely loose in comparison with the mutual dependence which unites the parts of the same world among themselves; so that it is not artificially, for reasons of mere convenience, that we isolate our solar system: nature itself invites us to isolate it. As living beings, we depend on the planet on which we are, and on the sun that provides for it, but on nothing else. As thinking beings, we may apply the laws of our physics to our own world, and extend them to each of the worlds taken separately; but nothing tells us that they apply to the entire universe, nor even that such an affirmation has any meaning; for the universe is not made, but is being made continually. It is growing, perhaps indefinitely, by the addition of new worlds.
Why should we talk about it? The universe is made up of solar systems that we have every reason to believe are similar to ours. They’re probably not completely independent of each other. Our sun sends out heat and light far beyond the last planet, and at the same time, our entire solar system is moving in a specific direction as if it's being pulled. So, there is a connection between the worlds. But this connection can be seen as very loose compared to the strong ties that bond the parts of the same world together; that’s why we don’t just separate our solar system for convenience—nature itself encourages us to do so. As living beings, we rely on the planet we’re on and the sun that supports it, but not on anything else. As thinking beings, we can use the laws of physics that apply to our own world and apply them to each of the worlds individually, but nothing suggests that they apply to the entire universe, nor does asserting that even make sense; the universe isn’t static, but is constantly being formed. It's expanding, perhaps endlessly, as new worlds are added.
Let us extend, then, to the whole of our solar system the two most general laws of our science, the principle of conservation of energy and that of its degradation—limiting them, however, to this relatively closed system and to other systems relatively closed. Let us see what will follow. We must remark, first of all, that these two principles have not the same metaphysical scope. The first is a quantitative law, and consequently relative, in part, to our methods of measurement. It says that, in a system presumed to be closed, the total energy, that[Pg 242] is to say the sum of its kinetic and potential energy, remains constant. Now, if there were only kinetic energy in the world, or even if there were, besides kinetic energy, only one single kind of potential energy, but no more, the artifice of measurement would not make the law artificial. The law of the conservation of energy would express indeed that something is preserved in constant quantity. But there are, in fact, energies of various kinds,[88] and the measurement of each of them has evidently been so chosen as to justify the principle of conservation of energy. Convention, therefore, plays a large part in this principle, although there is undoubtedly, between the variations of the different energies composing one and the same system, a mutual dependence which is just what has made the extension of the principle possible by measurements suitably chosen. If, therefore, the philosopher applies this principle to the solar system complete, he must at least soften its outlines. The law of the conservation of energy cannot here express the objective permanence of a certain quantity of a certain thing, but rather the necessity for every change that is brought about to be counterbalanced in some way by a change in an opposite direction. That is to say, even if it governs the whole of our solar system, the law of the conservation of energy is concerned with the relationship of a fragment of this world to another fragment rather than with the nature of the whole.
Let's apply the two most fundamental laws of our science—the principle of energy conservation and the principle of its degradation—to our entire solar system. However, we’ll limit these principles to this relatively closed system and to other relatively closed systems. Let's explore what follows. First, we should note that these two principles have different philosophical implications. The first is a quantitative law and is therefore somewhat dependent on how we measure things. It states that in a system considered closed, the total energy—that is, the sum of its kinetic and potential energy—remains constant. Now, even if only kinetic energy existed, or if there was only one type of potential energy in addition to kinetic energy, the method of measurement wouldn’t render the law artificial. The conservation of energy law would indeed indicate that something is maintained in a constant amount. However, there are actually various types of energies, and the way we measure each one has clearly been chosen to support the conservation of energy principle. Thus, convention plays a significant role in this principle, even though there undoubtedly exists a mutual dependence among the variations of the different energies within the same system, which has enabled us to extend the principle through carefully selected measurements. Therefore, if a philosopher applies this principle to the complete solar system, they must at least adjust its parameters. The law of conservation of energy cannot express the objective permanence of a specific quantity of a particular type of energy here; instead, it reflects the necessity that every change that occurs must be balanced by a change in the opposite direction. In other words, even when applied to our entire solar system, the conservation of energy law focuses on the relationship between parts of this world rather than the essence of the whole.
It is otherwise with the second principle of thermodynamics. The law of the degradation of energy does not bear essentially on magnitudes. No doubt the first idea of it arose, in the thought of Carnot, out of certain quantitative considerations on the yield of thermic[Pg 243] machines. Unquestionably, too, the terms in which Clausius generalized it were mathematical, and a calculable magnitude, "entropy," was, in fact, the final conception to which he was led. Such precision is necessary for practical applications. But the law might have been vaguely conceived, and, if absolutely necessary, it might have been roughly formulated, even though no one had ever thought of measuring the different energies of the physical world, even though the concept of energy had not been created. Essentially, it expresses the fact that all physical changes have a tendency to be degraded into heat, and that heat tends to be distributed among bodies in a uniform manner. In this less precise form, it becomes independent of any convention; it is the most metaphysical of the laws of physics since it points out without interposed symbols, without artificial devices of measurements, the direction in which the world is going. It tells us that changes that are visible and heterogeneous will be more and more diluted into changes that are invisible and homogeneous, and that the instability to which we owe the richness and variety of the changes taking place in our solar system will gradually give way to the relative stability of elementary vibrations continually and perpetually repeated. Just so with a man who keeps up his strength as he grows old, but spends it less and less in actions, and comes, in the end, to employ it entirely in making his lungs breathe and his heart beat.
The situation is different with the second principle of thermodynamics. The law of energy degradation isn't primarily about quantities. The initial idea likely came from Carnot's thoughts on the efficiency of thermal[Pg 243] machines. Clausius's formulation was certainly mathematical, leading to the calculable concept of "entropy." Such precision is necessary for practical applications. However, the law could have been vaguely understood or roughly stated even if no one had ever considered measuring different energies in the physical world or if the concept of energy had never been developed. Fundamentally, it states that all physical changes tend to degrade into heat, and that heat tends to spread evenly among objects. In this less precise form, it becomes independent of any conventions; it stands as the most abstract of physical laws because it indicates, without relying on symbols or measurement systems, the direction in which the universe is moving. It suggests that visible and diverse changes will gradually merge into invisible and uniform changes, and that the instability we associate with the richness and variety of events in our solar system will eventually yield to the relative stability of basic, repeating vibrations. This is like a person who maintains their strength as they age, but increasingly expends it on just breathing and keeping their heart beating.
From this point of view, a world like our solar system is seen to be ever exhausting something of the mutability it contains. In the beginning, it had the maximum of possible utilization of energy: this mutability has gone on diminishing unceasingly. Whence does it come? We might at first suppose that it has come from some other point of space, but the difficulty is only set back, and for[Pg 244] this external source of mutability the same question springs up. True, it might be added that the number of worlds capable of passing mutability to each other is unlimited, that the sum of mutability contained in the universe is infinite, that there is therefore no ground on which to seek its origin or to foresee its end. A hypothesis of this kind is as irrefutable as it is indemonstrable; but to speak of an infinite universe is to admit a perfect coincidence of matter with abstract space, and consequently an absolute externality of all the parts of matter in relation to one another. We have seen above what we must think of this theory, and how difficult it is to reconcile with the idea of a reciprocal influence of all the parts of matter on one another, an influence to which indeed it itself makes appeal. Again it might be supposed that the general instability has arisen from a general state of stability; that the period in which we now are, and in which the utilizable energy is diminishing, has been preceded by a period in which the mutability was increasing, and that the alternations of increase and diminution succeed each other for ever. This hypothesis is theoretically conceivable, as has been demonstrated quite recently; but, according to the calculations of Boltzmann, the mathematical improbability of it passes all imagination and practically amounts to absolute impossibility.[89] In reality, the problem remains insoluble as long as we keep on the ground of physics, for the physicist is obliged to attach energy to extended particles, and, even if he regards the particles only as reservoirs of energy, he remains in space: he would belie his rôle if he sought the origin of these energies in an extra-spatial process. It is there, however, in our opinion, that it must be sought.
From this perspective, a world like our solar system is seen to be constantly depleting the mutability it holds. At the start, it had the maximum possible utilization of energy; this mutability has been steadily decreasing. Where does it come from? Initially, one might think it derives from another part of space, but that only shifts the issue, and for this external source of mutability, the same question arises. True, one could argue that the number of worlds capable of exchanging mutability is limitless, that the total mutability in the universe is infinite, and thus there’s no basis for seeking its origin or predicting its end. A hypothesis like this is as unprovable as it is undeniable; however, to talk about an infinite universe is to accept a complete alignment of matter with abstract space, which results in an absolute separation of all matter’s parts from each other. We’ve previously addressed what we think of this theory and how challenging it is to align it with the idea of mutual influence among all matter's parts, an influence that it also depends on. It's also conceivable that the overall instability stemmed from a general state of stability; that the period we’re currently in, where usable energy is diminishing, followed a time when mutability was increasing, and that these cycles of increase and decrease happen endlessly. This hypothesis can be theoretically imagined, as shown recently; however, according to Boltzmann's calculations, the mathematical improbability of it is beyond comprehension and essentially amounts to absolute impossibility. In reality, the issue remains unresolved as long as we base it on physics, because the physicist must associate energy with extended particles, and even if he sees the particles only as energy reservoirs, he remains in space: he would contradict his role if he sought the origin of these energies in a process outside of space. It is there, in our view, that the answer must be found.
Is it extension in general that we are considering in[Pg 245] abstracto? Extension, we said, appears only as a tension which is interrupted. Or, are we considering the concrete reality that fills this extension? The order which reigns there, and which is manifested by the laws of nature, is an order which must be born of itself when the inverse order is suppressed; a detension of the will would produce precisely this suppression. Lastly, we find that the direction, which this reality takes, suggests to us the idea of a thing unmaking itself; such, no doubt, is one of the essential characters of materiality. What conclusion are we to draw from all this, if not that the process by which this thing makes itself is directed in a contrary way to that of physical processes, and that it is therefore, by its very definition, immaterial? The vision we have of the material world is that of a weight which falls: no image drawn from matter, properly so called, will ever give us the idea of the weight rising. But this conclusion will come home to us with still greater force if we press nearer to the concrete reality, and if we consider, no longer only matter in general, but, within this matter, living bodies.
Are we looking at extension in general in[Pg 245] abstracto? Extension, as we said, shows up only as a tension that gets interrupted. Or are we focusing on the actual reality that fills this extension? The order that exists there, represented by the laws of nature, is an order that must arise on its own when the reverse order is removed; a release of the will would create just this suppression. Finally, we see that the direction this reality takes leads us to the idea of a thing unmaking itself; this is certainly one of the key characteristics of materiality. What conclusion can we draw from all this, if not that the way this thing makes itself goes against the way of physical processes, and that it is, by its very definition, immaterial? Our perspective on the material world is that of a weight falling: no image derived from matter, strictly speaking, will ever give us the idea of weight rising. But this conclusion becomes even clearer if we get closer to the actual reality and consider, not just matter in general, but within that matter, living bodies.
All our analyses show us, in life, an effort to remount the incline that matter descends. In that, they reveal to us the possibility, the necessity even of a process the inverse of materiality, creative of matter by its interruption alone. The life that evolves on the surface of our planet is indeed attached to matter. If it were pure consciousness, a fortiori if it were supra-consciousness, it would be pure creative activity. In fact, it is riveted to an organism that subjects it to the general laws of inert matter. But everything happens as if it were doing its utmost to set itself free from these laws. It has not the power to reverse the direction of physical changes, such as the principle of Carnot determines it. It does, however, behave absolutely as a force would[Pg 246] behave which, left to itself, would work in the inverse direction. Incapable of stopping the course of material changes downwards, it succeeds in retarding it. The evolution of life really continues, as we have shown, an initial impulsion: this impulsion, which has determined the development of the chlorophyllian function in the plant and of the sensori-motor system in the animal, brings life to more and more efficient acts by the fabrication and use of more and more powerful explosives. Now, what do these explosives represent if not a storing-up of the solar energy, the degradation of which energy is thus provisionally suspended on some of the points where it was being poured forth? The usable energy which the explosive conceals will be expended, of course, at the moment of the explosion; but it would have been expended sooner if an organism had not happened to be there to arrest its dissipation, in order to retain it and save it up. As we see it to-day, at the point to which it was brought by a scission of the mutually complementary tendencies which it contained within itself, life is entirely dependent on the chlorophyllian function of the plant. This means that, looked at in its initial impulsion, before any scission, life was a tendency to accumulate in a reservoir, as do especially the green parts of vegetables, with a view to an instantaneous effective discharge, like that which an animal brings about, something that would have otherwise flowed away. It is like an effort to raise the weight which falls. True, it succeeds only in retarding the fall. But at least it can give us an idea of what the raising of the weight was.[90]
All our analyses indicate that in life, there’s an effort to climb back up the slope that matter tends to descend. In doing so, they highlight the possibility—and even the necessity—of a process that goes against materiality, one that creates matter simply by interrupting it. Life as we know it on the surface of our planet is indeed tied to matter. If it were pure consciousness, or even supra-consciousness, it would be purely creative activity. In reality, it’s bound to an organism that subjects it to the general laws of inert matter. However, everything unfolds as if it’s making every effort to break free from these laws. It lacks the power to reverse physical changes, as dictated by the principle of Carnot. Nevertheless, it behaves just like a force that, if left to its own devices, would operate in the opposite direction. While it can't stop the downward course of material changes, it can slow it down. The evolution of life, as we've shown, continues from an initial impulse: this impulse spurred the development of the chlorophyll function in plants and the sensory-motor system in animals, leading life to enact increasingly effective actions through the creation and use of more powerful explosives. Now, what do these explosives symbolize if not a storage of solar energy, the degradation of which is temporarily halted at specific points where it was being released? The usable energy hidden within the explosive will naturally be used up at the moment of detonation; however, it would have been depleted sooner if an organism hadn’t been present to prevent its dissipation, allowing it to be retained and accumulated. As we observe today, thanks to a split in the complementary tendencies within itself, life is completely reliant on the chlorophyll function found in plants. This suggests that, when viewed in terms of its original impulse, before any split occurred, life aimed to build up a reserve—particularly in the green parts of plants—so that it could be discharged instantaneously, similar to how an animal would do, something that would have otherwise gone to waste. It resembles an attempt to lift a weight that is falling. While it may only manage to slow the fall, it still gives us an idea of what lifting the weight truly entails.[Pg 246]
Let us imagine a vessel full of steam at a high pressure,[Pg 247] and here and there in its sides a crack through which the steam is escaping in a jet. The steam thrown into the air is nearly all condensed into little drops which fall back, and this condensation and this fall represent simply the loss of something, an interruption, a deficit. But a small part of the jet of steam subsists, uncondensed, for some seconds; it is making an effort to raise the drops which are falling; it succeeds at most in retarding their fall. So, from an immense reservoir of life, jets must be gushing out unceasingly, of which each, falling back, is a world. The evolution of living species within this world represents what subsists of the primitive direction of the original jet, and of an impulsion which continues itself in a direction the inverse of materiality. But let us not carry too far this comparison. It gives us but a feeble and even deceptive image of reality, for the crack, the jet of steam, the forming of the drops, are determined necessarily, whereas the creation of a world is a free act, and the life within the material world participates in this liberty. Let us think rather of an action like that of raising the arm; then let us suppose that the arm, left to itself, falls back, and yet that there subsists in it, striving to raise it up again, something of the will that animates it. In this image of a creative action which unmakes itself we have already a more exact re[Pg 248]presentation of matter. In vital activity we see, then, that which subsists of the direct movement in the inverted movement, a reality which is making itself in a reality which is unmaking itself.
Let’s picture a vessel filled with high-pressure steam,[Pg 247] with cracks here and there in its sides where the steam is escaping in jets. The steam emitted into the air mostly condenses into tiny droplets that fall back down, and this condensation and fall represent simply a loss, an interruption, a deficiency. However, a small part of the steam jet remains uncondensed for a few seconds; it tries to lift the falling droplets but only manages to slow their descent. In the same way, from a vast reservoir of life, jets should continuously pour out, with each one, upon falling back, representing a world. The evolution of living species in this world reflects what remains of the original direction of the initial jet, along with a drive that continues in the opposite direction of materiality. But let’s not push this comparison too far. It only provides a weak and even misleading image of reality, as the crack, the steam jet, and the droplets forming are all determined factors, whereas the creation of a world is a free act, and life within the material world shares in that freedom. Instead, let’s think of an action akin to raising an arm; then let’s imagine that the arm, when left to its own devices, falls back, yet something of the will that animates it persists, striving to lift it again. In this image of a creative action that undoes itself, we find a more accurate representation of matter. In vital activity, we see what remains of the direct movement within the inverted movement, a reality that is coming into being in a reality that is falling apart.
Everything is obscure in the idea of creation if we think of things which are created and a thing which creates, as we habitually do, as the understanding cannot help doing. We shall show the origin of this illusion in our next chapter. It is natural to our intellect, whose function is essentially practical, made to present to us things and states rather than changes and acts. But things and states are only views, taken by our mind, of becoming. There are no things, there are only actions. More particularly, if I consider the world in which we live, I find that the automatic and strictly determined evolution of this well-knit whole is action which is unmaking itself, and that the unforeseen forms which life cuts out in it, forms capable of being themselves prolonged into unforeseen movements, represent the action that is making itself. Now, I have every reason to believe that the other worlds are analogous to ours, that things happen there in the same way. And I know they were not all constructed at the same time, since observation shows me, even to-day, nebulae in course of concentration. Now, if the same kind of action is going on everywhere, whether it is that which is unmaking itself or whether it is that which is striving to remake itself, I simply express this probable similitude when I speak of a centre from which worlds shoot out like rockets in a fireworks display—provided, however, that I do not present this centre as a thing, but as a continuity of shooting out. God thus defined, has nothing of the already made; He is unceasing life, action, freedom. Creation, so conceived, is not a mystery; we experience it in ourselves when we act freely. That new things can join[Pg 249] things already existing is absurd, no doubt, since the thing results from a solidification performed by our understanding, and there are never any things other than those that the understanding has thus constituted. To speak of things creating themselves would therefore amount to saying that the understanding presents to itself more than it presents to itself—a self-contradictory affirmation, an empty and vain idea. But that action increases as it goes on, that it creates in the measure of its advance, is what each of us finds when he watches himself act. Things are constituted by the instantaneous cut which the understanding practices, at a given moment, on a flux of this kind, and what is mysterious when we compare the cuts together becomes clear when we relate them to the flux. Indeed, the modalities of creative action, in so far as it is still going on in the organization of living forms, are much simplified when they are taken in this way. Before the complexity of an organism and the practically infinite multitude of interwoven analyses and syntheses it presupposes, our understanding recoils disconcerted. That the simple play of physical and chemical forces, left to themselves, should have worked this marvel, we find hard to believe. And if it is a profound science which is at work, how are we to understand the influence exercised on this matter without form by this form without matter? But the difficulty arises from this, that we represent statically ready-made material particles juxtaposed to one another, and, also statically, an external cause which plasters upon them a skilfully contrived organization. In reality, life is a movement, materiality is the inverse movement, and each of these two movements is simple, the matter which forms a world being an undivided flux, and undivided also the life that runs through it, cutting out in it living beings all along its track. Of[Pg 250] these two currents the second runs counter to the first, but the first obtains, all the same, something from the second. There results between them a modus vivendi, which is organization. This organization takes, for our senses and for our intellect, the form of parts entirely external to other parts in space and in time. Not only do we shut our eyes to the unity of the impulse which, passing through generations, links individuals with individuals, species with species, and makes of the whole series of the living one single immense wave flowing over matter, but each individual itself seems to us as an aggregate, aggregate of molecules and aggregate of facts. The reason of this lies in the structure of our intellect, which is formed to act on matter from without, and which succeeds by making, in the flux of the real, instantaneous cuts, each of which becomes, in its fixity, endlessly decomposable. Perceiving, in an organism, only parts external to parts, the understanding has the choice between two systems of explanation only: either to regard the infinitely complex (and thereby infinitely well-contrived) organization as a fortuitous concatenation of atoms, or to relate it to the incomprehensible influence of an external force that has grouped its elements together. But this complexity is the work of the understanding; this incomprehensibility is also its work. Let us try to see, no longer with the eyes of the intellect alone, which grasps only the already made and which looks from the outside, but with the spirit, I mean with that faculty of seeing which is immanent in the faculty of acting and which springs up, somehow, by the twisting of the will on itself, when action is turned into knowledge, like heat, so to say, into light. To movement, then, everything will be restored, and into movement everything will be resolved. Where the un[Pg 251]derstanding, working on the image supposed to be fixed of the progressing action, shows us parts infinitely manifold and an order infinitely well contrived, we catch a glimpse of a simple process, an action which is making itself across an action of the same kind which is unmaking itself, like the fiery path torn by the last rocket of a fireworks display through the black cinders of the spent rockets that are falling dead.
Everything is unclear in the idea of creation if we think of things that are created and a thing that creates, as we typically do, since our understanding cannot help but do so. We'll explain the origin of this illusion in our next chapter. It's natural for our intellect, which is primarily practical, to focus on things and states rather than changes and actions. But things and states are merely perspectives our mind takes of becoming. There are no actual things, only actions. More specifically, when I consider the world we live in, I see that the automatic and strictly defined evolution of this cohesive whole represents action that is unmaking itself, while the unexpected forms that life sculpts within it, which can themselves evolve into unforeseen movements, embody the action that is making itself. I have every reason to believe that other worlds are similar to ours, that events happen there in the same way. I can see they weren't all created at the same time since observation shows me, even today, nebulae currently condensing. If the same kind of action is happening everywhere, whether it's the action that is unmaking itself or the one striving to remake itself, I simply express this probable similarity when I refer to a center from which worlds shoot out like rockets in a fireworks display—just as long as I don't present this center as a thing, but as a continuous process of shooting out. God, defined this way, is not something already made; He is ongoing life, action, freedom. Creation, understood in this way, is not a mystery; we experience it within ourselves when we act freely. The idea that new things can join existing things is absurd, of course, since the thing results from a solidification created by our understanding, and there are never any things other than those that the understanding has constituted. To suggest that things create themselves would mean that the understanding presents to itself more than it actually does—a self-contradictory statement, an empty and pointless idea. However, that action increases as it continues, that it creates as it progresses, is what each of us realizes when we observe ourselves acting. Things are formed by the instantaneous cut that the understanding makes at a particular moment on a flow of this type, and what seems mysterious when we compare the cuts becomes clear when we relate them to the flow. Indeed, the ways of creative action, as it continues in the organization of living forms, are much simplified when viewed this way. Faced with the complexity of an organism and the practically infinite multitude of interwoven analyses and syntheses it implies, our understanding feels overwhelmed. It’s hard for us to believe that the simple play of physical and chemical forces, left to themselves, could produce this marvel. And if a profound science is at work, how can we comprehend the influence exercised on this formless matter by this form without matter? The difficulty arises because we envision static, ready-made material particles placed next to one another, and also statically, an external cause that imposes a cleverly designed organization upon them. In reality, life is a movement, materiality is the opposing movement, and both of these movements are simple—the matter that constitutes a world being a unified flow, and the life that runs through it being unified as well, carving out living beings all along its path. Of[Pg 250] these two currents, the second runs counter to the first, but the first still derives something from the second. This creates a modus vivendi between them, which is organization. This organization appears, to our senses and intellect, as parts that are entirely external to other parts in space and time. Not only do we ignore the unity of the impulse that flows through generations, linking individuals with individuals, species with species, and forming the entire series of living beings into a single immense wave over matter, but each individual itself seems to us as an aggregate—an aggregate of molecules and an aggregate of facts. The reason for this lies in the structure of our intellect, which is shaped to interact with matter from the outside, and which succeeds by making instantaneous cuts in the flow of reality, each of which becomes endlessly decomposable in its fixity. In observing an organism, noticing only parts external to parts, the understanding has to choose between two systems of explanation: either to consider the infinitely complex (and therefore infinitely well-crafted) organization as a random connection of atoms, or to associate it with the incomprehensible influence of an external force that has grouped its elements together. But this complexity is the creation of the understanding; this incomprehensibility is also its creation. Let’s try to view things not just with the intellect's perspective, which understands only what is already made and sees from the outside, but with the spirit, meaning that innate faculty of perception that emerges from the faculty of action, a kind of transformation where action becomes knowledge, like heat transforming into light, so to speak. In this sense, everything will return to movement, and all will resolve into movement. Where the un[Pg 251]derstanding, focused on the imagined fixed image of the ongoing action, presents parts that are infinitely numerous and an order that is infinitely elaborate, we gain a glimpse of a simple process: an action that is making itself alongside an action of the same kind that is unmaking itself, like the fiery trail left by the last rocket of a fireworks display as it pierces through the black ash of the spent rockets falling down.
From this point of view, the general considerations we have presented concerning the evolution of life will be cleared up and completed. We will distinguish more sharply what is accidental from what is essential in this evolution.
From this perspective, the overall ideas we’ve shared about the evolution of life will be clarified and expanded. We will clearly differentiate what is accidental from what is essential in this evolution.
The impetus of life, of which we are speaking, consists in a need of creation. It cannot create absolutely, because it is confronted with matter, that is to say with the movement that is the inverse of its own. But it seizes upon this matter, which is necessity itself, and strives to introduce into it the largest possible amount of indetermination and liberty. How does it go to work?
The driving force of life we're discussing is rooted in the need for creation. It can't create completely on its own because it faces matter, which is essentially the opposite of its own nature. However, it grabs hold of this matter, which is pure necessity, and tries to infuse it with as much uncertainty and freedom as possible. How does it accomplish this?
An animal high in the scale may be represented in a general way, we said, as a sensori-motor nervous system imposed on digestive, respiratory, circulatory systems, etc. The function of these latter is to cleanse, repair and protect the nervous system, to make it as independent as possible of external circumstances, but, above all, to furnish it with energy to be expended in movements. The increasing complexity of the organism is therefore due theoretically (in spite of innumerable exceptions due to accidents of evolution) to the necessity of complexity in the nervous system. No doubt, each complication of any part of the organism involves many others in addition, because this part itself must live, and every change[Pg 252] in one point of the body reverberates, as it were, throughout. The complication may therefore go on to infinity in all directions; but it is the complication of the nervous system which conditions the others in right, if not always in fact. Now, in what does the progress of the nervous system itself consist? In a simultaneous development of automatic activity and of voluntary activity, the first furnishing the second with an appropriate instrument. Thus, in an organism such as ours, a considerable number of motor mechanisms are set up in the medulla and in the spinal cord, awaiting only a signal to release the corresponding act: the will is employed, in some cases, in setting up the mechanism itself, and in the others in choosing the mechanisms to be released, the manner of combining them and the moment of releasing them. The will of an animal is the more effective and the more intense, the greater the number of the mechanisms it can choose from, the more complicated the switchboard on which all the motor paths cross, or, in other words, the more developed its brain. Thus, the progress of the nervous system assures to the act increasing precision, increasing variety, increasing efficiency and independence. The organism behaves more and more like a machine for action, which reconstructs itself entirely for every new act, as if it were made of india-rubber and could, at any moment, change the shape of all its parts. But, prior to the nervous system, prior even to the organism properly so called, already in the undifferentiated mass of the amoeba, this essential property of animal life is found. The amoeba deforms itself in varying directions; its entire mass does what the differentiation of parts will localize in a sensori-motor system in the developed animal. Doing it only in a rudimentary manner, it is dispensed from the complexity of the higher organisms; there is no need here of[Pg 253] the auxiliary elements that pass on to motor elements the energy to expend; the animal moves as a whole, and, as a whole also, procures energy by means of the organic substances it assimilates. Thus, whether low or high in the animal scale, we always find that animal life consists (1) in procuring a provision of energy; (2) in expending it, by means of a matter as supple as possible, in directions variable and unforeseen.
An advanced animal can generally be described as having a sensory-motor nervous system supported by digestive, respiratory, circulatory systems, and so on. These systems serve to cleanse, repair, and protect the nervous system, making it as independent as possible from external factors, but most importantly, they provide energy for movement. The growing complexity of the organism is theoretically attributed (despite countless exceptions from evolutionary accidents) to the need for a complex nervous system. Certainly, each complication in any part of the organism leads to many others because that part must be viable, and every change in one area of the body echoes throughout. This complexity can potentially continue indefinitely in all directions; however, the complexity of the nervous system shapes the others, if not always in practice, at least in principle. So, what does the advancement of the nervous system involve? It consists of a simultaneous development of automatic and voluntary activities, with the first providing the necessary tools for the second. In an organism like ours, a significant number of motor mechanisms are established in the brainstem and spinal cord, just waiting for a signal to activate the corresponding action: in some situations, willpower is involved in initiating the mechanism itself, while in others, it chooses which mechanisms to activate, how to combine them, and when to do so. An animal's willpower becomes more effective and intense the greater the number of mechanisms it can choose from, the more intricate the control center that connects all the motor pathways, or, in other words, the more developed its brain is. Therefore, the advancement of the nervous system guarantees that actions become more precise, varied, efficient, and independent. The organism increasingly functions like a machine for action, completely restructuring itself for each new activity, as if it were made of rubber and could change the shape of all its parts at any moment. However, before the nervous system and even the fully formed organism, this crucial characteristic of animal life exists in the undifferentiated mass of the amoeba. The amoeba changes shape in different directions; its entire mass performs what the differentiation of parts would localize into a sensory-motor system in a more advanced animal. While it does this in a basic way, it avoids the complexities found in higher organisms; there is no need for auxiliary elements that transfer energy to motor elements; the animal moves as a whole and, as a whole, gathers energy from the organic substances it absorbs. Thus, whether an animal is low or high on the evolutionary scale, we consistently find that animal life consists of (1) obtaining a supply of energy and (2) expending it in as flexible a manner as possible, in unpredictable and varied directions.
Now, whence comes the energy? From the ingested food, for food is a kind of explosive, which needs only the spark to discharge the energy it stores. Who has made this explosive? The food may be the flesh of an animal nourished on animals and so on; but, in the end it is to the vegetable we always come back. Vegetables alone gather in the solar energy, and the animals do but borrow it from them, either directly or by some passing it on to others. How then has the plant stored up this energy? Chiefly by the chlorophyllian function, a chemicism sui generis of which we do not possess the key, and which is probably unlike that of our laboratories. The process consists in using solar energy to fix the carbon of carbonic acid, and thereby to store this energy as we should store that of a water-carrier by employing him to fill an elevated reservoir: the water, once brought up, can set in motion a mill or a turbine, as we will and when we will. Each atom of carbon fixed represents something like the elevation of the weight of water, or like the stretching of an elastic thread uniting the carbon to the oxygen in the carbonic acid. The elastic is relaxed, the weight falls back again, in short the energy held in reserve is restored, when, by a simple release, the carbon is permitted to rejoin its oxygen.
Now, where does the energy come from? From the food we eat, because food is a kind of explosive that just needs a spark to release the energy it holds. Who created this explosive? The food could be the flesh of an animal that was nourished on other animals; however, in the end, we always trace it back to plants. Only plants capture solar energy, and animals borrow it from them, either directly or through others. So how do plants store this energy? Mainly through the process involving chlorophyll, a unique chemistry that we still don’t fully understand, and which is likely different from anything in our labs. The process involves using solar energy to fix carbon from carbon dioxide, effectively storing this energy like filling an elevated reservoir with water using a water-carrier: once the water is raised, it can power a mill or a turbine whenever we want. Each carbon atom fixed is like lifting a weight of water or stretching an elastic thread connecting carbon to oxygen in carbon dioxide. When the elastic is released, the weight falls back, and the energy stored is recovered when the carbon is allowed to reunite with its oxygen.
So that all life, animal and vegetable, seems in its essence like an effort to accumulate energy and then to let it[Pg 254] flow into flexible channels, changeable in shape, at the end of which it will accomplish infinitely varied kinds of work. That is what the vital impetus, passing through matter, would fain do all at once. It would succeed, no doubt, if its power were unlimited, or if some reinforcement could come to it from without. But the impetus is finite, and it has been given once for all. It cannot overcome all obstacles. The movement it starts is sometimes turned aside, sometimes divided, always opposed; and the evolution of the organized world is the unrolling of this conflict. The first great scission that had to be effected was that of the two kingdoms, vegetable and animal, which thus happen to be mutually complementary, without, however, any agreement having been made between them. It is not for the animal that the plant accumulates energy, it is for its own consumption; but its expenditure on itself is less discontinuous, and less concentrated, and therefore less efficacious, than was required by the initial impetus of life, essentially directed toward free actions: the same organism could not with equal force sustain the two functions at once, of gradual storage and sudden use. Of themselves, therefore, and without any external intervention, simply by the effect of the duality of the tendency involved in the original impetus and of the resistance opposed by matter to this impetus, the organisms leaned some in the first direction, others in the second. To this scission there succeeded many others. Hence the diverging lines of evolution, at least what is essential in them. But we must take into account retrogressions, arrests, accidents of every kind. And we must remember, above all, that each species behaves as if the general movement of life stopped at it instead of passing through it. It thinks only of itself, it lives only for itself. Hence the numberless struggles[Pg 255] that we behold in nature. Hence a discord, striking and terrible, but for which the original principle of life must not be held responsible.
All life, both animal and plant, seems to be fundamentally about gathering energy and then allowing it to flow into adaptable pathways that can change shape, ultimately leading to a variety of tasks being accomplished. This is what the vital impetus, moving through matter, aims to do all at once. It would succeed, no doubt, if its power were limitless, or if it could receive some external support. But the impetus is limited, and it has been given just once. It can't overcome every obstacle. The movement it initiates is sometimes redirected, sometimes split, and is always met with opposition; the development of the organized world is the unfolding of this struggle. The first major division that needed to happen was between the two kingdoms, plant and animal, which happen to be complementary to each other, even though no agreement existed between them. The plant doesn't accumulate energy for the animal; it does it for its own use. However, its self-expenditure is less sporadic, less focused, and therefore less effective than was needed for the initial drive of life, which is primarily aimed at unrestricted actions: the same organism cannot equally manage both the gradual accumulation and sudden application of energy at the same time. Thus, on their own, and without any external intervention, due to the dual nature of the original impetus and the resistance that matter presents to this drive, some organisms tended more toward one direction and others toward the other. This initial division led to many more. Hence the divergent paths of evolution, at least regarding what is crucial in them. But we also need to consider setbacks, halts, and various accidents. Most importantly, we must remember that each species acts as if the overall movement of life stops with it rather than flowing through it. It focuses solely on itself and lives just for itself. This leads to the countless conflicts[Pg 255] we see in nature. This creates a discord, striking and intense, but we must not hold the original principle of life accountable for it.
The part played by contingency in evolution is therefore great. Contingent, generally, are the forms adopted, or rather invented. Contingent, relative to the obstacles encountered in a given place and at a given moment, is the dissociation of the primordial tendency into such and such complementary tendencies which create divergent lines of evolution. Contingent the arrests and set-backs; contingent, in large measure, the adaptations. Two things only are necessary: (1) a gradual accumulation of energy; (2) an elastic canalization of this energy in variable and indeterminable directions, at the end of which are free acts.
The role of chance in evolution is therefore significant. The forms that emerge are generally contingent, or rather, invented. The separation of the original tendency into various complementary tendencies that lead to different paths of evolution is contingent, based on the challenges faced at a specific time and place. The halts and setbacks are contingent as well, and to a large extent, so are the adaptations. Only two things are needed: (1) a gradual buildup of energy; (2) a flexible channeling of this energy in different and unpredictable directions, resulting in free actions.
This twofold result has been obtained in a particular way on our planet. But it might have been obtained by entirely different means. It was not necessary that life should fix its choice mainly upon the carbon of carbonic acid. What was essential for it was to store solar energy; but, instead of asking the sun to separate, for instance, atoms of oxygen and carbon, it might (theoretically at least, and, apart from practical difficulties possibly insurmountable) have put forth other chemical elements, which would then have had to be associated or dissociated by entirely different physical means. And if the element characteristic of the substances that supply energy to the organism had been other than carbon, the element characteristic of the plastic substances would probably have been other than nitrogen, and the chemistry of living bodies would then have been radically different from what it is. The result would have been living forms without any analogy to those we know, whose anatomy would have been different, whose physiology also would have been[Pg 256] different. Alone, the sensori-motor function would have been preserved, if not in its mechanism, at least in its effects. It is therefore probable that life goes on in other planets, in other solar systems also, under forms of which we have no idea, in physical conditions to which it seems to us, from the point of view of our physiology, to be absolutely opposed. If its essential aim is to catch up usable energy in order to expend it in explosive actions, it probably chooses, in each solar system and on each planet, as it does on the earth, the fittest means to get this result in the circumstances with which it is confronted. That is at least what reasoning by analogy leads to, and we use analogy the wrong way when we declare life to be impossible wherever the circumstances with which it is confronted are other than those on the earth. The truth is that life is possible wherever energy descends the incline indicated by Carnot's law and where a cause of inverse direction can retard the descent—that is to say, probably, in all the worlds suspended from all the stars. We go further: it is not even necessary that life should be concentrated and determined in organisms properly so called, that is, in definite bodies presenting to the flow of energy ready-made though elastic canals. It can be conceived (although it can hardly be imagined) that energy might be saved up, and then expended on varying lines running across a matter not yet solidified. Every essential of life would still be there, since there would still be slow accumulation of energy and sudden release. There would hardly be more difference between this vitality, vague and formless, and the definite vitality we know, than there is, in our psychical life, between the state of dream and the state of waking. Such may have been the condition of life in our nebula before the condensation of matter was complete, if it be true that life springs forward[Pg 257] at the very moment when, as the effect of an inverse movement, the nebular matter appears.
This dual outcome has been achieved in a specific way on our planet. However, it could have been accomplished through entirely different methods. It wasn’t necessary for life to primarily rely on the carbon found in carbon dioxide. What mattered was capturing solar energy; instead of depending on the sun to break apart atoms of oxygen and carbon, it might (at least theoretically, aside from potentially insurmountable practical challenges) have utilized other chemical elements, which would then need to be combined or separated by completely different physical processes. If the element that provides energy to organisms had been something other than carbon, the essential building blocks would likely have been something other than nitrogen, leading to a chemistry of living beings that was fundamentally different from what we see today. The result would likely be life forms that have no resemblance to those we know, with different anatomy and physiology. The sensory and motor functions might still exist, though perhaps not in the same way, at least in terms of their results. Therefore, it's likely that life exists on other planets and in other solar systems in forms that we can’t even imagine, under physical conditions that seem completely opposite from our perspective based on human physiology. If the core goal is to capture usable energy for explosive actions, life probably adopts the best methods suited to each solar system and planet, just as it does here on Earth. This is what reasoning through analogy suggests, and we misuse analogy when we claim that life is impossible wherever the conditions differ from those on Earth. The reality is that life is possible wherever energy moves downhill as described by Carnot's law and where a counteracting force can slow that descent—that is, likely in all worlds orbiting all stars. Moreover, it doesn't necessarily have to exist solely in defined organisms that have fixed structures allowing the flow of energy. It’s conceivable (though hard to visualize) that energy could be stored and then used in varying ways across a medium that isn’t fully solidified. All the essentials of life would still be there, with energy slowly accumulated and suddenly released. The difference between this vague and formless vitality and the distinct vitality we recognize would be about as slight as the difference between dreaming and being awake. This might describe the condition of life in our nebula before the matter had completely condensed, if it’s true that life emerges just when, as the result of a reverse movement, the nebular matter becomes apparent.
It is therefore conceivable that life might have assumed a totally different outward appearance and designed forms very different from those we know. With another chemical substratum, in other physical conditions, the impulsion would have remained the same, but it would have split up very differently in course of progress; and the whole would have traveled another road—whether shorter or longer who can tell? In any case, in the entire series of living beings no term would have been what it now is. Now, was it necessary that there should be a series, or terms? Why should not the unique impetus have been impressed on a unique body, which might have gone on evolving?
It’s possible that life could have looked completely different and taken on forms unlike anything we recognize. With a different chemical foundation and under other physical conditions, the driving force would have stayed the same, but it would have diverged in a unique way over time; the entire process would have followed a different path—whether that path was shorter or longer, who can say? In any case, throughout the entire range of living beings, no stage would have been what it is today. Now, was it necessary for there to be a series or stages? Why couldn’t the singular drive have been applied to a single entity, which could have continued to evolve?
This question arises, no doubt, from the comparison of life to an impetus. And it must be compared to an impetus, because no image borrowed from the physical world can give more nearly the idea of it. But it is only an image. In reality, life is of the psychological order, and it is of the essence of the psychical to enfold a confused plurality of interpenetrating terms. In space, and in space only, is distinct multiplicity possible: a point is absolutely external to another point. But pure and empty unity, also, is met with only in space; it is that of a mathematical point. Abstract unity and abstract multiplicity are determinations of space or categories of the understanding, whichever we will, spatiality and intellectuality being molded on each other. But what is of psychical nature cannot entirely correspond with space, nor enter perfectly into the categories of the understanding. Is my own person, at a given moment, one or manifold? If I declare it one, inner voices arise and protest—those of the sensations, feelings, ideas, among which my in[Pg 258]dividuality is distributed. But, if I make it distinctly manifold, my consciousness rebels quite as strongly; it affirms that my sensations, my feelings, my thoughts are abstractions which I effect on myself, and that each of my states implies all the others. I am then (we must adopt the language of the understanding, since only the understanding has a language) a unity that is multiple and a multiplicity that is one;[91] but unity and multiplicity are only views of my personality taken by an understanding that directs its categories at me; I enter neither into one nor into the other nor into both at once, although both, united, may give a fair imitation of the mutual interpenetration and continuity that I find at the base of my own self. Such is my inner life, and such also is life in general. While, in its contact with matter, life is comparable to an impulsion or an impetus, regarded in itself it is an immensity of potentiality, a mutual encroachment of thousands and thousands of tendencies which nevertheless are "thousands and thousands" only when once regarded as outside of each other, that is, when spatialized. Contact with matter is what determines this dissociation. Matter divides actually what was but potentially manifold; and, in this sense, individuation is in part the work of matter, in part the result of life's own inclination. Thus, a poetic sentiment, which bursts into distinct verses, lines and words, may be said to have already contained this multiplicity of individuated elements, and yet, in fact, it is the materiality of language that creates it.
This question comes up, without a doubt, when we think of life as a driving force. It has to be thought of that way because no metaphor from the physical world can capture it better. But it’s just a metaphor. In reality, life belongs to the psychological realm, and its essence is to encompass a confusing mix of overlapping elements. Only in space can clear multiplicity exist: one point is completely separate from another. But pure and empty unity also exists only in space; it’s like a mathematical point. Abstract unity and abstract multiplicity are features of space or categories of understanding, whichever you prefer, with spatiality and intellectuality shaping each other. However, what is psychological cannot fully align with space or fit perfectly into the categories of understanding. Is my own self, at any given moment, one or many? If I say it’s one, inner voices protest—those of sensations, feelings, ideas, among which my individuality is spread. But if I distinctly say it’s many, my consciousness pushes back just as strongly; it insists that my sensations, feelings, and thoughts are abstractions I impose on myself, and that each of my states implies all the others. So, I am then (we must use the language of understanding, since only understanding has a language) a unity that is multiple and a multiplicity that is one; but unity and multiplicity are just perspectives of my personality taken by an understanding that applies its categories to me; I fit into neither one nor the other nor both at the same time, although together they may provide a decent imitation of the mutual interpenetration and continuity I experience at the core of my self. This is my inner life, and it’s also what life is like in general. While, in its interaction with matter, life can be compared to a push or a driving force, when considered on its own, it is an immense potential, a mutual overlap of thousands of tendencies that are only "thousands of tendencies" when seen as separate from each other, that is, when spatialized. Interaction with matter is what causes this separation. Matter actually divides what was only possibly multiple; in this sense, individuation is partly the work of matter and partly the outcome of life’s own nature. Thus, a poetic sentiment, which breaks into distinct verses, lines, and words, can be said to have already contained this multiplicity of distinct elements, and yet, in reality, it’s the materiality of language that brings it to life.
But through the words, lines and verses runs the simple inspiration which is the whole poem. So, among the[Pg 259] dissociated individuals, one life goes on moving: everywhere the tendency to individualize is opposed and at the same time completed by an antagonistic and complementary tendency to associate, as if the manifold unity of life, drawn in the direction of multiplicity, made so much the more effort to withdraw itself on to itself. A part is no sooner detached than it tends to reunite itself, if not to all the rest, at least to what is nearest to it. Hence, throughout the whole realm of life, a balancing between individuation and association. Individuals join together into a society; but the society, as soon as formed, tends to melt the associated individuals into a new organism, so as to become itself an individual, able in its turn to be part and parcel of a new association. At the lowest degree of the scale of organisms we already find veritable associations, microbial colonies, and in these associations, according to a recent work, a tendency to individuate by the constitution of a nucleus.[92] The same tendency is met with again at a higher stage, in the protophytes, which, once having quitted the parent cell by way of division, remain united to each other by the gelatinous substance that surrounds them—also in those protozoa which begin by mingling their pseudopodia and end by welding themselves together. The "colonial" theory of the genesis of higher organisms is well known. The protozoa, consisting of one single cell, are supposed to have formed, by assemblage, aggregates which, relating themselves together in their turn, have given rise to aggregates of aggregates; so organisms more and more complicated, and also more and more differentiated, are born of the association of organisms barely differentiated and elementary.[93] In this extreme form, the[Pg 260] theory is open to grave objections: more and more the idea seems to be gaining ground, that polyzoism is an exceptional and abnormal fact.[94] But it is none the less true that things happen as if every higher organism was born of an association of cells that have subdivided the work between them. Very probably it is not the cells that have made the individual by means of association; it is rather the individual that has made the cells by means of dissociation.[95] But this itself reveals to us, in the genesis of the individual, a haunting of the social form, as if the individual could develop only on the condition that its substance should be split up into elements having themselves an appearance of individuality and united among themselves by an appearance of sociality. There are numerous cases in which nature seems to hesitate between the two forms, and to ask herself if she shall make a society or an individual. The slightest push is enough, then, to make the balance weigh on one side or the other. If we take an infusorian sufficiently large, such as the Stentor, and cut it into two halves each containing a part of the nucleus, each of the two halves will generate an independent Stentor; but if we divide it incompletely, so that a protoplasmic communication is left between the two halves, we shall see them execute, each from its side, corresponding movements: so that in this case it is enough that a thread should be maintained or cut in order that life should affect the social or the individual form. Thus, in rudimentary organisms consisting of a single cell, we already find that the apparent individuality of the whole[Pg 261] is the composition of an undefined number of potential individualities potentially associated. But, from top to bottom of the series of living beings, the same law is manifested. And it is this that we express when we say that unity and multiplicity are categories of inert matter, that the vital impetus is neither pure unity nor pure multiplicity, and that if the matter to which it communicates itself compels it to choose one of the two, its choice will never be definitive: it will leap from one to the other indefinitely. The evolution of life in the double direction of individuality and association has therefore nothing accidental about it: it is due to the very nature of life.
But throughout the words, lines, and verses runs a simple inspiration that is the essence of the entire poem. So, among the[Pg 259] disconnected individuals, one life continues to move: everywhere the tendency to stand out as an individual is challenged and simultaneously complemented by an opposing tendency to connect, as if the diverse unity of life, drawn toward multiplicity, struggles even more to retract upon itself. A part is no sooner separated than it tries to rejoin, if not with everything else, at least with what is closest to it. Thus, throughout the entire realm of life, there is a balancing act between becoming an individual and forming associations. Individuals come together to create a society; but once society is formed, it seeks to merge the associated individuals into a new organism, becoming an individual itself, which can then be part of a new association. At the most basic level of organisms, we already observe true associations, such as microbial colonies, and in these associations, according to recent research, there is a tendency toward individuation through the formation of a nucleus.[92] This same tendency can be seen at a higher level, in protophytes, which, after splitting from the parent cell, remain connected through the gelatinous substance surrounding them—also in those protozoa that start by mingling their pseudopodia and ultimately fuse together. The "colonial" theory of how higher organisms originated is well known. The protozoa, which consist of a single cell, are believed to have formed, through aggregation, collections that, in turn, relate to each other and give rise to aggregates of aggregates; thereby, increasingly complex organisms are born from the association of barely differentiated and elementary organisms.[93] In its extreme form, this[Pg 260] theory faces serious objections: it seems increasingly likely that polyzoism is an exceptional and abnormal occurrence.[94] Nevertheless, it remains true that things happen as if every higher organism emerges from an association of cells that have divided the tasks between them. It’s likely not the cells that created the individual through association; rather, it is the individual that has formed the cells through dissociation.[95] However, this brings to light the influence of social structure in the development of the individual, suggesting that the individual can only grow when its substance is divided into elements that exhibit some degree of individuality and are linked by a semblance of sociality. Numerous instances suggest that nature seems to waver between the two forms, questioning whether to create a society or an individual. A slight nudge is often enough to tip the balance one way or the other. If we take a sufficiently large infusorian, such as Stentor, and cut it into two halves, each containing part of the nucleus, each half will regenerate into an independent Stentor; but if we divide it incompletely, leaving a protoplasmic connection between the two halves, we’ll observe them executing corresponding movements from each side: thus, in this case, it is sufficient that a connection is maintained or severed for life to take on a social or individual form. In this way, in rudimentary organisms made up of a single cell, we see that the apparent individuality of the whole[Pg 261] is actually the combination of an undefined number of potential individualities, potentially linked. But this same principle manifests from the simplest to the most complex life forms. This is what we mean when we say that unity and multiplicity are fundamental categories of inert matter, that the vital impulse is neither pure unity nor pure multiplicity, and that if the matter it interacts with forces it to choose one of the two, its choice will never be final: it will jump back and forth endlessly. The evolution of life in both the direction of individuality and association is therefore not coincidental: it stems from the very nature of life.
Essential also is the progress to reflexion. If our analysis is correct, it is consciousness, or rather supra-consciousness, that is at the origin of life. Consciousness, or supra-consciousness, is the name for the rocket whose extinguished fragments fall back as matter; consciousness, again, is the name for that which subsists of the rocket itself, passing through the fragments and lighting them up into organisms. But this consciousness, which is a need of creation, is made manifest to itself only where creation is possible. It lies dormant when life is condemned to automatism; it wakens as soon as the possibility of a choice is restored. That is why, in organisms unprovided with a nervous system, it varies according to the power of locomotion and of deformation of which the organism disposes. And in animals with a nervous system, it is proportional to the complexity of the switchboard on which the paths called sensory and the paths called motor intersect—that is, of the brain. How must this solidarity between the organism and consciousness be understood?
Essential to this is the shift to reflection. If our analysis is correct, it is consciousness, or more accurately, supra-consciousness, that is the source of life. Consciousness, or supra-consciousness, is like the rocket whose burnt-out fragments fall back as matter; consciousness is also what remains of the rocket itself, moving through the fragments and bringing them to life as organisms. However, this consciousness, which is a need for creation, only becomes aware of itself where creation is possible. It stays dormant when life is stuck in automatism; it awakens as soon as the possibility of choice is restored. That’s why, in organisms without a nervous system, it varies depending on the organism's ability to move and deform. In animals with a nervous system, it corresponds to the complexity of the network where the paths called sensory and the paths called motor intersect—that is, the brain. How should we understand this connection between the organism and consciousness?
We will not dwell here on a point that we have dealt with in former works. Let us merely recall that a theory[Pg 262] such as that according to which consciousness is attached to certain neurons, and is thrown off from their work like a phosphorescence, may be accepted by the scientist for the detail of analysis; it is a convenient mode of expression. But it is nothing else. In reality, a living being is a centre of action. It represents a certain sum of contingency entering into the world, that is to say, a certain quantity of possible action—a quantity variable with individuals and especially with species. The nervous system of an animal marks out the flexible lines on which its action will run (although the potential energy is accumulated in the muscles rather than in the nervous system itself); its nervous centres indicate, by their development and their configuration, the more or less extended choice it will have among more or less numerous and complicated actions. Now, since the awakening of consciousness in a living creature is the more complete, the greater the latitude of choice allowed to it and the larger the amount of action bestowed upon it, it is clear that the development of consciousness will appear to be dependent on that of the nervous centres. On the other hand, every state of consciousness being, in one aspect of it, a question put to the motor activity and even the beginning of a reply, there is no psychical event that does not imply the entry into play of the cortical mechanisms. Everything seems, therefore, to happen as if consciousness sprang from the brain, and as if the detail of conscious activity were modeled on that of the cerebral activity. In reality, consciousness does not spring from the brain; but brain and consciousness correspond because equally they measure, the one by the complexity of its structure and the other by the intensity of its awareness, the quantity of choice that the living being has at its disposal.
We won't spend time on a point we've covered in previous works. Let's just remember that a theory[Pg 262] suggesting consciousness is linked to specific neurons and emitted like phosphorescence from their activity can be accepted by scientists for detailed analysis; it's a convenient way to explain things. However, that's all it is. In reality, a living being is an action center. It represents a certain amount of chance entering the world, meaning a specific quantity of possible actions—which varies between individuals and especially species. An animal's nervous system outlines the flexible paths its actions will take (even though potential energy is stored in the muscles rather than the nervous system itself); its nervous centers show by their development and structure the extent of choices available for various and more complex actions. Now, since a living creature's consciousness is more developed when it has more choices and a greater range of actions, it’s clear that the growth of consciousness seems to depend on that of the nervous centers. On the other hand, every state of consciousness is, in one way, a question posed to motor activity and even the start of an answer, so there is no mental event that doesn’t activate the cortical mechanisms. Everything appears to happen as if consciousness arises from the brain, and as if conscious activity is shaped by cerebral activity. In truth, consciousness doesn’t come from the brain; rather, the brain and consciousness resonate because they both measure, one through its complex structure and the other through the intensity of its awareness, the amount of choice available to the living being.
It is precisely because a cerebral state expresses simply[Pg 263] what there is of nascent action in the corresponding psychical state, that the psychical state tells us more than the cerebral state. The consciousness of a living being, as we have tried to prove elsewhere, is inseparable from its brain in the sense in which a sharp knife is inseparable from its edge: the brain is the sharp edge by which consciousness cuts into the compact tissue of events, but the brain is no more coextensive with consciousness than the edge is with the knife. Thus, from the fact that two brains, like that of the ape and that of the man, are very much alike, we cannot conclude that the corresponding consciousnesses are comparable or commensurable.
It’s exactly because a brain state simply[Pg 263] expresses the emerging action in the related mental state that the mental state reveals more than the brain state does. The consciousness of a living being, as we've tried to demonstrate elsewhere, is inseparable from its brain in the way that a sharp knife is inseparable from its edge: the brain is the sharp edge through which consciousness engages with the dense fabric of experiences, but the brain is not equal to consciousness any more than the edge is equal to the knife. Therefore, just because two brains, like those of an ape and a human, are very similar, we cannot assume that their corresponding consciousnesses are comparable or equal.
But the two brains may perhaps be less alike than we suppose. How can we help being struck by the fact that, while man is capable of learning any sort of exercise, of constructing any sort of object, in short of acquiring any kind of motor habit whatsoever, the faculty of combining new movements is strictly limited in the best-endowed animal, even in the ape? The cerebral characteristic of man is there. The human brain is made, like every brain, to set up motor mechanisms and to enable us to choose among them, at any instant, the one we shall put in motion by the pull of a trigger. But it differs from other brains in this, that the number of mechanisms it can set up, and consequently the choice that it gives as to which among them shall be released, is unlimited. Now, from the limited to the unlimited there is all the distance between the closed and the open. It is not a difference of degree, but of kind.
But the two brains might actually be less similar than we think. It's striking that while humans can learn any type of activity, create any kind of object, and essentially develop any motor skill, the ability to combine new movements is quite limited even in the most advanced animals, like apes. The unique trait of the human brain is evident here. Like every brain, it’s designed to establish motor systems and allows us to choose one to activate at any moment. However, it stands out from other brains in that it can set up an unlimited number of these systems, which means we have limitless choices about which one to activate. The difference between the limited and the unlimited represents the gap between the closed and the open. It’s not just a matter of degree, but a fundamental difference.
Radical therefore, also, is the difference between animal consciousness, even the most intelligent, and human consciousness. For consciousness corresponds exactly to the living being's power of choice; it is coextensive with the fringe of possible action that surrounds the real action:[Pg 264] consciousness is synonymous with invention and with freedom. Now, in the animal, invention is never anything but a variation on the theme of routine. Shut up in the habits of the species, it succeeds, no doubt, in enlarging them by its individual initiative; but it escapes automatism only for an instant, for just the time to create a new automatism. The gates of its prison close as soon as they are opened; by pulling at its chain it succeeds only in stretching it. With man, consciousness breaks the chain. In man, and in man alone, it sets itself free. The whole history of life until man has been that of the effort of consciousness to raise matter, and of the more or less complete overwhelming of consciousness by the matter which has fallen back on it. The enterprise was paradoxical, if, indeed, we may speak here otherwise than by metaphor of enterprise and of effort. It was to create with matter, which is necessity itself, an instrument of freedom, to make a machine which should triumph over mechanism, and to use the determinism of nature to pass through the meshes of the net which this very determinism had spread. But, everywhere except in man, consciousness has let itself be caught in the net whose meshes it tried to pass through: it has remained the captive of the mechanisms it has set up. Automatism, which it tries to draw in the direction of freedom, winds about it and drags it down. It has not the power to escape, because the energy it has provided for acts is almost all employed in maintaining the infinitely subtle and essentially unstable equilibrium into which it has brought matter. But man not only maintains his machine, he succeeds in using it as he pleases. Doubtless he owes this to the superiority of his brain, which enables him to build an unlimited number of motor mechanisms, to oppose new habits to the old ones unceasingly, and, by dividing automatism against[Pg 265] itself, to rule it. He owes it to his language, which furnishes consciousness with an immaterial body in which to incarnate itself and thus exempts it from dwelling exclusively on material bodies, whose flux would soon drag it along and finally swallow it up. He owes it to social life, which stores and preserves efforts as language stores thought, fixes thereby a mean level to which individuals must raise themselves at the outset, and by this initial stimulation prevents the average man from slumbering and drives the superior man to mount still higher. But our brain, our society, and our language are only the external and various signs of one and the same internal superiority. They tell, each after its manner, the unique, exceptional success which life has won at a given moment of its evolution. They express the difference of kind, and not only of degree, which separates man from the rest of the animal world. They let us guess that, while at the end of the vast spring-board from which life has taken its leap, all the others have stepped down, finding the cord stretched too high, man alone has cleared the obstacle.
The difference between animal consciousness, even the most intelligent ones, and human consciousness is truly radical. Consciousness directly relates to a living being's ability to make choices; it exists alongside the range of possible actions that surround the actual action: [Pg 264] consciousness is tied to creativity and freedom. In animals, creativity is just a twist on routine. They may expand their species' habits through individual actions, but they only momentarily escape their automatic behaviors, quickly creating a new set of habits in the process. The moment they open the door to freedom, it shuts again; tugging at their chains merely stretches them. Human consciousness, on the other hand, breaks that chain. Only in humans does it find liberation. The entire history of life before humans has been about the struggle of consciousness to elevate physical matter and the often complete overshadowing of consciousness by the weight of material constraints. This struggle was paradoxical, if we can even talk about "struggle" in such abstract terms. It aimed to construct a tool of freedom using matter, which is essentially necessity, to create a mechanism that overcomes mere mechanics, utilizing nature's determinism to navigate the very traps that this determinism has set. Yet, except for humans, consciousness has always become ensnared in the net it sought to escape: it has remained a prisoner of the mechanisms it created. Automatism, which it tries to steer toward freedom, binds it and pulls it down. It lacks the power to break free because almost all the energy it exerts for action is used up in maintaining the delicate, unstable balance it has established with matter. But humans not only sustain their mechanisms; they can manipulate them at will. This is likely due to the superior capabilities of their brains, which allow them to create countless new mechanisms, continuously oppose old habits with new ones, and, by pitting automatic behaviors against themselves, exert control over them. Their language provides consciousness with an immaterial vessel to express itself, preventing it from being solely focused on material bodies, which would quickly consume it. Social life plays a crucial role as well, storing and preserving efforts much like language preserves thoughts. This sets a baseline for individuals to aspire to, preventing the average person from stagnation and motivating the exceptional individuals to strive even higher. However, our brains, our society, and our language are merely external indicators of a singular internal superiority. Each of these elements reflects the singular, extraordinary success that life has achieved at a particular point in its evolution. They signify a fundamental difference, not just a matter of degree, that distinguishes humans from the rest of the animal kingdom. They suggest that while every other species has stepped off the massive springboard of evolution, unable to reach its peak, man alone has successfully cleared the obstacle.
It is in this quite special sense that man is the "term" and the "end" of evolution. Life, we have said, transcends finality as it transcends the other categories. It is essentially a current sent through matter, drawing from it what it can. There has not, therefore, properly speaking, been any project or plan. On the other hand, it is abundantly evident that the rest of nature is not for the sake of man: we struggle like the other species, we have struggled against other species. Moreover, if the evolution of life had encountered other accidents in its course, if, thereby, the current of life had been otherwise divided, we should have been, physically and morally, far different from what we are. For these various reasons it would be wrong to regard humanity, such as we have it before our eyes, as[Pg 266] pre-figured in the evolutionary movement. It cannot even be said to be the outcome of the whole of evolution, for evolution has been accomplished on several divergent lines, and while the human species is at the end of one of them, other lines have been followed with other species at their end. It is in a quite different sense that we hold humanity to be the ground of evolution.
In this unique way, humans are the "goal" and the "final point" of evolution. As we've mentioned, life goes beyond finality just like it does with other concepts. Essentially, life is a flow through matter, extracting what it can. So, there hasn't really been a specific project or plan. On the flip side, it's clear that the rest of nature doesn’t exist just for humans: we struggle like other species do, and we've competed against them as well. Furthermore, if life’s evolution had faced different challenges along the way, and if the flow of life had been redirected, we would be physically and morally very different from who we are now. For these various reasons, it would be incorrect to see humanity, as we observe it today, as[Pg 266] something that was predetermined in the process of evolution. It can't even be said to be the end result of all evolution, because evolution has occurred along multiple divergent paths, and while humans are at the end of one of those paths, other lines have led to different species. We view humanity as the foundation of evolution in a completely different way.
From our point of view, life appears in its entirety as an immense wave which, starting from a centre, spreads outwards, and which on almost the whole of its circumference is stopped and converted into oscillation: at one single point the obstacle has been forced, the impulsion has passed freely. It is this freedom that the human form registers. Everywhere but in man, consciousness has had to come to a stand; in man alone it has kept on its way. Man, then, continues the vital movement indefinitely, although he does not draw along with him all that life carries in itself. On other lines of evolution there have traveled other tendencies which life implied, and of which, since everything interpenetrates, man has, doubtless, kept something, but of which he has kept only very little. It is as if a vague and formless being, whom we may call, as we will, man or superman, had sought to realize himself, and had succeeded only by abandoning a part of himself on the way. The losses are represented by the rest of the animal world, and even by the vegetable world, at least in what these have that is positive and above the accidents of evolution.
From our perspective, life seems like a massive wave that starts from a center and spreads outward, and almost everywhere along its edge, it is stopped and turned into a ripple. At one single point, the barrier has been broken, and the impulse has moved through freely. This freedom is what the human form reflects. Everywhere except in humans, consciousness has had to pause; only humans have kept moving forward. Humans, then, continue this vital movement indefinitely, even though they don’t bring along everything that life encompasses. Other lines of evolution have carried different trends that life has implied, and because everything is interconnected, humans have likely retained a bit of them, but not much. It’s as if a vague and formless being, which we can call, however we like, man or superman, sought to realize itself and could only do so by leaving behind part of itself on the journey. The things that were lost are represented by the other animals and even by the plant world, at least in what they possess that is positive and transcends the randomness of evolution.
From this point of view, the discordances of which nature offers us the spectacle are singularly weakened. The organized world as a whole becomes as the soil on which was to grow either man himself or a being who morally must resemble him. The animals, however distant they may be from our species, however hostile[Pg 267] to it, have none the less been useful traveling companions, on whom consciousness has unloaded whatever encumbrances it was dragging along, and who have enabled it to rise, in man, to heights from which it sees an unlimited horizon open again before it.
From this perspective, the conflicts that nature presents to us become much less intense. The organized world as a whole serves as the foundation for either humans themselves or a being that must morally resemble them. The animals, no matter how distant they are from our species or how hostile[Pg 267] towards it, have still been valuable companions on our journey, allowing consciousness to shed the burdens it was carrying and helping it rise, in humans, to heights where an endless horizon is once again visible.
It is true that it has not only abandoned cumbersome baggage on the way; it has also had to give up valuable goods. Consciousness, in man, is pre-eminently intellect. It might have been, it ought, so it seems, to have been also intuition. Intuition and intellect represent two opposite directions of the work of consciousness: intuition goes in the very direction of life, intellect goes in the inverse direction, and thus finds itself naturally in accordance with the movement of matter. A complete and perfect humanity would be that in which these two forms of conscious activity should attain their full development. And, between this humanity and ours, we may conceive any number of possible stages, corresponding to all the degrees imaginable of intelligence and of intuition. In this lies the part of contingency in the mental structure of our species. A different evolution might have led to a humanity either more intellectual still or more intuitive. In the humanity of which we are a part, intuition is, in fact, almost completely sacrificed to intellect. It seems that to conquer matter, and to reconquer its own self, consciousness has had to exhaust the best part of its power. This conquest, in the particular conditions in which it has been accomplished, has required that consciousness should adapt itself to the habits of matter and concentrate all its attention on them, in fact determine itself more especially as intellect. Intuition is there, however, but vague and above all discontinuous. It is a lamp almost extinguished, which only glimmers now and then, for a few moments at most. But it glimmers wherever a vital[Pg 268] interest is at stake. On our personality, on our liberty, on the place we occupy in the whole of nature, on our origin and perhaps also on our destiny, it throws a light feeble and vacillating, but which none the less pierces the darkness of the night in which the intellect leaves us.
It's true that it's not only dropped heavy baggage along the way; it has also had to let go of valuable things. In humans, consciousness is mainly about intellect. It could have, and arguably should have, also included intuition. Intuition and intellect represent two opposing directions of conscious effort: intuition moves toward life, while intellect moves in the opposite direction, aligning itself with the movement of matter. A complete and perfect humanity would be one in which these two forms of conscious activity fully developed. Between this ideal humanity and ours, we can imagine countless possible stages, reflecting all imaginable levels of intelligence and intuition. This represents the element of chance in the mental framework of our species. A different evolution could have resulted in a humanity that was either even more intellectual or more intuitive. In the humanity we belong to, intuition is almost completely sacrificed to intellect. It appears that to master matter and reclaim its own essence, consciousness has had to spend its best resources. This mastery, given the specific circumstances, has required consciousness to adjust to the habits of matter and focus all its attention on them, thereby defining itself mainly as intellect. Intuition still exists, but it's vague and, above all, sporadic. It's like a nearly extinguished lamp that only flickers occasionally, for just a moment at most. However, it does flicker whenever a vital interest is at stake. Regarding our personality, our freedom, our place in the entirety of nature, our origins, and maybe even our destiny, it casts a weak and shaky light, but one that nonetheless cuts through the darkness that intellect leaves us in.
These fleeting intuitions, which light up their object only at distant intervals, philosophy ought to seize, first to sustain them, then to expand them and so unite them together. The more it advances in this work, the more will it perceive that intuition is mind itself, and, in a certain sense, life itself: the intellect has been cut out of it by a process resembling that which has generated matter. Thus is revealed the unity of the spiritual life. We recognize it only when we place ourselves in intuition in order to go from intuition to the intellect, for from the intellect we shall never pass to intuition.
These brief insights, which illuminate their subject only at rare intervals, philosophy should capture, first to support them, then to broaden them, and ultimately connect them. As it progresses in this endeavor, it will increasingly realize that intuition is the mind itself, and, in a way, life itself: the intellect has been derived from it through a process similar to that which created matter. This reveals the unity of spiritual life. We recognize it only when we engage with intuition to move from intuition to intellect, because we will never move from intellect to intuition.
Philosophy introduces us thus into the spiritual life. And it shows us at the same time the relation of the life of the spirit to that of the body. The great error of the doctrines on the spirit has been the idea that by isolating the spiritual life from all the rest, by suspending it in space as high as possible above the earth, they were placing it beyond attack, as if they were not thereby simply exposing it to be taken as an effect of mirage! Certainly they are right to listen to conscience when conscience affirms human freedom; but the intellect is there, which says that the cause determines its effect, that like conditions like, that all is repeated and that all is given. They are right to believe in the absolute reality of the person and in his independence toward matter; but science is there, which shows the interdependence of conscious life and cerebral activity. They are right to attribute to man a privileged place in nature, to hold that the distance is infinite between the animal and man; but the history of life is there,[Pg 269] which makes us witness the genesis of species by gradual transformation, and seems thus to reintegrate man in animality. When a strong instinct assures the probability of personal survival, they are right not to close their ears to its voice; but if there exist "souls" capable of an independent life, whence do they come? When, how and why do they enter into this body which we see arise, quite naturally, from a mixed cell derived from the bodies of its two parents? All these questions will remain unanswered, a philosophy of intuition will be a negation of science, will be sooner or later swept away by science, if it does not resolve to see the life of the body just where it really is, on the road that leads to the life of the spirit. But it will then no longer have to do with definite living beings. Life as a whole, from the initial impulsion that thrust it into the world, will appear as a wave which rises, and which is opposed by the descending movement of matter. On the greater part of its surface, at different heights, the current is converted by matter into a vortex. At one point alone it passes freely, dragging with it the obstacle which will weigh on its progress but will not stop it. At this point is humanity; it is our privileged situation. On the other hand, this rising wave is consciousness, and, like all consciousness, it includes potentialities without number which interpenetrate and to which consequently neither the category of unity nor that of multiplicity is appropriate, made as they both are for inert matter. The matter that it bears along with it, and in the interstices of which it inserts itself, alone can divide it into distinct individualities. On flows the current, running through human generations, subdividing itself into individuals. This subdivision was vaguely indicated in it, but could not have been made clear without matter. Thus souls are continually being created, which, never[Pg 270]theless, in a certain sense pre-existed. They are nothing else than the little rills into which the great river of life divides itself, flowing through the body of humanity. The movement of the stream is distinct from the river bed, although it must adopt its winding course. Consciousness is distinct from the organism it animates, although it must undergo its vicissitudes. As the possible actions which a state of consciousness indicates are at every instant beginning to be carried out in the nervous centres, the brain underlines at every instant the motor indications of the state of consciousness; but the interdependency of consciousness and brain is limited to this; the destiny of consciousness is not bound up on that account with the destiny of cerebral matter. Finally, consciousness is essentially free; it is freedom itself; but it cannot pass through matter without settling on it, without adapting itself to it: this adaptation is what we call intellectuality; and the intellect, turning itself back toward active, that is to say free, consciousness, naturally makes it enter into the conceptual forms into which it is accustomed to see matter fit. It will therefore always perceive freedom in the form of necessity; it will always neglect the part of novelty or of creation inherent in the free act; it will always substitute for action itself an imitation artificial, approximative, obtained by compounding the old with the old and the same with the same. Thus, to the eyes of a philosophy that attempts to reabsorb intellect in intuition, many difficulties vanish or become light. But such a doctrine does not only facilitate speculation; it gives us also more power to act and to live. For, with it, we feel ourselves no longer isolated in humanity, humanity no longer seems isolated in the nature that it dominates. As the smallest grain of dust is bound up with our entire solar system, drawn along with it in that undivided move[Pg 271]ment of descent which is materiality itself, so all organized beings, from the humblest to the highest, from the first origins of life to the time in which we are, and in all places as in all times, do but evidence a single impulsion, the inverse of the movement of matter, and in itself indivisible. All the living hold together, and all yield to the same tremendous push. The animal takes its stand on the plant, man bestrides animality, and the whole of humanity, in space and in time, is one immense army galloping beside and before and behind each of us in an overwhelming charge able to beat down every resistance and clear the most formidable obstacles, perhaps even death.
Philosophy guides us into the spiritual life and reveals how the spirit relates to the body. A major mistake in the theories about the spirit has been the belief that by separating the spiritual life from everything else and trying to elevate it far above the earth, they made it invulnerable, as if doing so didn't just expose it to being seen as an illusion. They’re right to listen to their conscience when it claims human freedom, but intellect tells us that causes determine their effects, that similar conditions yield similar outcomes, and that everything repeats and is given. They are correct to believe in the absolute reality of the individual and their independence from matter; however, science demonstrates the interconnectedness of conscious life and brain activity. They rightly attribute a special place to humans in nature, claiming there is an infinite gap between humans and animals; yet the history of life shows us the gradual transformation of species, suggesting that humans are integrated into the animal kingdom. When a strong instinct assures the likelihood of personal survival, it’s valid not to ignore that instinct; but if there are “souls” capable of existing independently, where do they come from? When, how, and why do they enter the body that we see arise quite naturally from a mixed cell derived from both parents? These questions will remain unanswered; an intuition-based philosophy will contradict science and will eventually be overshadowed by it unless it chooses to acknowledge the life of the body as it truly is, on the path that leads to the life of the spirit. However, it will no longer deal with definite living beings. Life as a whole, from the initial push that brought it into the world, will appear as a wave that rises, countered by the downward movement of matter. Across most of its surface, at various heights, the current is converted into a vortex by matter. It flows freely at only one point, dragging along the obstacles that will slow it down but not stop it. Humanity occupies this unique position. On the other hand, this rising wave represents consciousness, which, like all consciousness, contains countless possibilities that interconnect and defy both unity and multiplicity, as those categories are meant for inert matter. The matter it carries along and in which it embeds itself can only distinguish it into separate individualities. The current flows through human generations, subdividing into individuals. This subdivision was hinted at in it, but could not be clarified without matter. Thus, souls are continually being formed, which, nonetheless, in a certain sense, pre-existed. They are like the little streams into which the great river of life splits as it flows through humanity. The movement of the stream is separate from the riverbed, yet it must follow its winding path. Consciousness is distinct from the organism it animates, although it must endure its ups and downs. As the potential actions indicated by a state of consciousness are consistently starting to manifest in the nervous system, the brain consistently highlights the motor indications of that state of consciousness; however, the interdependence of consciousness and brain is limited to this, and the fate of consciousness is not tied to the fate of cerebral matter. Ultimately, consciousness is fundamentally free; it is freedom itself; but it cannot pass through matter without settling into it, without adapting to it. This adaptation is what we call intellect; and intellect, turning back toward active, meaning free, consciousness, naturally makes it fit into the conceptual forms it is used to seeing matter conform to. It will therefore always perceive freedom as necessity; it will always overlook the aspect of novelty or creation inherent in the free act; it will always replace action with a crude imitation, approximative, achieved by combining the old with the old and the same with the same. Thus, for a philosophy that seeks to absorb intellect back into intuition, many difficulties disappear or become trivial. But this doctrine not only makes speculation easier; it also gives us greater power to act and live. With it, we feel no longer isolated in humanity, and humanity no longer appears isolated within the nature it dominates. Just as the tiniest grain of dust is linked to our entire solar system, moving with it in the unified descent that is materiality itself, all living beings, from the smallest to the largest, from the origins of life to our present time, and in all places as in all times, reflect a single drive, the opposite of the movement of matter, and is itself indivisible. All living things are connected, and all respond to the same powerful propulsion. The animal stands on the plant, humans rise above animality, and all of humanity, across space and time, forms one vast army charging beside, before, and behind each of us in an overwhelming push capable of overcoming every resistance and clearing the most daunting obstacles, perhaps even death.
FOOTNOTES:
[80] Our comparison does no more than develop the content of the term λογος, as Plotinus understands it. For while the λογος of this philosopher is a generating and informing power, an aspect or a fragment of the ψυχη, on the other hand Plotinus sometimes speaks of it as of a discourse. More generally, the relation that we establish in the present chapter between "extension" and "detension" resembles in some aspects that which Plotinus supposes (some developments of which must have inspired M. Ravaisson) when he makes extension not indeed an inversion of original Being, but an enfeeblement of its essence, one of the last stages of the procession, (see in particular, Enn. IV. iii. 9-11, and III. vi. 17-18). Yet ancient philosophy did not see what consequences would result from this for mathematics, for Plotinus, like Plato, erected mathematical essences into absolute realities. Above all, it suffered itself to be deceived by the purely superficial analogy of duration with extension. It treated the one as it treated the other, regarding change as a degradation of immutability, the sensible as a fall from the intelligible. Whence, as we shall show in the next chapter, a philosophy which fails to recognize the real function and scope of the intellect.
[80] Our comparison simply explores the meaning of the term λογος, as Plotinus sees it. While for this philosopher, the λογος is a generating and informing force, an aspect or a fragment of the ψυχη, he also sometimes refers to it as discourse. More broadly, the connection we make in this chapter between "extension" and "detension" resembles, in some ways, what Plotinus suggests (some of which must have inspired M. Ravaisson) when he describes extension not as a reversal of original Being, but as a weakening of its essence, one of the final stages of the process (see in particular, Enn. IV. iii. 9-11, and III. vi. 17-18). However, ancient philosophy did not recognize the implications this had for mathematics, as Plotinus, like Plato, treated mathematical essences as absolute realities. Above all, it was misled by the purely superficial similarity between duration and extension. It approached one as it did the other, viewing change as a decline from immutability and the sensible as a drop from the intelligible. Therefore, as we will demonstrate in the next chapter, this led to a philosophy that fails to acknowledge the true role and scope of the intellect.
[83] Op. cit. chaps. i. and ii. passim.
[90] In a book rich in facts and in ideas (La Dissolution opposée a l'évolution, Paris, 1899), M. André Lalande shows us everything going towards death, in spite of the momentary resistance which organisms seem to oppose.—But, even from the side of unorganized matter, have we the right to extend to the entire universe considerations drawn from the present state of our solar system? Beside the worlds which are dying, there are without doubt worlds that are being born. On the other hand, in the organized world, the death of individuals does not seem at all like a diminution of "life in general," or like a necessity which life submits to reluctantly. As has been more than once remarked, life has never made an effort to prolong indefinitely the existence of the individual, although on so many other points it has made so many successful efforts. Everything is as if this death had been willed, or at least accepted, for the greater progress of life in general.
[90] In a book filled with facts and ideas (La Dissolution opposée a l'évolution, Paris, 1899), M. André Lalande presents everything that leads to death, despite the temporary resistance that organisms appear to show. But can we really apply the observations from our solar system to the entire universe? Alongside the worlds that are dying, there are certainly worlds that are being born. Additionally, in the organized world, the death of individuals doesn't seem to reduce "life in general," nor does it appear to be a necessity that life reluctantly endures. As has been noted before, life has never tried to extend an individual's existence indefinitely, even though it has been remarkably successful in many other ways. It's almost as if this death has been intentionally willed, or at least accepted, for the greater advancement of life as a whole.
[94] Delage, L'Hérédité, 2nd edition, Paris, 1903, p. 97. Cf. by the same author, "La Conception polyzoïque des êtres" (Revue scientifique, 1896, pp. 641-653).
[94] Delage, L'Hérédité, 2nd edition, Paris, 1903, p. 97. See by the same author, "The Polyzoic Concept of Beings" (Scientific Review, 1896, pp. 641-653).
[95] This is the theory maintained by Kunstler, Delage, Sedgwick, Labbé, etc. Its development, with bibliographical references, will be found in the work of Busquet, Les êtres vivants, Paris, 1899.
[95] This is the theory held by Kunstler, Delage, Sedgwick, Labbé, and others. Its development, along with bibliographical references, can be found in the work of Busquet, Les êtres vivants, Paris, 1899.
CHAPTER IV
It remains for us to examine in themselves two theoretical illusions which we have frequently met with before, but whose consequences rather than principle have hitherto concerned us. Such is the object of the present chapter. It will afford us the opportunity of removing certain objections, of clearing up certain misunderstandings, and, above all, of defining more precisely, by contrasting it with others, a philosophy which sees in duration the very stuff of reality.
It’s time for us to take a closer look at two theoretical misconceptions that we’ve encountered often before, but we’ve mostly focused on their consequences rather than their underlying principles. This is the purpose of the current chapter. It will give us a chance to address some objections, clarify certain misunderstandings, and, most importantly, more clearly define a philosophy that considers duration as the fundamental essence of reality by contrasting it with other views.
Matter or mind, reality has appeared to us as a perpetual becoming. It makes itself or it unmakes itself, but it is never something made. Such is the intuition that we have of mind when we draw aside the veil which is interposed between our consciousness and ourselves. This, also, is what our intellect and senses themselves would show us of matter, if they could obtain a direct and disinterested idea of it. But, preoccupied before everything with the necessities of action, the intellect,[Pg 273] like the senses, is limited to taking, at intervals, views that are instantaneous and by that very fact immobile of the becoming of matter. Consciousness, being in its turn formed on the intellect, sees clearly of the inner life what is already made, and only feels confusedly the making. Thus, we pluck out of duration those moments that interest us, and that we have gathered along its course. These alone we retain. And we are right in so doing, while action only is in question. But when, in speculating on the nature of the real, we go on regarding it as our practical interest requires us to regard it, we become unable to perceive the true evolution, the radical becoming. Of becoming we perceive only states, of duration only instants, and even when we speak of duration and of becoming, it is of another thing that we are thinking. Such is the most striking of the two illusions we wish to examine. It consists in supposing that we can think the unstable by means of the stable, the moving by means of the immobile.
Matter or mind, reality appears to us as a constant state of becoming. It creates itself or destroys itself, but it is never something that is fully formed. This is our understanding of the mind when we lift the veil that separates our consciousness from ourselves. Similarly, this is what our intellect and senses would reveal about matter if they could grasp a clear and unbiased idea of it. However, focused primarily on the demands of action, the intellect,[Pg 273] like the senses, can only take occasional snapshots that are fleeting and, as a result, fixed in the process of matter becoming. Consciousness, which is shaped by the intellect, clearly sees the inner life of what is already established and only vaguely senses the process of becoming. Therefore, we extract from time those moments that interest us and that we've collected along the way. These are the only ones we keep. And we are justified in doing so when it comes to action. But when we start to speculate on the nature of reality, if we continue to view it based on our practical interests, we lose the ability to see the true evolution, the fundamental process of becoming. We only perceive states in becoming, instants in duration, and even when we talk about duration and becoming, we are thinking of something else entirely. This is the most striking of the two illusions we want to explore. It involves thinking we can understand the unstable through the stable, and the moving through the still.
The other illusion is near akin to the first. It has the same origin, being also due to the fact that we import into speculation a procedure made for practice. All action aims at getting something that we feel the want of, or at creating something that does not yet exist. In this very special sense, it fills a void, and goes from the empty to the full, from an absence to a presence, from the unreal to the real. Now the unreality which is here in question is purely relative to the direction in which our attention is engaged, for we are immersed in realities and cannot pass out of them; only, if the present reality is not the one we are seeking, we speak of the absence of this sought-for reality wherever we find the presence of another. We thus express what we have as a function of what we want. This is quite legitimate in the sphere of action. But,[Pg 274] whether we will or no, we keep to this way of speaking, and also of thinking, when we speculate on the nature of things independently of the interest they have for us. Thus arises the second of the two illusions. We propose to examine this first. It is due, like the other, to the static habits that our intellect contracts when it prepares our action on things. Just as we pass through the immobile to go to the moving, so we make use of the void in order to think the full.
The other illusion is quite similar to the first. It comes from the same source, as we apply a practical approach to theoretical thinking. All actions aim to secure something we feel we need, or to create something that doesn’t yet exist. In this specific sense, it fills a gap, moving from empty to full, from absence to presence, from the unreal to the real. The unreality in question is only relative to where our attention is focused, because we are surrounded by realities and can’t escape them. However, if the current reality isn’t what we're looking for, we refer to the absence of the desired reality wherever we notice the presence of something else. This way, we express what we have based on what we want. This is perfectly valid in the realm of action. But,[Pg 274] whether we like it or not, we continue to speak and think this way when we analyze the nature of things without considering their relevance to us. This leads to the second of the two illusions. We aim to explore this one first. It arises, like the first, from the rigid patterns our intellect forms while preparing our actions regarding things. Just as we move from the still to the dynamic, we use emptiness to conceptualize fullness.
We have met with this illusion already in dealing with the fundamental problem of knowledge. The question, we then said, is to know why there is order, and not disorder, in things. But the question has meaning only if we suppose that disorder, understood as an absence of order, is possible, or imaginable, or conceivable. Now, it is only order that is real; but, as order can take two forms, and as the presence of the one may be said to consist in the absence of the other, we speak of disorder whenever we have before us that one of the two orders for which we are not looking. The idea of disorder is then entirely practical. It corresponds to the disappointment of a certain expectation, and it does not denote the absence of all order, but only the presence of that order which does not offer us actual interest. So that whenever we try to deny order completely, absolutely, we find that we are leaping from one kind of order to the other indefinitely, and that the supposed suppression of the one and the other implies the presence of the two. Indeed, if we go on, and persist in shutting our eyes to this movement of the mind and all it involves, we are no longer dealing with an idea; all that is left of disorder is a word. Thus the problem of knowledge is complicated, and possibly made insoluble, by the idea that order fills a void and that its actual presence is superposed on its virtual absence. We[Pg 275] go from absence to presence, from the void to the full, in virtue of the fundamental illusion of our understanding. That is the error of which we noticed one consequence in our last chapter. As we then anticipated, we must come to close quarters with this error, and finally grapple with it. We must face it in itself, in the radically false conception which it implies of negation, of the void and of the nought.[97]
We have encountered this illusion before when discussing the basic problem of knowledge. The question, we said, is to understand why there is order instead of disorder in the world. However, this question only makes sense if we assume that disorder, seen as a lack of order, is possible, imaginable, or conceivable. In reality, only order exists; but since order can manifest in two ways, and since the presence of one can be understood as the absence of the other, we refer to disorder whenever we notice the type of order we’re not interested in. The concept of disorder is purely practical. It reflects the disappointment of not meeting a certain expectation, and it doesn’t mean there’s a total absence of order, but rather the presence of a type of order that doesn’t engage us. So whenever we try to deny order completely, we realize we're just shifting from one form of order to another indefinitely, and the supposed elimination of one or the other implies both are still present. In fact, if we continue shutting our eyes to this mental movement and everything it entails, we’re no longer dealing with an idea; all that remains of disorder is just a word. Thus, the issue of knowledge becomes complicated, and perhaps unsolvable, by the notion that order fills a void and that its actual existence overlays its potential absence. We[Pg 275] transition from absence to presence, from emptiness to fullness, due to the fundamental illusion of our understanding. That’s the mistake we noted had one consequence in our last chapter. As we expected, we must confront this error directly and ultimately deal with it. We need to address it as it is, in the deeply flawed view it suggests about negation, the void, and nothingness.[97]
Philosophers have paid little attention to the idea of the nought. And yet it is often the hidden spring, the invisible mover of philosophical thinking. From the first awakening of reflection, it is this that pushes to the fore, right under the eyes of consciousness, the torturing problems, the questions that we cannot gaze at without feeling giddy and bewildered. I have no sooner commenced to philosophize than I ask myself why I exist; and when I take account of the intimate connection in which I stand to the rest of the universe, the difficulty is only pushed back, for I want to know why the universe exists; and if I refer the universe to a Principle immanent or transcendent that supports it or creates it, my thought rests on this principle only a few moments, for the same problem recurs, this time in its full breadth and generality: Whence comes it, and how can it be understood, that anything exists? Even here, in the present work, when matter has been defined as a kind of descent, this descent as the interruption of a rise, this rise itself as a growth, when finally a Principle of creation has been put at the base of things, the same question springs up: How—why does this principle exist rather than nothing?
Philosophers have largely overlooked the concept of nothingness. Yet, it often serves as the underlying force, the unseen driver of philosophical thought. From the moment we start reflecting, it’s this idea that brings to the surface, right in front of our awareness, the troubling problems, the questions that leave us feeling dizzy and confused. As soon as I begin to think philosophically, I find myself questioning why I exist; and when I consider my deep connection to the rest of the universe, the challenge is merely shifted, since I then seek to understand why the universe itself exists. If I attribute the universe to a principle that either inherently exists or exists beyond it, my thoughts linger on that principle for only a moment before the same question arises, now in broader terms: Where does it come from, and how can we grasp the fact that anything exists? Even in this current work, when matter has been described as a form of descent, with this descent interrupting an ascent, and this ascent identified as a kind of growth, and ultimately a principle of creation established at the foundation of everything, the same question emerges: How—why does this principle exist instead of nothing?
Now, if I push these questions aside and go straight[Pg 276] to what hides behind them, this is what I find:—Existence appears to me like a conquest over nought. I say to myself that there might be, that indeed there ought to be, nothing, and I then wonder that there is something. Or I represent all reality extended on nothing as on a carpet: at first was nothing, and being has come by superaddition to it. Or, yet again, if something has always existed, nothing must always have served as its substratum or receptacle, and is therefore eternally prior. A glass may have always been full, but the liquid it contains nevertheless fills a void. In the same way, being may have always been there, but the nought which is filled, and, as it were, stopped up by it, pre-exists for it none the less, if not in fact at least in right. In short, I cannot get rid of the idea that the full is an embroidery on the canvas of the void, that being is superimposed on nothing, and that in the idea of "nothing" there is less than in that of "something." Hence all the mystery.
Now, if I set these questions aside and go straight[Pg 276] to what lies behind them, here's what I find:—Existence feels like a victory over nothing. I tell myself that there might be, or even should be, nothing, and then I wonder why there is something. Or I picture all reality spread out over nothing like a rug: it started with nothing, and being has come on top of it. Or, if something has always existed, then nothing must have always served as its foundation or container, and is therefore eternally prior. A glass may have always been full, but the liquid inside it still occupies a void. In the same way, being might have always existed, but the nothing that it fills, and that, in a sense, it blocks, still existed before it, at least in theory. In short, I can't shake the idea that the full is an overlay on the canvas of the void, that being is layered over nothing, and that in the concept of "nothing" there is less than in that of "something." Hence all the mystery.
It is necessary that this mystery should be cleared up. It is more especially necessary, if we put duration and free choice at the base of things. For the disdain of metaphysics for all reality that endures comes precisely from this, that it reaches being only by passing through "not-being," and that an existence which endures seems to it not strong enough to conquer non-existence and itself posit itself. It is for this reason especially that it is inclined to endow true being with a logical, and not a psychological nor a physical existence. For the nature of a purely logical existence is such that it seems to be self-sufficient and to posit itself by the effect alone of the force immanent in truth. If I ask myself why bodies or minds exist rather than nothing, I find no answer; but that a logical principle, such as A=A, should have the power of creating itself, triumphing over the nought through[Pg 277]out eternity, seems to me natural. A circle drawn with chalk on a blackboard is a thing which needs explanation: this entirely physical existence has not by itself wherewith to vanquish non-existence. But the "logical essence" of the circle, that is to say, the possibility of drawing it according to a certain law—in short, its definition—is a thing which appears to me eternal: it has neither place nor date; for nowhere, at no moment, has the drawing of a circle begun to be possible. Suppose, then, that the principle on which all things rest, and which all things manifest possesses an existence of the same nature as that of the definition of the circle, or as that of the axiom A=A: the mystery of existence vanishes, for the being that is at the base of everything posits itself then in eternity, as logic itself does. True, it will cost us rather a heavy sacrifice: if the principle of all things exists after the manner of a logical axiom or of a mathematical definition, the things themselves must go forth from this principle like the applications of an axiom or the consequences of a definition, and there will no longer be place, either in the things nor in their principle, for efficient causality understood in the sense of a free choice. Such are precisely the conclusions of a doctrine like that of Spinoza, or even that of Leibniz, and such indeed has been their genesis.
It’s important to understand this mystery. It’s especially crucial if we base everything on duration and free will. The disregard of metaphysics for anything that endures comes from the fact that it can only grasp being by going through “not-being.” It sees existence that lasts as not strong enough to conquer non-existence and assert itself. That’s why it tends to associate true being with a logical existence, rather than a psychological or physical one. The nature of a purely logical existence seems to be self-sufficient and to assert itself solely through the power of truth. When I ask myself why bodies or minds exist instead of nothing, I find no answer. Yet, the idea that a logical principle, like A=A, should have the power to create itself and conquer nothingness through[Pg 277]out eternity seems natural to me. A chalk circle drawn on a blackboard needs an explanation: this physical existence has no power to defeat non-existence by itself. However, the “logical essence” of the circle, meaning the possibility of drawing it according to a specific rule—in other words, its definition—is something I view as eternal; it has no location or time. The ability to draw a circle has never begun to be possible in any specific place or moment. So, if we assume that the principle underlying everything possesses an existence like that of the definition of the circle, or like the axiom A=A, the mystery of existence disappears because the being at the base of everything then asserts itself in eternity, just like logic does. Admittedly, this will require a significant sacrifice: if the principle of all things exists like a logical axiom or a mathematical definition, then things must emerge from this principle like applications of an axiom or consequences of a definition, leaving no room for efficient causality understood as free will. These are precisely the conclusions of doctrines like those of Spinoza or even Leibniz, and that has indeed been their origin.
Now, if we could prove that the idea of the nought, in the sense in which we take it when we oppose it to that of existence, is a pseudo-idea, the problems that are raised around it would become pseudo-problems. The hypothesis of an absolute that acts freely, that in an eminent sense endures, would no longer raise up intellectual prejudices. The road would be cleared for a philosophy more nearly approaching intuition, and which would no longer ask the same sacrifices of common sense.[Pg 278]
Now, if we could show that the concept of nothingness, in the way we refer to it when we contrast it with existence, is a fake concept, the issues that arise from it would become fake issues. The idea of an absolute that acts freely and exists in a higher sense would no longer provoke intellectual biases. The path would be open for a philosophy that aligns more closely with intuition and wouldn’t demand the same sacrifices from common sense.[Pg 278]
Let us then see what we are thinking about when we speak of "Nothing." To represent "Nothing," we must either imagine it or conceive it. Let us examine what this image or this idea may be. First, the image.
Let’s take a look at what we’re thinking when we talk about "Nothing." To represent "Nothing," we either have to imagine it or come up with a concept for it. Let’s explore what this image or idea might be. First, the image.
I am going to close my eyes, stop my ears, extinguish one by one the sensations that come to me from the outer world. Now it is done; all my perceptions vanish, the material universe sinks into silence and the night.—I subsist, however, and cannot help myself subsisting. I am still there, with the organic sensations which come to me from the surface and from the interior of my body, with the recollections which my past perceptions have left behind them—nay, with the impression, most positive and full, of the void I have just made about me. How can I suppress all this? How eliminate myself? I can even, it may be, blot out and forget my recollections up to my immediate past; but at least I keep the consciousness of my present reduced to its extremest poverty, that is to say, of the actual state of my body. I will try, however, to do away even with this consciousness itself. I will reduce more and more the sensations my body sends in to me: now they are almost gone; now they are gone, they have disappeared in the night where all things else have already died away. But no! At the very instant that my consciousness is extinguished, another consciousness lights up—or rather, it was already alight: it had arisen the instant before, in order to witness the extinction of the first; for the first could disappear only for another and in the presence of another. I see myself annihilated only if I have already resuscitated myself by an act which is positive, however involuntary and unconscious. So, do what I will, I am always perceiving something, either from without or from within. When I no longer know anything of external objects, it is because I have taken refuge in[Pg 279] the consciousness that I have of myself. If I abolish this inner self, its very abolition becomes an object for an imaginary self which now perceives as an external object the self that is dying away. Be it external or internal, some object there always is that my imagination is representing. My imagination, it is true, can go from one to the other, I can by turns imagine a nought of external perception or a nought of internal perception, but not both at once, for the absence of one consists, at bottom, in the exclusive presence of the other. But, from the fact that two relative noughts are imaginable in turn, we wrongly conclude that they are imaginable together: a conclusion the absurdity of which must be obvious, for we cannot imagine a nought without perceiving, at least confusedly, that we are imagining it, consequently that we are acting, that we are thinking, and therefore that something still subsists.
I'm going to close my eyes, shut my ears, and shut down one by one the sensations coming from the outside world. Now it’s done; all my perceptions fade away, the material universe falls into silence and night. Yet, I still exist, and I can’t help but exist. I’m still here, with the physical sensations from my body, both from the surface and within, along with the memories left by my past experiences—indeed, with the strong and clear sense of the void I’ve just created around me. How can I suppress all of this? How can I eliminate myself? I might be able to erase and forget my memories, even those from my immediate past; but at least I retain the awareness of my present, reduced to its barest essentials, which is the current state of my body. However, I’ll try to get rid of this awareness too. I will lessen more and more the sensations my body sends to me: now they’re almost gone; now they’re gone, disappearing into the night where everything else has already faded. But no! At the very moment my awareness is extinguished, another awareness lights up—or rather, it was already there: it emerged just before to witness the extinguishing of the first; because the first could only disappear for another and in the presence of another. I see myself annihilated only if I have already brought myself back to life through an act that is positive, even if it’s involuntary and unconscious. So, no matter what I do, I’m always perceiving something, whether from outside or from within. When I know nothing of external objects, it’s because I’ve taken refuge in the awareness I have of myself. If I erase this inner self, its very erasure becomes an object for an imaginary self which now perceives the dying self as an external object. Whether it's external or internal, there’s always something that my imagination is representing. It’s true that my imagination can switch from one to the other; I can alternate between imagining a lack of external perception or a lack of internal perception, but not both at the same time, because the absence of one essentially means the exclusive presence of the other. However, the fact that two relative absences can be imagined in turn leads us to mistakenly conclude that they can be imagined together: a conclusion that’s obviously absurd, because we can’t imagine an absence without at least vaguely perceiving that we are imagining it, and therefore that we are acting, that we are thinking, and that something still exists.
The image, then, properly so called, of a suppression of everything is never formed by thought. The effort by which we strive to create this image simply ends in making us swing to and fro between the vision of an outer and that of an inner reality. In this coming and going of our mind between the without and the within, there is a point, at equal distance from both, in which it seems to us that we no longer perceive the one, and that we do not yet perceive the other: it is there that the image of "Nothing" is formed. In reality, we then perceive both, having reached the point where the two terms come together, and the image of Nothing, so defined, is an image full of things, an image that includes at once that of the subject and that of the object and, besides, a perpetual leaping from one to the other and the refusal ever to come to rest finally on either. Evidently this is not the nothing that we can oppose to being, and put before or be[Pg 280]neath being, for it already includes existence in general.
The image, truly speaking, of suppressing everything is never formed by thought. The effort we make to create this image just leads us to swing back and forth between the perception of an external and that of an internal reality. In this back-and-forth movement of our mind between the outside and the inside, there's a point, equidistant from both, where it feels like we no longer notice one, and we don’t yet notice the other: it’s there that the image of "Nothing" is created. In reality, we then perceive both, having reached the point where the two merge, and the image of Nothing, as defined, is an image full of things—an image that includes both the subject and the object and, moreover, a constant jumping from one to the other and the refusal to settle finally on either. Clearly, this isn’t the nothing that we can contrast with being or place before or beneath being, as it already includes existence in general.
But we shall be told that, if the representation of Nothing, visible or latent, enters into the reasonings of philosophers, it is not as an image, but as an idea. It may be agreed that we do not imagine the annihilation of everything, but it will be claimed that we can conceive it. We conceive a polygon with a thousand sides, said Descartes, although we do not see it in imagination: it is enough that we can clearly represent the possibility of constructing it. So with the idea of the annihilation of everything. Nothing simpler, it will be said, than the procedure by which we construct the idea of it. There is, in fact, not a single object of our experience that we cannot suppose annihilated. Extend this annihilation of a first object to a second, then to a third, and so on as long as you please: the nought is the limit toward which the operation tends. And the nought so defined is the annihilation of everything. That is the theory. We need only consider it in this form to see the absurdity it involves.
But some will argue that when philosophers discuss the concept of Nothing, whether it's obvious or hidden, they’re not talking about an image, but an idea. We might agree that we don't picture the complete destruction of everything, but it will be asserted that we can understand it. Descartes mentioned that we can conceive of a polygon with a thousand sides, even if we can't visualize it: it's enough that we can clearly understand how to construct it. The same goes for the concept of total annihilation. It will be claimed that the method for forming this idea is straightforward. In reality, there's not a single object from our experience that we can't imagine as having been destroyed. Take one object and consider its annihilation, then move on to a second, then a third, and keep going as long as you want: nothingness is the final destination of this process. And that defined nothingness is the annihilation of everything. That’s the theory. If we look at it this way, the absurdity of it becomes clear.
An idea constructed by the mind is an idea only if its pieces are capable of coexisting; it is reduced to a mere word if the elements that we bring together to compose it are driven away as fast as we assemble them. When I have defined the circle, I easily represent a black or a white circle, a circle in cardboard, iron, or brass, a transparent or an opaque circle—but not a square circle, because the law of the generation of the circle excludes the possibility of defining this figure with straight lines. So my mind can represent any existing thing whatever as annihilated;—but if the annihilation of anything by the mind is an operation whose mechanism implies that it works on a part of the whole, and not on the whole itself, then the extension of such an operation to the totality of things becomes self-contradictory and absurd, and the[Pg 281] idea of an annihilation of everything presents the same character as that of a square circle: it is not an idea, it is only a word. So let us examine more closely the mechanism of the operation.
An idea formed in our minds is only an idea if its components can coexist; it becomes just a word if the elements we combine fall apart as quickly as we put them together. When I define a circle, I can easily visualize a black or white circle, a circle made of cardboard, iron, or brass, a transparent or opaque circle—but not a square circle, because the nature of a circle excludes defining it with straight lines. My mind can imagine anything being destroyed; however, if the act of the mind destroying something operates on just part of the whole and not the whole itself, then applying that action to everything becomes contradictory and silly. The concept of destroying everything is similar to that of a square circle: it’s not an idea, it's just a word. So, let's take a closer look at how this operation works.
In fact, the object suppressed is either external or internal: it is a thing or it is a state of consciousness. Let us consider the first case. I annihilate in thought an external object: in the place where it was, there is no longer anything.—No longer anything of that object, of course, but another object has taken its place: there is no absolute void in nature. But admit that an absolute void is possible: it is not of that void that I am thinking when I say that the object, once annihilated, leaves its place unoccupied; for by the hypothesis it is a place, that is a void limited by precise outlines, or, in other words, a kind of thing. The void of which I speak, therefore, is, at bottom, only the absence of some definite object, which was here at first, is now elsewhere and, in so far as it is no longer in its former place, leaves behind it, so to speak, the void of itself. A being unendowed with memory or prevision would not use the words "void" or "nought;" he would express only what is and what is perceived; now, what is, and what is perceived, is the presence of one thing or of another, never the absence of anything. There is absence only for a being capable of remembering and expecting. He remembered an object, and perhaps expected to encounter it again; he finds another, and he expresses the disappointment of his expectation (an expectation sprung from recollection) by saying that he no longer finds anything, that he encounters "nothing." Even if he did not expect to encounter the object, it is a possible expectation of it, it is still the falsification of his eventual expectation that he expresses by saying that the object is no longer where it was. What he perceives in[Pg 282] reality, what he will succeed in effectively thinking of, is the presence of the old object in a new place or that of a new object in the old place; the rest, all that is expressed negatively by such words as "nought" or the "void," is not so much thought as feeling, or, to speak more exactly, it is the tinge that feeling gives to thought. The idea of annihilation or of partial nothingness is therefore formed here in the course of the substitution of one thing for another, whenever this substitution is thought by a mind that would prefer to keep the old thing in the place of the new, or at least conceives this preference as possible. The idea implies on the subjective side a preference, on the objective side a substitution, and is nothing else but a combination of, or rather an interference between, this feeling of preference and this idea of substitution.
The object being suppressed is either external or internal: it's either a thing or a state of consciousness. Let's look at the first case. When I imagine completely removing an external object, there's nothing left in the space it occupied. Of course, that means there's no longer anything of that object, but another object has taken its place: there’s no absolute void in nature. But if we assume an absolute void is possible, that's not what I'm referring to when I say the object, once removed, leaves its spot empty; according to the hypothesis, it is a place, which is a void outlined by specific boundaries, or, in other words, a kind of thing. The void I'm talking about is basically just the absence of a specific object that was here before, is now somewhere else, and since it's no longer in its original spot, it leaves behind what we could call the void of itself. A being without memory or foresight wouldn’t think in terms of "void" or "nothing"; they would only express what exists and what is perceived. What exists and is perceived is the presence of one thing or another, never the absence of anything. Absence only exists for a being capable of remembering and anticipating. They remembered an object, and perhaps expected to see it again; when they find a different one, they express their disappointment (a disappointment based on memory) by saying they no longer find anything or that they encounter "nothing." Even if they didn’t expect to find the object, the possibility of expecting it still means they express their discontent when saying the object is no longer where it used to be. What they actually perceive in[Pg 282] reality, what they can truly think about, is the presence of the old object in a new location or that of a new object in the old spot; everything else, all that gets expressed negatively with words like "nothing" or "void," is more about feeling than thought, or, to be precise, it's the nuance that feeling adds to thought. The idea of annihilation or partial nothingness is formed during the process of replacing one thing with another, whenever this replacement is thought of by a mind that would prefer to keep the old thing instead of the new one, or at least sees this preference as possible. The idea involves a subjective preference and an objective replacement, and is nothing more than a combination, or rather an interaction, between this feeling of preference and this idea of replacement.
Such is the mechanism of the operation by which our mind annihilates an object and succeeds in representing in the external world a partial nought. Let us now see how it represents it within itself. We find in ourselves phenomena that are produced, and not phenomena that are not produced. I experience a sensation or an emotion, I conceive an idea, I form a resolution: my consciousness perceives these facts, which are so many presences, and there is no moment in which facts of this kind are not present to me. I can, no doubt, interrupt by thought the course of my inner life; I may suppose that I sleep without dreaming or that I have ceased to exist; but at the very instant when I make this supposition, I conceive myself, I imagine myself watching over my slumber or surviving my annihilation, and I give up perceiving myself from within only by taking refuge in the perception of myself from without. That is to say that here again the full always succeeds the full, and that an[Pg 283] intelligence that was only intelligence, that had neither regret nor desire, whose movement was governed by the movement of its object, could not even conceive an absence or a void. The conception of a void arises here when consciousness, lagging behind itself, remains attached to the recollection of an old state when another state is already present. It is only a comparison between what is and what could or ought to be, between the full and the full. In a word, whether it be a void of matter or a void of consciousness, the representation of the void is always a representation which is full and which resolves itself on analysis into two positive elements: the idea, distinct or confused, of a substitution, and the feeling, experienced or imagined, of a desire or a regret.
This is how our mind works to erase an object and manage to show a partial nothingness in the external world. Now, let’s look at how it represents this within ourselves. We notice that we experience phenomena that occur, not those that don’t. I feel a sensation or emotion, I think of an idea, I make a decision: my awareness perceives these facts, which are all presences, and there’s never a moment where these kinds of facts are absent from me. I can certainly interrupt my inner life through thought; I might imagine that I’m asleep without dreaming or that I’ve stopped existing. But at the very moment I make this assumption, I imagine I’m watching over my sleep or surviving my own disappearance, and I only stop perceiving myself from within by turning to how I see myself from outside. This means that, once again, the full always follows the full, and an[Pg 283] intelligence that is purely intelligence, having neither regret nor desire, whose actions are dictated by the actions of its object, couldn’t even conceive of absence or emptiness. The idea of a void comes into play when consciousness, lagging behind itself, clings to the memory of a previous state when a new state is already present. It’s merely a comparison between what is and what might or should be, between the full and the full. In short, whether it’s a void of matter or a void of consciousness, the representation of the void is always a representation that is full and which breaks down, upon reflection, into two positive elements: the idea, either clear or vague, of a replacement, and the feeling, either experienced or imagined, of a desire or a regret.
It follows from this double analysis that the idea of the absolute nought, in the sense of the annihilation of everything, is a self-destructive idea, a pseudo-idea, a mere word. If suppressing a thing consists in replacing it by another, if thinking the absence of one thing is only possible by the more or less explicit representation of the presence of some other thing, if, in short, annihilation signifies before anything else substitution, the idea of an "annihilation of everything" is as absurd as that of a square circle. The absurdity is not obvious, because there exists no particular object that cannot be supposed annihilated; then, from the fact that there is nothing to prevent each thing in turn being suppressed in thought, we conclude that it is possible to suppose them suppressed altogether. We do not see that suppressing each thing in turn consists precisely in replacing it in proportion and degree by another, and therefore that the suppression of absolutely everything implies a downright contradiction in terms, since the operation consists in destroying the very condition that makes the operation possible.[Pg 284]
The analysis suggests that the concept of total nothingness, meaning the complete destruction of everything, is a contradictory idea—it's not a real idea, just a term. If we think about eliminating something by replacing it with another, and if understanding the absence of one thing relies on the more or less clear idea of the presence of something else, then claiming to "annihilate everything" is just as ridiculous as claiming a square can be circular. This absurdity isn't immediately clear because there isn't a specific object that seems impossible to imagine being completely destroyed; so, believing that everything can be thought of as eliminated seems valid. However, we fail to see that replacing one thing with another is actually how we conceive of its removal, which means that completely wiping out everything creates a fundamental contradiction, since this process involves destroying the very basis that allows for such a concept.[Pg 284]
But the illusion is tenacious. Though suppressing one thing consists in fact in substituting another for it, we do not conclude, we are unwilling to conclude, that the annihilation of a thing in thought implies the substitution in thought of a new thing for the old. We agree that a thing is always replaced by another thing, and even that our mind cannot think the disappearance of an object, external or internal, without thinking—under an indeterminate and confused form, it is true—that another object is substituted for it. But we add that the representation of a disappearance is that of a phenomenon that is produced in space or at least in time, that consequently it still implies the calling up of an image, and that it is precisely here that we have to free ourselves from the imagination in order to appeal to the pure understanding. "Let us therefore no longer speak," it will be said, "of disappearance or annihilation; these are physical operations. Let us no longer represent the object A as annihilated or absent. Let us say simply that we think it "non-existent." To annihilate it is to act on it in time and perhaps also in space; it is to accept, consequently, the condition of spatial and temporal existence, to accept the universal connection that binds an object to all others, and prevents it from disappearing without being at the same time replaced. But we can free ourselves from these conditions; all that is necessary is that by an effort of abstraction we should call up the idea of the object A by itself, that we should agree first to consider it as existing, and then, by a stroke of the intellectual pen, blot out the clause. The object will then be, by our decree, non-existent."
But the illusion is strong. Even though suppressing one thing means replacing it with another, we don’t conclude, and we’re reluctant to conclude, that the complete removal of something from our thoughts means we also have to think of a new thing in its place. We agree that one thing is always replaced by another and that our minds can't think of the disappearance of an object, whether external or internal, without also thinking—though in a vague and unclear way—that another object takes its place. However, we also add that the idea of something disappearing is linked to a phenomenon occurring in space or at least in time, so it still involves bringing an image to mind, and this is exactly where we need to detach ourselves from imagination in order to rely on pure understanding. "So let's stop saying," it might be argued, "that something disappears or is annihilated; those are physical actions. Let's no longer think of object A as destroyed or missing. Let’s just say we think it is 'non-existent.' To annihilate it is to act upon it over time and maybe even in space; it means accepting the reality of spatial and temporal existence, acknowledging the universal connection that ties one object to all others, which stops it from disappearing without being replaced at the same time. But we can free ourselves from these constraints; all we need to do is, through an act of abstraction, call to mind the idea of object A alone, first agreeing to consider it as existing, and then, with a mental stroke of the pen, erase that definition. The object will then be, by our decision, non-existent."
Very well, let us strike out the clause. We must not suppose that our pen-stroke is self-sufficient—that it can be isolated from the rest of things. We shall see[Pg 285] that it carries with it, whether we will or no, all that we tried to abstract from. Let us compare together the two ideas—the object A supposed to exist, and the same object supposed "non-existent."
Very well, let’s remove that clause. We shouldn’t think that our writing can stand alone—that it can be separated from everything else. We’ll see[Pg 285] that it inevitably includes everything we tried to leave out. Let’s compare the two ideas—the object A thought to exist, and the same object thought to be "non-existent."
The idea of the object A, supposed existent, is the representation pure and simple of the object A, for we cannot represent an object without attributing to it, by the very fact of representing it, a certain reality. Between thinking an object and thinking it existent, there is absolutely no difference. Kant has put this point in clear light in his criticism of the ontological argument. Then, what is it to think the object A non-existent? To represent it non-existent cannot consist in withdrawing from the idea of the object A the idea of the attribute "existence," since, I repeat, the representation of the existence of the object is inseparable from the representation of the object, and indeed is one with it. To represent the object A non-existent can only consist, therefore, in adding something to the idea of this object: we add to it, in fact, the idea of an exclusion of this particular object by actual reality in general. To think the object A as non-existent is first to think the object and consequently to think it existent; it is then to think that another reality, with which it is incompatible, supplants it. Only, it is useless to represent this latter reality explicitly; we are not concerned with what it is; it is enough for us to know that it drives out the object A, which alone is of interest to us. That is why we think of the expulsion rather than of the cause which expels. But this cause is none the less present to the mind; it is there in the implicit state, that which expels being inseparable from the expulsion as the hand which drives the pen is inseparable from the pen-stroke. The act by which we declare an object unreal therefore posits the existence of the real in general.[Pg 286] In other words, to represent an object as unreal cannot consist in depriving it of every kind of existence, since the representation of an object is necessarily that of the object existing. Such an act consists simply in declaring that the existence attached by our mind to the object, and inseparable from its representation, is an existence wholly ideal—that of a mere possible. But the "ideality" of an object, and the "simple possibility" of an object, have meaning only in relation to a reality that drives into the region of the ideal, or of the merely possible, the object which is incompatible with it. Suppose the stronger and more substantial existence annihilated: it is the attenuated and weaker existence of the merely possible that becomes the reality itself, and you will no longer be representing the object, then, as non-existent. In other words, and however strange our assertion may seem, there is more, and not less, in the idea of an object conceived as "not existing" than in the idea of this same object conceived as "existing"; for the idea of the object "not existing" is necessarily the idea of the object "existing" with, in addition, the representation of an exclusion of this object by the actual reality taken in block.
The concept of object A, which is assumed to exist, is simply a pure representation of object A. We can't imagine something without giving it a certain level of reality just by the act of imagining it. There’s no real difference between thinking about an object and thinking of it as existing. Kant clearly articulated this point in his critique of the ontological argument. So, what does it mean to think of object A as non-existent? To view it as non-existent doesn’t mean we just take away the idea of "existence" from our idea of object A, because, as I mentioned, the representation of an object’s existence is tied to that object and is essentially the same thing. Therefore, to think of object A as non-existent must mean we are adding something to the concept of this object: we add the idea that this particular object is excluded by actual reality in general. Thinking of object A as non-existent means first thinking of the object and thus thinking of it as existing; then it means thinking that another reality, which cannot coexist with it, replaces it. However, it’s unnecessary to specify what this other reality is; what matters is that it displaces object A, which is our primary focus. This is why we consider the expulsion rather than the reason behind it. Yet, this reason is still in our minds; it exists in an implicit form, as the reason for expulsion is inseparable from the act of expulsion, just like the hand that moves the pen is inseparable from the pen stroke. Thus, the act of declaring an object unreal also affirms the existence of the real in general.[Pg 286] In other words, representing an object as unreal cannot mean stripping it of all forms of existence because the act of representation inherently involves that object’s existence. This act is simply stating that the existence we associate with the object, which is inseparable from its representation, is an entirely ideal existence—one of mere possibility. However, the "ideality" of an object, and the "simple possibility" of an object, only make sense in relation to a reality that pushes the object, which can’t coexist with it, into the realm of the ideal or merely possible. If we imagine the stronger and more substantial existence is annihilated, what emerges is the weaker existence of the merely possible becoming reality itself, at which point you’re no longer conceptualizing the object as non-existent. In other words, and no matter how strange it might sound, there is more, not less, in the concept of an object thought to be "non-existent" than in the concept of that same object thought to be "existing"; because the idea of the object "not existing" inherently includes the idea of the object "existing," along with the representation of its exclusion by the actual reality considered as a whole.
But it will be claimed that our idea of the non-existent is not yet sufficiently cut loose from every imaginative element, that it is not negative enough. "No matter," we shall be told, "though the unreality of a thing consist in its exclusion by other things; we want to know nothing about that. Are we not free to direct our attention where we please and how we please? Well then, after having called up the idea of an object, and thereby, if you will have it so, supposed it existent, we shall merely couple to our affirmation a 'not,' and that will be enough to make us think it non-existent. This is an operation entirely intellectual, independent of what happens outside the[Pg 287] mind. So let us think of anything or let us think of the totality of things, and then write in the margin of our thought the 'not,' which prescribes the rejection of what it contains: we annihilate everything mentally by the mere fact of decreeing its annihilation."—Here we have it! The very root of all the difficulties and errors with which we are confronted is to be found in the power ascribed here to negation. We represent negation as exactly symmetrical with affirmation. We imagine that negation, like affirmation, is self-sufficient. So that negation, like affirmation, would have the power of creating ideas, with this sole difference that they would be negative ideas. By affirming one thing, and then another, and so on ad infinitum, I form the idea of "All;" so, by denying one thing and then other things, finally by denying All, I arrive at the idea of Nothing.—But it is just this assimilation which is arbitrary. We fail to see that while affirmation is a complete act of the mind, which can succeed in building up an idea, negation is but the half of an intellectual act, of which the other half is understood, or rather put off to an indefinite future. We fail to see that while affirmation is a purely intellectual act, there enters into negation an element which is not intellectual, and that it is precisely to the intrusion of this foreign element that negation owes its specific character.
But some will argue that our understanding of the non-existent isn't completely separated from imaginative elements; it lacks negativity. "It doesn't matter," they might say, "even if the unreality of something depends on being excluded by other things; we don't care about that. Aren't we free to focus our attention however we want? So, after we conjure up the idea of an object, and thus, if you prefer, assume it exists, we can simply attach a 'not' to our assertion, and that’s enough to think of it as non-existent. This is a purely intellectual process, separate from what happens outside the[Pg 287] mind. So let’s consider anything or the entirety of things, and then write 'not' in the margin of our thoughts, which dictates the rejection of whatever we've imagined: we mentally eliminate everything just by declaring its elimination." — Here it is! The main source of all our challenges and misconceptions is found in the power given to negation. We see negation as perfectly equal to affirmation. We think negation, like affirmation, is self-sufficient. Thus, negation, like affirmation, seems to have the ability to create ideas, with the only difference being that they’re negative ideas. By affirming one thing and then another, and so on ad infinitum, I arrive at the idea of "All;" similarly, by denying one thing after another, and finally denying All, I reach the concept of Nothing. — But this comparison is arbitrary. We overlook the fact that while affirmation is a complete mental act capable of forming an idea, negation is only half of an intellectual act, where the other half is either understood or postponed indefinitely. We don’t recognize that while affirmation is purely an intellectual action, negation includes an element that isn’t intellectual, and it is this intrusion of a foreign element that gives negation its unique characteristics.
To begin with the second point, let us note that to deny always consists in setting aside a possible affirmation.[98] Negation is only an attitude taken by the mind toward an eventual affirmation. When I say, "This table is black," I am speaking of the table; I have seen[Pg 288] it black, and my judgment expresses what I have seen. But if I say, "This table is not white," I surely do not express something I have perceived, for I have seen black, and not an absence of white. It is therefore, at bottom, not on the table itself that I bring this judgment to bear, but rather on the judgment that would declare the table white. I judge a judgment and not the table. The proposition, "This table is not white," implies that you might believe it white, that you did believe it such, or that I was going to believe it such. I warn you or myself that this judgment is to be replaced by another (which, it is true, I leave undetermined). Thus, while affirmation bears directly on the thing, negation aims at the thing only indirectly, through an interposed affirmation. An affirmative proposition expresses a judgment on an object; a negative proposition expresses a judgment on a judgment. Negation, therefore, differs from affirmation properly so called in that it is an affirmation of the second degree: it affirms something of an affirmation which itself affirms something of an object.
To start with the second point, let's note that denying something always involves dismissing a potential affirmation.[98] Negation is simply a mindset toward a possible affirmation. When I say, "This table is black," I'm referring to the table; I've seen it as black, and my judgment reflects that observation. But if I say, "This table is not white," I’m not expressing something I've perceived, because I've seen black, not the absence of white. So, really, I'm not judging the table itself, but rather the judgment that would say the table is white. I judge a judgment, not the table. The statement "This table is not white" suggests that you might think it is white, that you once thought it was, or that I was going to think it was. I’m cautioning you or myself that this judgment should be replaced with another (which, admittedly, I don't specify). Therefore, while affirmation relates directly to the object, negation targets the object only indirectly, through an intervening affirmation. An affirmative statement represents a judgment on an object; a negative statement represents a judgment on a judgment. Negation, then, is different from affirmation in that it is an affirmation of the second degree: it affirms something about an affirmation that itself affirms something about an object.
But it follows at once from this that negation is not the work of pure mind, I should say of a mind placed before objects and concerned with them alone. When we deny, we give a lesson to others, or it may be to ourselves. We take to task an interlocutor, real or possible, whom we find mistaken and whom we put on his guard. He was affirming something: we tell him he ought to affirm something else (though without specifying the affirmation which must be substituted). There is no longer then, simply, a person and an object; there is, in face of the object, a person speaking to a person, opposing him and aiding him at the same time; there is a beginning of society. Negation aims at some one, and not only, like a purely intellectual operation, at some thing.[Pg 289] It is of a pedagogical and social nature. It sets straight or rather warns, the person warned and set straight being possibly, by a kind of doubling, the very person that speaks.
But it immediately follows that negation isn't just the work of a pure mind, like a mind staring at objects and focused solely on them. When we deny something, we’re teaching a lesson to others or maybe even to ourselves. We confront an interlocutor, whether real or hypothetical, who is mistaken, and we bring their attention to it. They were asserting something; we tell them they should assert something else (even if we don’t specify what that assertion should be). So it’s no longer just a person and an object; in front of the object, there’s a person talking to another person, challenging them and helping them at the same time; this marks the beginning of society. Negation is aimed at someone, not just at something like a purely intellectual operation.[Pg 289] It has a teaching and social aspect. It corrects or, more accurately, warns, and the person being warned and corrected might, through a kind of doubling, be the very person who speaks.
So much for the second point; now for the first. We said that negation is but the half of an intellectual act, of which the other half is left indeterminate. If I pronounce the negative proposition, "This table is not white," I mean that you ought to substitute for your judgment, "The table is white," another judgment. I give you an admonition, and the admonition refers to the necessity of a substitution. As to what you ought to substitute for your affirmation, I tell you nothing, it is true. This may be because I do not know the color of the table; but it is also, it is indeed even more, because the white color is that alone that interests us for the moment, so that I only need to tell you that some other color will have to be substituted for white, without having to say which. A negative judgment is therefore really one which indicates a need of substituting for an affirmative judgment another affirmative judgment, the nature of which, however, is not specified, sometimes because it is not known, more often because it fails to offer any actual interest, the attention bearing only on the substance of the first.
So much for the second point; now let’s move on to the first. We said that negation is only half of an intellectual act, with the other half remaining unspecified. When I say the negative statement, "This table is not white," I'm implying that you should replace your judgment, "The table is white," with another judgment. I'm giving you a reminder, and this reminder points to the need for a substitution. As for what you should replace your affirmation with, I don’t provide that information, it’s true. This might be because I don’t know the table’s color; but more importantly, it’s because the color white is the only thing that concerns us right now, so I only need to tell you that some other color needs to be used instead of white, without specifying which one. A negative judgment, therefore, actually indicates a need to replace one affirmative judgment with another affirmative judgment, the specific nature of which is often not defined, sometimes because it’s unknown, and more often because it just doesn’t matter, with our focus only on the original statement.
Thus, whenever I add a "not" to an affirmation, whenever I deny, I perform two very definite acts: (1) I interest myself in what one of my fellow-men affirms, or in what he was going to say, or in what might have been said by another Me, whom I anticipate; (2) I announce that some other affirmation, whose content I do not specify, will have to be substituted for the one I find before me. Now, in neither of these two acts is there anything but affirmation. The sui generis character of negation is due to superimposing the first of these acts upon the second.[Pg 290] It is in vain, then, that we attribute to negation the power of creating ideas sui generis, symmetrical with those that affirmation creates, and directed in a contrary sense. No idea will come forth from negation, for it has no other content than that of the affirmative judgment which it judges.
So, whenever I add a "not" to a statement, or whenever I deny something, I'm actually doing two clear things: (1) I'm taking an interest in what someone else is saying, or what they were about to say, or what another version of me might have said; (2) I state that some different affirmation, which I don't specify, will need to replace the one in front of me. In neither of these actions is there anything but affirmation. The unique nature of negation comes from layering the first act on top of the second. It’s pointless to think that negation has the ability to create its own unique ideas that counterbalance those created by affirmation. No idea can emerge from negation because it holds no content other than that of the affirmative statement it challenges.[Pg 290]
To be more precise, let us consider an existential, instead of an attributive, judgment. If I say, "The object A does not exist," I mean by that, first, that we might believe that the object A exists: how, indeed, can we think of the object A without thinking it existing, and, once again, what difference can there be between the idea of the object A existing and the idea pure and simple of the object A? Therefore, merely by saying "The object A," I attribute to it some kind of existence, though it be that of a mere possible, that is to say, of a pure idea. And consequently, in the judgment "The object A is not," there is at first an affirmation such as "The object A has been," or "The object A will be," or, more generally, "The object A exists at least as a mere possible." Now, when I add the two words "is not," I can only mean that if we go further, if we erect the possible object into a real object, we shall be mistaken, and that the possible of which I am speaking is excluded from the actual reality as incompatible with it. Judgments that posit the non-existence of a thing are therefore judgments that formulate a contrast between the possible and the actual (that is, between two kinds of existence, one thought and the other found), where a person, real or imaginary, wrongly believes that a certain possible is realized. Instead of this possible, there is a reality that differs from it and rejects it: the negative judgment expresses this contrast, but it expresses the contrast in an intentionally incomplete form, because it is addressed to a person who is sup[Pg 291]posed to be interested exclusively in the possible that is indicated, and is not concerned to know by what kind of reality the possible is replaced. The expression of the substitution is therefore bound to be cut short. Instead of affirming that a second term is substituted for the first, the attention which was originally directed to the first term will be kept fixed upon it, and upon it alone. And, without going beyond the first, we shall implicitly affirm that a second term replaces it in saying that the first "is not." We shall thus judge a judgment instead of judging a thing. We shall warn others or warn ourselves of a possible error instead of supplying positive information. Suppress every intention of this kind, give knowledge back its exclusively scientific or philosophical character, suppose in other words that reality comes itself to inscribe itself on a mind that cares only for things and is not interested in persons: we shall affirm that such or such a thing is, we shall never affirm that a thing is not.
To be more precise, let’s look at an existential judgment rather than an attributive one. When I say, "The object A does not exist," I mean that we might think object A exists: how can we think about object A without assuming it exists? Moreover, what’s the difference between the idea of object A existing and just the idea of object A? So, just by saying "The object A," I’m attributing some form of existence to it, even if it's just a possible existence, meaning it's just an idea. Consequently, in the statement "The object A is not," there’s an initial affirmation like "The object A has been," or "The object A will be," or more generally, "The object A exists at least as a mere possible." Now, when I add "is not," I’m simply saying that if we take this potential object and try to treat it as a real object, we would be mistaken, and that the possible object I’m talking about is excluded from actual reality because it conflicts with it. Judgments that state that something doesn’t exist contrast the possible and the actual (meaning two types of existence, one conceptual and the other concrete), where someone, real or imaginary, mistakenly believes a certain possibility has been realized. Instead of this possibility, there’s a reality that is different from it and dismisses it: the negative judgment conveys this contrast, but does so in a deliberately incomplete way, because it’s aimed at someone who is supposed to be only interested in the mentioned possibility and doesn’t care about what type of reality replaces the possibility. Thus, the description of the substitution will inevitably be cut short. Rather than stating that a second term takes the place of the first, the focus that was initially on the first term will remain only on it. Therefore, without moving beyond the first, we implicitly confirm that a second term replaces it by saying that the first "is not." We will end up judging an assertion instead of evaluating an object. We will caution ourselves or others about a possible mistake instead of providing definite information. If we eliminate any such intention, return knowledge to its purely scientific or philosophical nature, and assume that reality itself directly influences a mind that cares only about things and not about people: we will affirm that a particular thing exists, but we will never claim that something does not exist.
How comes it, then, that affirmation and negation are so persistently put on the same level and endowed with an equal objectivity? How comes it that we have so much difficulty in recognizing that negation is subjective, artificially cut short, relative to the human mind and still more to the social life? The reason is, no doubt, that both negation and affirmation are expressed in propositions, and that any proposition, being formed of words, which symbolize concepts, is something relative to social life and to the human intellect. Whether I say "The ground is damp" or "The ground is not damp," in both cases the terms "ground" and "damp" are concepts more or less artificially created by the mind of man—extracted, by his free initiative, from the continuity of experience. In both cases the concepts are represented by the same conventional words. In both cases we can say indeed[Pg 292] that the proposition aims at a social and pedagogical end, since the first would propagate a truth as the second would prevent an error. From this point of view, which is that of formal logic, to affirm and to deny are indeed two mutually symmetrical acts, of which the first establishes a relation of agreement and the second a relation of disagreement between a subject and an attribute. But how do we fail to see that the symmetry is altogether external and the likeness superficial? Suppose language fallen into disuse, society dissolved, every intellectual initiative, every faculty of self-reflection and of self-judgment atrophied in man: the dampness of the ground will subsist none the less, capable of inscribing itself automatically in sensation and of sending a vague idea to the deadened intellect. The intellect will still affirm, in implicit terms. And consequently, neither distinct concepts, nor words, nor the desire of spreading the truth, nor that of bettering oneself, are of the very essence of the affirmation. But this passive intelligence, mechanically keeping step with experience, neither anticipating nor following the course of the real, would have no wish to deny. It could not receive an imprint of negation; for, once again, that which exists may come to be recorded, but the non-existence of the non-existing cannot. For such an intellect to reach the point of denying, it must awake from its torpor, formulate the disappointment of a real or possible expectation, correct an actual or possible error—in short, propose to teach others or to teach itself.
How is it, then, that affirmation and negation are consistently treated as equal and objective? Why do we struggle to see that negation is subjective, artificially limited, and tied to human thought and even more so to social life? The reason is likely that both affirmation and negation are expressed in propositions, and that any proposition, made up of words symbolizing concepts, is relative to social life and the human mind. Whether I say "The ground is damp" or "The ground is not damp," in both cases the terms "ground" and "damp" are concepts that have been more or less artificially constructed in the human mind—extracted, by individual choice, from the flow of experience. In both scenarios, the concepts are conveyed using the same conventional words. We can indeed say[Pg 292] that the proposition serves a social and educational purpose, as the first promotes a truth while the second aims to prevent an error. From this perspective, which aligns with formal logic, to affirm and to deny are truly two symmetrical actions: the first creates a connection of agreement, while the second establishes a connection of disagreement between a subject and an attribute. But how do we overlook that this symmetry is entirely superficial and the similarity is merely surface level? Imagine if language became obsolete, society fell apart, and every ability for self-reflection and self-judgment faded in humans: the dampness of the ground would still exist, capable of being registered in sensation and giving rise to a vague idea in the dulled intellect. The intellect would still make implicit affirmations. Therefore, distinct concepts, words, the desire to spread truth, and the wish to improve oneself are not essential to affirmation itself. However, this passive intelligence, mechanically responding to experience without anticipating or following reality, would not feel the need to deny. It would not be able to grasp the idea of negation; once again, that which exists might be recorded, but the non-existence of what doesn’t exist cannot be. For such an intellect to reach the point of denying, it must awaken from its stupor, express the disappointment of a real or potential expectation, correct an actual or possible mistake—in short, it must seek to teach others or itself.
It is rather difficult to perceive this in the example we have chosen, but the example is indeed the more instructive and the argument the more cogent on that account. If dampness is able automatically to come and record itself, it is the same, it will be said, with non-dampness; for the dry as well as the damp can give impressions[Pg 293] to sense, which will transmit them, as more or less distinct ideas, to the intelligence. In this sense the negation of dampness is as objective a thing, as purely intellectual, as remote from every pedagogical intention, as affirmation.—But let us look at it more closely: we shall see that the negative proposition, "The ground is not damp," and the affirmative proposition, "The ground is dry," have entirely different contents. The second implies that we know the dry, that we have experienced the specific sensations, tactile or visual for example, that are at the base of this idea. The first requires nothing of the sort; it could equally well have been formulated by an intelligent fish, who had never perceived anything but the wet. It would be necessary, it is true, that this fish should have risen to the distinction between the real and the possible, and that he should care to anticipate the error of his fellow-fishes, who doubtless consider as alone possible the condition of wetness in which they actually live. Keep strictly to the terms of the proposition, "The ground is not damp," and you will find that it means two things: (1) that one might believe that the ground is damp, (2) that the dampness is replaced in fact by a certain quality x. This quality is left indeterminate, either because we have no positive knowledge of it, or because it has no actual interest for the person to whom the negation is addressed. To deny, therefore, always consists in presenting in an abridged form a system of two affirmations: the one determinate, which applies to a certain possible; the other indeterminate, referring to the unknown or indifferent reality that supplants this possibility. The second affirmation is virtually contained in the judgment we apply to the first, a judgment which is negation itself. And what gives negation its subjective character is precisely this, that in the discovery of a replacement[Pg 294] it takes account only of the replaced, and is not concerned with what replaces. The replaced exists only as a conception of the mind. It is necessary, in order to continue to see it, and consequently in order to speak of it, to turn our back on the reality, which flows from the past to the present, advancing from behind. It is this that we do when we deny. We discover the change, or more generally the substitution, as a traveller would see the course of his carriage if he looked out behind, and only knew at each moment the point at which he had ceased to be; he could never determine his actual position except by relation to that which he had just quitted, instead of grasping it in itself.
It's quite hard to see this in the example we've chosen, but it's actually more instructive and the argument is more convincing because of that. If dampness can come and record itself automatically, it's the same with dryness; both dry and damp can create impressions[Pg 293] on our senses, which then transmit them as varying degrees of clear ideas to our understanding. In this sense, the absence of dampness is just as objective, purely intellectual, and far removed from any teaching purpose as the presence of dampness. But let's examine it more closely: we’ll find that the negative statement, "The ground is not damp," and the positive statement, "The ground is dry," have totally different meanings. The second implies that we know what dryness is, that we’ve experienced the specific sensations, like touch or sight, that form the basis of this idea. The first doesn’t require any such experience; it could just as easily have been stated by a smart fish that has only ever known water. However, it would be necessary for this fish to understand the difference between what’s real and what’s possible, and to care to predict the mistake of its fellow fish, who likely think that wetness is the only state that exists. Stick strictly to the wording of the statement, "The ground is not damp," and you’ll discover it means two things: (1) someone might think the ground is damp, and (2) that dampness is actually replaced by a certain quality x. This quality remains undefined, either because we lack direct knowledge of it, or because it holds no interest for the person being addressed. Denying something, therefore, always involves presenting in a shortened form a system of two affirmations: one definite, pertaining to a specific possible; the other indefinite, relating to the unknown or irrelevant reality that takes the place of this possibility. The second affirmation is essentially contained in the judgment we apply to the first, which is the negation itself. What makes negation feel subjective is that, in identifying a replacement[Pg 294], it focuses only on what’s been replaced, not on what takes its place. The replaced element exists merely as a concept in our minds. To continue to see it, and hence to discuss it, we must turn away from the reality that transitions from the past to the present, moving forward from behind. This is what we do when we deny. We notice the change, or more broadly the substitution, just as a traveler would see the path of his carriage if he looked back, only knowing at each moment where he has just been; he could never determine his current position except in relation to what he’s just left behind, rather than understanding it on its own.
To sum up, for a mind which should follow purely and simply the thread of experience, there would be no void, no nought, even relative or partial, no possible negation. Such a mind would see facts succeed facts, states succeed states, things succeed things. What it would note at each moment would be things existing, states appearing, events happening. It would live in the actual, and, if it were capable of judging, it would never affirm anything except the existence of the present.
To sum up, a mind that purely follows the path of experience wouldn't encounter any void, nothingness, or even relative or partial negation. Such a mind would observe facts following facts, conditions following conditions, and things following things. It would note at every moment things that exist, conditions that appear, and events that happen. It would live in the present, and if it were able to judge, it would only affirm the existence of what is happening now.
Endow this mind with memory, and especially with the desire to dwell on the past; give it the faculty of dissociating and of distinguishing: it will no longer only note the present state of the passing reality; it will represent the passing as a change, and therefore as a contrast between what has been and what is. And as there is no essential difference between a past that we remember and a past that we imagine, it will quickly rise to the idea of the "possible" in general.
Endow this mind with memory, especially with the desire to reflect on the past; give it the ability to separate and distinguish: it will no longer just observe the current state of reality; it will see the present as a change, and therefore as a contrast between what was and what is. And since there is no fundamental difference between a past we remember and a past we imagine, it will quickly lead to the concept of the "possible" in general.
It will thus be shunted on to the siding of negation. And especially it will be at the point of representing a disappearance. But it will not yet have reached it.[Pg 295] To represent that a thing has disappeared, it is not enough to perceive a contrast between the past and the present; it is necessary besides to turn our back on the present, to dwell on the past, and to think the contrast of the past with the present in terms of the past only, without letting the present appear in it.
It will therefore be pushed onto the sidetrack of denial. Specifically, it will be at the stage of indicating a disappearance. However, it won't have fully arrived there yet.[Pg 295] To show that something has vanished, it's not enough to notice the difference between the past and the present; we also need to turn away from the present, focus on the past, and consider the contrast between the past and the present solely in terms of the past, without allowing the present to come into view.
The idea of annihilation is therefore not a pure idea; it implies that we regret the past or that we conceive it as regrettable, that we have some reason to linger over it. The idea arises when the phenomenon of substitution is cut in two by a mind which considers only the first half, because that alone interests it. Suppress all interest, all feeling, and there is nothing left but the reality that flows, together with the knowledge ever renewed that it impresses on us of its present state.
The concept of annihilation isn't just a simple idea; it suggests that we either regret the past or view it as something to regret, which means we have some reason to dwell on it. This idea develops when a mind splits the process of substitution in half, focusing only on the first part because that’s what captures its interest. Remove all interest and emotion, and all that remains is the reality that continues to flow, along with the constantly refreshed understanding of its current state.
From annihilation to negation, which is a more general operation, there is now only a step. All that is necessary is to represent the contrast of what is, not only with what has been, but also with all that might have been. And we must express this contrast as a function of what might have been, and not of what is; we must affirm the existence of the actual while looking only at the possible. The formula we thus obtain no longer expresses merely a disappointment of the individual; it is made to correct or guard against an error, which is rather supposed to be the error of another. In this sense, negation has a pedagogical and social character.
From destruction to denial, which is a broader process, there's now just a small shift. All that's needed is to show the difference between what exists, not just with what existed, but also with everything that could have existed. And we need to express this difference based on what could have been, rather than on what exists; we must acknowledge the reality of what is while focusing only on the possibilities. The formula we come up with no longer just reflects an individual's disappointment; it aims to correct or prevent a mistake, which is more likely to be seen as someone else's mistake. In this way, denial has an educational and social role.
Now, once negation is formulated, it presents an aspect symmetrical with that of affirmation; if affirmation affirms an objective reality, it seems that negation must affirm a non-reality equally objective, and, so to say, equally real. In which we are both right and wrong: wrong, because negation cannot be objectified, in so far as it is negative; right, however, in that the negation of a thing[Pg 296] implies the latent affirmation of its replacement by something else, which we systematically leave on one side. But the negative form of negation benefits by the affirmation at the bottom of it. Bestriding the positive solid reality to which it is attached, this phantom objectifies itself. Thus is formed the idea of the void or of a partial nought, a thing being supposed to be replaced, not by another thing, but by a void which it leaves, that is, by the negation of itself. Now, as this operation works on anything whatever, we suppose it performed on each thing in turn, and finally on all things in block. We thus obtain the idea of absolute Nothing. If now we analyze this idea of Nothing, we find that it is, at bottom, the idea of Everything, together with a movement of the mind that keeps jumping from one thing to another, refuses to stand still, and concentrates all its attention on this refusal by never determining its actual position except by relation to that which it has just left. It is therefore an idea eminently comprehensive and full, as full and comprehensive as the idea of All, to which it is very closely akin.
Now, once negation is defined, it reflects an aspect similar to affirmation; if affirmation confirms an objective reality, then negation seems to affirm a non-reality that is also objective, and, so to speak, equally real. In this case, we are both right and wrong: wrong because negation cannot be objectified, as it is negative; right because the negation of something[Pg 296] implies the hidden affirmation of its replacement by something else, which we systematically ignore. However, the negative form of negation benefits from the affirmation underlying it. Straddling the solid positive reality to which it clings, this phantom turns into an object. Thus, the concept of the void or a partial nothing is formed, where a thing is thought to be replaced, not by another thing, but by a void it leaves behind, that is, by the negation of itself. Now, since this process can apply to anything, we assume it’s done to each thing one by one, and eventually to all things together. This leads us to the idea of absolute Nothing. If we analyze this idea of Nothing, we discover that it fundamentally represents the idea of Everything, combined with a mental movement that continuously jumps from one thing to another, refuses to settle, and focuses entirely on this refusal by never truly defining its current position except in relation to what it has just left behind. Therefore, it is an idea that is extremely comprehensive and full, as full and comprehensive as the idea of All, to which it is very closely related.
How then can the idea of Nought be opposed to that of All? Is it not plain that this is to oppose the full to the full, and that the question, "Why does something exist?" is consequently without meaning, a pseudo-problem raised about a pseudo-idea? Yet we must say once more why this phantom of a problem haunts the mind with such obstinacy. In vain do we show that in the idea of an "annihilation of the real" there is only the image of all realities expelling one another endlessly, in a circle; in vain do we add that the idea of non-existence is only that of the expulsion of an imponderable existence, or a "merely possible" existence, by a more substantial existence which would then be the true reality; in vain do we find in the sui generis form of negation an element which[Pg 297] is not intellectual—negation being the judgment of a judgment, an admonition given to some one else or to oneself, so that it is absurd to attribute to negation the power of creating ideas of a new kind, viz. ideas without content;—in spite of all, the conviction persists that before things, or at least under things, there is "Nothing." If we seek the reason of this fact, we shall find it precisely in the feeling, in the social and, so to speak, practical element, that gives its specific form to negation. The greatest philosophic difficulties arise, as we have said, from the fact that the forms of human action venture outside of their proper sphere. We are made in order to act as much as, and more than, in order to think—or rather, when we follow the bent of our nature, it is in order to act that we think. It is therefore no wonder that the habits of action give their tone to those of thought, and that our mind always perceives things in the same order in which we are accustomed to picture them when we propose to act on them. Now, it is unquestionable, as we remarked above, that every human action has its starting-point in a dissatisfaction, and thereby in a feeling of absence. We should not act if we did not set before ourselves an end, and we seek a thing only because we feel the lack of it. Our action proceeds thus from "nothing" to "something," and its very essence is to embroider "something" on the canvas of "nothing." The truth is that the "nothing" concerned here is the absence not so much of a thing as of a utility. If I bring a visitor into a room that I have not yet furnished, I say to him that "there is nothing in it." Yet I know the room is full of air; but, as we do not sit on air, the room truly contains nothing that at this moment, for the visitor and for myself, counts for anything. In a general way, human work consists in creating utility; and, as long as[Pg 298] the work is not done, there is "nothing"—nothing that we want. Our life is thus spent in filling voids, which our intellect conceives under the influence, by no means intellectual, of desire and of regret, under the pressure of vital necessities; and if we mean by void an absence of utility and not of things, we may say, in this quite relative sense, that we are constantly going from the void to the full: such is the direction which our action takes. Our speculation cannot help doing the same; and, naturally, it passes from the relative sense to the absolute sense, since it is exercised on things themselves and not on the utility they have for us. Thus is implanted in us the idea that reality fills a void, and that Nothing, conceived as an absence of everything, pre-exists before all things in right, if not in fact. It is this illusion that we have tried to remove by showing that the idea of Nothing, if we try to see in it that of an annihilation of all things, is self-destructive and reduced to a mere word; and that if, on the contrary, it is truly an idea, then we find in it as much matter as in the idea of All.
How can the concept of Nothing be opposed to that of Everything? Isn't it clear that this pits one full idea against another full idea, and that the question, "Why does anything exist?" is meaningless, a fake problem about a fake concept? Yet, we must reiterate why this illusion of a problem stubbornly lingers in our minds. We can’t emphasize enough that the idea of "annihilating the real" only conjures an image of all realities pushing each other away endlessly, in a loop; we can’t stress that the idea of non-existence is merely the idea of a less tangible existence, or a "merely possible" existence, being expelled by a more substantial reality that is the true existence; we can’t highlight that in the unique form of negation there’s an element that is not intellectual—negation being the judgment of a judgment, a warning to someone else or to oneself, so it’s absurd to credit negation with the ability to create new kinds of ideas, that is, ideas without content;—yet, despite everything, the belief remains that there is "Nothing" before or beneath things. If we look for the reason behind this belief, we’ll discover it lies in the feeling, the social and, in a sense, practical aspect that shapes our concept of negation. The biggest philosophical challenges arise, as we mentioned, from the fact that human actions often stray from their intended scope. We exist to act just as much as, if not more than, we exist to think—or rather, when we follow our instincts, it’s to act that we think. So it’s no surprise that our actions influence our thoughts, and that our mind always perceives things in the same order we visualize them when planning to act on them. Now, it’s clear, as we noted earlier, that every human action starts from a sense of dissatisfaction, and thus from a feeling of lack. We wouldn't act if we didn't have a goal in mind, and we seek something only because we feel it’s missing. Our actions move from "nothing" to "something," and fundamentally, their essence is to create "something" on the canvas of "nothing." The truth is that the "nothing" here is the absence not so much of an object but of usefulness. If I bring a guest into an unfurnished room, I say to them that "there’s nothing in it." However, I know the room is filled with air; but since we can’t sit on air, the room truly lacks anything that is relevant for both the visitor and me at that moment. In general, human work involves creating utility; and as long as the work isn’t completed, there’s "nothing"—nothing we want. Our lives are therefore spent filling gaps, which our intellect envisions under the influence, which is by no means intellectual, of desire and regret, driven by essential needs; and if we define void as an absence of utility and not of things, we could say, in this quite relative sense, that we’re constantly moving from emptiness to fullness: such is the direction of our actions. Our thinking can’t help but do the same; and, naturally, it shifts from a relative sense to an absolute sense since it deals with things themselves and not with their utility to us. Thus, we develop the notion that reality fills a void, and that Nothing, viewed as the absence of everything, exists before anything in principle, if not in reality. It’s this illusion we’ve tried to dispel by demonstrating that the concept of Nothing, if we attempt to view it as the annihilation of all things, self-destructs and becomes just a word; and that if, on the other hand, it is genuinely a concept, then it has as much substance as the idea of Everything.
This long analysis has been necessary to show that a self-sufficient reality is not necessarily a reality foreign to duration. If we pass (consciously or unconsciously) through the idea of the nought in order to reach that of being, the being to which we come is a logical or mathematical essence, therefore non-temporal. And, consequently, a static conception of the real is forced on us: everything appears given once for all, in eternity. But we must accustom ourselves to think being directly, without making a detour, without first appealing to the phantom of the nought which interposes itself between it and us. We must strive to see in order to see, and no longer to see in order to act. Then the Absolute[Pg 299] is revealed very near us and, in a certain measure, in us. It is of psychological and not of mathematical nor logical essence. It lives with us. Like us, but in certain aspects infinitely more concentrated and more gathered up in itself, it endures.
This lengthy analysis has been necessary to show that a self-sufficient reality is not necessarily a reality separate from duration. If we go through the concept of nothingness, whether consciously or unconsciously, to arrive at the idea of being, that being we encounter is a logical or mathematical essence, and therefore non-temporal. As a result, we are compelled to adopt a static view of reality: everything seems to exist all at once, in eternity. However, we need to train ourselves to think about being directly, without taking a detour or first invoking the phantom of nothingness that comes between us and it. We must aim to see in order to see, not just to see in order to act. Then the Absolute[Pg 299] is revealed as being very close to us and, in some way, within us. It is of psychological essence, rather than mathematical or logical. It coexists with us. Like us, but in some ways infinitely more concentrated and self-contained, it endures.
But do we ever think true duration? Here again a direct taking possession is necessary. It is no use trying to approach duration: we must install ourselves within it straight away. This is what the intellect generally refuses to do, accustomed as it is to think the moving by means of the unmovable.
But do we ever really consider true duration? Once again, we need to grasp it directly. It’s pointless to try to get close to duration; we must immerse ourselves in it right away. This is something that the intellect usually resists, as it’s used to understanding the moving through the lens of the unmovable.
The function of the intellect is to preside over actions. Now, in action, it is the result that interests us; the means matter little provided the end is attained. Thence it comes that we are altogether bent on the end to be realized, generally trusting ourselves to it in order that the idea may become an act; and thence it comes also that only the goal where our activity will rest is pictured explicitly to our mind: the movements constituting the action itself either elude our consciousness or reach it only confusedly. Let us consider a very simple act, like that of lifting the arm. Where should we be if we had to imagine beforehand all the elementary contractions and tensions this act involves, or even to perceive them, one by one, as they are accomplished? But the mind is carried immediately to the end, that is to say, to the schematic and simplified vision of the act supposed accomplished. Then, if no antagonistic idea neutralizes the effect of the first idea, the appropriate movements come of themselves to fill out the plan, drawn in some way by the void of its gaps. The intellect, then, only represents to the activity ends to attain, that is to say, points of rest. And, from one end attained to another end attained, from one rest to another rest, our activity is carried by a series of leaps, during[Pg 300] which our consciousness is turned away as much as possible from the movement going on, to regard only the anticipated image of the movement accomplished.
The role of the intellect is to oversee our actions. In any action, what matters to us is the outcome; the methods are less important as long as we achieve the goal. This focus drives us entirely towards the end result we want, and we generally trust ourselves to get there so that the idea can become a reality. As a result, we only clearly visualize the goal where our efforts will culminate; the actual movements involved in the action often escape our awareness or come to us in a muddled way. Let's think about a very simple task, like lifting an arm. Where would we be if we had to think through every single small contraction and tension that the act requires, or even notice them one by one as they happen? Instead, our mind immediately focuses on the end result, which means we see the act as if it has already been completed in a basic and simplified way. If no conflicting thought interrupts the first idea, the necessary movements naturally occur to fulfill the plan that was left incomplete. Therefore, the intellect only presents us with ends to reach, which are points of rest. From one achieved end to another, from one resting point to the next, our activity progresses in a series of jumps, during[Pg 300] which our awareness is mostly diverted from the ongoing movement to focus solely on the envisioned completed movement.
Now, in order that it may represent as unmovable the result of the act which is being accomplished, the intellect must perceive, as also unmovable, the surroundings in which this result is being framed. Our activity is fitted into the material world. If matter appeared to us as a perpetual flowing, we should assign no termination to any of our actions. We should feel each of them dissolve as fast as it was accomplished, and we should not anticipate an ever-fleeting future. In order that our activity may leap from an act to an act, it is necessary that matter should pass from a state to a state, for it is only into a state of the material world that action can fit a result, so as to be accomplished. But is it thus that matter presents itself?
Now, for it to seem unchangeable in the outcome of the action we are taking, the mind must also perceive the surroundings in which this outcome is happening as unchangeable. Our activity fits into the material world. If matter appeared to us as constantly flowing, we would see no end to any of our actions. We would feel each of them fade away as quickly as they were completed, and we wouldn't anticipate a constantly fleeting future. For our activity to move from one act to another act, it’s essential for matter to shift from one state to another state, because action can only fit a result into a state of the material world for it to be realized. But is that how matter actually presents itself?
A priori we may presume that our perception manages to apprehend matter with this bias. Sensory organs and motor organs are in fact coördinated with each other. Now, the first symbolize our faculty of perceiving, as the second our faculty of acting. The organism thus evidences, in a visible and tangible form, the perfect accord of perception and action. So if our activity always aims at a result into which it is momentarily fitted, our perception must retain of the material world, at every moment, only a state in which it is provisionally placed. This is the most natural hypothesis. And it is easy to see that experience confirms it.
A priori, we can assume that our perception captures matter with this bias. Sensory organs and motor organs are actually coordinated with each other. The first represent our ability to perceive, while the second represent our ability to act. The organism, therefore, shows a clear and tangible form of the perfect alignment between perception and action. So, if our activity always aims at a result that it is temporarily focused on, our perception must only retain a state of the material world that it is currently in. This is the most natural assumption, and it's easy to see that experience supports it.
From our first glance at the world, before we even make our bodies in it, we distinguish qualities. Color succeeds to color, sound to sound, resistance to resistance, etc. Each of these qualities, taken separately, is a state that seems to persist as such, immovable until an[Pg 301]other replaces it. Yet each of these qualities resolves itself, on analysis, into an enormous number of elementary movements. Whether we see in it vibrations or whether we represent it in any other way, one fact is certain, it is that every quality is change. In vain, moreover, shall we seek beneath the change the thing which changes: it is always provisionally, and in order to satisfy our imagination, that we attach the movement to a mobile. The mobile flies for ever before the pursuit of science, which is concerned with mobility alone. In the smallest discernible fraction of a second, in the almost instantaneous perception of a sensible quality, there may be trillions of oscillations which repeat themselves. The permanence of a sensible quality consists in this repetition of movements, as the persistence of life consists in a series of palpitations. The primal function of perception is precisely to grasp a series of elementary changes under the form of a quality or of a simple state, by a work of condensation. The greater the power of acting bestowed upon an animal species, the more numerous, probably, are the elementary changes that its faculty of perceiving concentrates into one of its instants. And the progress must be continuous, in nature, from the beings that vibrate almost in unison with the oscillations of the ether, up to those that embrace trillions of these oscillations in the shortest of their simple perceptions. The first feel hardly anything but movements; the others perceive quality. The first are almost caught up in the running-gear of things; the others react, and the tension of their faculty of acting is probably proportional to the concentration of their faculty of perceiving. The progress goes on even in humanity itself. A man is so much the more a "man of action" as he can embrace in a glance a greater number of events: he who perceives successive events one by one will allow himself[Pg 302] to be led by them; he who grasps them as a whole will dominate them. In short, the qualities of matter are so many stable views that we take of its instability.
From our first glance at the world, even before we create our bodies in it, we notice qualities. Color leads to color, sound to sound, resistance to resistance, and so on. Each of these qualities, viewed separately, appears to be a state that remains unchanged until an[Pg 301]other takes its place. However, each quality, when examined, breaks down into countless basic movements. Whether we see it as vibrations or represent it in another way, one fact remains true: every quality is change. Moreover, it’s pointless to search beneath the change for the thing that changes; it's only temporarily, to satisfy our imagination, that we link the movement to something that moves. The mobile remains forever ahead of scientific pursuit, which focuses solely on mobility. In the tiniest fraction of a second, in the almost instantaneous perception of a sensory quality, there may be trillions of oscillations repeating. The consistency of a sensory quality is based on this repetition of movements, just as the continuity of life depends on a series of heartbeats. The primary role of perception is to capture a series of basic changes as the form of a quality or a simple state through a process of condensation. The more capable an animal species is of acting, the more likely it is that the basic changes its perception can combine into a single moment are numerous. Additionally, nature shows a constant progression, from beings that resonate almost in sync with the ether's oscillations to those that encompass trillions of these oscillations in their briefest perceptions. The first group feels mainly movements; the latter perceive quality. The first are almost caught up in the mechanics of existence; the latter react, and the intensity of their ability to act is likely proportional to the concentration of their ability to perceive. This progress is even evident in humanity itself. A person is considered more of a "man of action" when they can take in more events at a glance: one who sees events one by one will let themselves[Pg 302] be guided by them; someone who understands them as a whole will have control over them. In summary, the qualities of matter are merely stable perspectives we adopt of its inherent instability.
Now, in the continuity of sensible qualities we mark off the boundaries of bodies. Each of these bodies really changes at every moment. In the first place, it resolves itself into a group of qualities, and every quality, as we said, consists of a succession of elementary movements. But, even if we regard the quality as a stable state, the body is still unstable in that it changes qualities without ceasing. The body pre-eminently—that which we are most justified in isolating within the continuity of matter, because it constitutes a relatively closed system—is the living body; it is, moreover, for it that we cut out the others within the whole. Now, life is an evolution. We concentrate a period of this evolution in a stable view which we call a form, and, when the change has become considerable enough to overcome the fortunate inertia of our perception, we say that the body has changed its form. But in reality the body is changing form at every moment; or rather, there is no form, since form is immobile and the reality is movement. What is real is the continual change of form: form is only a snapshot view of a transition. Therefore, here again, our perception manages to solidify into discontinuous images the fluid continuity of the real. When the successive images do not differ from each other too much, we consider them all as the waxing and waning of a single mean image, or as the deformation of this image in different directions. And to this mean we really allude when we speak of the essence of a thing, or of the thing itself.
Now, in the flow of sensible qualities, we define the boundaries of bodies. Each of these bodies is constantly changing. First, it breaks down into a group of qualities, and each quality, as we mentioned, consists of a series of basic movements. However, even if we see a quality as a stable state, the body is still unstable because it continuously changes qualities. The body—particularly the living body, which we can most justifiably isolate within the flow of matter since it forms a relatively closed system—is the focus of our attention. Life is about evolution. We capture a moment in this evolution in a stable viewpoint that we call a form, and when the change is significant enough to break through the fortunate inertia of our perception, we say the body has changed its form. But in reality, the body is constantly changing its form; or rather, there is no fixed form, since form is static and the reality is movement. What is real is the ongoing change of form: form is just a snapshot of a transition. Thus, once again, our perception freezes the fluid continuity of reality into separate images. When the successive images don't differ much from each other, we perceive them as the growth and decline of a single mean image, or as the distortion of this image in various directions. This average is what we refer to when we talk about the essence of something, or the thing itself.
Finally things, once constituted, show on the surface, by their changes of situation, the profound changes that are being accomplished within the Whole. We say then[Pg 303] that they act on one another. This action appears to us, no doubt, in the form of movement. But from the mobility of the movement we turn away as much as we can; what interests us is, as we said above, the unmovable plan of the movement rather than the movement itself. Is it a simple movement? We ask ourselves where it is going. It is by its direction, that is to say, by the position of its provisional end, that we represent it at every moment. Is it a complex movement? We would know above all what is going on, what the movement is doing—in other words, the result obtained or the presiding intention. Examine closely what is in your mind when you speak of an action in course of accomplishment. The idea of change is there, I am willing to grant, but it is hidden in the penumbra. In the full light is the motionless plan of the act supposed accomplished. It is by this, and by this only, that the complex act is distinguished and defined. We should be very much embarrassed if we had to imagine the movements inherent in the actions of eating, drinking, fighting, etc. It is enough for us to know, in a general and indefinite way, that all these acts are movements. Once that side of the matter has been settled, we simply seek to represent the general plan of each of these complex movements, that is to say the motionless design that underlies them. Here again knowledge bears on a state rather than on a change. It is therefore the same with this third case as with the others. Whether the movement be qualitative or evolutionary or extensive, the mind manages to take stable views of the instability. And thence the mind derives, as we have just shown, three kinds of representations: (1) qualities, (2) forms of essences, (3) acts.
Finally, once things are established, their changes in position reveal the deep changes happening within the whole. We say then[Pg 303] that they affect each other. This effect manifests to us, no doubt, as movement. But we try to look away from the fluidity of the movement; what interests us, as mentioned earlier, is the unchanging plan behind the movement rather than the movement itself. Is it a simple movement? We wonder where it’s headed. It’s through its direction, that is to say, by the position of its temporary endpoint, that we represent it at each moment. Is it a complex movement? We want to know what is happening, what the movement is accomplishing—in other words, the outcome achieved or the guiding intention. Take a close look at what you think when you talk about an action in progress. The idea of change is there, I’ll concede, but it’s in the background. In the forefront is the unchanging plan of the action that is supposed to be completed. It’s this, and only this, that distinguishes and defines the complex act. We would be quite puzzled if we had to visualize the movements involved in actions like eating, drinking, fighting, etc. It’s enough for us to generally understand that all these acts are movements. Once that aspect is settled, we just aim to represent the overall plan of each of these complex movements, meaning the unchanging design that underlies them. Here again, knowledge focuses on a state rather than on a change. Thus, the situation is the same in this third case as in the others. Whether the movement is qualitative, evolutionary, or extensive, the mind manages to take stable views of instability. And from this, as we’ve just shown, the mind derives three types of representations: (1) qualities, (2) forms of essences, (3) acts.
To these three ways of seeing correspond three categories of words: adjectives, substantives, and verbs, which are the primordial elements of language. Adjectives and sub[Pg 304]stantives therefore symbolize states. But the verb itself, if we keep to the clear part of the idea it calls up, hardly expresses anything else.
To these three ways of seeing correspond three categories of words: adjectives, nouns, and verbs, which are the fundamental elements of language. Adjectives and nouns therefore represent states. However, the verb itself, if we focus on the core idea it suggests, hardly conveys anything else.
Now, if we try to characterize more precisely our natural attitude towards Becoming, this is what we find. Becoming is infinitely varied. That which goes from yellow to green is not like that which goes from green to blue: they are different qualitative movements. That which goes from flower to fruit is not like that which goes from larva to nymph and from nymph to perfect insect: they are different evolutionary movements. The action of eating or of drinking is not like the action of fighting: they are different extensive movements. And these three kinds of movement themselves—qualitative, evolutionary, extensive—differ profoundly. The trick of our perception, like that of our intelligence, like that of our language, consists in extracting from these profoundly different becomings the single representation of becoming in general, undefined becoming, a mere abstraction which by itself says nothing and of which, indeed, it is very rarely that we think. To this idea, always the same, and always obscure or unconscious, we then join, in each particular case, one or several clear images that represent states and which serve to distinguish all becomings from each other. It is this composition of a specified and definite state with change general and undefined that we substitute for the specific change. An infinite multiplicity of becomings variously colored, so to speak, passes before our eyes: we manage so that we see only differences of color, that is to say, differences of state, beneath which there is supposed to flow, hidden from our view, a becoming always and everywhere the same, invariably colorless.
Now, if we try to describe our natural attitude towards Becoming more accurately, this is what we find. Becoming is infinitely varied. The shift from yellow to green is different from the shift from green to blue: they are distinct qualitative movements. The transition from flower to fruit is not the same as the transition from larva to nymph and from nymph to perfect insect: they are different evolutionary movements. The act of eating or drinking is not like the act of fighting: they are different extensive movements. And these three types of movement—qualitative, evolutionary, extensive—are deeply different from one another. The trick of our perception, much like our understanding and language, is to extract from these profoundly different becomings a single representation of becoming in general, an undefined becoming, a mere abstraction that by itself conveys nothing and of which we rarely even think. To this idea, which is always the same and always unclear or unconscious, we then attach, in each specific case, one or more clear images that represent states and help distinguish all becomings from one another. It is this combination of a specific and defined state with a general and undefined change that we use instead of the specific change. An infinite variety of colored becomings, so to speak, passes before our eyes: we manage to see only differences in color, that is, differences in state, beneath which a becoming that is always and everywhere the same, and uniformly colorless, is supposed to flow, hidden from our view.
Suppose we wish to portray on a screen a living picture,[Pg 305] such as the marching past of a regiment. There is one way in which it might first occur to us to do it. That would be to cut out jointed figures representing the soldiers, to give to each of them the movement of marching, a movement varying from individual to individual although common to the human species, and to throw the whole on the screen. We should need to spend on this little game an enormous amount of work, and even then we should obtain but a very poor result: how could it, at its best, reproduce the suppleness and variety of life? Now, there is another way of proceeding, more easy and at the same time more effective. It is to take a series of snapshots of the passing regiment and to throw these instantaneous views on the screen, so that they replace each other very rapidly. This is what the cinematograph does. With photographs, each of which represents the regiment in a fixed attitude, it reconstitutes the mobility of the regiment marching. It is true that if we had to do with photographs alone, however much we might look at them, we should never see them animated: with immobility set beside immobility, even endlessly, we could never make movement. In order that the pictures may be animated, there must be movement somewhere. The movement does indeed exist here; it is in the apparatus. It is because the film of the cinematograph unrolls, bringing in turn the different photographs of the scene to continue each other, that each actor of the scene recovers his mobility; he strings all his successive attitudes on the invisible movement of the film. The process then consists in extracting from all the movements peculiar to all the figures an impersonal movement abstract and simple, movement in general, so to speak: we put this into the apparatus, and we reconstitute the individuality of each particular movement by combining this nameless movement with the per[Pg 306]sonal attitudes. Such is the contrivance of the cinematograph. And such is also that of our knowledge. Instead of attaching ourselves to the inner becoming of things, we place ourselves outside them in order to recompose their becoming artificially. We take snapshots, as it were, of the passing reality, and, as these are characteristic of the reality, we have only to string them on a becoming, abstract, uniform and invisible, situated at the back of the apparatus of knowledge, in order to imitate what there is that is characteristic in this becoming itself. Perception, intellection, language so proceed in general. Whether we would think becoming, or express it, or even perceive it, we hardly do anything else than set going a kind of cinematograph inside us. We may therefore sum up what we have been saying in the conclusion that the mechanism of our ordinary knowledge is of a cinematographical kind.
Imagine we want to show a live scene on screen,[Pg 305] like a regiment marching by. One possible approach might be to create jointed figures to represent the soldiers, giving each one a marching motion that varies from person to person, even though it's a shared trait among humans, and project the whole thing on screen. This would require an immense amount of effort, and even then, the result would be quite poor: how could it, at its best, capture the fluidity and diversity of real life? There’s another method that’s easier and more effective. We could take a series of photos of the marching regiment and quickly display these snapshots one after another. This is exactly what a cinematograph does. It uses photos, each showing the regiment in a still pose, to recreate the motion of the regiment marching. However, if we relied solely on the photos, no matter how much we looked at them, we'd never see them come to life: static images beside static images, even endlessly, can’t create movement. For the images to seem alive, there has to be some movement involved. This movement exists in the machinery itself. It’s the unrolling film of the cinematograph that cycles through different photos of the scene, allowing each participant to regain their motion; they link all their different poses through the unseen movement of the film. The process, then, involves pulling out the specific movements of all the figures and creating an abstract, simple, impersonal movement, so to speak: we input this into the machine, and we recreate the unique nature of each individual movement by combining this generic movement with their unique poses. This is the setup of the cinematograph. It's also how our understanding works. Instead of focusing on the intrinsic changes of things, we step back to artificially reconstruct their evolution. We take snapshots, so to speak, of the fleeting reality, and since these snapshots reflect the reality, we only need to connect them to a seamless, abstract, and invisible flow that’s behind the machinery of knowledge to mimic the key elements of that very flow. Perception, understanding, and language generally work this way. Whether we want to think about change, express it, or just perceive it, we essentially operate a kind of cinematograph within ourselves. Therefore, we can summarize what we've discussed with the conclusion that the mechanism of our usual knowledge resembles that of a cinematograph.
Of the altogether practical character of this operation there is no possible doubt. Each of our acts aims at a certain insertion of our will into the reality. There is, between our body and other bodies, an arrangement like that of the pieces of glass that compose a kaleidoscopic picture. Our activity goes from an arrangement to a rearrangement, each time no doubt giving the kaleidoscope a new shake, but not interesting itself in the shake, and seeing only the new picture. Our knowledge of the operation of nature must be exactly symmetrical, therefore, with the interest we take in our own operation. In this sense we may say, if we are not abusing this kind of illustration, that the cinematographical character of our knowledge of things is due to the kaleidoscopic character of our adaptation to them.
There’s no doubt about how practical this operation is. Each of our actions is aimed at inserting our will into reality. There’s a setup between our bodies and other bodies that’s like the pieces of glass in a kaleidoscope. Our activity moves from one arrangement to another, each time certainly giving the kaleidoscope a new shake, but we’re not focused on the shake itself, only on the new image that appears. Our understanding of how nature works must match our interest in our own actions. In this way, we can say—if we’re not stretching this analogy too much—that the cinematic nature of our understanding of things comes from the kaleidoscopic nature of how we adapt to them.
The cinematographical method is therefore the only practical method, since it consists in making the general[Pg 307] character of knowledge form itself on that of action, while expecting that the detail of each act should depend in its turn on that of knowledge. In order that action may always be enlightened, intelligence must always be present in it; but intelligence, in order thus to accompany the progress of activity and ensure its direction, must begin by adopting its rhythm. Action is discontinuous, like every pulsation of life; discontinuous, therefore, is knowledge. The mechanism of the faculty of knowing has been constructed on this plan. Essentially practical, can it be of use, such as it is, for speculation? Let us try with it to follow reality in its windings, and see what will happen.
The cinematic method is really the only practical approach, as it shapes the overall understanding of knowledge based on action, while anticipating that the specifics of each action will rely on knowledge. For action to always be informed, intelligence must be present at all times; however, intelligence must first align with the rhythm of the activity to effectively guide its progress. Action is not continuous, just like every pulse of life; thus, knowledge is also not continuous. The way we know things has been built on this principle. Since it is fundamentally practical, can it still be useful for theory? Let’s see if we can use it to trace reality in its complexities and find out what happens.
I take of the continuity of a particular becoming a series of views, which I connect together by "becoming in general." But of course I cannot stop there. What is not determinable is not representable: of "becoming in general" I have only a verbal knowledge. As the letter x designates a certain unknown quantity, whatever it may be, so my "becoming in general," always the same, symbolizes here a certain transition of which I have taken some snapshots; of the transition itself it teaches me nothing. Let me then concentrate myself wholly on the transition, and, between any two snapshots, endeavor to realize what is going on. As I apply the same method, I obtain the same result; a third view merely slips in between the two others. I may begin again as often as I will, I may set views alongside of views for ever, I shall obtain nothing else. The application of the cinematographical method therefore leads to a perpetual recommencement, during which the mind, never able to satisfy itself and never finding where to rest, persuades itself, no doubt, that it imitates by its instability the very movement of the real. But though, by straining itself[Pg 308] to the point of giddiness, it may end by giving itself the illusion of mobility, its operation has not advanced it a step, since it remains as far as ever from its goal. In order to advance with the moving reality, you must replace yourself within it. Install yourself within change, and you will grasp at once both change itself and the successive states in which it might at any instant be immobilized. But with these successive states, perceived from without as real and no longer as potential immobilities, you will never reconstitute movement. Call them qualities, forms, positions, or intentions, as the case may be, multiply the number of them as you will, let the interval between two consecutive states be infinitely small: before the intervening movement you will always experience the disappointment of the child who tries by clapping his hands together to crush the smoke. The movement slips through the interval, because every attempt to reconstitute change out of states implies the absurd proposition, that movement is made of immobilities.
I see the continuity of a specific process as a series of viewpoints, which I link together with "becoming in general." But I can't stop there. What's not identifiable can't be represented: I only have a verbal understanding of "becoming in general." Just like the letter x stands for an unknown quantity, whatever that may be, my "becoming in general," which is always the same, symbolizes a certain transition of which I've taken some snapshots; it teaches me nothing about the transition itself. So, let me focus entirely on the transition, and, between any two snapshots, try to realize what's happening. If I use the same method, I get the same result; a third viewpoint just slips in between the other two. I can start over as many times as I want, I can place views next to each other endlessly, and I will achieve nothing different. The application of the cinematic method leads to a constant restart, during which the mind, never able to satisfy itself and never finding a place to settle, convinces itself, undoubtedly, that it mirrors the very movement of reality through its instability. But although, by straining itself[Pg 308] to the point of dizziness, it may eventually create the illusion of movement, it hasn't progressed at all since it remains just as far from its goal. To make progress with the moving reality, you have to immerse yourself in it. Position yourself within change, and you'll instantly understand both the change itself and the successive states in which it might be fixed at any given moment. But with these successive states, perceived from the outside as real and no longer as potential immobilities, you will never reconstruct movement. Call them qualities, forms, positions, or intentions, depending on the situation; increase their quantity as much as you want, let the interval between two consecutive states be infinitely small: before the intervening movement, you will always face the disappointment of a child trying to clap their hands and crush smoke. The movement slips through the interval because every attempt to reconstruct change from states presupposes the absurd notion that movement consists of immobilities.
Philosophy perceived this as soon as it opened its eyes. The arguments of Zeno of Elea, although formulated with a very different intention, have no other meaning.
Philosophy recognized this as soon as it became aware. The arguments of Zeno of Elea, even though created with a completely different purpose, convey no other meaning.
Take the flying arrow. At every moment, says Zeno, it is motionless, for it cannot have time to move, that is, to occupy at least two successive positions, unless at least two moments are allowed it. At a given moment, therefore, it is at rest at a given point. Motionless in each point of its course, it is motionless during all the time that it is moving.
Take the flying arrow. At every moment, Zeno says, it is motionless because it can't move, meaning it can't occupy at least two consecutive positions unless it has at least two moments to do so. Therefore, at any given moment, it is at rest at a specific point. Motionless at each point along its path, it is motionless during all the time that it is moving.
Yes, if we suppose that the arrow can ever be in a point of its course. Yes again, if the arrow, which is moving, ever coincides with a position, which is motionless. But the arrow never is in any point of its course. The most we can say is that it might be there, in this sense, that it[Pg 309] passes there and might stop there. It is true that if it did stop there, it would be at rest there, and at this point it is no longer movement that we should have to do with. The truth is that if the arrow leaves the point A to fall down at the point B, its movement AB is as simple, as indecomposable, in so far as it is movement, as the tension of the bow that shoots it. As the shrapnel, bursting before it falls to the ground, covers the explosive zone with an indivisible danger, so the arrow which goes from A to B displays with a single stroke, although over a certain extent of duration, its indivisible mobility. Suppose an elastic stretched from A to B, could you divide its extension? The course of the arrow is this very extension; it is equally simple and equally undivided. It is a single and unique bound. You fix a point C in the interval passed, and say that at a certain moment the arrow was in C. If it had been there, it would have been stopped there, and you would no longer have had a flight from A to B, but two flights, one from A to C and the other from C to B, with an interval of rest. A single movement is entirely, by the hypothesis, a movement between two stops; if there are intermediate stops, it is no longer a single movement. At bottom, the illusion arises from this, that the movement, once effected, has laid along its course a motionless trajectory on which we can count as many immobilities as we will. From this we conclude that the movement, whilst being effected, lays at each instant beneath it a position with which it coincides. We do not see that the trajectory is created in one stroke, although a certain time is required for it; and that though we can divide at will the trajectory once created, we cannot divide its creation, which is an act in progress and not a thing. To suppose that the moving body is at a point of its course is to cut the course in two by a snip of the scissors at this point,[Pg 310] and to substitute two trajectories for the single trajectory which we were first considering. It is to distinguish two successive acts where, by the hypothesis, there is only one. In short, it is to attribute to the course itself of the arrow everything that can be said of the interval that the arrow has traversed, that is to say, to admit a priori the absurdity that movement coincides with immobility.
Yes, if we assume that the arrow can ever be at a point in its path. Yes again, if the moving arrow ever coincides with a position that is still. But the arrow is never at any point in its path. The most we can say is that it might pass through there and could stop there. It’s true that if it did stop there, it would be at rest, and at that point, we wouldn’t be dealing with movement anymore. The fact is, when the arrow leaves point A to reach point B, its movement from A to B is as straightforward and indivisible, in terms of movement, as the tension of the bow that shoots it. Just as shrapnel, exploding before hitting the ground, fills the explosive zone with a unified danger, the arrow moving from A to B shows its indivisible motion in one continuous stroke, even though it takes some time. Imagine an elastic stretched from A to B; could you separate its extension? The arrow’s trajectory is that very extension; it is equally simple and undivided. It is a single, unique leap. You identify a point C along the path traveled and claim that at a certain moment the arrow was at C. If it had been there, it would have stopped there, and you would no longer have a journey from A to B, but two journeys—one from A to C and another from C to B, with a pause in between. A single movement, by definition, is a movement between two stops; if there are stops in between, it’s no longer just one movement. Ultimately, the illusion comes from the idea that once the movement has occurred, it creates an apparent still path along which we can count as many stationary points as we want. From this, we conclude that during the movement, each instant lays beneath it a position that it coincides with. We fail to realize that the trajectory is created in one single action, even though it takes some time to form; and although we can divide the trajectory once it exists, we can't divide its creation, which is an ongoing act and not a solid object. To suggest that the moving body is at a point in its path is to cut the path in two with a pair of scissors at that point,[Pg 310] and to replace the single trajectory with two separate trajectories that we were initially considering. It’s to identify two successive actions when there is, by definition, only one. In short, it’s to attribute to the path of the arrow everything that could be said about the interval the arrow has passed through, meaning to accept a priori the absurdity that movement can coincide with stillness.
We shall not dwell here on the three other arguments of Zeno. We have examined them elsewhere. It is enough to point out that they all consist in applying the movement to the line traversed, and supposing that what is true of the line is true of the movement. The line, for example, may be divided into as many parts as we wish, of any length that we wish, and it is always the same line. From this we conclude that we have the right to suppose the movement articulated as we wish, and that it is always the same movement. We thus obtain a series of absurdities that all express the same fundamental absurdity. But the possibility of applying the movement to the line traversed exists only for an observer who keeping outside the movement and seeing at every instant the possibility of a stop, tries to reconstruct the real movement with these possible immobilities. The absurdity vanishes as soon as we adopt by thought the continuity of the real movement, a continuity of which every one of us is conscious whenever he lifts an arm or advances a step. We feel then indeed that the line passed over between two stops is described with a single indivisible stroke, and that we seek in vain to practice on the movement, which traces the line, divisions corresponding, each to each, with the divisions arbitrarily chosen of the line once it has been traced. The line traversed by the moving body lends itself to any kind of division, because it has no internal organization. But[Pg 311] all movement is articulated inwardly. It is either an indivisible bound (which may occupy, nevertheless, a very long duration) or a series of indivisible bounds. Take the articulations of this movement into account, or give up speculating on its nature.
We won’t go into detail about the other three arguments of Zeno here. We’ve discussed them elsewhere. It’s enough to point out that they all involve applying movement to the line traveled and assuming what’s true for the line applies to the movement as well. For example, the line can be divided into as many parts as we want, of any length, and it’s always the same line. From this, we conclude that we can suppose the movement is articulated however we wish, and it remains the same movement. This leads us to a series of absurdities that all express the same core absurdity. However, the possibility of applying the movement to the line traveled exists only for an observer who stands outside the movement, seeing at every moment the potential for a stop, and tries to piece together the real movement using these possible pauses. The absurdity disappears as soon as we conceptually accept the continuity of real movement, a continuity we all feel whenever we lift an arm or take a step. We then truly sense that the line traveled between two stops is covered in a single, indivisible motion, and that we futilely attempt to impose divisions on the movement, which traces the line, that correspond one-to-one with the arbitrary divisions of the line once it has been covered. The line traveled by the moving body can be divided in any way because it has no internal structure. But[Pg 311] all movement has internal articulation. It is either an indivisible leap (which can still take a very long time) or a series of indivisible leaps. Consider the articulations of this movement, or stop speculating about its nature.
When Achilles pursues the tortoise, each of his steps must be treated as indivisible, and so must each step of the tortoise. After a certain number of steps, Achilles will have overtaken the tortoise. There is nothing more simple. If you insist on dividing the two motions further, distinguish both on the one side and on the other, in the course of Achilles and in that of the tortoise, the sub-multiples of the steps of each of them; but respect the natural articulations of the two courses. As long as you respect them, no difficulty will arise, because you will follow the indications of experience. But Zeno's device is to reconstruct the movement of Achilles according to a law arbitrarily chosen. Achilles with a first step is supposed to arrive at the point where the tortoise was, with a second step at the point which it has moved to while he was making the first, and so on. In this case, Achilles would always have a new step to take. But obviously, to overtake the tortoise, he goes about it in quite another way. The movement considered by Zeno would only be the equivalent of the movement of Achilles if we could treat the movement as we treat the interval passed through, decomposable and recomposable at will. Once you subscribe to this first absurdity, all the others follow.[99]
When Achilles chases the tortoise, each of his steps has to be seen as indivisible, just like each step of the tortoise. Eventually, Achilles will catch up to the tortoise after a certain number of steps. It's that straightforward. If you want to break down their movements even more, you can look at the sub-multiples of the steps for both of them; but you need to keep the natural divisions of their paths intact. As long as you do that, there shouldn't be any issues, since you will be following what experience shows us. But Zeno's trick is to redefine Achilles' movement based on a randomly chosen rule. It's assumed that with his first step, Achilles reaches the spot where the tortoise was, with his second step he reaches the spot the tortoise has moved to while he took the first step, and so on. In this scenario, Achilles would always have another step to take. However, obviously, to catch the tortoise, he goes about it differently. The movement that Zeno describes would only match Achilles' movement if we could treat movement like we treat the distance covered, breaking it down and putting it back together as we wish. Once you accept this first absurdity, all the others come along with it.[99]
Nothing would be easier, now, than to extend Zeno's[Pg 312] argument to qualitative becoming and to evolutionary becoming. We should find the same contradictions in these. That the child can become a youth, ripen to maturity and decline to old age, we understand when we consider that vital evolution is here the reality itself. Infancy, adolescence, maturity, old age, are mere views of the mind, possible stops imagined by us, from without, along the continuity of a progress. On the contrary, let childhood, adolescence, maturity and old age be given as integral parts of the evolution, they become real stops, and we can no longer conceive how evolution is possible, for rests placed beside rests will never be equivalent to a movement. How, with what is made, can we reconstitute what is being made? How, for instance, from childhood once posited as a thing, shall we pass to adolescence, when, by the hypothesis, childhood only is given? If we look at it closely, we shall see that our habitual manner of speaking, which is fashioned after our habitual manner of thinking, leads us to actual logical dead-locks—dead-locks to which we allow ourselves to be led without anxiety, because we feel confusedly that we can always get out of them if we like: all that we have to do, in fact, is to give up the cinematographical habits of our intellect. When we say "The child becomes a man," let us take care not to fathom too deeply the literal meaning of the expression, or we shall find that, when we posit the subject "child," the attribute "man" does not yet apply to it, and that,[Pg 313] when we express the attribute "man," it applies no more to the subject "child." The reality, which is the transition from childhood to manhood, has slipped between our fingers. We have only the imaginary stops "child" and "man," and we are very near to saying that one of these stops is the other, just as the arrow of Zeno is, according to that philosopher, at all the points of the course. The truth is that if language here were molded on reality, we should not say "The child becomes the man," but "There is becoming from the child to the man." In the first proposition, "becomes" is a verb of indeterminate meaning, intended to mask the absurdity into which we fall when we attribute the state "man" to the subject "child." It behaves in much the same way as the movement, always the same, of the cinematographical film, a movement hidden in the apparatus and whose function it is to superpose the successive pictures on one another in order to imitate the movement of the real object. In the second proposition, "becoming" is a subject. It comes to the front. It is the reality itself; childhood and manhood are then only possible stops, mere views of the mind; we now have to do with the objective movement itself, and no longer with its cinematographical imitation. But the first manner of expression is alone conformable to our habits of language. We must, in order to adopt the second, escape from the cinematographical mechanism of thought.
Nothing would be easier now than to expand Zeno's[Pg 312] argument to include qualitative and evolutionary becoming. We would encounter the same contradictions in these. We understand that a child can become a youth, grow to maturity, and then decline into old age because we recognize that vital evolution is the reality itself. Infancy, adolescence, maturity, and old age are just mental viewpoints, possible stops we've imagined along the continuum of progress. However, when we treat childhood, adolescence, maturity, and old age as integral parts of evolution, they become real stops, and we can no longer understand how evolution is possible, since pauses alongside pauses will never equal movement. How, using what is made, can we recreate what is being made? For instance, if we treat childhood as a thing, how do we move to adolescence, especially when, according to the hypothesis, only childhood is acknowledged? If we examine this closely, we’ll realize that our usual way of speaking, influenced by our usual thinking, leads us to actual logical deadlocks—deadlocks we allow ourselves to get into without concern, because we vaguely feel we can always escape if we want: all we have to do is abandon the cinematic habits of our intellect. When we say "The child becomes a man," we need to be cautious not to overthink the literal meaning of that phrase, or we’ll find that when we reference the subject "child," the attribute "man" doesn't apply yet, and that,[Pg 313] when we describe the attribute "man," it no longer applies to the subject "child." The reality, which is the transition from childhood to manhood, slips away from us. We only have the imaginary stops "child" and "man," and we are close to claiming that one of these stops is the other, just as the arrow of Zeno is, according to the philosopher, at every point along the path. The truth is that if language were shaped by reality, we wouldn’t say "The child becomes the man," but rather "There is becoming from the child to the man." In the first statement, "becomes" serves as a verb with an unclear meaning, intended to cover up the absurdity we encounter when we attribute the state "man" to the subject "child." It operates much like the continuous movement in a film, a movement hidden in the machinery, whose purpose is to overlay successive images to imitate the motion of the real object. In the second statement, "becoming" is the subject. It takes the spotlight. It represents the reality itself; childhood and manhood are merely possible stops, just mental viewpoints; we are now dealing with the actual objective movement, not its cinematic representation. However, the first way of expressing this aligns with our language habits. To adopt the second, we must move beyond the cinematic mechanism of thought.
We must make complete abstraction of this mechanism, if we wish to get rid at one stroke of the theoretical absurdities that the question of movement raises. All is obscure, all is contradictory when we try, with states, to build up a transition. The obscurity is cleared up, the contradiction vanishes, as soon as we place ourselves along the transition, in order to distinguish states in it[Pg 314] by making cross cuts therein in thought. The reason is that there is more in the transition than the series of states, that is to say, the possible cuts—more in the movement than the series of positions, that is to say, the possible stops. Only, the first way of looking at things is conformable to the processes of the human mind; the second requires, on the contrary, that we reverse the bent of our intellectual habits. No wonder, then, if philosophy at first recoiled before such an effort. The Greeks trusted to nature, trusted the natural propensity of the mind, trusted language above all, in so far as it naturally externalizes thought. Rather than lay blame on the attitude of thought and language toward the course of things, they preferred to pronounce the course of things itself to be wrong.
We need to completely overlook this mechanism if we want to eliminate the theoretical absurdities that arise from the question of movement all at once. Everything becomes unclear and contradictory when we try to build a transition using states. However, the confusion clears up and the contradictions disappear once we focus on the transition itself to identify states within it by mentally making cross cuts. The reason for this is that there is more to the transition than just the series of states, meaning the potential cuts—there’s more to the movement than just the series of positions, meaning the potential stops. The first way of understanding things aligns with how the human mind works; the second requires us to change our usual way of thinking. It’s no surprise that philosophy initially hesitated before making such an effort. The Greeks relied on nature, trusted the natural tendencies of the mind, and above all, trusted language as it naturally expresses thought. Instead of blaming the way thought and language interact with reality, they preferred to declare reality itself as incorrect.
Such, indeed, was the sentence passed by the philosophers of the Eleatic school. And they passed it without any reservation whatever. As becoming shocks the habits of thought and fits ill into the molds of language, they declared it unreal. In spatial movement and in change in general they saw only pure illusion. This conclusion could be softened down without changing the premisses, by saying that the reality changes, but that it ought not to change. Experience confronts us with becoming: that is sensible reality. But the intelligible reality, that which ought to be, is more real still, and that reality does not change. Beneath the qualitative becoming, beneath the evolutionary becoming, beneath the extensive becoming, the mind must seek that which defies change, the definable quality, the form or essence, the end. Such was the fundamental principle of the philosophy which developed throughout the classic age, the philosophy of Forms, or, to use a term more akin to the Greek, the philosophy of Ideas.
This was indeed the conclusion reached by the philosophers of the Eleatic school. They stated it without any reservations. Since becoming disrupts established ways of thinking and doesn’t fit well into language, they declared it unreal. They viewed spatial movement and change in general as mere illusions. This conclusion could be softened without altering the premises by suggesting that reality changes, but it shouldn’t change. Experience presents us with becoming: that is sensible reality. However, the intelligible reality, what should be, is even more real, and that reality remains unchanged. Beneath qualitative becoming, evolutionary becoming, and extensive becoming, the mind must search for what resists change—the definable quality, the form or essence, the end. This was the fundamental principle of the philosophy that developed throughout the classical age, the philosophy of Forms, or, to use a term more familiar to the Greek tradition, the philosophy of Ideas.
The word ειδος, which we translate here by "Idea," has,[Pg 315] in fact, this threefold meaning. It denotes (1) the quality, (2) the form or essence, (3) the end or design (in the sense of intention) of the act being performed, that is to say, at bottom, the design (in the sense of drawing) of the act supposed accomplished. These three aspects are those of the adjective, substantive and verb, and correspond to the three essential categories of language. After the explanations we have given above, we might, and perhaps we ought to, translate ειδος by "view" or rather by "moment." For ειδος is the stable view taken of the instability of things: the quality, which is a moment of becoming; the form, which is a moment of evolution; the essence, which is the mean form above and below which the other forms are arranged as alterations of the mean; finally, the intention or mental design which presides over the action being accomplished, and which is nothing else, we said, than the material design, traced out and contemplated beforehand, of the action accomplished. To reduce things to Ideas is therefore to resolve becoming into its principal moments, each of these being, moreover, by the hypothesis, screened from the laws of time and, as it were, plucked out of eternity. That is to say that we end in the philosophy of Ideas when we apply the cinematographical mechanism of the intellect to the analysis of the real.
The term ειδος, which we translate as "Idea," has, [Pg 315] a threefold meaning. It refers to (1) quality, (2) form or essence, and (3) the end or design (in the sense of intention) of the action being carried out. Essentially, it is the design (in the sense of drawing) of the action that is considered complete. These three aspects correspond to the adjective, noun, and verb, aligning with the three fundamental categories of language. Based on the explanations we provided earlier, we might, and perhaps should, translate ειδος as "view" or better yet, "moment." For ειδος represents the steady view taken on the instability of things: the quality, which is a moment of becoming; the form, a moment of evolution; the essence, which is the average form around which other forms are arranged as variations of the mean; and finally, the intention or mental design that guides the action being taken, which is nothing other than the material design planned and considered beforehand for the action completed. Therefore, to reduce things to Ideas is to break down becoming into its main moments, each of which, by assumption, is separated from the laws of time and, in a way, taken from eternity. This means that we conclude in the philosophy of Ideas when we apply the cinematic mechanism of the intellect to analyze the real.
But, when we put immutable Ideas at the base of the moving reality, a whole physics, a whole cosmology, a whole theology follows necessarily. We must insist on the point. Not that we mean to summarize in a few pages a philosophy so complex and so comprehensive as that of the Greeks. But, since we have described the cinematographical mechanism of the intellect, it is important that we should show to what idea of reality the play of this mechanism leads. It is the very idea, we believe, that we find in the ancient philosophy. The main lines of the doctrine that was[Pg 316] developed from Plato to Plotinus, passing through Aristotle (and even, in a certain measure, through the Stoics), have nothing accidental, nothing contingent, nothing that must be regarded as a philosopher's fancy. They indicate the vision that a systematic intellect obtains of the universal becoming when regarding it by means of snapshots, taken at intervals, of its flowing. So that, even to-day, we shall philosophize in the manner of the Greeks, we shall rediscover, without needing to know them, such and such of their general conclusions, in the exact proportion that we trust in the cinematographical instinct of our thought.
But when we set unchanging ideas as the foundation of our dynamic reality, an entire system of physics, a complete cosmology, and a full theology inevitably follows. We need to emphasize this point. It’s not our intention to condense the intricate and extensive philosophy of the Greeks into just a few pages. However, since we’ve outlined the cinematic mechanism of the mind, it’s crucial to demonstrate the type of reality that this mechanism points to. We believe this aligns with the ideas found in ancient philosophy. The core principles of the doctrine that developed from Plato to Plotinus, including Aristotle (and, to some extent, even the Stoics), are not random, they are not contingent, and they are not merely the whims of philosophers. They reflect the perspective that a systematic intellect gains of universal change when viewing it through snapshots taken at intervals of its flow. Therefore, even today, we will philosophize like the Greeks; we will rediscover, without needing to be familiar with them, various general conclusions, in the exact measure that we trust in the cinematic instinct of our thinking.
We said there is more in a movement than in the successive positions attributed to the moving object, more in a becoming than in the forms passed through in turn, more in the evolution of form than the forms assumed one after another. Philosophy can therefore derive terms of the second kind from those of the first, but not the first from the second: from the first terms speculation must take its start. But the intellect reverses the order of the two groups; and, on this point, ancient philosophy proceeds as the intellect does. It installs itself in the immutable, it posits only Ideas. Yet becoming exists: it is a fact. How, then, having posited immutability alone, shall we make change come forth from it? Not by the addition of anything, for, by the hypothesis, there exists nothing positive outside Ideas. It must therefore be by a diminution. So at the base of ancient philosophy lies necessarily this postulate: that there is more in the motionless than in the moving, and that we pass from immutability to becoming by way of diminution or attenuation.
We stated that there is more in a movement than in the various positions attributed to the moving object, more in a process of becoming than in the forms that are successively adopted, and more in the evolution of form than in the individual forms taken one after another. Philosophy can, therefore, derive terms of the second kind from those of the first, but not the other way around: speculation must start from the first terms. However, the intellect flips the order of the two groups; in this respect, ancient philosophy follows the intellect's lead. It settles into the unchanging, affirming only Ideas. Yet, becoming is real: it is a fact. How, then, can we bring change from a position that acknowledges only immutability? Not by adding anything, since, according to the hypothesis, nothing positive exists outside of Ideas. Therefore, it must be through a reduction. Thus, at the core of ancient philosophy lies the postulate that there is more in the still than in the moving, and that we transition from immutability to becoming through reduction or attenuation.
It is therefore something negative, or zero at most, that must be added to Ideas to obtain change. In that consists the Platonic "non-being," the Aristotelian "matter"—a[Pg 317] metaphysical zero which, joined to the Idea, like the arithmetical zero to unity, multiplies it in space and time. By it the motionless and simple Idea is refracted into a movement spread out indefinitely. In right, there ought to be nothing but immutable Ideas, immutably fitted to each other. In fact, matter comes to add to them its void, and thereby lets loose the universal becoming. It is an elusive nothing, that creeps between the Ideas and creates endless agitation, eternal disquiet, like a suspicion insinuated between two loving hearts. Degrade the immutable Ideas: you obtain, by that alone, the perpetual flux of things. The Ideas or Forms are the whole of intelligible reality, that is to say, of truth, in that they represent, all together, the theoretical equilibrium of Being. As to sensible reality, it is a perpetual oscillation from one side to the other of this point of equilibrium.
It is therefore something negative, or at most zero, that needs to be added to Ideas to bring about change. This is what Plato referred to as "non-being" and Aristotle as "matter"—a[Pg 317] metaphysical zero that, when combined with the Idea, like arithmetical zero with unity, expands it across space and time. This allows the still and simple Idea to be reflected in a movement that spreads out indefinitely. In theory, there should only be unchanging Ideas, perfectly matched to each other. In reality, matter adds its emptiness to them, unleashing universal change. It is an elusive nothing that sneaks between the Ideas and creates endless restlessness and constant unease, like a doubt creeping in between two loving hearts. If you undermine the unchanging Ideas, you get, by that alone, the continuous flow of things. The Ideas or Forms represent the entirety of intelligible reality, meaning truth, as they collectively illustrate the theoretical balance of Being. As for sensible reality, it is a constant shifting from one side to the other of this point of balance.
Hence, throughout the whole philosophy of Ideas there is a certain conception of duration, as also of the relation of time to eternity. He who installs himself in becoming sees in duration the very life of things, the fundamental reality. The Forms, which the mind isolates and stores up in concepts, are then only snapshots of the changing reality. They are moments gathered along the course of time; and, just because we have cut the thread that binds them to time, they no longer endure. They tend to withdraw into their own definition, that is to say, into the artificial reconstruction and symbolical expression which is their intellectual equivalent. They enter into eternity, if you will; but what is eternal in them is just what is unreal. On the contrary, if we treat becoming by the cinematographical method, the Forms are no longer snapshots taken of the change, they are its constitutive elements, they represent all that is positive in Becoming. Eternity no longer hovers over time, as an abstraction; it underlies[Pg 318] time, as a reality. Such is exactly, on this point, the attitude of the philosophy of Forms or Ideas. It establishes between eternity and time the same relation as between a piece of gold and the small change—change so small that payment goes on for ever without the debt being paid off. The debt could be paid at once with the piece of gold. It is this that Plato expresses in his magnificent language when he says that God, unable to make the world eternal, gave it Time, "a moving image of eternity."[100]
Therefore, throughout the entire philosophy of Ideas, there is a concept of duration, as well as the relationship between time and eternity. Those who focus on becoming view duration as the very essence of things, the fundamental reality. The Forms that our minds isolate and categorize as concepts are simply snapshots of this ever-changing reality. They are moments collected over time; and because we have severed the connection that ties them to time, they no longer last. They tend to retreat into their own definitions, meaning they become an artificial reconstruction and symbolic representation that serves as their intellectual equivalent. They may enter into eternity, but what is eternal in them is actually what is unreal. In contrast, if we approach becoming through a cinematic perspective, the Forms are no longer just snapshots of change; they become its essential components, representing everything positive in Becoming. Eternity no longer looms over time as an abstraction; instead, it underlies time as a reality. This is precisely how the philosophy of Forms or Ideas views the relationship between eternity and time, akin to the relationship between a piece of gold and small change—change so minor that transactions continue indefinitely without the debt being settled. The debt could be settled immediately with the gold piece. This is what Plato beautifully articulates when he states that God, unable to make the world eternal, gave it Time, "a moving image of eternity."[Pg 318]
Hence also arises a certain conception of extension, which is at the base of the philosophy of Ideas, although it has not been so explicitly brought out. Let us imagine a mind placed alongside becoming, and adopting its movement. Each successive state, each quality, each form, in short, will be seen by it as a mere cut made by thought in the universal becoming. It will be found that form is essentially extended, inseparable as it is from the extensity of the becoming which has materialized it in the course of its flow. Every form thus occupies space, as it occupies time. But the philosophy of Ideas follows the inverse direction. It starts from the Form; it sees in the Form the very essence of reality. It does not take Form as a snapshot of becoming; it posits Forms in the eternal; of this motionless eternity, then, duration and becoming are supposed to be only the degradation. Form thus posited, independent of time, is then no longer what is found in a perception; it is a concept. And, as a reality of the conceptual order occupies no more of extension than it does of duration, the Forms must be stationed outside space as well as above time. Space and time have therefore necessarily, in ancient philosophy, the same origin and the same value. The same diminution of being is expressed both by extension in space and detention in time. Both of these[Pg 319] are but the distance between what is and what ought to be. From the standpoint of ancient philosophy, space and time can be nothing but the field that an incomplete reality, or rather a reality that has gone astray from itself, needs in order to run in quest of itself. Only it must be admitted that the field is created as the hunting progresses, and that the hunting in some way deposits the field beneath it. Move an imaginary pendulum, a mere mathematical point, from its position of equilibrium: a perpetual oscillation is started, along which points are placed next to points, and moments succeed moments. The space and time which thus arise have no more "positivity" than the movement itself. They represent the remoteness of the position artificially given to the pendulum from its normal position, what it lacks in order to regain its natural stability. Bring it back to its normal position: space, time and motion shrink to a mathematical point. Just so, human reasonings are drawn out into an endless chain, but are at once swallowed up in the truth seized by intuition, for their extension in space and time is only the distance, so to speak, between thought and truth.[101] So of extension and duration in relation to pure Forms or Ideas. The sensible forms are before us, ever about to recover their ideality, ever prevented by the matter they bear in them, that is to say, by their inner void, by the interval between what they are and what they ought to be. They are for ever on the point of recovering themselves, for ever occupied in losing themselves. An inflexible law condemns them, like the rock of Sisyphus, to fall back when they are almost touching the summit, and this law, which has projected them into space and time, is nothing other than the very constancy of their[Pg 320] original insufficiency. The alternations of generation and decay, the evolutions ever beginning over and over again, the infinite repetition of the cycles of celestial spheres—this all represents merely a certain fundamental deficit, in which materiality consists. Fill up this deficit: at once you suppress space and time, that is to say, the endlessly renewed oscillations around a stable equilibrium always aimed at, never reached. Things re-enter into each other. What was extended in space is contracted into pure Form. And past, present, and future shrink into a single moment, which is eternity.
Thus, a certain understanding of extension emerges, which underlies the philosophy of Ideas, even if it hasn't been clearly articulated. Picture a mind positioned alongside becoming, moving with its flow. Every successive state, quality, and form will be perceived as simply a thought cut through universal becoming. It becomes apparent that form is fundamentally extended, inseparable from the extent of the becoming that has shaped it throughout its evolution. Every form, therefore, occupies space just as it occupies time. However, the philosophy of Ideas goes in the opposite direction. It starts with the Form, seeing it as the very essence of reality. It does not treat Form as a snapshot of becoming; instead, it posits Forms in the eternal, suggesting that duration and becoming are merely a decline from this unchanging eternity. Once Form is established, independent of time, it no longer corresponds with perception; it becomes a concept. Since a reality of the conceptual kind doesn't occupy extension any more than it does duration, the Forms must exist outside of space as well as beyond time. Therefore, space and time must share the same origin and value in ancient philosophy. The same reduction of being is represented by extension in space and retention in time. Both concepts reflect the distance between what is and what should be. From the perspective of ancient philosophy, space and time can only be seen as the arena where an incomplete reality, or a reality that has strayed from itself, seeks to rediscover itself. Yet, it's essential to acknowledge that the arena is created as this search unfolds, and that the activity of seeking somehow establishes the arena beneath it. Imagine moving a pendulum, a simple mathematical point, from its resting position: a continuous oscillation begins, placing points beside each other and moments succeeding moments. The space and time that emerge from this have no more "reality" than the movement itself. They illustrate the distance from the pendulum's artificially assigned position to its normal state, what it lacks to regain its natural balance. Return it to its normal position: space, time, and motion collapse into a mathematical point. Similarly, human reasoning extends into an infinite chain but is instantly absorbed by the truth captured through intuition, as their extension in space and time represents merely the distance between thought and truth.[101] Thus, there is extension and duration in relation to pure Forms or Ideas. The sensible forms are present, always on the verge of reclaiming their ideal nature, perpetually hindered by the matter they carry within, which is to say, by their inner emptiness, by the gap between what they are and what they should be. They are always about to find themselves again, forever caught up in losing themselves. An unyielding law condemns them, like the rock of Sisyphus, to fall back just when they are close to the top, and this law, which has thrust them into space and time, is simply the very nature of their[Pg 320] original deficiency. The cycles of generation and decay, the continuous rises and falls, the infinite repetition of celestial cycles—these all represent a fundamental lack that defines materiality. Fill this lack: immediately, you eliminate space and time, which consist of the perpetually renewed oscillations around a stable equilibrium that is always aimed for but never attained. Things reintegrate. What was extended in space is condensed into pure Form. And past, present, and future coalesce into a singular moment, which is eternity.
This amounts to saying that physics is but logic spoiled. In this proposition the whole philosophy of Ideas is summarized. And in it also is the hidden principle of the philosophy that is innate in our understanding. If immutability is more than becoming, form is more than change, and it is by a veritable fall that the logical system of Ideas, rationally subordinated and coördinated among themselves, is scattered into a physical series of objects and events accidentally placed one after another. The generative idea of a poem is developed in thousands of imaginations which are materialized in phrases that spread themselves out in words. And the more we descend from the motionless idea, wound on itself, to the words that unwind it, the more room is left for contingency and choice. Other metaphors, expressed by other words, might have arisen; an image is called up by an image, a word by a word. All these words run now one after another, seeking in vain, by themselves, to give back the simplicity of the generative idea. Our ear only hears the words: it therefore perceives only accidents. But our mind, by successive bounds, leaps from the words to the images, from the images to the original idea, and so gets back, from the perception of words—accidents called up by accidents—to the con[Pg 321]ception of the Idea that posits its own being. So the philosopher proceeds, confronted with the universe. Experience makes to pass before his eyes phenomena which run, they also, one behind another in an accidental order determined by circumstances of time and place. This physical order—a degeneration of the logical order—is nothing else but the fall of the logical into space and time. But the philosopher, ascending again from the percept to the concept, sees condensed into the logical all the positive reality that the physical possesses. His intellect, doing away with the materiality that lessens being, grasps being itself in the immutable system of Ideas. Thus Science is obtained, which appears to us, complete and ready-made, as soon as we put back our intellect into its true place, correcting the deviation that separated it from the intelligible. Science is not, then, a human construction. It is prior to our intellect, independent of it, veritably the generator of Things.
This means that physics is just logic gone wrong. This statement sums up the entire philosophy of Ideas. It also contains the underlying principle of the philosophy that is inherent in our understanding. If immutability is more significant than becoming, then form is more significant than change, and it's through a real fall that the logical system of Ideas, rationally organized and interconnected, gets scattered into a physical series of objects and events that are placed next to each other by chance. The core idea of a poem emerges in thousands of imaginations, which are materialized in phrases that unfold in words. And the further we move from the unmoving idea, coiled upon itself, to the words that express it, the more space is left for randomness and choice. Other metaphors, expressed in different words, could have emerged; one image evokes another, one word leads to another. All these words now follow one after another, trying in vain, on their own, to capture the simplicity of the original idea. Our ear only hears the words: it therefore only perceives accidents. But our mind jumps from the words to the images, and from the images to the original idea, and thus returns, from the perception of words—accidents triggered by accidents—to the concept of the Idea that asserts its own existence. So the philosopher moves forward, faced with the universe. Experience presents to him phenomena that also flow one after another in a random order determined by circumstances of time and place. This physical order—a decline from the logical order—is nothing but the fall of the logical into space and time. But the philosopher, rising again from the percept to the concept, sees condensed in the logical all the positive reality that the physical holds. His intellect, eliminating the materiality that diminishes being, grasps being itself in the unchanging system of Ideas. Thus, Science is achieved, which appears to us, complete and ready, as soon as we restore our intellect to its rightful place, correcting the deviation that disconnected it from the intelligible. Science is not a human construction. It exists prior to our intellect, independent of it, and is truly the source of Things.
And indeed, if we hold the Forms to be simply snapshots taken by the mind of the continuity of becoming, they must be relative to the mind that thinks them, they can have no independent existence. At most we might say that each of these Ideas is an ideal. But it is in the opposite hypothesis that we are placing ourselves. Ideas must then exist by themselves. Ancient philosophy could not escape this conclusion. Plato formulated it, and in vain did Aristotle strive to avoid it. Since movement arises from the degradation of the immutable, there could be no movement, consequently no sensible world, if there were not, somewhere, immutability realized. So, having begun by refusing to Ideas an independent existence, and finding himself nevertheless unable to deprive them of it, Aristotle pressed them into each other, rolled them up into a ball, and set above the physical world a Form that was thus found to be[Pg 322] the Form of Forms, the Idea of Ideas, or, to use his own words, the Thought of Thought. Such is the God of Aristotle—necessarily immutable and apart from what is happening in the world, since he is only the synthesis of all concepts in a single concept. It is true that no one of the manifold concepts could exist apart, such as it is in the divine unity: in vain should we look for the ideas of Plato within the God of Aristotle. But if only we imagine the God of Aristotle in a sort of refraction of himself, or simply inclining toward the world, at once the Platonic Ideas are seen to pour themselves out of him, as if they were involved in the unity of his essence: so rays stream out from the sun, which nevertheless did not contain them. It is probably this possibility of an outpouring of Platonic Ideas from the Aristotelian God that is meant, in the philosophy of Aristotle, by the active intellect, the νους that has been called ποιητικος—that is, by what is essential and yet unconscious in human intelligence. The νους ποιητικος is Science entire, posited all at once, which the conscious, discursive intellect is condemned to reconstruct with difficulty, bit by bit. There is then within us, or rather behind us, a possible vision of God, as the Alexandrians said, a vision always virtual, never actually realized by the conscious intellect. In this intuition we should see God expand in Ideas. This it is that "does everything,"[102] playing in relation to the discursive intellect, which moves in time, the same rôle as the motionless Mover himself plays in relation to the movement of the heavens and the course of things.
And indeed, if we see the Forms as just snapshots taken by the mind of the ongoing process of becoming, they must be relative to the thinking mind and cannot exist independently. At most, we might say that each of these Ideas is an ideal. But we are considering the opposite assumption. Ideas must exist on their own. Ancient philosophy couldn't avoid this conclusion. Plato articulated it, and Aristotle struggled in vain to escape it. Since movement comes from the decline of the unchanging, there couldn’t be movement, and therefore no sensory world, if there wasn’t, somewhere, some form of unchanging reality. So, after initially denying Ideas an independent existence but still finding it impossible to strip them of it, Aristotle crammed them into one another, rolled them into a single entity, and positioned above the physical world a Form that ultimately became[Pg 322] the Form of Forms, the Idea of Ideas, or, in his own words, the Thought of Thought. This is the God of Aristotle—necessarily unchanging and separate from what’s happening in the world since he is merely the synthesis of all concepts into one. It’s true that none of the many concepts could exist separately, as they do in divine unity: any search for Plato’s ideas within the God of Aristotle would be futile. However, if we simply imagine Aristotle’s God in a sort of reflection of himself, or leaning toward the world, the Platonic Ideas appear to emanate from him, as if they were part of his essence: much like rays shining from the sun, which nonetheless does not contain them. This possibility of an outpouring of Platonic Ideas from the Aristotelian God likely refers to what Aristotle means by the active intellect, the νους that has been called ποιητικος—that is, what is essential yet unconscious in human thought. The νους ποιητικος is Science in its entirety, presented all at once, which the conscious, analytical intellect struggles to piece together, bit by bit. So, there exists within us, or rather behind us, a possible perception of God, as the Alexandrians suggested, a vision that is always virtual, never fully realized by conscious thought. In this intuition, we should see God expand into Ideas. This is what "does everything,"[102] operating in relation to the analytical intellect, which moves through time, in the same way that the unmoving Mover relates to the movement of the heavens and the flow of events.
There is, then, immanent in the philosophy of Ideas, a particular conception of causality, which it is important[Pg 323] to bring into full light, because it is that which each of us will reach when, in order to ascend to the origin of things, he follows to the end the natural movement of the intellect. True, the ancient philosophers never formulated it explicitly. They confined themselves to drawing the consequences of it, and, in general, they have marked but points of view of it rather than presented it itself. Sometimes, indeed, they speak of an attraction, sometimes of an impulsion exercised by the prime mover on the whole of the world. Both views are found in Aristotle, who shows us in the movement of the universe an aspiration of things toward the divine perfection, and consequently an ascent toward God, while he describes it elsewhere as the effect of a contact of God with the first sphere and as descending, consequently, from God to things. The Alexandrians, we think, do no more than follow this double indication when they speak of procession and conversion. Everything is derived from the first principle, and everything aspires to return to it. But these two conceptions of the divine causality can only be identified together if we bring them, both the one and the other, back to a third, which we hold to be fundamental, and which alone will enable us to understand, not only why, in what sense, things move in space and time, but also why there is space and time, why there is movement, why there are things.
There is, then, inherent in the philosophy of Ideas, a specific idea of causality that it's important[Pg 323] to fully illuminate, because it’s what each of us will discover when we seek the origin of things by following the natural course of our intellect. True, ancient philosophers never stated this explicitly. They focused on drawing its implications and generally provided perspectives on it rather than presenting it directly. Sometimes, they refer to an attraction; other times, they mention an impulsion exerted by the prime mover on the entire world. Both views are found in Aristotle, who shows us how the movement of the universe reflects a longing of things toward divine perfection, indicating an ascent toward God, while also describing it as the result of God's contact with the first sphere, which means it descends from God to things. The Alexandrians seemingly follow this dual indication when they discuss procession and conversion. Everything originates from the first principle, and everything wishes to return to it. However, these two concepts of divine causality can only be cohesively understood if we connect both back to a third concept, which we consider fundamental, and which alone will allow us to comprehend not only why and how things move through space and time, but also why space and time exist, why movement occurs, and why there are things.
This conception, which more and more shows through the reasonings of the Greek philosophers as we go from Plato to Plotinus, we may formulate thus: The affirmation of a reality implies the simultaneous affirmation of all the degrees of reality intermediate between it and nothing. The principle is evident in the case of number: we cannot affirm the number 10 without thereby affirming the existence of the numbers 9, 8, 7, ..., etc.—in short, of the whole interval between 10 and zero. But here our mind passes[Pg 324] naturally from the sphere of quantity to that of quality. It seems to us that, a certain perfection being given, the whole continuity of degradations is given also between this perfection, on the one hand, and the nought, on the other hand, that we think we conceive. Let us then posit the God of Aristotle, thought of thought—that is, thought making a circle, transforming itself from subject to object and from object to subject by an instantaneous, or rather an eternal, circular process: as, on the other hand, the nought appears to posit itself, and as, the two extremities being given, the interval between them is equally given, it follows that all the descending degrees of being, from the divine perfection down to the "absolute nothing," are realized automatically, so to speak, when we have posited God.
This idea, which increasingly emerges in the arguments of Greek philosophers as we move from Plato to Plotinus, can be stated as follows: A claim of a reality requires the simultaneous acknowledgment of all the levels of reality that exist between it and nothingness. This principle is clear when we consider numbers: we cannot claim the existence of the number 10 without also acknowledging the existence of the numbers 9, 8, 7, ..., etc.—in other words, the entire range between 10 and zero. However, our thinking shifts[Pg 324] naturally from the realm of quantity to that of quality. It seems that when a certain form of perfection is given, the entire spectrum of diminishing qualities is also present between that perfection and nothingness, which we believe we understand. Let’s then consider Aristotle’s God, the thought of thought—this is thought making a circle, transforming itself continuously from subject to object and from object to subject in an instant, or rather in an eternal, circular way: and just as nothingness seems to posit itself, with both extremes given, the range between them is inherently established. Therefore, all the diminishing levels of being, from divine perfection down to “absolute nothing,” are automatically realized, so to speak, when we acknowledge the existence of God.
Let us then run through this interval from top to bottom. First of all, the slightest diminution of the first principle will be enough to precipitate Being into space and time; but duration and extension, which represent this first diminution, will be as near as possible to the divine inextension and eternity. We must therefore picture to ourselves this first degradation of the divine principle as a sphere turning on itself, imitating, by the perpetuity of its circular movement, the eternity of the circle of the divine thought; creating, moreover, its own place, and thereby place in general,[103] since it includes without being included and moves without stirring from the spot; creating also its own duration, and thereby duration in general, since its movement is the measure of all motion.[104] Then, by de[Pg 325]grees, we shall see the perfection decrease, more and more, down to our sublunary world, in which the cycle of birth, growth and decay imitates and mars the original circle for the last time. So understood, the causal relation between God and the world is seen as an attraction when regarded from below, as an impulsion or a contact when regarded from above, since the first heaven, with its circular movement, is an imitation of God and all imitation is the reception of a form. Therefore, we perceive God as efficient cause or as final cause, according to the point of view. And yet neither of these two relations is the ultimate causal relation. The true relation is that which is found between the two members of an equation, when the first member is a single term and the second a sum of an endless number of terms. It is, we may say, the relation of the gold-piece to the small change, if we suppose the change to offer itself automatically as soon as the gold piece is presented. Only thus can we understand why Aristotle has demonstrated the necessity of a first motionless mover, not by founding it on the assertion that the movement of things must have had a beginning, but, on the contrary, by affirming that this movement could not have begun and can never come to an end. If movement exists, or, in other words, if the small change is being counted, the gold piece is to be found somewhere. And if the counting goes on for ever, having never begun, the single term that is eminently equivalent to it must be eternal. A perpetuity of mobility is possible only if it is backed by an eternity of immutability, which it unwinds in a chain without beginning or end.
Let's then explore this interval from start to finish. First off, even the slightest reduction of the first principle will be enough to throw Being into space and time; however, duration and extension, which represent this first reduction, will be as close as possible to the divine inextension and eternity. We should imagine this initial degradation of the divine principle as a sphere spinning on itself, mirroring the eternity of the divine thought through its continuous circular motion; it creates its own space, and thus space in general, since it includes without being included and moves without actually changing its location; it also creates its own duration, and thereby duration in general, as its movement measures all motion. Then, gradually, we'll see the perfection diminish, more and more, down to our earthly world, where the cycle of birth, growth, and decay mimics and distorts the original circle for the final time. Understood this way, the causal relationship between God and the world appears as an attraction when viewed from below, and as a push or contact when seen from above, since the first heaven, with its circular movement, mirrors God, and all imitation represents the reception of a form. Therefore, we see God as either an efficient cause or a final cause, depending on the perspective. Yet neither of these two relationships represents the ultimate causal relationship. The true connection is found between the two sides of an equation, where the first side is a single term and the second side is a sum of countless terms. It’s akin to the relationship of a gold coin to small change, assuming that the change appears automatically as soon as the gold coin is presented. Only then can we understand why Aristotle proved the necessity of a first unmoving mover, not by claiming that the movement of things must have had a beginning, but rather by affirming that this movement couldn’t have started and can never end. If movement exists, or in other words, if the small change is being counted, the gold coin must be somewhere. And if the counting goes on forever, having never started, the single term that equivalently represents it must be eternal. An endless flow of mobility is only possible if it is supported by an eternity of immutability, which it unfolds in a chain without beginning or end.
Such is the last word of the Greek philosophy. We have not attempted to reconstruct it a priori. It has manifold origins. It is connected by many invisible threads to the soul of ancient Greece. Vain, therefore, the effort[Pg 326] to deduce it from a simple principle.[105] But if everything that has come from poetry, religion, social life and a still rudimentary physics and biology be removed from it, if we take away all the light material that may have been used in the construction of the stately building, a solid framework remains, and this framework marks out the main lines of a metaphysic which is, we believe, the natural metaphysic of the human intellect. We come to a philosophy of this kind, indeed, whenever we follow to the end, the cinematographical tendency of perception and thought. Our perception and thought begin by substituting for the continuity of evolutionary change a series of unchangeable forms which are turn by turn, "caught on the wing," like the rings at a merry-go-round, which the children unhook with their little stick as they are passing. Now, how can the forms be passing, and on what "stick" are they strung? As the stable forms have been obtained by extracting from change everything that is definite, there is nothing left, to characterize the instability on which the forms are laid, but a negative attribute, which must be indetermination itself. Such is the first proceeding of our thought: it dissociates each change into two elements—the one stable, definable for each particular case, to wit, the Form; the other indefinable and always the same, Change in general. And such, also, is the essential operation of language. Forms are all that it is capable of expressing. It is reduced to taking as understood or is limited to suggesting a mobility which, just because it is always unexpressed, is thought to remain in all cases the same.—Then comes in a philosophy that holds the dissociation thus effected by thought and language to be legitimate. What can it do,[Pg 327] except objectify the distinction with more force, push it to its extreme consequences, reduce it into a system? It will therefore construct the real, on the one hand, with definite Forms or immutable elements, and, on the other, with a principle of mobility which, being the negation of the form, will, by the hypothesis, escape all definition and be the purely indeterminate. The more it directs its attention to the forms delineated by thought and expressed by language, the more it will see them rise above the sensible and become subtilized into pure concepts, capable of entering one within the other, and even of being at last massed together into a single concept, the synthesis of all reality, the achievement of all perfection. The more, on the contrary, it descends toward the invisible source of the universal mobility, the more it will feel this mobility sink beneath it and at the same time become void, vanish into what it will call the "non-being." Finally, it will have on the one hand the system of ideas, logically coördinated together or concentrated into one only, on the other a quasi-nought, the Platonic "non-being" or the Aristotelian "matter."—But, having cut your cloth, you must sew it. With supra-sensible Ideas and an infra-sensible non-being, you now have to reconstruct the sensible world. You can do so only if you postulate a kind of metaphysical necessity in virtue of which the confronting of this All with this Zero is equivalent to the affirmation of all the degrees of reality that measure the interval between them—just as an undivided number, when regarded as a difference between itself and zero, is revealed as a certain sum of units, and with its own affirmation affirms all the lower numbers. That is the natural postulate. It is that also that we perceive as the base of the Greek philosophy. In order then to explain the specific characters of each of these degrees of intermediate reality, nothing more is necessary than[Pg 328] to measure the distance that separates it from the integral reality. Each lower degree consists in a diminution of the higher, and the sensible newness that we perceive in it is resolved, from the point of view of the intelligible, into a new quantity of negation which is superadded to it. The smallest possible quantity of negation, that which is found already in the highest forms of sensible reality, and consequently a fortiori in the lower forms, is that which is expressed by the most general attributes of sensible reality, extension and duration. By increasing degradations we will obtain attributes more and more special. Here the philosopher's fancy will have free scope, for it is by an arbitrary decree, or at least a debatable one, that a particular aspect of the sensible world will be equated with a particular diminution of being. We shall not necessarily end, as Aristotle did, in a world consisting of concentric spheres turning on themselves. But we shall be led to an analogous cosmology—I mean, to a construction whose pieces, though all different, will have none the less the same relations between them. And this cosmology will be ruled by the same principle. The physical will be defined by the logical. Beneath the changing phenomena will appear to us, by transparence, a closed system of concepts subordinated to and coördinated with each other. Science, understood as the system of concepts, will be more real than the sensible reality. It will be prior to human knowledge, which is only able to spell it letter by letter; prior also to things, which awkwardly try to imitate it. It would only have to be diverted an instant from itself in order to step out of its eternity and thereby coincide with all this knowledge and all these things. Its immutability is therefore, indeed, the cause of the universal becoming.
Such is the final statement of Greek philosophy. We haven't tried to reconstruct it a priori. It has many different origins. It’s intertwined by many invisible threads with the spirit of ancient Greece. Therefore, it's futile[Pg 326] to deduce it from a simple principle.[105] But if we remove everything that has come from poetry, religion, social life, and a still basic understanding of physics and biology, if we strip away all the lighter materials used to build this grand structure, a solid framework remains, and this framework outlines the main aspects of a metaphysic that we believe is the natural metaphysical understanding of the human mind. We arrive at such a philosophy whenever we fully pursue the cinematic tendency of perception and thought. Our perception and thought begin by replacing the continuous process of evolutionary change with a series of unchanging forms that are, in turn, "caught on the fly," like the rings on a carousel that children unhook with their little sticks as they pass by. Now, how can the forms be passing, and on what "stick" are they strung? Since the stable forms are derived by taking everything definite out of change, what's left to describe the instability on which these forms are based is only a negative attribute, which must be indeterminacy itself. This is the first move of our thought: it separates each change into two elements—one stable, definable for each specific case, namely the Form; the other indefinable and always the same, which we call Change in general. And this is also the key function of language. Forms are all that language can express. It boils down to taking for granted or is limited to suggesting a mobility that, because it is always unexpressed, is thought to remain the same in all cases. Then comes a philosophy that considers this separation done by thought and language to be valid. What can it do,[Pg 327] except objectify the distinction more forcefully, push it to its extreme consequences, and reduce it into a system? It will, therefore, build reality, on one hand, with definite Forms or unchanging elements and, on the other, a principle of mobility which, being the negation of the form, will necessarily escape all definition and be purely indeterminate. The more it focuses on the forms outlined by thought and expressed by language, the more it will see them rise above the tangible and become refined into pure concepts, capable of fitting within one another and even eventually merging into a single concept, the synthesis of all reality and the pinnacle of all perfection. Conversely, the more it descends toward the invisible source of universal mobility, the more it will perceive this mobility sinking beneath it and simultaneously becoming void, disappearing into what it will call "non-being." In the end, it will have, on one side, a system of ideas logically coordinated or concentrated into one, and on the other, a kind of zero, the Platonic "non-being" or the Aristotelian "matter."—But, once you've made your decision, you must take action. With supra-sensible Ideas and infra-sensible non-being, you now need to reconstruct the sensible world. You can do this only if you assume a kind of metaphysical necessity by which confronting this Whole with this Zero is equivalent to affirming all the levels of reality that span the distance between them—just like an undivided number, viewed as a difference from zero, reveals itself as a certain sum of units, which, in its own affirmation, affirms all the lower numbers. That is the natural assumption. It's also what we recognize as the foundation of Greek philosophy. To explain the unique characteristics of each of these levels of intermediate reality, all we need to do is[Pg 328] measure the distance that separates it from the complete reality. Each lower level represents a reduction of the higher, and the sensible novelty that we perceive in it is interpreted, from the standpoint of the intelligible, as a new quantity of negation added to it. The smallest possible amount of negation, found already in the highest forms of sensible reality, and consequently a fortiori in the lower forms, is expressed by the most general attributes of sensible reality: extension and duration. Through increasing degradations, we will acquire attributes that become increasingly specific. Here, the philosopher's imagination will run wild, as it is through an arbitrary decision—if not at least a debatable one—that a specific aspect of the sensible world is equated with a particular reduction of being. We won't necessarily arrive, as Aristotle did, at a world of concentric spheres rotating around themselves. However, we will be led to a similar cosmology—I mean, to a construction whose parts, though all different, will still maintain the same relationships between them. This cosmology will be governed by the same principle. The physical will be defined by the logical. Beneath the changing phenomena, we will perceive transparently a closed system of concepts subordinate to and coordinated with one another. Science, understood as the system of concepts, will be more real than tangible reality. It will precede human knowledge, which can only decipher it piece by piece; it will also precede things, which clumsily attempt to emulate it. It would only need to be diverted for a moment from itself to step out of its eternity and coincide with all this knowledge and these things. Its unchanging nature is therefore indeed the cause of universal becoming.
Such was the point of view of ancient philosophy in[Pg 329] regard to change and duration. That modern philosophy has repeatedly, but especially in its beginnings, had the wish to depart from it, seems to us unquestionable. But an irresistible attraction brings the intellect back to its natural movement, and the metaphysic of the moderns to the general conclusions of the Greek metaphysic. We must try to make this point clear, in order to show by what invisible threads our mechanistic philosophy remains bound to the ancient philosophy of Ideas, and how also it responds to the requirements, above all practical, of our understanding.
Such was the perspective of ancient philosophy regarding change and permanence. It's clear that modern philosophy has often wanted to move away from this, especially at its inception. However, an undeniable pull draws the mind back to its natural course, and modern metaphysics aligns with the general conclusions of Greek metaphysics. We need to clarify this point to demonstrate how our mechanistic philosophy is still connected to the ancient philosophy of Ideas and how it meets the practical needs of our understanding.
Modern, like ancient, science proceeds according to the cinematographical method. It cannot do otherwise; all science is subject to this law. For it is of the essence of science to handle signs, which it substitutes for the objects themselves. These signs undoubtedly differ from those of language by their greater precision and their higher efficacy; they are none the less tied down to the general condition of the sign, which is to denote a fixed aspect of the reality under an arrested form. In order to think movement, a constantly renewed effort of the mind is necessary. Signs are made to dispense us with this effort by substituting, for the moving continuity of things, an artificial reconstruction which is its equivalent in practice and has the advantage of being easily handled. But let us leave aside the means and consider only the end. What is the essential object of science? It is to enlarge our influence over things. Science may be speculative in its form, disinterested in its immediate ends; in other words we may give it as long a credit as it wants. But, however long the day of reckoning may be put off, some time or other the payment must be made. It is always then, in short, practical utility that science has in view. Even[Pg 330] when it launches into theory, it is bound to adapt its behavior to the general form of practice. However high it may rise, it must be ready to fall back into the field of action, and at once to get on its feet. This would not be possible for it, if its rhythm differed absolutely from that of action itself. Now action, we have said, proceeds by leaps. To act is to re-adapt oneself. To know, that is to say, to foresee in order to act, is then to go from situation to situation, from arrangement to rearrangement. Science may consider rearrangements that come closer and closer to each other; it may thus increase the number of moments that it isolates, but it always isolates moments. As to what happens in the interval between the moments, science is no more concerned with that than are our common intelligence, our senses and our language: it does not bear on the interval, but only on the extremities. So the cinematographical method forces itself upon our science, as it did already on that of the ancients.
Modern science, like ancient science, operates using a cinematographic method. It has to; all science follows this principle. The essence of science is to work with signs, which it uses in place of the objects themselves. These signs certainly differ from language signs in their greater precision and effectiveness; however, they are still bound by the general condition of a sign, which is to represent a fixed aspect of reality in a static form. To comprehend movement, a continuous effort of the mind is required. Signs are designed to relieve us from this effort by replacing the flowing continuity of things with an artificial reconstruction that works in practice and is easy to manage. But let’s set aside the means and focus on the goal. What is the main objective of science? It is to expand our control over things. Science may be theoretical in its form, and detached in its immediate goals; in other words, we can give it as much credit as it needs. But no matter how long we delay the reckoning, at some point, payment must be made. Ultimately, it’s always practical utility that science aims for. Even[Pg 330] when it delves into theory, it must adjust its approach to match the general patterns of practice. No matter how high it ascends, it has to be prepared to return to action and quickly get back on track. This wouldn’t be possible if its rhythm didn’t align with that of action itself. Action, as we mentioned, progresses in jumps. To act is to readjust oneself. To know, which means to anticipate in order to act, involves moving from one situation to another, from one arrangement to the next. Science may focus on arrangements that become increasingly similar; thus, it can raise the number of moments it isolates, but it always isolates moments. As for what occurs in the gaps between those moments, science is just as unconcerned with that as our everyday understanding, our senses, and our language: it only deals with the extremes, not the intervals. Therefore, the cinematographic method imposes itself on our science, just as it did on that of the ancients.
Wherein, then, is the difference between the two sciences? We indicated it when we said that the ancients reduced the physical order to the vital order, that is to say, laws to genera, while the moderns try to resolve genera into laws. But we have to look at it in another aspect, which, moreover, is only a transposition, of the first. Wherein consists the difference of attitude of the two sciences toward change? We may formulate it by saying that ancient science thinks it knows its object sufficiently when it has noted of it some privileged moments, whereas modern science considers the object at any moment whatever.
Where, then, is the difference between the two sciences? We pointed it out when we mentioned that the ancients reduced the physical order to the vital order, meaning they turned laws into categories, while the moderns aim to break down categories into laws. However, we need to examine it from another angle, which is actually just a rephrasing of the first. What is the difference in the attitude of the two sciences toward change? We can summarize it by saying that ancient science believes it understands its subject well enough when it has observed some key moments, while modern science looks at the subject at any moment.
The forms or ideas of Plato or of Aristotle correspond to privileged or salient moments in the history of things—those, in general, that have been fixed by language. They are supposed, like the childhood or the old age of a living being, to characterize a period of which they express the[Pg 331] quintessence, all the rest of this period being filled by the passage, of no interest in itself, from one form to another form. Take, for instance, a falling body. It was thought that we got near enough to the fact when we characterized it as a whole: it was a movement downward; it was the tendency toward a centre; it was the natural movement of a body which, separated from the earth to which it belonged, was now going to find its place again. They noted, then, the final term or culminating point (τελος ακμη) and set it up as the essential moment: this moment, that language has retained in order to express the whole of the fact, sufficed also for science to characterize it. In the physics of Aristotle, it is by the concepts "high" and "low," spontaneous displacement and forced displacement, own place and strange place, that the movement of a body shot into space or falling freely is defined. But Galileo thought there was no essential moment, no privileged instant. To study the falling body is to consider it at it matters not what moment in its course. The true science of gravity is that which will determine, for any moment of time whatever, the position of the body in space. For this, indeed, signs far more precise than those of language are required.
The ideas of Plato and Aristotle represent important moments in the history of things—those that have generally been defined by language. They're thought to, like the childhood or old age of a living being, define a period that expresses the[Pg 331] essence of that time, while the rest of the period is filled with the unremarkable transition from one form to another. For example, consider a falling body. It was believed that we understood it well enough when we described it in total: it was a movement downward; it was the tendency toward a center; it was the natural movement of a body that, having been separated from the earth it belonged to, was now trying to find its place again. They focused on the end point (τελος ακμη) and established it as the key moment: this moment, which language kept to express the whole fact, was also enough for science to define it. In Aristotle's physics, the movement of a body shot into space or falling freely is described through concepts like "high" and "low," spontaneous and forced movement, own place and strange place. However, Galileo believed there was no key moment, no special instant. To study the falling body means considering it at any point in its journey. The true science of gravity is one that will determine the body's position in space at any given moment. For this, much more precise indicators than those of language are necessary.
We may say, then, that our physics differs from that of the ancients chiefly in the indefinite breaking up of time. For the ancients, time comprises as many undivided periods as our natural perception and our language cut out in it successive facts, each presenting a kind of individuality. For that reason, each of these facts admits, in their view, of only a total definition or description. If, in describing it, we are led to distinguish phases in it, we have several facts instead of a single one, several undivided periods instead of a single period; but time is always supposed to be divided into determinate periods, and the mode of division to be forced on the mind by apparent crises of the real,[Pg 332] comparable to that of puberty, by the apparent release of a new form.—For a Kepler or a Galileo, on the contrary, time is not divided objectively in one way or another by the matter that fills it. It has no natural articulations. We can, we ought to, divide it as we please. All moments count. None of them has the right to set itself up as a moment that represents or dominates the others. And, consequently, we know a change only when we are able to determine what it is about at any one of its moments.
We can say that our understanding of physics differs from that of the ancients mainly in how we understand and break up time. For the ancients, time consists of distinct periods that our natural perception and language define as separate events, each with its own uniqueness. Because of this, they believed each event could only be described as a whole. If we try to highlight different phases within an event, we end up with multiple events instead of just one, multiple distinct periods instead of just one. However, time is always assumed to be divided into specific periods, with divisions shaped by noticeable changes in reality, similar to the changes of puberty that signal the emergence of a new phase. In contrast, for thinkers like Kepler and Galileo, time isn't objectively divided by the things that fill it. It doesn't have natural breaks. We can and should divide it however we want. Every moment matters. None of them has the authority to claim to represent or overshadow the others. Therefore, we only understand a change when we can identify what it refers to at any given moment.
The difference is profound. In fact, in a certain aspect it is radical. But, from the point of view from which we are regarding it, it is a difference of degree rather than of kind. The human mind has passed from the first kind of knowledge to the second through gradual perfecting, simply by seeking a higher precision. There is the same relation between these two sciences as between the noting of the phases of a movement by the eye and the much more complete recording of these phases by instantaneous photography. It is the same cinematographical mechanism in both cases, but it reaches a precision in the second that it cannot have in the first. Of the gallop of a horse our eye perceives chiefly a characteristic, essential or rather schematic attitude, a form that appears to radiate over a whole period and so fill up a time of gallop. It is this attitude that sculpture has fixed on the frieze of the Parthenon. But instantaneous photography isolates any moment; it puts them all in the same rank, and thus the gallop of a horse spreads out for it into as many successive attitudes as it wishes, instead of massing itself into a single attitude, which is supposed to flash out in a privileged moment and to illuminate a whole period.
The difference is significant. In fact, in some ways, it’s revolutionary. However, from the perspective we’re considering, it’s more about differences in degree than in kind. Human knowledge has evolved from one type to another through gradual improvement, simply by striving for greater accuracy. The relationship between these two sciences is similar to observing the stages of a movement with our eyes versus capturing those movements with instant photography. Both use the same basic mechanism, but the second achieves a level of precision that the first cannot. When we see a horse gallop, our eyes mainly catch a distinctive, essential, or rather simplified posture—an image that seems to represent the entire duration of the gallop. This posture is what sculpture has captured on the frieze of the Parthenon. However, instant photography captures every moment; it treats them all equally, allowing the gallop of a horse to unfold into as many successive postures as desired, rather than collapsing it into a single posture that’s meant to embody a crucial moment and reflect the entire period.
From this original difference flow all the others. A science that considers, one after the other, undivided periods of duration, sees nothing but phases succeeding phases,[Pg 333] forms replacing forms; it is content with a qualitative description of objects, which it likens to organized beings. But when we seek to know what happens within one of these periods, at any moment of time, we are aiming at something entirely different. The changes which are produced from one moment to another are no longer, by the hypothesis, changes of quality; they are quantitative variations, it may be of the phenomenon itself, it may be of its elementary parts. We were right then to say that modern science is distinguishable from the ancient in that it applies to magnitudes and proposes first and foremost to measure them. The ancients did indeed try experiments, and on the other hand Kepler tried no experiment, in the proper sense of the word, in order to discover a law which is the very type of scientific knowledge as we understand it. What distinguishes modern science is not that it is experimental, but that it experiments and, more generally, works only with a view to measure.
From this original difference flow all the others. A science that looks at uninterrupted periods of time sees nothing but phases following one another,[Pg 333] forms replacing forms; it focuses on a qualitative description of objects, which it compares to organized beings. However, when we try to understand what happens within one of these periods at any specific moment, we are targeting something completely different. The changes that occur from one moment to the next are no longer, by definition, changes of quality; they are quantitative variations, either of the phenomenon itself or of its basic components. We were correct to say that modern science differs from ancient science in that it deals with magnitudes and primarily aims to measure them. The ancients did conduct experiments, while Kepler, on the other hand, didn't perform any proper experiments to discover a law that represents the very essence of scientific knowledge as we define it today. What sets modern science apart is not its experimental nature but that it conducts experiments and, more broadly, works with the goal of measurement.
For that reason it is right, again, to say that ancient science applied to concepts, while modern science seeks laws—constant relations between variable magnitudes. The concept of circularity was sufficient to Aristotle to define the movement of the heavenly bodies. But, even with the more accurate concept of elliptical form, Kepler did not think he had accounted for the movement of planets. He had to get a law, that is to say, a constant relation between the quantitative variations of two or several elements of the planetary movement.
For that reason, it's fair to say that ancient science focused on concepts, while modern science looks for laws—consistent relationships between changing values. Aristotle found the idea of circularity enough to describe the movement of the heavenly bodies. However, even with a more precise understanding of elliptical shapes, Kepler believed he still hadn't fully explained how planets moved. He needed to establish a law, meaning a constant relationship between the quantitative changes of two or more factors in planetary movement.
Yet these are only consequences—differences that follow from the fundamental difference. It did happen to the ancients accidentally to experiment with a view to measuring, as also to discover a law expressing a constant relation between magnitudes. The principle of Archimedes is a true experimental law. It takes into account three variable[Pg 334] magnitudes: the volume of a body, the density of the liquid in which the body is immersed, the vertical pressure that is being exerted. And it states indeed that one of these three terms is a function of the other two.
Yet these are only results—differences that come from the fundamental difference. The ancients happened to experiment with the aim of measuring, and they also discovered a law that expresses a constant relationship between quantities. The principle of Archimedes is a real experimental law. It considers three variable[Pg 334] quantities: the volume of a body, the density of the liquid the body is in, and the vertical pressure being applied. And it indeed states that one of these three terms depends on the other two.
The essential, original difference must therefore be sought elsewhere. It is the same that we noticed first. The science of the ancients is static. Either it considers in block the change that it studies, or, if it divides the change into periods, it makes of each of these periods a block in its turn: which amounts to saying that it takes no account of time. But modern science has been built up around the discoveries of Galileo and of Kepler, which immediately furnished it with a model. Now, what do the laws of Kepler say? They lay down a relation between the areas described by the heliocentric radius-vector of a planet and the time employed in describing them, a relation between the longer axis of the orbit and the time taken up by the course. And what was the principle discovered by Galileo? A law which connected the space traversed by a falling body with the time occupied by the fall. Furthermore, in what did the first of the great transformations of geometry in modern times consist, if not in introducing—in a veiled form, it is true—time and movement even in the consideration of figures? For the ancients, geometry was a purely static science. Figures were given to it at once, completely finished, like the Platonic Ideas. But the essence of the Cartesian geometry (although Descartes did not give it this form) was to regard every plane curve as described by the movement of a point on a movable straight line which is displaced, parallel to itself, along the axis of the abscissae—the displacement of the movable straight line being supposed to be uniform and the abscissa thus becoming representative of the time. The curve is then defined if we can state the relation connecting the space[Pg 335] traversed on the movable straight line to the time employed in traversing it, that is, if we are able to indicate the position of the movable point, on the straight line which it traverses, at any moment whatever of its course. This relation is just what we call the equation of the curve. To substitute an equation for a figure consists, therefore, in seeing the actual position of the moving points in the tracing of the curve at any moment whatever, instead of regarding this tracing all at once, gathered up in the unique moment when the curve has reached its finished state.
The fundamental, original difference must therefore be found elsewhere. It’s the same observation we made earlier. Ancient science is static. It either looks at change as a whole or, if it breaks change into periods, treats each of those periods as a complete unit in itself, which essentially means it ignores time. In contrast, modern science is built on the discoveries of Galileo and Kepler, which provided an immediate model. So, what do Kepler's laws state? They establish a relationship between the areas covered by a planet’s heliocentric radius-vector and the time taken to cover them, as well as a relationship between the longer axis of the orbit and the time involved in its path. And what principle did Galileo discover? A law that connects the distance traveled by a falling object with the time taken for the fall. Moreover, what did the first major transformation of geometry in modern times consist of if not introducing—albeit subtly—time and motion in the study of shapes? For the ancients, geometry was a strictly static science. Figures were presented all at once, fully formed, like Platonic Ideas. However, the essence of Cartesian geometry (even though Descartes didn’t frame it this way) was to view every plane curve as created by the movement of a point on a moving straight line that shifts parallel to itself along the x-axis—assuming the movement of the straight line is uniform, thus making the x-coordinate representative of time. The curve is then defined if we can describe the relationship linking the distance traveled on the moving straight line to the time taken to travel that distance, meaning we can determine the position of the moving point on the straight line at any moment during its journey. This relationship is what we refer to as the equation of the curve. To replace a figure with an equation, then, means to observe the current position of the moving points in tracing the curve at any moment, rather than viewing the tracing all at once, gathered in the single moment when the curve is fully formed.
Such, then, was the directing idea of the reform by which both the science of nature and mathematics, which serves as its instrument, were renewed. Modern science is the daughter of astronomy; it has come down from heaven to earth along the inclined plane of Galileo, for it is through Galileo that Newton and his successors are connected with Kepler. Now, how did the astronomical problem present itself to Kepler? The question was, knowing the respective positions of the planets at a given moment, how to calculate their positions at any other moment. So the same question presented itself, henceforth, for every material system. Each material point became a rudimentary planet, and the main question, the ideal problem whose solution would yield the key to all the others was, the positions of these elements at a particular moment being given, how to determine their relative positions at any moment. No doubt the problem cannot be put in these precise terms except in very simple cases, for a schematized reality; for we never know the respective positions of the real elements of matter, supposing there are real elements; and, even if we knew them at a given moment, the calculation of their positions at another moment would generally require a mathematical effort surpassing human powers. But it is enough for us to know that these elements might be known,[Pg 336] that their present positions might be noted, and that a superhuman intellect might, by submitting these data to mathematical operations, determine the positions of the elements at any other moment of time. This conviction is at the bottom of the questions we put to ourselves on the subject of nature, and of the methods we employ to solve them. That is why every law in static form seems to us as a provisional instalment or as a particular view of a dynamic law which alone would give us whole and definitive knowledge.
So, that was the main idea behind the reform that renewed both the science of nature and mathematics, which serves as its tool. Modern science is the offspring of astronomy; it has come from the heavens to the earth along the inclined plane of Galileo, since it is through Galileo that Newton and his successors are linked to Kepler. Now, how did the astronomical problem appear to Kepler? The question was, given the positions of the planets at a certain moment, how to calculate their positions at any other moment. The same question soon applied to every material system. Each material point became a basic planet, and the central question, the ideal problem whose solution would provide the key to all others was, given the positions of these elements at a specific moment, how to determine their relative positions at any moment. Certainly, this problem can't be expressed in these exact terms except in very simple cases, for a simplified reality; because we never know the actual positions of the real elements of matter, assuming there are real elements; and even if we knew them at a given moment, calculating their positions at another moment would typically require a mathematical effort beyond human capabilities. But it’s enough for us to understand that these elements might be known, that their current positions might be recorded, and that a superhuman intellect could, by applying mathematical operations to this data, determine the positions of the elements at any other moment in time. This belief underlies the questions we ask ourselves about nature and the methods we use to address them. That’s why every law in a static form seems to us like a temporary installment or a particular perspective of a dynamic law that alone would provide complete and definitive knowledge.
Let us conclude, then, that our science is not only distinguished from ancient science in this, that it seeks laws, nor even in this, that its laws set forth relations between magnitudes: we must add that the magnitude to which we wish to be able to relate all others is time, and that modern science must be defined pre-eminently by its aspiration to take time as an independent variable. But with what time has it to do?
Let’s wrap it up by saying that our science isn’t just different from ancient science because it looks for laws, or even because its laws explain relationships between sizes. We also need to mention that the size we want to relate all others to is time, and that modern science should primarily be defined by its goal to treat time as an independent variable. But what kind of time are we talking about?
We have said before, and we cannot repeat too often, that the science of matter proceeds like ordinary knowledge. It perfects this knowledge, increases its precision and its scope, but it works in the same direction and puts the same mechanism into play. If, therefore, ordinary knowledge, by reason of the cinematographical mechanism to which it is subjected, forbears to follow becoming in so far as becoming is moving, the science of matter renounces it equally. No doubt, it distinguishes as great a number of moments as we wish in the interval of time it considers. However small the intervals may be at which it stops, it authorizes us to divide them again if necessary. In contrast with ancient science, which stopped at certain so-called essential moments, it is occupied indifferently with any moment whatever. But it always considers moments, always virtual stopping-places, always, in short, immobili[Pg 337]ties. Which amounts to saying that real time, regarded as a flux, or, in other words, as the very mobility of being, escapes the hold of scientific knowledge. We have already tried to establish this point in a former work. We alluded to it again in the first chapter of this book. But it is necessary to revert to it once more, in order to clear up misunderstandings.
We have mentioned before, and we can’t say it enough, that the science of matter operates like regular knowledge. It enhances this knowledge, sharpens its accuracy and expands its reach, but it moves in the same direction and uses the same mechanisms. Therefore, if regular knowledge, due to the cinematographic mechanism it’s subjected to, refrains from following change as it happens, the science of matter does the same. Certainly, it can identify as many moments as we want in the time frame it examines. No matter how small the intervals may be that it focuses on, it allows us to break them down further if needed. Unlike ancient science, which stopped at certain so-called essential moments, it is equally focused on any given moment. However, it constantly examines moments, always virtual stopping points, which ultimately means that real time, viewed as a flow, or in other words, as the very movement of existence, slips out of the grasp of scientific knowledge. We have already tried to establish this in a previous work. We mentioned it again in the first chapter of this book. But we need to return to it once more to clarify any misunderstandings.
When positive science speaks of time, what it refers to is the movement of a certain mobile T on its trajectory. This movement has been chosen by it as representative of time, and it is, by definition, uniform. Let us call T1, T2, T3, ... etc., points which divide the trajectory of the mobile into equal parts from its origin T0. We shall say that 1, 2, 3, ... units of time have flowed past, when the mobile is at the points T1, T2 T3, ... of the line it traverses. Accordingly, to consider the state of the universe at the end of a certain time t, is to examine where it will be when T is at the point Tt of its course. But of the flux itself of time, still less of its effect on consciousness, there is here no question; for there enter into the calculation only the points T1, T2, T3, ... taken on the flux, never the flux itself. We may narrow the time considered as much as we will, that is, break up at will the interval between two consecutive divisions Tn and Tn-|-1; but it is always with points, and with points only, that we are dealing. What we retain of the movement of the mobile T are positions taken on its trajectory. What we retain of all the other points of the universe are their positions on their respective trajectories. To each virtual stop of the moving body T at the points of division T1, T2, T3, ... we make correspond a virtual stop of all the other mobiles at the points where they are passing. And when we say that a movement or any other change has occupied a time t, we mean by it that we have noted a number t of corre[Pg 338]spondences of this kind. We have therefore counted simultaneities; we have not concerned ourselves with the flux that goes from one to another. The proof of this is that I can, at discretion, vary the rapidity of the flux of the universe in regard to a consciousness that is independent of it and that would perceive the variation by the quite qualitative feeling that it would have of it: whatever the variation had been, since the movement of T would participate in this variation, I should have nothing to change in my equations nor in the numbers that figure in them.
When science talks about time, it’s referring to the movement of a certain object T along its path. This movement has been designated as a representation of time, and it is, by definition, consistent. Let’s call T1, T2, T3, etc., the points that break the path of the object into equal segments starting from its origin T0. We’ll say that 1, 2, 3, ... units of time have passed when the object is at points T1, T2, T3, ... on the line it travels. So, to consider the state of the universe at the end of a certain time t, is to look at where it will be when T reaches the point Tt in its journey. However, there is no discussion here of the actual flow of time, nor its effect on consciousness; the calculation only includes the points T1, T2, T3, ... selected along the flow, not the flow itself. We can narrow the time interval as much as we want, that is, break down the gap between two consecutive points Tn and Tn-|-1; but we’re always working with points, and only points. What we capture from the movement of object T are positions taken along its path. What we gather from all the other points in the universe are their positions on their respective paths. For every virtual stop of the moving object T at the division points T1, T2, T3, ... we correspondingly assign a virtual stop for all the other moving objects at the points they’re passing. When we say that a movement or any change has taken a time t, we mean that we’ve noted a number t of correspondences of this type. Therefore, we have counted simultaneous occurrences; we haven't focused on the flow that links one to another. The proof of this is that I can freely change the speed of the universe's flow in relation to a consciousness that is independent of it, which would perceive the variation through a distinctly qualitative feeling of it: regardless of how the variation occurred, since the movement of T would be affected by this change, I would not need to alter my equations or the numbers presented in them.
Let us go further. Suppose that the rapidity of the flux becomes infinite. Imagine, as we said in the first pages of this book, that the trajectory of the mobile T is given at once, and that the whole history, past, present and future, of the material universe is spread out instantaneously in space. The same mathematical correspondences will subsist between the moments of the history of the world unfolded like a fan, so to speak, and the divisions T1, T2, T3, ... of the line which will be called, by definition, "the course of time." In the eyes of science nothing will have changed. But if, time thus spreading itself out in space and succession becoming juxtaposition, science has nothing to change in what it tells us, we must conclude that, in what it tells us, it takes account neither of succession in what of it is specific nor of time in what there is in it that is fluent. It has no sign to express what strikes our consciousness in succession and duration. It no more applies to becoming, so far as that is moving, than the bridges thrown here and there across the stream follow the water that flows under their arches.
Let's go further. Imagine if the flow of time became infinite. Picture, as we mentioned in the first pages of this book, that the path of the mobile T is laid out all at once, and that the entire history—past, present, and future—of the material universe is spread out instantaneously in space. The same mathematical relationships will exist between the moments of the world's history, laid out like a fan, and the divisions T1, T2, T3, ... of the line that will be defined as "the course of time." From a scientific perspective, nothing will have changed. However, if time is spreading out in space and succession is becoming juxtaposition, while science has nothing new to tell us, we must conclude that it does not account for succession in its specifics nor for time in its fluidity. It lacks a way to express what we perceive in succession and duration. It does not correspond to becoming, in the way that bridges placed here and there across a stream do not follow the water flowing beneath them.
Yet succession exists; I am conscious of it; it is a fact. When a physical process is going on before my eyes, my perception and my inclination have nothing to do with accelerating or retarding it. What is important to the[Pg 339] physicist is the number of units of duration the process fills; he does not concern himself about the units themselves and that is why the successive states of the world might be spread out all at once in space without his having to change anything in his science or to cease talking about time. But for us, conscious beings, it is the units that matter, for we do not count extremities of intervals, we feel and live the intervals themselves. Now, we are conscious of these intervals as of definite intervals. Let me come back again to the sugar in my glass of water:[106] why must I wait for it to melt? While the duration of the phenomenon is relative for the physicist, since it is reduced to a certain number of units of time and the units themselves are indifferent, this duration is an absolute for my consciousness, for it coincides with a certain degree of impatience which is rigorously determined. Whence comes this determination? What is it that obliges me to wait, and to wait for a certain length of psychical duration which is forced upon me, over which I have no power? If succession, in so far as distinct from mere juxtaposition, has no real efficacy, if time is not a kind of force, why does the universe unfold its successive states with a velocity which, in regard to my consciousness, is a veritable absolute? Why with this particular velocity rather than any other? Why not with an infinite velocity? Why, in other words, is not everything given at once, as on the film of the cinematograph? The more I consider this point, the more it seems to me that, if the future is bound to succeed the present instead of being given alongside of it, it is because the future is not altogether determined at the present moment, and that if the time taken up by this succession is something other than a number, if it has for the consciousness that is installed in it absolute value and reality,[Pg 340] it is because there is unceasingly being created in it, not indeed in any such artificially isolated system as a glass of sugared water, but in the concrete whole of which every such system forms part, something unforeseeable and new. This duration may not be the fact of matter itself, but that of the life which reascends the course of matter; the two movements are none the less mutually dependent upon each other. The duration of the universe must therefore be one with the latitude of creation which can find place in it.
Yet succession exists; I’m aware of it; it’s a fact. When a physical process is happening right in front of me, my perception and feelings have nothing to do with speeding it up or slowing it down. What matters to the[Pg 339] physicist is the number of units of time the process takes; he doesn’t worry about the units themselves, which is why the different states of the world could be spread out all at once in space without him needing to change anything in his science or stop discussing time. But for us, conscious beings, it’s the units that are important because we don’t count the endpoints of intervals; we experience and live through the intervals themselves. Now, we are aware of these intervals as definite periods. Let me return to the sugar in my glass of water:[106] why do I have to wait for it to dissolve? While the duration of the phenomenon is relative for the physicist, as it’s reduced to a certain number of time units that are indifferent, this duration is absolute for my consciousness, as it lines up with a specific level of impatience that is precisely defined. Where does this definition come from? What makes me wait, and wait for a certain length of psychological time that is imposed on me, over which I have no control? If succession, distinct from mere juxtaposition, has no real effect, and if time isn’t a kind of force, why does the universe unfold its successive states at a speed that is, for my consciousness, a true absolute? Why this specific speed rather than any other? Why not an infinite speed? Why, in other words, isn't everything presented at once, like in a film? The more I think about this, the more it seems to me that if the future must succeed the present instead of being presented alongside it, it’s because the future isn’t entirely determined at this moment. If the time spent in this succession is something other than just a number, and if for consciousness it has absolute value and reality,[Pg 340] it’s because something unforeseen and new is continually being created within it. This duration may not be the essence of matter itself, but it reflects the life that rises along with matter; the two movements are still mutually dependent. The duration of the universe must therefore align with the potential for creation that can occur within it.
When a child plays at reconstructing a picture by putting together the separate pieces in a puzzle game, the more he practices, the more and more quickly he succeeds. The reconstruction was, moreover, instantaneous, the child found it ready-made, when he opened the box on leaving the shop. The operation, therefore, does not require a definite time, and indeed, theoretically, it does not require any time. That is because the result is given. It is because the picture is already created, and because to obtain it requires only a work of recomposing and rearranging—a work that can be supposed going faster and faster, and even infinitely fast, up to the point of being instantaneous. But, to the artist who creates a picture by drawing it from the depths of his soul, time is no longer an accessory; it is not an interval that may be lengthened or shortened without the content being altered. The duration of his work is part and parcel of his work. To contract or to dilate it would be to modify both the psychical evolution that fills it and the invention which is its goal. The time taken up by the invention, is one with the invention itself. It is the progress of a thought which is changing in the degree and measure that it is taking form. It is a vital process, something like the ripening of an idea.
When a child plays with a puzzle, putting together the pieces to recreate an image, the more he practices, the faster he gets at it. The reconstruction is instant—when he opens the box after leaving the store, the picture is already there. So, the process doesn't need a specific amount of time, and theoretically, it could take no time at all. That's because the result is already known; the picture is complete, and all that's needed is to rearrange the pieces—a task that could be imagined to happen more quickly, even instantly. But for the artist who creates an image from deep within, time isn’t just an extra factor; it can't be stretched or shortened without changing the essence of the work. The duration of the artist's process is integral to the artwork itself. Altering it would change both the emotional journey involved and the creative vision. The time spent on the invention is intertwined with the invention itself. It reflects the evolution of thought as it develops and takes shape, much like the maturation of an idea.
The painter is before his canvas, the colors are on the palette, the model is sitting—all this we see, and also we[Pg 341] know the painter's style: do we foresee what will appear on the canvas? We possess the elements of the problem; we know in an abstract way, how it will be solved, for the portrait will surely resemble the model and will surely resemble also the artist; but the concrete solution brings with it that unforeseeable nothing which is everything in a work of art. And it is this nothing that takes time. Nought as matter, it creates itself as form. The sprouting and flowering of this form are stretched out on an unshrinkable duration, which is one with their essence. So of the works of nature. Their novelty arises from an internal impetus which is progress or succession, which confers on succession a peculiar virtue or which owes to succession the whole of its virtue—which, at any rate, makes succession, or continuity of interpenetration in time, irreducible to a mere instantaneous juxtaposition in space. This is why the idea of reading in a present state of the material universe the future of living forms, and of unfolding now their history yet to come, involves a veritable absurdity. But this absurdity is difficult to bring out, because our memory is accustomed to place alongside of each other, in an ideal space, the terms it perceives in turn, because it always represents past succession in the form of juxtaposition. It is able to do so, indeed, just because the past belongs to that which is already invented, to the dead, and no longer to creation and to life. Then, as the succession to come will end by being a succession past, we persuade ourselves that the duration to come admits of the same treatment as past duration, that it is, even now, unrollable, that the future is there, rolled up, already painted on the canvas. An illusion, no doubt, but an illusion that is natural, ineradicable, and that will last as long as the human mind!
The painter stands in front of his canvas, the colors are on the palette, the model is sitting there—all this we see, and we also know the painter's style: can we predict what will show up on the canvas? We have the basics of the situation; we understand, in a general way, how it will turn out, since the portrait will definitely look like the model and will also reflect the artist; but the specific outcome includes that unpredictable element which is everything in a work of art. And it’s this element that takes time. Nothing in terms of matter, it shapes itself as form. The growth and development of this form unfold over a duration that cannot be compressed, which is inherent to their essence. The same goes for the works of nature. Their uniqueness comes from an internal drive that is progress or succession, which gives that succession a distinct quality or depends on succession for all of its value—which, in any case, makes succession, or continuity of interpenetration in time, impossible to reduce to just a momentary arrangement in space. That’s why the idea of reading the future of living forms in the current state of the material universe, and of revealing their yet-to-come history right now, is utterly absurd. However, this absurdity is hard to highlight, because our memory is used to placing things side by side, in an ideal space, based on what it perceives in sequence, since it always represents past succession as simple juxtaposition. It can do this precisely because the past belongs to what has been created, to the dead, and no longer to creation and life. Then, as the future will eventually become past succession, we convince ourselves that the upcoming duration can be treated the same way as past duration, that it is, even now, unwrapped, that the future is there, already rolled out, painted on the canvas. An illusion, no doubt, but a natural, inescapable one that will endure as long as the human mind exists!
Time is invention or it is nothing at all. But of time-[Pg 342]invention physics can take no account, restricted as it is to the cinematographical method. It is limited to counting simultaneities between the events that make up this time and the positions of the mobile T on its trajectory. It detaches these events from the whole, which at every moment puts on a new form and which communicates to them something of its novelty. It considers them in the abstract, such as they would be outside of the living whole, that is to say, in a time unrolled in space. It retains only the events or systems of events that can be thus isolated without being made to undergo too profound a deformation, because only these lend themselves to the application of its method. Our physics dates from the day when it was known how to isolate such systems. To sum up, while modern physics is distinguished from ancient physics by the fact that it considers any moment of time whatever, it rests altogether on a substitution of time-length for time-invention.
Time is either an invention or it’s nothing at all. But when it comes to time-[Pg 342]invention, physics can't account for it, since it's limited to the cinematic method. It's focused on counting simultaneous occurrences between events that make up this time and the positions of the moving T in its path. It separates these events from the whole, which constantly transforms and imparts a sense of newness to them. It looks at them abstractly, as if they existed outside of the living whole, that is, in a time that unfolds in space. It only considers the events or systems of events that can be isolated without significant distortion, because only these can be applied using its method. Our physics began when it became possible to isolate such systems. In summary, while modern physics differs from ancient physics in that it considers any moment of time, it is fundamentally based on substituting time-length for time-invention.
It seems then that, parallel to this physics, a second kind of knowledge ought to have grown up, which could have retained what physics allowed to escape. On the flux itself of duration science neither would nor could lay hold, bound as it was to the cinematographical method. This second kind of knowledge would have set the cinematographical method aside. It would have called upon the mind to renounce its most cherished habits. It is within becoming that it would have transported us by an effort of sympathy. We should no longer be asking where a moving body will be, what shape a system will take, through what state a change will pass at a given moment: the moments of time, which are only arrests of our attention, would no longer exist; it is the flow of time, it is the very flux of the real that we should be trying to follow. The first kind of knowledge has the advantage of enabling us to foresee the future and of making us in some measure masters[Pg 343] of events; in return, it retains of the moving reality only eventual immobilities, that is to say, views taken of it by our mind. It symbolizes the real and transposes it into the human rather than expresses it. The other knowledge, if it is possible, is practically useless, it will not extend our empire over nature, it will even go against certain natural aspirations of the intellect; but, if it succeeds, it is reality itself that it will hold in a firm and final embrace. Not only may we thus complete the intellect and its knowledge of matter by accustoming it to install itself within the moving, but by developing also another faculty, complementary to the intellect, we may open a perspective on the other half of the real. For, as soon as we are confronted with true duration, we see that it means creation, and that if that which is being unmade endures, it can only be because it is inseparably bound to what is making itself. Thus will appear the necessity of a continual growth of the universe, I should say of a life of the real. And thus will be seen in a new light the life which we find on the surface of our planet, a life directed the same way as that of the universe, and inverse of materiality. To intellect, in short, there will be added intuition.
It seems that alongside this physics, a different kind of knowledge should have developed, one that could capture what physics lets slip away. Science, tied to the cinematographic method, wouldn’t and couldn’t grasp the flow of duration itself. This second kind of knowledge would have moved past the cinematographic method, urging the mind to give up its most valued habits. It would have transported us into becoming through an act of empathy. We wouldn’t be asking where a moving object will be, what form a system will take, or what state a change will go through at a specific moment: the moments of time, which are just pauses in our attention, would no longer exist; instead, we should be trying to follow the flow of time, the very essence of reality itself. The first kind of knowledge helps us predict the future and gives us some control over events; however, it only retains snapshots of the moving reality, essentially views created by our minds. It symbolizes reality and translates it into human terms rather than expressing it. The other kind of knowledge, if it’s even possible, is mostly useless; it won’t expand our dominion over nature and may even contradict some natural tendencies of the intellect. But if it succeeds, it will embody reality itself in a firm and lasting way. By doing this, we can not only enrich the intellect and its understanding of matter by training it to engage with the dynamic, but we can also develop an additional ability that complements the intellect, giving us insight into the other half of reality. Because once we face true duration, we realize it signifies creation, and if what is disintegrating endures, it can only be because it’s inseparably linked to what is forming. This reveals the necessity for a constant expansion of the universe, which I would call a life of the real. Thus, we will view the life we find on our planet's surface in a new light, a life that follows the same direction as that of the universe, and is opposite to materiality. In short, intuition will complement the intellect.
The more we reflect on it, the more we shall find that this conception of metaphysics is that which modern science suggests.
The more we think about it, the more we realize that this idea of metaphysics is what modern science suggests.
For the ancients, indeed, time is theoretically negligible, because the duration of a thing only manifests the degradation of its essence: it is with this motionless essence that science has to deal. Change being only the effort of a form toward its own realization, the realization is all that it concerns us to know. No doubt the realization is never complete: it is this that ancient philosophy expresses by saying that we do not perceive form without matter. But if we consider the changing object at a certain essential[Pg 344] moment, at its apogee, we may say that there it just touches its intelligible form. This intelligible form, this ideal and, so to speak, limiting form, our science seizes upon. And possessing in this the gold-piece, it holds eminently the small money which we call becoming or change. This change is less than being. The knowledge that would take it for object, supposing such knowledge were possible, would be less than science.
For the ancients, time is practically irrelevant because the length of something only shows how it deteriorates. Science deals with this unchanging essence. Change is just the effort of a form trying to realize itself, and that realization is all we need to understand. It’s clear that this realization is never fully achieved; ancient philosophy captures this by stating that we cannot perceive form without matter. However, if we look at a changing object at a specific essential moment, at its peak, we can say that it just touches its intelligible form. This intelligible form, this ideal and limiting form, is what our science grasps. By having this gold standard, it also holds the smaller currency we refer to as becoming or change. This change is less substantial than being. Any knowledge that would focus solely on change, assuming such knowledge was possible, would be inferior to science.
But, for a science that places all the moments of time in the same rank, that admits no essential moment, no culminating point, no apogee, change is no longer a diminution of essence, duration is not a dilution of eternity. The flux of time is the reality itself, and the things which we study are the things which flow. It is true that of this flowing reality we are limited to taking instantaneous views. But, just because of this, scientific knowledge must appeal to another knowledge to complete it. While the ancient conception of scientific knowledge ended in making time a degradation, and change the diminution of a form given from all eternity—on the contrary, by following the new conception to the end, we should come to see in time a progressive growth of the absolute, and in the evolution of things a continual invention of forms ever new.
But for a science that treats all moments in time equally, that acknowledges no essential moment, no peak, no highest point, change isn't seen as a loss of essence, and duration isn't a weakening of eternity. The flow of time is the true reality, and the things we study are just those that change. It is true that our understanding of this flowing reality is limited to snapshots. However, because of this limitation, scientific knowledge needs to rely on another type of knowledge to fill in the gaps. While the old view of scientific knowledge saw time as a degradation and change as a reduction of a form that existed eternally, the new view leads us to understand time as a gradual development of the absolute, and in the evolution of things, a constant creation of new forms.
It is true that it would be to break with the metaphysics of the ancients. They saw only one way of knowing definitely. Their science consisted in a scattered and fragmentary metaphysics, their metaphysics in a concentrated and systematic science. Their science and metaphysics were, at most, two species of one and the same genus. In our hypothesis, on the contrary, science and metaphysics are two opposed although complementary ways of knowing, the first retaining only moments, that is to say, that which does not endure, the second bearing on duration itself. Now, it was natural to hesitate between so novel a con[Pg 345]ception of metaphysics and the traditional conception. The temptation must have been strong to repeat with the new science what had been tried on the old, to suppose our scientific knowledge of nature completed at once, to unify it entirely, and to give to this unification, as the Greeks had already done, the name of metaphysics. So, beside the new way that philosophy might have prepared, the old remained open, that indeed which physics trod. And, as physics retained of time only what could as well be spread out all at once in space, the metaphysics that chose the same direction had necessarily to proceed as if time created and annihilated nothing, as if duration had no efficacy. Bound, like the physics of the moderns and the metaphysics of the ancients, to the cinematographical method, it ended with the conclusion, implicitly admitted at the start and immanent in the method itself: All is given.
It's true that this would mean breaking away from the ancient metaphysics. They believed there was only one way to know for sure. Their science was a scattered and fragmented metaphysics, while their metaphysics was a focused and systematic science. At most, their science and metaphysics were two different types of the same thing. In our view, however, science and metaphysics are two opposing but complementary ways of knowing: the first only concerns itself with fleeting moments, while the second focuses on what lasts. It was natural to hesitate between this new idea of metaphysics and the traditional view. There must have been a strong temptation to treat our scientific understanding of nature like the old one, to think that it was fully complete all at once, to unify it entirely and call this unification, as the Greeks did, metaphysics. So, alongside the new approach that philosophy could have created, the old path remained available, which was indeed the one taken by physics. And, since physics only dealt with time in a way that could be represented all at once in space, the metaphysics that followed the same path had to act as if time did not create or destroy anything, as if duration had no impact. Like the modern physics and ancient metaphysics, which relied on a cinematic method, it ultimately reached the conclusion, which was implicitly accepted from the beginning and inherent in the method itself: All is given.
That metaphysics hesitated at first between the two paths seems to us unquestionable. The indecision is visible in Cartesianism. On the one hand, Descartes affirms universal mechanism: from this point of view movement would be relative,[107] and, as time has just as much reality as movement, it would follow that past, present and future are given from all eternity. But, on the other hand (and that is why the philosopher has not gone to these extreme consequences), Descartes believes in the free will of man. He superposes on the determinism of physical phenomena the indeterminism of human actions, and, consequently, on time-length a time in which there is invention, creation, true succession. This duration he supports on a God who is unceasingly renewing the creative act, and who, being thus tangent to time and becoming, sustains them, communicates to them necessarily something of his absolute[Pg 346] reality. When he places himself at this second point of view, Descartes speaks of movement, even spatial, as of an absolute.[108]
It’s clear that metaphysics first hesitated between two paths. This uncertainty is evident in Cartesianism. On one hand, Descartes asserts universal mechanism: from this perspective, movement would be relative, and since time has just as much reality as movement, it follows that past, present, and future exist eternally. But on the other hand (and this is why the philosopher doesn’t fully embrace these extreme conclusions), Descartes believes in human free will. He adds to the determinism of physical phenomena the idea of indeterminism in human actions, which means that alongside a fixed timeline, there exists a time characterized by invention, creation, and genuine succession. He bases this duration on a God who continuously renews the creative act and, by being connected to time and becoming, imparts something of His absolute[Pg 346] reality to them. When he considers this second perspective, Descartes describes movement, even spatial movement, as something absolute.
He therefore entered both roads one after the other, having resolved to follow neither of them to the end. The first would have led him to the denial of free will in man and of real will in God. It was the suppression of all efficient duration, the likening of the universe to a thing given, which a superhuman intelligence would embrace at once in a moment or in eternity. In following the second, on the contrary, he would have been led to all the consequences which the intuition of true duration implies. Creation would have appeared not simply as continued, but also as continuous. The universe, regarded as a whole, would really evolve. The future would no longer be determinable by the present; at most we might say that, once realized, it can be found again in its antecedents, as the sounds of a new language can be expressed with the letters of an old alphabet if we agree to enlarge the value of the letters and to attribute to them, retro-actively, sounds which no combination of the old sounds could have produced beforehand. Finally, the mechanistic explanation might have remained universal in this, that it can indeed be extended to as many systems as we choose to cut out in the continuity of the universe; but mechanism would then have become a method rather than a doctrine. It would have expressed the fact that science must proceed after the cinematographical manner, that the function of science is to scan the rhythm of the flow of things and not to fit itself into that flow.—Such were the two opposite conceptions of metaphysics which were offered to philosophy.
He therefore explored both paths one after the other, deciding not to fully commit to either. The first would have led him to deny free will in humans and genuine will in God. It was about dismissing all effective duration, viewing the universe as something given that a superhuman intelligence would instantly grasp in a moment or for eternity. Conversely, by pursuing the second path, he would have encountered all the implications that come with the understanding of true duration. Creation would not just be seen as continued, but also as continuous. The universe, seen as a whole, would genuinely evolve. The future wouldn’t be predictable based on the present; rather, one could say that, once realized, it can be traced back in its origins, just like the sounds of a new language can be formed using the letters of an old alphabet if we agree to broaden the meaning of those letters and assign to them, retrospectively, sounds that the previous combinations couldn't have anticipated. Ultimately, the mechanistic explanation could remain universal in that it can be applied to as many systems as we choose to isolate within the continuity of the universe; but mechanism would then become a method rather than a doctrine. It would illustrate that science should advance in a cinematic way, indicating that the role of science is to capture the rhythm of the flow of things, rather than conforming to that flow.—These were the two conflicting views of metaphysics presented to philosophy.
It chose the first. The reason of this choice is undoubtedly the mind's tendency to follow the cinematographical[Pg 347] method, a method so natural to our intellect, and so well adjusted also to the requirements of our science, that we must feel doubly sure of its speculative impotence to renounce it in metaphysics. But ancient philosophy also influenced the choice. Artists for ever admirable, the Greeks created a type of supra-sensible truth, as of sensible beauty, whose attraction is hard to resist. As soon as we incline to make metaphysics a systematization of science, we glide in the direction of Plato and of Aristotle. And, once in the zone of attraction in which the Greek philosophers moved, we are drawn along in their orbit.
It chose the first option. The reason for this choice is clearly the mind's tendency to follow the cinematic method, which is so natural to our intellect and fits perfectly with the needs of our science that we can’t help but be assured of its theoretical inability to abandon it in metaphysics. But ancient philosophy also played a role in this choice. The Greeks, who were incredibly impressive artists, created a form of higher truth, just like they did with tangible beauty, that is really hard to resist. As soon as we start to view metaphysics as a systematization of science, we head towards the ideas of Plato and Aristotle. Once we enter the realm where the Greek philosophers operated, we are pulled along in their influence.
Such was the case with Leibniz, as also with Spinoza. We are not blind to the treasures of originality their doctrines contain. Spinoza and Leibniz have poured into them the whole content of their souls, rich with the inventions of their genius and the acquisitions of modern thought. And there are in each of them, especially in Spinoza, flashes of intuition that break through the system. But if we leave out of the two doctrines what breathes life into them, if we retain the skeleton only, we have before us the very picture of Platonism and Aristotelianism seen through Cartesian mechanism. They present to us a systematization of the new physics, constructed on the model of the ancient metaphysics.
This was true for both Leibniz and Spinoza. We're not oblivious to the original insights their ideas hold. Spinoza and Leibniz infused their theories with everything from their hearts and minds, filled with their imaginative ideas and modern concepts. Each of them, especially Spinoza, has moments of insight that pierce through their frameworks. However, if we strip away the life from both doctrines and keep only the framework, we see a clear representation of Platonism and Aristotelianism filtered through Cartesian mechanics. They offer us a systematization of the new physics, built on the foundation of ancient metaphysics.
What, indeed, could the unification of physics be? The inspiring idea of that science was to isolate, within the universe, systems of material points such that, the position of each of these points being known at a given moment, we could then calculate it for any moment whatever. As, moreover, the systems thus defined were the only ones on which the new science had hold, and as it could not be known beforehand whether a system satisfied or did not satisfy the desired condition, it was useful to proceed always and everywhere as if the condition was realized. There[Pg 348] was in this a methodological rule, a very natural rule—so natural, indeed, that it was not even necessary to formulate it. For simple common sense tells us that when we are possessed of an effective instrument of research, and are ignorant of the limits of its applicability, we should act as if its applicability were unlimited; there will always be time to abate it. But the temptation must have been great for the philosopher to hypostatize this hope, or rather this impetus, of the new science, and to convert a general rule of method into a fundamental law of things. So he transported himself at once to the limit; he supposed physics to have become complete and to embrace the whole of the sensible world. The universe became a system of points, the position of which was rigorously determined at each instant by relation to the preceding instant and theoretically calculable for any moment whatever. The result, in short, was universal mechanism. But it was not enough to formulate this mechanism; what was required was to found it, to give the reason for it and prove its necessity. And the essential affirmation of mechanism being that of a reciprocal mathematical dependence of all the points of the universe, as also of all the moments of the universe, the reason of mechanism had to be discovered in the unity of a principle into which could be contracted all that is juxtaposed in space and successive in time. Hence, the whole of the real was supposed to be given at once. The reciprocal determination of the juxtaposed appearances in space was explained by the indivisibility of true being, and the inflexible determinism of successive phenomena in time simply expressed that the whole of being is given in the eternal.
What could the unification of physics really be? The exciting idea of this science was to isolate systems of material points within the universe so that, if we knew the position of each point at a specific moment, we could then calculate its position at any other moment. Moreover, since these defined systems were the only ones that the new science could examine, and since it was impossible to know in advance whether a system met the desired criteria or not, it made sense to always act as if the criteria were met. There[Pg 348] was a methodological rule here, a very natural rule—so natural that it didn't even need to be stated. Common sense tells us that when we have an effective research tool and don’t know its limits, we should assume its effectiveness is unlimited; we'll have time to scale it back later. But the temptation for philosophers to take this hope, or rather this drive of the new science, and turn a general method rule into a fundamental law was likely very strong. They jumped straight to the extremes; they imagined physics had become complete, encompassing the entire observable world. The universe turned into a system of points, each position determined at every moment based on the previous moment and theoretically calculable for any time. In short, this led to universal mechanism. But it wasn't enough to just outline this mechanism; it needed a foundation—an explanation and proof of its necessity. The core idea of mechanism is that all points in the universe, as well as all moments in the universe, are mathematically dependent on each other. Thus, the reasoning behind mechanism had to be found in a unified principle that could encompass everything that exists in space and everything that occurs in time. Consequently, the entirety of reality was thought to be available at once. The interdependence of the neighboring phenomena in space was explained by the indivisibility of true existence, and the strict determinism of sequential events in time stated simply that the whole of existence is presented in the eternal.
The new philosophy was going, then, to be a recommencement, or rather a transposition, of the old. The ancient philosophy had taken each of the concepts into which a[Pg 349] becoming is concentrated or which mark its apogee: it supposed them all known, and gathered them up into a single concept, form of forms, idea of ideas, like the God of Aristotle. The new philosophy was going to take each of the laws which condition a becoming in relation to others and which are as the permanent substratum of phenomena: it would suppose them all known, and would gather them up into a unity which also would express them eminently, but which, like the God of Aristotle and for the same reasons, must remain immutably shut up in itself.
The new philosophy was going to be a fresh start, or rather a shift, from the old. The ancient philosophy had taken each of the concepts that a[Pg 349] becoming is focused on or which signify its peak: it assumed all of them were understood and consolidated them into a single concept, the form of forms, idea of ideas, like Aristotle’s God. The new philosophy would take each of the laws that influence a becoming in relation to others and that serve as the permanent foundation of phenomena: it would assume they were all understood and would unify them in a way that also expresses them fully, but which, like Aristotle’s God and for the same reasons, must remain unchangeably confined within itself.
True, this return to the ancient philosophy was not without great difficulties. When a Plato, an Aristotle, or a Plotinus melt all the concepts of their science into a single one, in so doing they embrace the whole of the real, for concepts are supposed to represent the things themselves, and to possess at least as much positive content. But a law, in general, expresses only a relation, and physical laws in particular express only quantitative relations between concrete things. So that if a modern philosopher works with the laws of the new science as the Greek philosopher did with the concepts of the ancient science, if he makes all the conclusions of a physics supposed omniscient converge on a single point, he neglects what is concrete in the phenomena—the qualities perceived, the perceptions themselves. His synthesis comprises, it seems, only a fraction of reality. In fact, the first result of the new science was to cut the real into two halves, quantity and quality, the former being credited to the account of bodies and the latter to the account of souls. The ancients had raised no such barriers either between quality and quantity or between soul and body. For them, the mathematical concepts were concepts like the others, related to the others and fitting quite naturally into the hierarchy of the Ideas. Neither was the body then defined by geometrical extension,[Pg 350] nor the soul by consciousness. If the φυχη of Aristotle, the entelechy of a living body, is less spiritual than our "soul," it is because his οωμα, already impregnated with the Idea, is less corporeal than our "body." The scission was not yet irremediable between the two terms. It has become so, and thence a metaphysic that aims at an abstract unity must resign itself either to comprehend in its synthesis only one half of the real, or to take advantage of the absolute heterogeneity of the two halves in order to consider one as a translation of the other. Different phrases will express different things if they belong to the same language, that is to say, if there is a certain relationship of sound between them. But if they belong to two different languages, they might, just because of their radical diversity of sound, express the same thing. So of quality and quantity, of soul and body. It is for having cut all connection between the two terms that philosophers have been led to establish between them a rigorous parallelism, of which the ancients had not dreamed, to regard them as translations and not as inversions of each other; in short, to posit a fundamental identity as a substratum to their duality. The synthesis to which they rose thus became capable of embracing everything. A divine mechanism made the phenomena of thought to correspond to those of extension, each to each, qualities to quantities, souls to bodies.
True, this return to ancient philosophy was not without significant challenges. When a Plato, an Aristotle, or a Plotinus combines all the concepts of their science into a single idea, they are embracing the entirety of reality, as concepts are meant to represent things themselves and should have at least as much meaningful content. However, a law, in general, conveys only a relationship, and physical laws especially express only quantitative relationships between concrete things. Therefore, if a modern philosopher works with the laws of new science as the Greek philosophers did with the concepts of ancient science, making all the conclusions of physics supposedly converge on one point, they overlook the concrete aspects of phenomena—the qualities perceived, the perceptions themselves. Their synthesis seems to capture only a part of reality. In fact, the first outcome of modern science was to divide reality into two halves: quantity and quality, with the former attributed to bodies and the latter to souls. The ancients did not establish such barriers between quality and quantity or between soul and body. For them, mathematical concepts were like any other concepts, interconnected and fitting naturally into the hierarchy of Ideas. The body was not defined merely by geometrical extension,[Pg 350] nor was the soul defined solely by consciousness. If Aristotle's φυχη, the entelechy of a living body, is less spiritual than our concept of "soul," it is because his οωμα, already infused with the Idea, is less corporeal than our notion of "body." The split between the two terms was not yet irreparable. Now it is, which has led to a metaphysics that aims for an abstract unity and must either settle for synthesizing only one half of reality or exploit the absolute difference of the two halves to consider one as a translation of the other. Different phrases can express different meanings if they are in the same language, meaning there is a certain relationship of sound between them. But if they belong to two different languages, their radical diversity in sound might allow them to express the same thing. The same applies to quality and quantity, to soul and body. By severing all connections between the two terms, philosophers have felt compelled to establish a strict parallelism between them, a concept the ancients did not even consider, viewing them as translations rather than inversions of each other; in essence, positing a fundamental identity as a basis for their duality. The synthesis they reached thus became capable of encompassing everything. A divine mechanism made the phenomena of thought correspond to those of extension, each relating to the other, qualities to quantities, souls to bodies.
It is this parallelism that we find both in Leibniz and in Spinoza—in different forms, it is true, because of the unequal importance which they attach to extension. With Spinoza, the two terms Thought and Extension are placed, in principle at least, in the same rank. They are, therefore, two translations of one and the same original, or, as Spinoza says, two attributes of one and the same substance, which we must call God. And these two translations,[Pg 351] as also an infinity of others into languages which we know not, are called up and even forced into existence by the original, just as the essence of the circle is translated automatically, so to speak, both by a figure and by an equation. For Leibniz, on the contrary, extension is indeed still a translation, but it is thought that is the original, and thought might dispense with translation, the translation being made only for us. In positing God, we necessarily posit also all the possible views of God, that is to say, the monads. But we can always imagine that a view has been taken from a point of view, and it is natural for an imperfect mind like ours to class views, qualitatively different, according to the order and position of points of view, qualitatively identical, from which the views might have been taken. In reality the points of view do not exist, for there are only views, each given in an indivisible block and representing in its own way the whole of reality, which is God. But we need to express the plurality of the views, that are unlike each other, by the multiplicity of the points of view that are exterior to each other; and we also need to symbolize the more or less close relationship between the views by the relative situation of the points of view to one another, their nearness or their distance, that is to say, by a magnitude. That is what Leibniz means when he says that space is the order of coexistents, that the perception of extension is a confused perception (that is to say, a perception relative to an imperfect mind), and that nothing exists but monads, expressing thereby that the real Whole has no parts, but is repeated to infinity, each time integrally (though diversely) within itself, and that all these repetitions are complementary to each other. In just the same way, the visible relief of an object is equivalent to the whole set of stereoscopic views taken of it from all points, so that, instead of seeing in the relief a juxta[Pg 352]position of solid parts, we might quite as well look upon it as made of the reciprocal complementarity of these whole views, each given in block, each indivisible, each different from all the others and yet representative of the same thing. The Whole, that is to say, God, is this very relief for Leibniz, and the monads are these complementary plane views; for that reason he defines God as "the substance that has no point of view," or, again, as "the universal harmony," that is to say, the reciprocal complementarity of monads. In short, Leibniz differs from Spinoza in this, that he looks upon the universal mechanism as an aspect which reality takes for us, whereas, Spinoza makes of it an aspect which reality takes for itself.
It's this parallelism we see in both Leibniz and Spinoza—in different forms, it's true, because of the differing importance they give to extension. For Spinoza, the concepts of Thought and Extension are, at least in principle, on the same level. They are, therefore, two interpretations of one and the same original, or as Spinoza puts it, two attributes of one and the same substance, which we must call God. These two interpretations, [Pg 351], along with countless others in languages we don't know, are called forth and even brought into being by the original, just like the essence of a circle is automatically represented by both a shape and an equation. In contrast, for Leibniz, extension is still an interpretation, but thought is the original, and thought could exist without interpretation, which is only done for our sake. When we affirm God, we also affirm all possible perspectives of God, which are the monads. However, we can always imagine that a perspective has been taken from a viewpoint, and it's natural for an imperfect mind like ours to categorize qualitatively different perspectives based on the order and position of points of view that are qualitatively identical, from which those perspectives might have been derived. In reality, the points of view don't exist; there are only perspectives, each given as an indivisible whole and representing reality, which is God, in its own way. But we need to express the plurality of the perspectives, which are unlike each other, by the multiplicity of points of view that are external to each other; and we also need to symbolize the varying degrees of closeness between the perspectives through the relative positioning of the points of view, their proximity or distance, which amounts to a magnitude. This is what Leibniz means when he says that space is the order of coexistents, that the perception of extension is a confused perception (meaning a perception relative to an imperfect mind), and that nothing exists but monads, thereby expressing that the real Whole has no parts but is repeated infinitely, each time integrally (though diversely) within itself, with all these repetitions being complementary to each other. Similarly, the visible shape of an object is equivalent to the entire set of stereoscopic views taken of it from all angles, so instead of seeing in the shape a juxtaposition of solid parts, we could just as well view it as made of the reciprocal complementarity of these whole views, each given as a block, indivisible, unique, and yet representative of the same thing. The Whole, meaning God, is this very shape for Leibniz, and the monads are these complementary flat views; that's why he defines God as "the substance that has no point of view," or as "the universal harmony," which means the reciprocal complementarity of monads. In summary, Leibniz differs from Spinoza in that he sees the universal mechanism as an aspect of how reality appears to us, while Spinoza sees it as how reality appears to itself.
It is true that, after having concentrated in God the whole of the real, it became difficult for them to pass from God to things, from eternity to time. The difficulty was even much greater for these philosophers than an Aristotle or a Plotinus. The God of Aristotle, indeed, had been obtained by the compression and reciprocal compenetration of the Ideas that represent, in their finished state or in their culminating point, the changing things of the world. He was, therefore, transcendent to the world, and the duration of things was juxtaposed to His eternity, of which it was only a weakening. But in the principle to which we are led by the consideration of universal mechanism, and which must serve as its substratum, it is not concepts or things, but laws or relations that are condensed. Now, a relation does not exist separately. A law connects changing terms and is immanent in what it governs. The principle in which all these relations are ultimately summed up, and which is the basis of the unity of nature, cannot, therefore, be transcendent to sensible reality; it is immanent in it, and we must suppose that it is at once both in and out of time, gathered up in the[Pg 353] unity of its substance and yet condemned to wind it off in an endless chain. Rather than formulate so appalling a contradiction, the philosophers were necessarily led to sacrifice the weaker of the two terms, and to regard the temporal aspect of things as a mere illusion. Leibniz says so in explicit terms, for he makes of time, as of space, a confused perception. While the multiplicity of his monads expresses only the diversity of views taken of the whole, the history of an isolated monad seems to be hardly anything else than the manifold views that it can take of its own substance: so that time would consist in all the points of view that each monad can assume towards itself, as space consists in all the points of view that all monads can assume towards God. But the thought of Spinoza is much less clear, and this philosopher seems to have sought to establish, between eternity and that which has duration, the same difference as Aristotle made between essence and accidents: a most difficult undertaking, for the υλη of Aristotle was no longer there to measure the distance and explain the passage from the essential to the accidental, Descartes having eliminated it for ever. However that may be, the deeper we go into the Spinozistic conception of the "inadequate," as related to the "adequate," the more we feel ourselves moving in the direction of Aristotelianism—just as the Leibnizian monads, in proportion as they mark themselves out the more clearly, tend to approximate to the Intelligibles of Plotinus.[109] The natural trend of these two philosophies brings them back to the conclusions of the ancient philosophy.
It’s true that, after focusing entirely on God as the ultimate reality, it became hard for them to move from God to the physical world, from eternity to time. This challenge was much greater for these philosophers than it was for Aristotle or Plotinus. The God of Aristotle, in fact, emerged from the compression and intermingling of the Ideas that represent, in their complete form or peak, the changing things of the world. He was, therefore, beyond the world, and the duration of things was merely a diminished version of His eternity. But in the principle guided by the idea of universal mechanism, which serves as its foundation, it’s not concepts or things, but laws or relations that are concentrated. A relation doesn’t exist in isolation. A law connects changing terms and is inherent in what it controls. The principle that ultimately sums up all these relations and forms the basis of the unity of nature cannot be separate from tangible reality; it is present within it. We must assume that it exists both in and beyond time, encapsulated in the[Pg 353] unity of its essence while also being destined to unfold in an endless chain. Instead of framing such an alarming contradiction, the philosophers were inevitably pushed to sacrifice the weaker of the two concepts and to see the temporal aspect of things as just an illusion. Leibniz explicitly states this by describing time, like space, as a confused perception. While the diversity of his monads reflects only the various perspectives on the whole, the history of a single monad appears to be little more than the multiple views it can adopt of its own essence: thus, time comprises all the viewpoints that each monad can take towards itself, just as space encompasses all the perspectives that all monads can have towards God. However, Spinoza’s ideas are much less clear, and it seems he tried to establish a distinction between eternity and what has duration similar to Aristotle’s differentiation between essence and accidents: a challenging task, as the υλη (matter) of Aristotle was no longer available to measure the distance and explain the transition from the essential to the accidental, since Descartes had eliminated it forever. Nonetheless, the deeper we delve into Spinoza's concept of the "inadequate" in relation to the "adequate," the more we feel ourselves moving towards Aristotelianism—just as the clearer distinctions of Leibnizian monads tend to converge with the Intelligibles of Plotinus.[109] The natural progression of these two philosophies ultimately leads them back to the conclusions of ancient philosophy.
To sum up, the resemblances of this new metaphysic to that of the ancients arise from the fact that both suppose[Pg 354] ready-made—the former above the sensible, the latter within the sensible—a science one and complete, with which any reality that the sensible may contain is believed to coincide. For both, reality as well as truth are integrally given in eternity. Both are opposed to the idea of a reality that creates itself gradually, that is, at bottom, to an absolute duration.
To sum up, the similarities between this new metaphysics and that of the ancients come from both assuming[Pg 354] something ready-made—the former being above the tangible, and the latter within it—a single, complete science that is believed to align with any reality the tangible may contain. For both, reality and truth are fully given in eternity. Both reject the notion of a reality that develops gradually, essentially opposing the idea of absolute duration.
Now, it might easily be shown that the conclusions of this metaphysic, springing from science, have rebounded upon science itself, as it were, by ricochet. They penetrate the whole of our so-called empiricism. Physics and chemistry study only inert matter; biology, when it treats the living being physically and chemically, considers only the inert side of the living: hence the mechanistic explanations, in spite of their development, include only a small part of the real. To suppose a priori that the whole of the real is resolvable into elements of this kind, or at least that mechanism can give a complete translation of what happens in the world, is to pronounce for a certain metaphysic—the very metaphysic of which Spinoza and Leibniz have laid down the principles and drawn the consequences. Certainly, the psycho-physiologist who affirms the exact equivalence of the cerebral and the psychical state, who imagines the possibility, for some superhuman intellect, of reading in the brain what is going on in consciousness, believes himself very far from the metaphysicians of the seventeenth century, and very near to experience. Yet experience pure and simple tells us nothing of the kind. It shows us the interdependence of the mental and the physical, the necessity of a certain cerebral substratum for the psychical state—nothing more. From the fact that two things are mutually dependent, it does not follow that they are equivalent. Because a certain screw is[Pg 355] necessary to a certain machine, because the machine works when the screw is there and stops when the screw is taken away, we do not say that the screw is the equivalent of the machine. For correspondence to be equivalence, it would be necessary that to any part of the machine a definite part of the screw should correspond—as in a literal translation in which each chapter renders a chapter, each sentence a sentence, each word a word. Now, the relation of the brain to consciousness seems to be entirely different. Not only does the hypothesis of an equivalence between the psychical state and the cerebral state imply a downright absurdity, as we have tried to prove in a former essay,[110] but the facts, examined without prejudice, certainly seem to indicate that the relation of the psychical to the physical is just that of the machine to the screw. To speak of an equivalence between the two is simply to curtail, and make almost unintelligible, the Spinozistic or Leibnizian metaphysic. It is to accept this philosophy, such as it is, on the side of Extension, but to mutilate it on the side of Thought. With Spinoza, with Leibniz, we suppose the unifying synthesis of the phenomena of matter achieved, and everything in matter explained mechanically. But, for the conscious facts, we no longer push the synthesis to the end. We stop half-way. We suppose consciousness to be coextensive with a certain part of nature and not with all of it. We are thus led, sometimes to an "epiphenomenalism" that associates consciousness with certain particular vibrations and puts it here and there in the world in a sporadic state, and sometimes to a "monism" that scatters consciousness into as many tiny grains as there are atoms; but, in either case, it is to an incomplete Spinozism or to an incomplete Leib[Pg 356]nizianism that we come back. Between this conception of nature and Cartesianism we find, moreover, intermediate historical stages. The medical philosophers of the eighteenth century, with their cramped Cartesianism, have had a great part in the genesis of the "epiphenomenalism" and "monism" of the present day.
Now, it can easily be demonstrated that the conclusions of this metaphysics, arising from science, have reflected back onto science itself, almost like a ricochet. They permeate our entire so-called empiricism. Physics and chemistry focus only on inert matter; biology, when it examines living beings physically and chemically, considers only the inert aspects of life. Consequently, mechanistic explanations, despite their advancements, account for only a small fraction of reality. To assume a priori that all of reality can be reduced to such elements, or at least that mechanism can offer a complete account of what occurs in the world, is to endorse a specific metaphysics—the very metaphysics that Spinoza and Leibniz established and expounded upon. Certainly, the psycho-physiologist who asserts that the cerebral and psychical states are exactly equivalent, who envisions the possibility, for some superhuman intellect, of reading consciousness from the brain, believes he is quite distant from the metaphysicians of the seventeenth century and very close to experience. Yet pure experience reveals nothing of the sort. It demonstrates the interdependence of the mental and the physical, showing the necessity of a certain cerebral foundation for the psychical state—nothing more. From the fact that two things depend on each other, it doesn’t follow that they are equivalent. Just because a particular screw is essential to a machine, and the machine operates when the screw is present and ceases when it is removed, we don't claim that the screw is equivalent to the machine. For there to be equivalence, there would need to be a specific part of the screw corresponding to each part of the machine—as in a direct translation where each chapter translates to a chapter, each sentence to a sentence, and each word to a word. The relationship between the brain and consciousness appears to be entirely different. Not only does the hypothesis of equivalence between the psychical state and the cerebral state imply an outright absurdity, as we attempted to show in a previous essay, but the facts, examined without bias, certainly seem to indicate that the relationship between the psychical and the physical mirrors that of the machine to the screw. To speak of equivalence between the two only shortchanges and nearly renders unintelligible the Spinozistic or Leibnizian metaphysics. It is to accept this philosophy, as it stands, in terms of Extension, but to distort it in regards to Thought. With Spinoza and Leibniz, we assume that we have achieved a unifying synthesis of the phenomena of matter and that everything in matter can be explained mechanically. However, we do not extend this synthesis to include conscious facts entirely. We only go partway. We assume consciousness corresponds with a specific part of nature and not the entirety of it. Consequently, we sometimes arrive at "epiphenomenalism," which links consciousness with particular vibrations, situating it sporadically in the world, and at other times to a "monism" that fragments consciousness into as many tiny pieces as there are atoms; yet, in either scenario, we return to an incomplete Spinozism or an incomplete Leibnizian perspective. Between this view of nature and Cartesianism, we also find historical intermediary stages. The medical philosophers of the eighteenth century, with their constrained Cartesianism, significantly contributed to the emergence of today's "epiphenomenalism" and "monism."
These doctrines are thus found to fall short of the Kantian criticism. Certainly, the philosophy of Kant is also imbued with the belief in a science single and complete, embracing the whole of the real. Indeed, looked at from one aspect, it is only a continuation of the metaphysics of the moderns and a transposition of the ancient metaphysics. Spinoza and Leibniz had, following Aristotle, hypostatized in God the unity of knowledge. The Kantian criticism, on one side at least, consists in asking whether the whole of this hypothesis is necessary to modern science as it was to ancient science, or if part of the hypothesis is not sufficient. For the ancients, science applied to concepts, that is to say, to kinds of things. In compressing all concepts into one, they therefore necessarily arrived at a being, which we may call Thought, but which was rather thought-object than thought-subject. When Aristotle defined God the νοησεως νοησις, it is probably on νοησεως, and not on νοησις that he put the emphasis. God was the synthesis of all concepts, the idea of ideas. But modern science turns on laws, that is, on relations. Now, a relation is a bond established by a mind between two or more terms. A relation is nothing outside of the intellect that relates. The universe, therefore, can only be a system of laws if phenomena have passed beforehand through the filter of an intellect. Of course, this intellect might be that of a being infinitely superior to man, who would found the materiality of things at the same time that[Pg 357] he bound them together: such was the hypothesis of Leibniz and of Spinoza. But it is not necessary to go so far, and, for the effect we have here to obtain, the human intellect is enough: such is precisely the Kantian solution. Between the dogmatism of a Spinoza or a Leibniz and the criticism of Kant there is just the same distance as between "it may be maintained that—" and "it suffices that—." Kant stops this dogmatism on the incline that was making it slip too far toward the Greek metaphysics; he reduces to the strict minimum the hypothesis which is necessary in order to suppose the physics of Galileo indefinitely extensible. True, when he speaks of the human intellect, he means neither yours nor mine: the unity of nature comes indeed from the human understanding that unifies, but the unifying function that operates here is impersonal. It imparts itself to our individual consciousnesses, but it transcends them. It is much less than a substantial God; it is, however, a little more than the isolated work of a man or even than the collective work of humanity. It does not exactly lie within man; rather, man lies within it, as in an atmosphere of intellectuality which his consciousness breathes. It is, if we will, a formal God, something that in Kant is not yet divine, but which tends to become so. It became so, indeed, with Fichte. With Kant, however, its principal rôle was to give to the whole of our science a relative and human character, although of a humanity already somewhat deified. From this point of view, the criticism of Kant consisted chiefly in limiting the dogmatism of his predecessors, accepting their conception of science and reducing to a minimum the metaphysic it implied.
These ideas are clearly inadequate in light of Kant's criticism. For sure, Kant's philosophy also holds the belief in a single, complete science that covers all of reality. In fact, from one angle, it’s really just a continuation of modern metaphysics and a reworking of ancient metaphysics. Spinoza and Leibniz, following Aristotle, had turned God into the embodiment of the unity of knowledge. Kant's criticism, on at least one side, questions whether this entire hypothesis is necessary for modern science as it was for ancient science, or if part of it is enough. For the ancients, science was about concepts, that is to say, about kinds of things. By compressing all concepts into one, they necessarily ended up with a being, which we can call Thought, but which was more of a thought-object rather than a thought-subject. When Aristotle defined God as the νοησεως νοησις, he likely emphasized νοησεως, rather than νοησις. God was the synthesis of all concepts, the idea of ideas. But modern science revolves around laws, which are relationships. A relationship is a connection established by a mind between two or more terms. A relationship doesn’t exist outside of the relating intellect. Therefore, the universe can only be a system of laws if phenomena have first filtered through the intellect. Of course, this intellect could belong to a being far superior to humans, who would establish the materiality of things while also connecting them: this was the hypothesis of Leibniz and Spinoza. But we don’t need to go that far; for our purpose here, the human intellect is sufficient: this is exactly what Kant is proposing. There is a similar distance between the dogmatism of Spinoza or Leibniz and Kant's criticism as there is between "it's possible to argue that—" and "it's enough that—." Kant halts this dogmatism before it slips too far toward Greek metaphysics; he minimizes the hypothesis needed to assume that Galileo's physics can be infinitely extended. True, when he refers to the human intellect, he doesn’t mean yours or mine: the unity of nature stems from the human understanding that brings it together, but this unifying function is impersonal. It expresses itself through our individual consciousnesses, but it goes beyond them. It’s much less than a substantial God; however, it's a bit more than just the isolated work of one person or even the collective work of humanity. It doesn’t exactly exist within man; rather, man exists within it, like in an atmosphere of intellect that his consciousness breathes. It is, if you will, a formal God, something that, in Kant's view, is not yet divine but is striving to become so. It indeed became so with Fichte. With Kant, its main role was to give all of our science a relative and human character, although already somewhat transcended. From this perspective, Kant's criticism mainly involved limiting the dogmatism of his predecessors, adopting their view of science, and reducing to a minimum the metaphysics it implied.
But it is otherwise with the Kantian distinction between the matter of knowledge and its form. By regarding intelligence as pre-eminently a faculty of establishing re[Pg 358]lations, Kant attributed an extra-intellectual origin to the terms between which the relations are established. He affirmed, against his immediate predecessors, that knowledge is not entirely resolvable into terms of intelligence. He brought back into philosophy—while modifying it and carrying it on to another plane—that essential element of the philosophy of Descartes which had been abandoned by the Cartesians.
But the situation is different with the Kantian distinction between the content of knowledge and its structure. By viewing intelligence primarily as the ability to establish relationships, Kant claimed that the concepts between which these relationships exist come from outside intellect. He argued, against his recent predecessors, that knowledge cannot be fully reduced to intelligence alone. He reintroduced into philosophy—while altering it and elevating it to a new level—that critical aspect of Descartes' philosophy that had been left behind by the Cartesian thinkers.
Thereby he prepared the way for a new philosophy, which might have established itself in the extra-intellectual matter of knowledge by a higher effort of intuition. Coinciding with this matter, adopting the same rhythm and the same movement, might not consciousness, by two efforts of opposite direction, raising itself and lowering itself by turns, become able to grasp from within, and no longer perceive only from without, the two forms of reality, body and mind? Would not this twofold effort make us, as far as that is possible, re-live the absolute? Moreover, as, in the course of this operation, we should see intellect spring up of itself, cut itself out in the whole of mind, intellectual knowledge would then appear as it is, limited, but not relative.
He paved the way for a new philosophy that could have established itself in the realm of knowledge through a greater effort of intuition. By aligning with this realm and adopting the same rhythm and movement, could consciousness, through two opposing efforts of lifting itself and lowering itself alternately, become capable of understanding from within instead of just perceiving from outside the two forms of reality: body and mind? Wouldn't this dual effort allow us, as much as possible, to re-experience the absolute? Furthermore, during this process, as we observe the intellect emerging on its own and defining itself within the entire mind, intellectual knowledge would then be seen for what it is: limited, but not relative.
Such was the direction that Kantianism might have pointed out to a revivified Cartesianism. But in this direction Kant himself did not go.
Such was the path that Kantianism could have indicated for a renewed Cartesianism. However, Kant himself did not take this direction.
He would not, because, while assigning to knowledge an extra-intellectual matter, he believed this matter to be either coextensive with intellect or less extensive than intellect. Therefore he could not dream of cutting out intellect in it, nor, consequently, of tracing the genesis of the understanding and its categories. The molds of the understanding and the understanding itself had to be accepted as they are, already made. Between the matter presented to our intellect and this intellect itself there was[Pg 359] no relationship. The agreement between the two was due to the fact that intellect imposed its form on matter. So that not only was it necessary to posit the intellectual form of knowledge as a kind of absolute and give up the quest of its genesis, but the very matter of this knowledge seemed too ground down by the intellect for us to be able to hope to get it back in its original purity. It was not the "thing-in-itself," it was only the refraction of it through our atmosphere.
He would not, because while he assigned a non-intellectual component to knowledge, he believed this component was either as extensive as the intellect or less so. Therefore, he couldn’t imagine removing the intellect from it, nor could he trace the origin of understanding and its categories. The frameworks of understanding and understanding itself had to be accepted as they are, already formed. Between the matter presented to our intellect and the intellect itself there was[Pg 359] no connection. The relationship between the two came from the fact that the intellect imposed its structure on matter. Thus, it was necessary not only to acknowledge the intellectual form of knowledge as somewhat absolute and to abandon the search for its origin, but the very matter of this knowledge seemed too processed by the intellect for us to hope to retrieve it in its original form. It was not the "thing-in-itself," but only its refraction through our atmosphere.
If now we inquire why Kant did not believe that the matter of our knowledge extends beyond its form, this is what we find. The criticism of our knowledge of nature that was instituted by Kant consisted in ascertaining what our mind must be and what Nature must be if the claims of our science are justified; but of these claims themselves Kant has not made the criticism. I mean that he took for granted the idea of a science that is one, capable of binding with the same force all the parts of what is given, and of coördinating them into a system presenting on all sides an equal solidity. He did not consider, in his Critique of Pure Reason, that science became less and less objective, more and more symbolical, to the extent that it went from the physical to the vital, from the vital to the psychical. Experience does not move, to his view, in two different and perhaps opposite ways, the one conformable to the direction of the intellect, the other contrary to it. There is, for him, only one experience, and the intellect covers its whole ground. This is what Kant expresses by saying that all our intuitions are sensuous, or, in other words, infra-intellectual. And this would have to be admitted, indeed, if our science presented in all its parts an equal objectivity. But suppose, on the contrary, that science is less and less objective, more and more symbolical, as it goes from the physical to the psychical, passing through[Pg 360] the vital: then, as it is indeed necessary to perceive a thing somehow in order to symbolize it, there would be an intuition of the psychical, and more generally of the vital, which the intellect would transpose and translate, no doubt, but which would none the less transcend the intellect. There would be, in other words, a supra-intellectual intuition. If this intuition exist, a taking possession of the spirit by itself is possible, and no longer only a knowledge that is external and phenomenal. What is more, if we have an intuition of this kind (I mean an ultra-intellectual intuition) then sensuous intuition is likely to be in continuity with it through certain intermediaries, as the infra-red is continuous with the ultra-violet. Sensuous intuition itself, therefore, is promoted. It will no longer attain only the phantom of an unattainable thing-in-itself. It is (provided we bring to it certain indispensable corrections) into the absolute itself that it will introduce us. So long as it was regarded as the only material of our science, it reflected back on all science something of the relativity which strikes a scientific knowledge of spirit; and thus the perception of bodies, which is the beginning of the science of bodies, seemed itself to be relative. Relative, therefore, seemed to be sensuous intuition. But this is not the case if distinctions are made between the different sciences, and if the scientific knowledge of the spiritual (and also, consequently, of the vital) be regarded as the more or less artificial extension of a certain manner of knowing which, applied to bodies, is not at all symbolical. Let us go further: if there are thus two intuitions of different order (the second being obtained by a reversal of the direction of the first), and if it is toward the second that the intellect naturally inclines, there is no essential difference between the intellect and this intuition itself. The barriers between the matter of sensible know[Pg 361]ledge and its form are lowered, as also between the "pure forms" of sensibility and the categories of the understanding. The matter and form of intellectual knowledge (restricted to its own object) are seen to be engendering each other by a reciprocal adaptation, intellect modeling itself on corporeity, and corporeity on intellect.
If we now ask why Kant didn’t think that the content of our knowledge goes beyond its structure, here’s what we find. Kant's critique of our understanding of nature aimed to identify what our mind and Nature must be if the claims of our science are legitimate; however, he didn’t critique these claims themselves. He assumed the idea of a unified science that could bind all parts of what is given with the same force, coordinating them into a system that presents equal solidity from all angles. In his *Critique of Pure Reason*, he didn’t consider that science became less objective and more symbolic, moving from the physical to the vital, and from the vital to the psychological. He believed that experience doesn’t move in two different and possibly opposing ways—one aligned with intellect, the other against it. For him, there is only one experience, and the intellect encompasses everything within it. Kant expresses this by stating that all our intuitions are sensuous, or, in other words, infra-intellectual. This would need to be accepted if our science displayed equal objectivity across its parts. But suppose, on the contrary, that science increasingly becomes less objective and more symbolic as it transitions from the physical to the psychological, passing through the vital: then, since it is indeed necessary to perceive something to symbolize it, there would be an intuition of the psychological and, more generally, of the vital, which the intellect would interpret and translate but would still transcend the intellect. In other words, there would be a supra-intellectual intuition. If this intuition exists, it would allow for a direct possession of the spirit by itself, rather than just an external and phenomenal type of knowledge. Furthermore, if we have this kind of intuition (meaning an ultra-intellectual intuition), then sensuous intuition is likely to be connected to it through certain intermediaries, just as infrared is connected to ultraviolet. Thus, sensuous intuition itself becomes elevated. It will no longer only reach the shadow of an unreachable thing-in-itself. It is (provided we apply certain necessary adjustments) this that will lead us into the absolute itself. As long as it was considered the only material for our science, it reflected a certain relativity back onto all science, which dampened the scientific understanding of the spirit; thus, the perception of bodies, which is the foundation of the science of bodies, appeared relative. Therefore, sensuous intuition seemed relative. But this isn’t true if distinctions are made between different sciences, and if the scientific understanding of the spiritual (and consequently the vital) is seen as a somewhat artificial extension of a certain way of knowing that, when applied to bodies, is not symbolic at all. Let’s dig deeper: if there are, indeed, two kinds of intuition at different levels (with the second being derived from the reversal of the first), and if the intellect is naturally drawn to the second, there’s no fundamental difference between the intellect and that intuition itself. The boundaries between the content of sensible knowledge and its structure are reduced, as are those between the "pure forms" of sensibility and the categories of understanding. The content and structure of intellectual knowledge (limited to its own object) are revealed to engender one another through mutual adaptation, with intellect shaping itself to fit corporeality, and corporeality shaping itself to fit intellect.
But this duality of intuition Kant neither would nor could admit. It would have been necessary, in order to admit it, to regard duration as the very stuff of reality, and consequently to distinguish between the substantial duration of things and time spread out in space. It would have been necessary to regard space itself, and the geometry which is immanent in space, as an ideal limit in the direction of which material things develop, but which they do not actually attain. Nothing could be more contrary to the letter, and perhaps also to the spirit, of the Critique of Pure Reason. No doubt, knowledge is presented to us in it as an ever-open roll, experience as a push of facts that is for ever going on. But, according to Kant, these facts are spread out on one plane as fast as they arise; they are external to each other and external to the mind. Of a knowledge from within, that could grasp them in their springing forth instead of taking them already sprung, that would dig beneath space and spatialized time, there is never any question. Yet it is indeed beneath this plane that our consciousness places us; there flows true duration.
But Kant neither would nor could accept this duality of intuition. To accept it, he would have had to see duration as the very essence of reality, and therefore distinguish between the inherent duration of things and time that extends through space. He would have needed to view space itself, along with the geometry that exists within it, as an ideal limit towards which physical things evolve, but which they never actually reach. Nothing could be more opposed to the letter and perhaps also to the spirit of the Critique of Pure Reason. Indeed, knowledge is presented to us as an ever-unfolding scroll, and experience as a continuous flow of facts. However, according to Kant, these facts exist on a single plane, appearing as quickly as they emerge; they are separate from one another and from the mind. There's never any mention of a knowledge from within that could capture them as they manifest instead of merely recognizing them after the fact, a knowledge that would delve below space and spatialized time. Yet, it is indeed beneath this plane that our consciousness positions us; there flows true duration.
In this respect, also, Kant is very near his predecessors. Between the non-temporal, and the time that is spread out in distinct moments, he admits no mean. And as there is indeed no intuition that carries us into the non-temporal, all intuition is thus found to be sensuous, by definition. But between physical existence, which is spread out in space, and non-temporal existence, which can only be a conceptual and logical existence like that[Pg 362] of which metaphysical dogmatism speaks, is there not room for consciousness and for life? There is, unquestionably. We perceive it when we place ourselves in duration in order to go from that duration to moments, instead of starting from moments in order to bind them again and to construct duration.
In this way, Kant closely aligns with his predecessors. He doesn’t see any middle ground between the non-temporal and the time spread out in distinct moments. Since there’s really no intuition that takes us into the non-temporal, all intuition is defined as sensuous. However, between physical existence, which is spread out in space, and non-temporal existence, which can only exist as a conceptual and logical idea like that[Pg 362] mentioned by metaphysical dogmatism, isn’t there space for consciousness and life? Absolutely. We recognize this when we situate ourselves in duration to move from that duration into moments, rather than starting from moments to reconstruct duration.
Yet it was to a non-temporal intuition that the immediate successors of Kant turned, in order to escape from the Kantian relativism. Certainly, the ideas of becoming, of progress, of evolution, seem to occupy a large place in their philosophy. But does duration really play a part in it? Real duration is that in which each form flows out of previous forms, while adding to them something new, and is explained by them as much as it explains them; but to deduce this form directly from one complete Being which it is supposed to manifest, is to return to Spinozism. It is, like Leibniz and Spinoza, to deny to duration all efficient action. The post-Kantian philosophy, severe as it may have been on the mechanistic theories, accepts from mechanism the idea of a science that is one and the same for all kinds of reality. And it is nearer to mechanism than it imagines; for though, in the consideration of matter, of life and of thought, it replaces the successive degrees of complexity, that mechanism supposed by degrees of the realization of an Idea or by degrees of the objectification of a Will, it still speaks of degrees, and these degrees are those of a scale which Being traverses in a single direction. In short, it makes out the same articulations in nature that mechanism does. Of mechanism it retains the whole design; it merely gives it a different coloring. But it is the design itself, or at least one half of the design, that needs to be re-made.
Yet the immediate successors of Kant turned to a non-temporal intuition to escape Kantian relativism. Certainly, the ideas of becoming, progress, and evolution seem to play a significant role in their philosophy. But does duration really matter? Real duration is when each form emerges from previous forms while adding something new, and it is explained by them as much as it explains them. However, to derive this form directly from one complete Being that it’s supposed to represent is to revert to Spinozism. Like Leibniz and Spinoza, it denies duration any effective action. The post-Kantian philosophy, though harsh on mechanistic theories, adopts from mechanism the concept of a unified science applicable to all types of reality. It’s actually closer to mechanism than it realizes; even though it replaces the successive degrees of complexity in matter, life, and thought with stages of the realization of an Idea or the objectification of a Will, it still discusses degrees, and these degrees reflect a scale that Being moves through in one direction. In short, it outlines the same structures in nature that mechanism does. It retains the entire framework of mechanism; it just gives it a different perspective. But it’s the framework itself, or at least half of it, that needs to be reimagined.
If we are to do that, we must give up the method of construction, which was that of Kant's successors. We[Pg 363] must appeal to experience—an experience purified, or, in other words, released, where necessary, from the molds that our intellect has formed in the degree and proportion of the progress of our action on things. An experience of this kind is not a non-temporal experience. It only seeks, beyond the spatialized time in which we believe we see continual rearrangements between the parts, that concrete duration in which a radical recasting of the whole is always going on. It follows the real in all its sinuosities. It does not lead us, like the method of construction, to higher and higher generalities—piled-up stories of a magnificent building. But then it leaves no play between the explanations it suggests and the objects it has to explain. It is the detail of the real, and no longer only the whole in a lump, that it claims to illumine.
If we want to do that, we need to abandon the method of construction that Kant's followers used. We[Pg 363] must rely on experience—an experience that is purified or, in simpler terms, freed where necessary from the frameworks our intellect has created based on our progress with things. This kind of experience isn't timeless. It seeks, beyond the time we perceive as a constant reshuffling of the parts, that concrete duration where a complete transformation of the whole is always taking place. It follows reality in all its complexities. Unlike the method of construction, it doesn't lead us to higher and higher generalizations—layered stories of an impressive structure. Instead, it creates a direct connection between the explanations it offers and the objects it needs to clarify. It shines a light on the specifics of reality, not just the whole as a singular entity.
That the thought of the nineteenth century called for a philosophy of this kind, rescued from the arbitrary, capable of coming down to the detail of particular facts, is unquestionable. Unquestionably, also, it felt that this philosophy ought to establish itself in what we call concrete duration. The advent of the moral sciences, the progress of psychology, the growing importance of embryology among the biological sciences—all this was bound to suggest the idea of a reality which endures inwardly, which is duration itself. So, when a philosopher arose who announced a doctrine of evolution, in which the progress of matter toward perceptibility would be traced together with the advance of the mind toward rationality, in which the complication of correspondences between the external and the internal would be followed step by step, in which change would become the very substance of things—to him all eyes were turned. The powerful attraction that Spencerian evolutionism has exercised on contemporary[Pg 364] thought is due to that very cause. However far Spencer may seem to be from Kant, however ignorant, indeed, he may have been of Kantianism, he felt, nevertheless, at his first contact with the biological sciences, the direction in which philosophy could continue to advance without laying itself open to the Kantian criticism.
It's clear that the thinking of the nineteenth century needed a philosophy like this, one that was free from arbitrary rules and could focus on specific details. It also recognized that this philosophy should be grounded in what we refer to as concrete duration. The emergence of moral sciences, advancements in psychology, and the increasing significance of embryology in the biological sciences all contributed to the notion of a reality that endures internally—that is, duration itself. So, when a philosopher came forward proposing a doctrine of evolution that linked the progress of matter toward visibility with the development of the mind toward rationality, tracking the intricate connections between the external and internal, and positing that change is the essence of things, many turned their attention to him. The strong influence of Spencerian evolutionism on contemporary[Pg 364] thought stems from this very point. No matter how distant Spencer may appear from Kant, and regardless of how ignorant he might have been of Kantian ideas, he nonetheless recognized, upon first engaging with biological sciences, the path in which philosophy could continue to grow without exposing itself to Kantian criticism.
But he had no sooner started to follow the path than he turned off short. He had promised to retrace a genesis, and, lo! he was doing something entirely different. His doctrine bore indeed the name of evolutionism; it claimed to remount and redescend the course of the universal becoming; but, in fact, it dealt neither with becoming nor with evolution.
But he had barely begun to follow the path when he veered off. He had promised to retrace a beginning, and now he was doing something completely different. His theory was actually called evolutionism; it claimed to go back and forth along the journey of universal change; yet, in reality, it was about neither change nor evolution.
We need not enter here into a profound examination of this philosophy. Let us say merely that the usual device of the Spencerian method consists in reconstructing evolution with fragments of the evolved. If I paste a picture on a card and then cut up the card into bits, I can reproduce the picture by rightly grouping again the small pieces. And a child who working thus with the pieces of a puzzle-picture, and putting together unformed fragments of the picture finally obtains a pretty colored design, no doubt imagines that he has produced design and color. Yet the act of drawing and painting has nothing to do with that of putting together the fragments of a picture already drawn and already painted. So, by combining together the most simple results of evolution, you may imitate well or ill the most complex effects; but of neither the simple nor the complex will you have retraced the genesis, and the addition of evolved to evolved will bear no resemblance whatever to the movement of evolution.
We don't need to dive deep into this philosophy here. Let's just say that the typical approach of the Spencerian method involves reconstructing evolution using pieces of what has already evolved. If I stick a picture on a card and then cut the card into bits, I can recreate the picture by grouping the small pieces correctly. A child, working with the pieces of a puzzle and assembling the unformed fragments, eventually ends up with a nice colored design, and likely thinks they have created that design and color. However, the act of drawing and painting is completely different from putting together fragments of a picture that's already been drawn and painted. Similarly, by combining the simplest outcomes of evolution, you can imitate the most complex effects, whether well or poorly; yet you won't actually have retraced the origin of either the simple or the complex, and adding evolved to evolved won’t resemble the actual process of evolution in any way.
Such, however, is Spencer's illusion. He takes reality in its present form; he breaks it to pieces, he scatters it in fragments which he throws to the winds; then he[Pg 365] "integrates" these fragments and "dissipates their movement." Having imitated the Whole by a work of mosaic, he imagines he has retraced the design of it, and made the genesis.
Such is Spencer's illusion. He sees reality as it currently exists; he breaks it apart, scattering the pieces to the winds; then he[Pg 365] "integrates" these fragments and "dissipates their movement." Having imitated the Whole with a mosaic, he believes he has recreated its design and origins.
Is it matter that is in question? The diffused elements which he integrates into visible and tangible bodies have all the air of being the very particles of the simple bodies, which he first supposes disseminated throughout space. They are, at any rate, "material points," and consequently unvarying points, veritable little solids: as if solidity, being what is nearest and handiest to us, could be found at the very origin of materiality! The more physics progresses, the more it shows the impossibility of representing the properties of ether or of electricity—the probable base of all bodies—on the model of the properties of the matter which we perceive. But philosophy goes back further even than the ether, a mere schematic figure of the relations between phenomena apprehended by our senses. It knows indeed that what is visible and tangible in things represents our possible action on them. It is not by dividing the evolved that we shall reach the principle of that which evolves. It is not by recomposing the evolved with itself that we shall reproduce the evolution of which it is the term.
Is it the matter that's in question? The scattered elements he combines into visible and tangible forms seem to be the very particles of the simple bodies that he initially assumes are spread throughout space. They are, after all, "material points," and therefore unchanging points, true little solids: as if solidity, being what is closest and most accessible to us, could be found right at the heart of materiality! As physics advances, it increasingly reveals the difficulty of representing the properties of ether or electricity—the likely foundation of all bodies—using the model of the properties of the matter we perceive. Yet philosophy ventures even further back than the ether, which is merely a conceptual representation of the relationships between phenomena that our senses can grasp. It understands that what is visible and tangible in things represents our potential action toward them. We won’t find the principle of what evolves by dividing the evolved. We won’t reproduce the evolution that it signifies by recomposing the evolved with itself.
Is it the question of mind? By compounding the reflex with the reflex, Spencer thinks he generates instinct and rational volition one after the other. He fails to see that the specialized reflex, being a terminal point of evolution just as much as perfect will, cannot be supposed at the start. That the first of the two terms should have reached its final form before the other is probable enough; but both the one and the other are deposits of the evolution movement, and the evolution movement itself can no more be expressed as a function solely of the first than solely[Pg 366] of the second. We must begin by mixing the reflex and the voluntary. We must then go in quest of the fluid reality which has been precipitated in this twofold form, and which probably shares in both without being either. At the lowest degree of the animal scale, in living beings that are but an undifferentiated protoplasmic mass, the reaction to stimulus does not yet call into play one definite mechanism, as in the reflex; it has not yet choice among several definite mechanisms, as in the voluntary act; it is, then, neither voluntary nor reflex, though it heralds both. We experience in ourselves something of this true original activity when we perform semi-voluntary and semi-automatic movements to escape a pressing danger. And yet this is but a very imperfect imitation of the primitive character, for we are concerned here with a mixture of two activities already formed, already localized in a brain and in a spinal cord, whereas the original activity was a simple thing, which became diversified through the very construction of mechanisms like those of the spinal cord and brain. But to all this Spencer shuts his eyes, because it is of the essence of his method to recompose the consolidated with the consolidated, instead of going back to the gradual process of consolidation, which is evolution itself.
Is it a matter of the mind? By combining reflex actions, Spencer believes he creates instinct and rational choice one after the other. He doesn't recognize that the specialized reflex, being a final result of evolution just like perfect will, can't be assumed from the beginning. It's likely that one of these two aspects developed fully before the other; however, both are products of the evolutionary process, and that process can't be explained solely by the first or the second. We need to start by blending reflex and voluntary actions. We must search for the fluid reality that has taken shape in this dual form, which likely contains elements of both without being either one. At the most basic level of the animal kingdom, in living beings that are just an undifferentiated protoplasmic mass, the response to a stimulus doesn't engage a specific mechanism, as in reflex actions; it doesn't have a choice among several mechanisms, as in voluntary actions; thus, it is neither voluntary nor reflex, even though it hints at both. We experience a bit of this genuine original activity when we make semi-voluntary and semi-automatic movements to avoid immediate danger. Yet, this is just an imperfect representation of the primitive nature, as we are dealing with a mix of two activities that are already developed and located within a brain and spinal cord, whereas the original activity was a simple phenomenon that diversified through the very development of mechanisms like the spinal cord and brain. But Spencer ignores all of this, as his method focuses on reassembling what is already established rather than tracing back to the gradual process of development, which is evolution itself.
Is it, finally, the question of the correspondence between mind and matter? Spencer is right in defining the intellect by this correspondence. He is right in regarding it as the end of an evolution. But when he comes to retrace this evolution, again he integrates the evolved with the evolved—failing to see that he is thus taking useless trouble, and that in positing the slightest fragment of the actually evolved he posits the whole—so that it is vain for him, then, to pretend to make the genesis of it.
Is it really about the relationship between mind and matter? Spencer is correct in defining intelligence through this relationship. He’s right to see it as the outcome of an evolution. But when he tries to map out this evolution, he again mixes the evolved with the evolved—failing to recognize that he’s making unnecessary efforts, and that by identifying even a small part of what’s truly evolved, he implies the entirety—so it's pointless for him to claim that he's explaining its origin.
For, according to him, the phenomena that succeed[Pg 367] each other in nature project into the human mind images which represent them. To the relations between phenomena, therefore, correspond symmetrically relations between the ideas. And the most general laws of nature, in which the relations between phenomena are condensed, are thus found to have engendered the directing principles of thought, into which the relations between ideas have been integrated. Nature, therefore, is reflected in mind. The intimate structure of our thought corresponds, piece by piece, to the very skeleton of things—I admit it willingly; but, in order that the human mind may be able to represent relations between phenomena, there must first be phenomena, that is to say, distinct facts, cut out in the continuity of becoming. And once we posit this particular mode of cutting up such as we perceive it to-day, we posit also the intellect such as it is to-day, for it is by relation to it, and to it alone, that reality is cut up in this manner. Is it probable that mammals and insects notice the same aspects of nature, trace in it the same divisions, articulate the whole in the same way? And yet the insect, so far as intelligent, has already something of our intellect. Each being cuts up the material world according to the lines that its action must follow: it is these lines of possible action that, by intercrossing, mark out the net of experience of which each mesh is a fact. No doubt, a town is composed exclusively of houses, and the streets of the town are only the intervals between the houses: so, we may say that nature contains only facts, and that, the facts once posited, the relations are simply the lines running between the facts. But, in a town, it is the gradual portioning of the ground into lots that has determined at once the place of the houses, their general shape, and the direction of the streets: to this portioning we must go back if we wish to understand the particular mode of subdivision that causes each house[Pg 368] to be where it is, each street to run as it does. Now, the cardinal error of Spencer is to take experience already allotted as given, whereas the true problem is to know how the allotment was worked. I agree that the laws of thought are only the integration of relations between facts. But, when I posit the facts with the shape they have for me to-day, I suppose my faculties of perception and intellection such as they are in me to-day; for it is they that portion the real into lots, they that cut the facts out in the whole of reality. Therefore, instead of saying that the relations between facts have generated the laws of thought, I can as well claim that it is the form of thought that has determined the shape of the facts perceived, and consequently their relations among themselves: the two ways of expressing oneself are equivalent; they say at bottom the same thing. With the second, it is true, we give up speaking of evolution. But, with the first, we only speak of it, we do not think of it any the more. For a true evolutionism would propose to discover by what modus vivendi, gradually obtained, the intellect has adopted its plan of structure, and matter its mode of subdivision. This structure and this subdivision work into each other; they are mutually complementary; they must have progressed one with the other. And, whether we posit the present structure of mind or the present subdivision of matter, in either case we remain in the evolved: we are told nothing of what evolves, nothing of evolution.
For him, the events that follow each other in nature project images into the human mind that represent them. Therefore, the relationships between phenomena correspond symmetrically to the relationships between ideas. The most general laws of nature, which condense these relationships, have created the guiding principles of thought, into which the relationships between ideas are integrated. Thus, nature is reflected in the mind. The inner structure of our thinking corresponds directly to the very essence of things—I agree with that; however, for the human mind to represent relationships between phenomena, there must first be phenomena, meaning distinct facts that are separated in the ongoing process of becoming. Once we establish the way we perceive and categorize these phenomena today, we also establish the intellect as it is today, as it is only in relation to it that reality is divided this way. Is it likely that mammals and insects observe the same aspects of nature, recognize the same divisions, and articulate the whole in the same way? Yet, intelligent insects possess some aspects of our intellect. Each being divides the material world according to the lines that its actions must follow: these lines of possible action interconnect to outline the net of experience, with each mesh being a fact. Certainly, a town is made up entirely of houses, and the streets of the town are merely the spaces between the houses: similarly, we can say that nature consists solely of facts, and once the facts are established, the relationships are just the lines connecting the facts. However, in a town, it is the gradual division of land into lots that determines where the houses are placed, their overall shape, and the direction of the streets: we need to look back at this division to understand how each house[Pg 368] is positioned and why each street runs as it does. The main mistake of Spencer is to assume that the experience already divided is simply given, while the real issue is to understand how this division occurred. I agree that the laws of thought are merely the integration of relationships between facts. But when I identify the facts in their current form, I am assuming my faculties of perception and understanding as they are in me today; it is these faculties that divide the real into lots, that extract the facts from the entirety of reality. Therefore, instead of saying that relationships between facts have generated the laws of thought, I could just as easily claim that it is the form of thought that has shaped the facts perceived and their relationships to each other: both expressions ultimately convey the same idea. With the second interpretation, we do indeed stop talking about evolution. Yet with the first, we only discuss it without actually thinking about it. True evolutionism would seek to uncover how the intellect has gradually structured itself and how matter has subdivided itself. This structure and division work together; they are mutually supportive and must have progressed in tandem. Whether we consider the current structure of the mind or the current subdivision of matter, in either case, we are still within the evolved: we learn nothing about what evolves, nothing about evolution.
And yet it is this evolution that we must discover. Already, in the field of physics itself, the scientists who are pushing the study of their science furthest incline to believe that we cannot reason about the parts as we reason about the whole; that the same principles are not applicable to the origin and to the end of a progress; that neither creation nor annihilation, for instance, is inadmissible[Pg 369] when we are concerned with the constituent corpuscles of the atom. Thereby they tend to place themselves in the concrete duration, in which alone there is true generation and not only a composition of parts. It is true that the creation and annihilation of which they speak concern the movement or the energy, and not the imponderable medium through which the energy and the movement are supposed to circulate. But what can remain of matter when you take away everything that determines it, that is to say, just energy and movement themselves? The philosopher must go further than the scientist. Making a clean sweep of everything that is only an imaginative symbol, he will see the material world melt back into a simple flux, a continuity of flowing, a becoming. And he will thus be prepared to discover real duration there where it is still more useful to find it, in the realm of life and of consciousness. For, so far as inert matter is concerned, we may neglect the flowing without committing a serious error: matter, we have said, is weighted with geometry; and matter, the reality which descends, endures only by its connection with that which ascends. But life and consciousness are this very ascension. When once we have grasped them in their essence by adopting their movement, we understand how the rest of reality is derived from them. Evolution appears and, within this evolution, the progressive determination of materiality and intellectuality by the gradual consolidation of the one and of the other. But, then, it is within the evolutionary movement that we place ourselves, in order to follow it to its present results, instead of recomposing these results artificially with fragments of themselves. Such seems to us to be the true function of philosophy. So understood, philosophy is not only the turning of the mind homeward, the coincidence of human consciousness with the living principle whence[Pg 370] it emanates, a contact with the creative effort: it is the study of becoming in general, it is true evolutionism and consequently the true continuation of science—provided that we understand by this word a set of truths either experienced or demonstrated, and not a certain new scholasticism that has grown up during the latter half of the nineteenth century around the physics of Galileo, as the old scholasticism grew up around Aristotle.
And yet it's this evolution that we need to uncover. Already, in the field of physics, the scientists pushing the boundaries of their discipline tend to believe that we can’t think about the parts the same way we think about the whole; that the same principles don't apply to both the origin and the end of progress; that neither creation nor annihilation, for example, is off the table when we’re looking at the fundamental particles of the atom. They are starting to focus on concrete duration, where real generation occurs, rather than just a collection of parts. It's true that the creation and annihilation they reference concern movement or energy, not the unseen medium through which energy and movement are expected to flow. But what remains of matter when you strip away everything that defines it, namely just energy and movement themselves? The philosopher needs to go deeper than the scientist. By clearing away everything that is just an imaginative symbol, they will see the material world dissolve back into a simple flow, a continuous state of becoming. This prepares them to find real duration where it’s even more beneficial to uncover it, in the realm of life and consciousness. As far as inert matter goes, we can overlook the flow without making a serious mistake: matter, as we’ve said, is bound by geometry; and matter, the reality that descends, exists only through its connection with what ascends. But life and consciousness are that very ascension. Once we grasp them in their essence by embracing their movement, we understand how the rest of reality originates from them. Evolution becomes apparent, and within this evolution, there’s a gradual shaping of materiality and intellectuality as one gradually solidifies the other. So, we immerse ourselves in the evolutionary process to track it to its current outcomes, instead of artificially reassembling these outcomes with fragments of themselves. This appears to us to be the true role of philosophy. Understood this way, philosophy is not just a return of the mind to its origins, where human consciousness coincides with the living principle from which [Pg 370] it emerges, a connection with creative effort: it’s the study of becoming in general, it is true evolutionism and, consequently, the true continuation of science—provided we define this word as a collection of truths either experienced or proven, and not as a certain new scholasticism that has developed in the latter half of the nineteenth century around Galileo's physics, just as the old scholasticism formed around Aristotle.
FOOTNOTES:
[96] The part of this chapter which treats of the history of systems, particularly of the Greek philosophy, is only the very succinct résumé of views that we developed at length, from 1900 to 1904, in our lectures at the Collège de France, especially in a course on the History of the Idea of Time (1902-1903). We then compared the mechanism of conceptual thought to that of the cinematograph. We believe the comparison will be useful here.
[96] The section of this chapter that discusses the history of systems, particularly Greek philosophy, is just a brief summary of ideas we explored in depth between 1900 and 1904 during our lectures at the Collège de France, especially in a course on the History of the Idea of Time (1902-1903). At that time, we compared the way we think conceptually to how a movie projector operates. We think this comparison will be helpful here.
[98] Kant, Critique of Pure Reason, 2nd edition, p. 737: "From the point of view of our knowledge in general ... the peculiar function of negative propositions is simply to prevent error." Cf. Sigwart, Logik, 2nd edition, vol. i. pp. 150 ff.
[98] Kant, Critique of Pure Reason, 2nd edition, p. 737: "When we look at our knowledge overall ... the main purpose of negative statements is just to avoid mistakes." Cf. Sigwart, Logik, 2nd edition, vol. i. pp. 150 ff.
[99] That is, we do not consider the sophism of Zeno refuted by the fact that the geometrical progression a(1 + 1/n + 1/n2 + 1/n3 +,... etc.)—in which a designates the initial distance between Achilles and the tortoise, and n the relation of their respective velocities—has a finite sum if n is greater than 1. On this point we may refer to the arguments of F. Evellin, which we regard as conclusive (see Evellin, Infini et quantité, Paris, 1880, pp. 63-97; cf. Revue philosophique, vol. xi., 1881, pp. 564-568). The truth is that mathematics, as we have tried to show in a former work, deals and can deal only with lengths. It has therefore had to seek devices, first, to transfer to the movement, which is not a length, the divisibility of the line passed over, and then to reconcile with experience the idea (contrary to experience and full of absurdities) of a movement that is a length, that is, of a movement placed upon its trajectory and arbitrarily decomposable like it.
[99] In other words, we don't argue that Zeno's paradox is disproved by the fact that the geometric series a(1 + 1/n + 1/n² + 1/n³ +,... etc.)—where a represents the initial distance between Achilles and the tortoise, and n signifies their respective speeds—has a finite sum when n is greater than 1. On this matter, we can refer to the arguments of F. Evellin, which we consider conclusive (see Evellin, Infini et quantité, Paris, 1880, pp. 63-97; cf. Revue philosophique, vol. xi., 1881, pp. 564-568). The reality is that mathematics, as we've attempted to demonstrate in a previous work, only deals with lengths. Therefore, it has to find methods to apply the divisibility of the line traversed to motion, which isn't a length, and then reconcile with experience the idea (which contradicts experience and is full of absurdities) of motion being a length, that is, a motion set upon its path and arbitrarily separable like it.
[100] Plato, Timaeus, 37 D.
[101] We have tried to bring out what is true and what is false in this idea, so far as spatiality is concerned (see Chapter III.). It seems to us radically false as regards duration.
[101] We've attempted to highlight what is true and what is false in this concept, especially concerning space (see Chapter III.). To us, it appears fundamentally wrong when it comes to duration.
[102] Aristotle, De anima, 430 a 14 και εστιν ο μεν τοιουτος νους τω πυντυ γινεσθαι, ο δε τω παντα ποιειν, ως εξις τις, οιον το φως. τροπον γαρ τινα κα το φως ποιει τα δυναμει οντα χρωματα ενεργεια χρωματα.
[102] Aristotle, On the Soul, 430 a 14: There is a type of mind that comes to be through chance, and another that brings everything into existence, like a certain habit, similar to light. In a way, light produces colors that have potential, turning them into actual colors.
[103] De caelo, ii. 287 a 12 της εσχατης περιφορας ουτε κενον εστιν εξωθεν ουτε τοπος. Phys. iv. 212 a 34 το δε παν εστι μεν ως κινησεται εστι δ' ως ου. ως μεν γαρ ολον, αμα τον τοπον ου μεταβαλλει. κυκλω δε κινησεται, των μοιων γαρ ουτος ο τοπος.
[103] On the Heavens, ii. 287 a 12, neither the ultimate boundary is empty outside nor is it a place. Physics, iv. 212 a 34, and the whole thing exists as it moves, yet it exists as it does not move. For the whole does not change its place at once. It moves in a circle, for this place is one of the elements.
[107] Descartes, Principes, ii. § 29.
[108] Descartes, Principes, ii. §§ 36 ff.
[109] In a course of lectures on Plotinus, given at the Collège de France in 1897-1898, we tried to bring out these resemblances. They are numerous and impressive. The analogy is continued even in the formulae employed on each side.
[109] During a series of talks on Plotinus, held at the Collège de France in 1897-1898, we aimed to highlight these similarities. There are many of them, and they are striking. The comparison even extends to the terminology used on both sides.
INDEX
(Compiled by the Translator)
(Compiled by the Translator)
Abolition of everything a self-contradiction, 280, 283, 296, 298
idea of, 279, 282, 283, 295, 296.
See Nought
Absence of order, 231, 234, 274.
See Disorder
Absolute and freedom, 277
reality, 99, 228-9, 269, 358, 361
reality of the person, 269
time and the, 239, 240, 298, 340, 344
Absoluteness of duration, 206
of understanding, xi, 47, 152, 190, 197, 199
Abstract becoming, 304-7
multiplicity, 257-9
time, 9, 17, 20-2, 37, 39, 46, 51, 163, 318-9, 336, 352-3
Accident and essence in Aristotle's philosophy, 353
in evolution, 86-7, 104, 114-5, 127, 169, 170, 252, 254-5, 266, 267,
326-7
Accidental variations, 55, 63, 68, 69, 74, 85-6, 168
Accumulation of energy, function of vegetable organisms, 253, 255
Achilles and tortoise, in Zeno, 311, 312-3
Acquired characters, inheritance of, 76-9, 83-4, 87, 169, 170, 173, 231
Act, consciousness as inadequacy of, to representation, 144
form (or essence), quality, three classes of representation, 302-3
Action, creativeness of free, 192, 247
and concepts, 160, 297
and consciousness, xiii, 5, 143-4, 145, 179-80, 207, 262
discontinuity of, 154, 307
freedom of, in animals, 130
as function of nervous system, 262-3
indivisibility of, 94, 95, 308-9
and inert matter, 96, 136, 141-2, 156, 187, 198, 226, 366
instinct and, 136, 141
instrument of, consciousness, 180
instrument of, life, 162
instrument of matter, 161, 198-9
as instrument of consciousness, 180
and intellect. See Intellect and action
intensity of consciousness varies with ratio of possible, to real, 145
meaning of, 301-3
moves from want to fulness, 297, 298
organism a machine for, 252, 254, 300
and perception, 5, 11, 12, 93, 188, 189, 206, 227-30, 300, 307, 368
possible, 12, 13, 96, 144, 145, 146-7, 159, 165, 179-81, 188, 264
and science, 93, 195-6, 198-9, 329-30
and space, 203
sphere of the intellect, 155
tension in a free, 200, 207, 238, 240, 301-2
Activity, dissatisfaction the starting-point of, 297
of instinct, continuous with vital process, 139, 140
life as, 128-9, 247
mutually inverse factors in vital, 248
and nervous system, 110, 130, 132-3, 134-5, 180, 252, 261-3
organism as, 174
potential. See Action, possible
tension of free, 200, 202, 207-8, 223-4, 237, 239, 300-1
and torpor in evolution, 109, 111, 113, 114, 119-20, 129-30,
135-6, 181, 292
vital, has evolved divergently, 134
See Divergent lines of evolution
Adaptation, 50-1, 55, 57-8, 59, 70, 101, 129, 133, 192, 255, 270, 305-6
and causation, 102
mutual, between materiality and intellectuality, 187, 206-7
and progress, 101-2
Adequate and inadequate in Spinoza, 353
Adjectives, substantives and verbs, 303-4, 315
Aesthetics and philosophy, 177
Affection, Role of, in the idea of chance, 234
in the idea of nought, 281-3, 289, 293, 295, 296
in negation, 286-7
Affirmation and negation, 285-6, 293
Age and individuality, 15-6
Albuminoid substances, 121-2
Alciope, 96
Alexandrian philosophy, 322, 323
Algae in illustration of probable consciousness in vegetable forms, 112
Alimentation, 113-4, 117, 247
Allegory of the Cave, 191
Alternations of increase and decrease of mutability of the universe, 245-6
Alveolar froth, 33-4
Ambiguity of the idea of "generality" in philosophy, 230-1, 320-1
of primitive organisms, 99, 112, 113, 129-30
Ammophila hirsuta, paralyzing instinct in, 173
Amoeba, in illustration of imitation of the living by the unorganized, 33-6
in illustration of the ambiguity of primitive organisms, 99
in illustration of the mobility characteristic of animals, 108
in illustration of the "explosive" expenditure of energy characteristic
of animals, 120, 253
Anagenesis, 34
Anarchy, idea of, 233, 234.
See Disorder
Anatomy, comparative, and transformism, 25
Ancient philosophy, Achilles and tortoise, 311-2
Alexandrian philosophy, 322-3
Allegory of the Cave, 191
Anima (De), 322 note
Apogee of sensible object, 344, 345, 349
Archimedes, 343-4
Aristotle, 135, 174-5, 227-8, 314, 316, 321, 323, 324, 328-33, 347, 349,
353, 356, 370
Arrow of Zeno, 308-13
ascent toward God, in Aristotle, 323
Astronomy, ancient and modern, 334-6
attraction and impulsion in, 323-4
becoming in, 313-4, 317
bow and indivisibility of motion, 308-9
Caelo (De), of Aristotle, 322 note, 324 note
and Cartesian geometry, 334-5
causality in, 323, 325-6
change in, 313-4, 317, 328-9, 342-3
cinematographical nature of, 315
circularity of God's thought, 323-4
concentric spheres, 328
concepts, 326-7, 356
"conversion" and "procession" in, 323
degradation of ideas into sensible flux, 317-8, 321, 323-4, 327, 328,
343-5, 352-3
degrees of reality, 323-4, 327
diminution, derivation of becoming by. See Degradation of Ideas, etc.
duration, 317-9 note, 323-4, 327-9
Eleatic philosophy, 308, 314
Enneads of Plotinus, 210 note
essence and accident, 354
essence or form, 314-5
eternal, 317-8, 324-6
Eternity, 317-8, 320, 324, 328-9
extension, 210 note, 318, 324, 327
form or idea, 314-20, 322, 327, 329-31, 352
geometry, Cartesian, and ancient philosophy, 334
God of Aristotle, 196-7, 322-4, 349, 352, 356
υλη, 353
Idea, 314-22, 352-3
and indivisibility of motion, 307-8, 311
intelligible reality in, 326
intelligibles of Plotinus, 353
λσγος, of Plotinus, 210 note
matter in Aristotle's philosophy, 316, 327
and modern astronomy, 333-4, 335
and modern geometry, 333-4
and modern philosophy, 226-7, 228-9, 232, 281-2, 344-5, 346, 349-51, 364,
369
and modern science, 329-30, 336, 342-3, 344-5, 357
motion in, 307-8, 312-3
necessity in, 327
νοησεως νοησις, 356
non-being, 316, 327
νους ποιητικος, 322
oscillation about being, sensible reality as, 317-8
Physics of Aristotle, 227-8 note, 324 note, 330-1
Plato, 48, 156, 191, 210 note, 316-8, 321-4, 327, 330, 348, 349
Plotinus, 210, 316, 323, 326 note, 349, 352-4
procession in Alexandrian philosophy, 323
ψνχη, 210 note, 350
realism in, 232
refraction of idea through matter or non-being, 317
sectioning of becoming, 318-9
sensible reality, 314, 316-8, 321, 327-9, 352-3
σωμα, 350
space and time, 317-9, 320
Timaeus, 318 note
time in ancient and in modern science, 330-1, 336-7, 341-4
time and space, 317-9, 320
vision of God in Alexandrian philosophy, 322
Zeno, 308, 313
Ancient science and modern, 329-31, 336-7, 342-5, 357
Anima (De), of Aristotle, 322 note
Animal kingdom, 12, 105-6, 119-21, 126, 129, 131-2, 134-6, 137-8, 139, 179,
184-5
Animals, 105-47, 167, 170, 181, 183, 187, 212, 214, 246, 252, 253, 254,
262-5, 267, 271, 293, 301
deduction in, 212
induction in, 214
and man, 139-43, 183, 187, 188, 212, 263, 264, 267
and man in respect to brain, 183, 184-5, 263-5
and man in respect to consciousness, 139-43, 180, 183, 187, 188, 192,
212, 263-8
and man in respect to instruments of action, 139-43, 150-1
and man in respect to intelligence, 137-8, 187, 188, 191-2, 212
and plants, 105-39, 124-6, 143, 145, 146-7, 168-70, 181-2, 253, 254, 293
and plants in respect to activity of consciousness, 109, 111, 113,
119-21, 128-9, 132, 134-6, 142-3, 144, 181-2, 293
and plants in respect to function, 117-8, 121-2, 127
and plants in respect to instinct, 167, 170
and plants in respect to mobility, 109, 110, 113, 129-30, 132-3, 135, 181
and plants in respect to nature of consciousness, 134-5
Antagonistic currents of the vital impetus, 129, 135-6, 181, 184, 250,
258-9
Anthophora, 146-7
Antinomies of Kant, 204, 205
Antipathy. See Sympathy, Feeling, Divination
Antithesis and thesis, 205
Ants, 101, 134, 140, 157
Ape's brain and consciousness contrasted with man's, 263
Aphasia, 181
Apidae, social instinct in the, 171
Apogee of instinct in the hymenoptera and of intelligence in man, 174-5
See Evolutionary superiority
Apogee of sensible object, in philosophy of Ideas, 343-4, 349
Approximateness of the knowledge of matter, 206-7
Approximation, in matter, to the mathematical order, 218.
See Order
Archimedes, 333-4
Aristotle. See Ancient Philosophy, Aristotle
Arrow, Flying, of Zeno, 308-9, 310, 312-3
Art, 6-7, 29 note, 45, 89, 177
Artemia Salina, transformations of, 72, 73
Arthropods in evolution, 130-5, 142
Articulate species, 133
Articulations of matter relative to action, 156, 367
of motion, 310-1
of real time, 332-3
Artificial, how far scientific knowledge is, 197, 218-9
instruments, 138, 139, 140-1
Artist, in illustration of the creativeness of duration, 340-1
Ascending cosmic movement, 11, 208, 275, 369
Ascent toward God, in Aristotle, 323
Association of organisms, 260.
See Individuation
universal oscillation between association and individuation, 259, 260.
See Societies
Astronomy and deduction, 213
and the inert order, 224
modern, in reference to ancient science, 334-6
Atmosphere of spatiality bathing intelligence, 204
Atom, 240, 254, 255
as an intellectual view of matter, 203, 250
and interpenetration, 207
Attack and defence in evolution, 131-2
Attention, 2, 148-9, 154, 184, 209
discontinuity of, 2
in man and in lower animals, 184.
See Tension and instinct, Tension as inverted extension,
Tension of personality, Sympathetic appreciation, etc.,
Relaxation
and intellect
Attraction and impulsion in Greek philosophy, 323, 324
Attribute and subject, 148
Automatic activity, 145
as instrument of voluntary, 252
order, 224, 231-4.
See Negative movement, etc., Geometrical order
Automatism, 127, 143-4, 174, 223-4, 261, 264
Background of instinct and intelligence, consciousness as, 186
Backward-looking attitude of the intellect, 47, 48, 237
Baldwin, J.M., 27 note
Ballast of intelligence, 152, 230, 239, 369-70
Bastian, 212 note
Bateson, 63
Becoming, 164, 236, 248-9, 273, 299-304, 307-8, 313-4, 316, 337-8,
342-3, 345, 363
in ancient philosophy, 313-4, 317
in Descartes's philosophy, 346
in Eleatic philosophy, 313-4, 315
in general, or abstract becoming, 304, 306-7
instantaneous and static views of, 272, 304-5
states of, falsely so called, 164, 247-8, 273, 298-301, 307-8
in the successors of Kant, 363.
See Change, New, Duration, Time, Views of reality
Bees, 101, 140, 142, 146, 166, 172
Beethoven, 224
Berthold, 34 note
Bethe, 176 note
Bifurcations of tendency, 54.
See Divergent lines of evolution
Biology, 12, 25, 26, 31-2, 43, 168-9, 174-5, 194-6
evolutionist, 168-9
and philosophy, 43, 194-6
and physico-chemistry, 26
Blaringhem, 85
Bodies, 156, 188, 189, 300-1, 360.
See Inert matter as a relaxation of the unextended into the
extended
defined as bundles of qualities, 349
Bois-Reymond (Du), 38
Boltzmann, 245
Bombines, social instincts in, 171
Bouvier, 142 note
Bow, strain of, illustrating indivisibility of motion, 308-10
Brain and consciousness, 5, 109, 110, 179-80, 183-4, 212 note, 252,
261-4, 270, 354, 356, 366.
See Nervous System in man and lower animals, 183, 184, 263-5
Brandt, 66 note
Breast-Plate, in reference to animal mobility, 130, 131.
See Carapace, Cellulose envelope
Brown-Séquard, 80-2
Bulb, medullary, in the development of the nervous system, 110, 252
Busquet, 259 note
Bütschli, 33 note
Buttel-Reepen, 171 note
Butterflies, in illustration of variation from evolutionary type, 72
Caelo (De), of Aristotle, 322 note, 324 note
Calcareous sheath, in reference to animal mobility, 130-1
Calkins, 16 note
Canal, in illustration of the relation of function and structure, 93
Canalization, in illustration of the function of animal organisms, 93,
95, 110, 126, 256, 270
Canvas, embroidering "something" on the, of "nothing," 297
Caprice, an attribute not of freedom but of mechanism, 47
Carapace, in reference to animal mobility, 130-1
Carbohydrates, in reference to the function of the animal organism, 121-2
Carbon, in reference to the function of organisms, 107, 113, 114, 117,
254, 255
Carbonic acid, in reference to the function of organisms, 254, 255
Carnot, 243, 246, 256
Cartesian geometry, compared with ancient, 334
Cartesianism, 345, 356, 358
Cartesians, 358.
See Spinoza, Leibniz
Carving, the, of matter by intellect, 155
Categorical propositions, characteristic of instinctive knowledge, 149-50
Categories, conceptual, x, xiii, 48, 147, 148-9, 165, 189-90, 195-7, 207,
220-1, 257-60, 265, 358, 361.
See Concept deduction of, and genesis of the intellect, 196, 207, 359.
See Genesis of matter and of the intellect
innate, 147, 148-9
misfit for the vital, x, xiii, 48, 165, 195-9, 220-1, 257-9
in reference to the adaptation to each other of the matter and form of
knowledge, 361
Cats, in illustration of the law of correlation, 67
Causal relation in Aristotle, 325
between consciousness and movement, 111
in Greek philosophy, 324-5
Causality, mechanical, a category which does not apply to life, x, xiv, 177
in the philosophy of Ideas, 323-6
Causation and adaptation, 101, 102
final, involves mechanical, 44
Cause and effect as mathematical functions of each other, 20, 21
efficient, 238, 277, 323
efficient, in Aristotle's philosophy, 324
efficient, in Leibniz's philosophy, 353
final, 40, 44, 238
final, in Aristotle's philosophy, 324
by impulsion, release and unwinding, 73
mechanical, as containing effect, 14, 233, 269
in the vital order, 95, 164
Cave, Plato's allegory of the, 191
Cell, 16, 24, 33, 162, 166, 167, 260, 269
as artificial construct, 162
in the "colonial theory," 260
division, 16, 24, 33
instinct in the, 166, 167
in relation to the soul, 269
Cellulose envelope in reference to vegetable immobility and torpor, 108,
111, 130
Cerebral activity and consciousness, 5, 109-10, 180-1, 183-4, 212 note,
252, 253, 261, 264, 268, 270, 350, 351, 354, 355, 366
mechanism, 5, 252, 253, 262, 264, 366
Cerebro-spinal system, 124.
See Nervous system
Certainty of induction, 215, 216
Chance analogous to disorder, 233, 234.
See Affection
in evolution, 86-7, 104, 114-5, 126, 169-70, 171, 252, 254, 255, 266,
267, 326-7.
See Indetermination
Change, 1, 7-8, 18, 85-6, 248, 275, 294, 300-304, 308, 313-4, 317, 326,
328-9, 343-4, 344-5
in ancient philosophy, 313-4, 316-7, 325-6, 327-9, 343, 345
in Eleatic philosophy, 314
known only from within, 307-8
Chaos, 232.
See Disorder
Character, moral, 5, 99-100
Charrin, 81 note
Chemistry, 27, 34-6, 55, 72, 74, 98, 194, 226, 256, 260
Child, intelligence in, 147-8
adolescence of, in illustration of evolutionary becoming, 311-3
Chipped stone, in paleontology, 139
Chlorophyllian function, 107-9, 114, 117, 246, 253
Choice, 110, 125, 143-5, 179, 180, 252, 260-4, 276, 366
and consciousness, 110, 179, 260-4
Chrysalis, 114 note
Cinematograph, 306-7, 339-40
Cinematographical character of ancient philosophy, 315-6
of intellectual knowledge, 306, 307, 312-8, 323-4, 331-3, 346
of language, 306-7, 312-5
of modern science, 329-31, 336-7, 341-3, 345, 346, 347
Circle of the given, broken by action, 192, 247
logical and physical, 277
vicious, in intellectualist philosophy, 193, 197, 320
vicious, in the intuitional method is only apparent, 192, 193
Circularity of God's thought in Aristotle's philosophy, 324
of each special evolution, 128
Circulation, protoplasmic, imitated, 32-3
in plants and animals, 108
Circumstances in the determination of evolution, 101-2, 128-9, 133, 138,
142, 150-1, 167, 168, 170-1, 193, 194, 252, 256
in relation to special instincts, 138, 168, 193
Classes of words corresponding to the three kinds of representation, 303-4
Clausius, 243
Clearness characteristic of intellect, 160
Cleft between the organized and the unorganized, 190, 196-9
Climbing plants, instincts of, 170 note
Coincidence of matter with space as in Kant, 206, 207, 244
of mind with intellect as in Kant, 48, 206
of qualities, 216
of seeing and willing, 237
of self with self, definition of the feeling of duration, 199-200
Coleopter, instinct in, 146
Colonial theory, 259, 260
Colonies, microbial, 259
Color variation in lizards, 72, 74
Coming and going of the mind between the without and the within gives rise
to the idea of "Nothing," 279
between nature and mind, the true method of philosophy, 239
Common-sense, 29, 153, 161, 213, 224, 277
defined as continuous experience of the real, 213
Comparison of ancient philosophy with modern, 226, 228-9, 232, 328-9,
345-6, 349-51, 353-4, 356
Compenetration, 352-3.
See Interpenetration
Complementarity of forms evolved, xii, xiii, 51, 101, 103, 113, 116-7,
135, 136, 254, 255
of instinct and intelligence, 146, 173.
See Opposition of Instinct and Intelligence
of intuition and intellect, 343, 345
in the powers of life, 49, 96-7, 140-3, 177, 178-9, 183-5, 239, 246,
254, 343
of science and metaphysics, 344
Complexity of the order of mathematics, 208-10, 217, 251
Compound reflex, instinct as a, 174
Concentration, intellect as, 191, 301
of personality, 198-9, 201
Concentric spheres in Aristotle's philosophy, 328
Concept accessory to action, ix
analogy of, with the solid body, ix
in animals, 187
externality of, 160, 168, 175-8, 199-200, 251, 306, 311, 314
fringed about with intuition, 46
and image distinguished, 160, 279
impotent to grasp life, ix-xiii, 49
intellect the concept-making faculty, vi, 49
misfit for the vital, 48
representation of the act by which the intellect is fixed on things, 161
synthesis of, in ancient philosophy, 325-6, 356.
See Categories, Externality, Frames, Image, Space, Symbol
Conditions, external, in evolution, 128-9, 133, 138, 141-2, 150-1, 166-7,
168, 170, 193, 194, 251, 256, 257
external, in determination of special instinct, 141-2, 150-1, 167,
168, 171
Conduct, mechanism and finality in the evolution of, 47.
See Freedom, Determination, Indetermination
Confused plurality of life, 257
Conjugation of Infusoria, 16
Consciousness and action, ix, 5, 144, 145, 179-80, 207, 260-1
consciousness as appendage to action, ix
consciousness as arithmetical difference between possible and real
activity, 145
consciousness as auxiliary to action, 179-80
consciousness as inadequacy of act to representation, 144
consciousness as instrument of action, 180
consciousness as interval between possible and real action, 145, 179
consciousness as light from zone of possible actions surrounding the
real act, 179
consciousness and locomotion, 262
consciousness plugged up by action, 144, 145.
See Torpor, Sleep
consciousness as sketch of action, 207
intensity of, varies with ratio of possible to real action, 145
Consciousness in animals, as distinguished from the consciousness of
plants, 130, 135-6, 143
as distinguished from the consciousness of man, 139-43, 180, 183, 184,
187, 188, 212, 263-9.
See Torpor, Sleep
characteristic of animals, torpor of plants, 109, 111, 113, 120, 128-9,
135-6, 181, 182, 292
as background of instinct and intelligence, 186
and brain, 180, 262, 263, 269, 270, 354
and choice, 110, 144-5, 179, 262-4
coextensive with universal life, 186, 270
and creation, consciousness as demand for creation, 261
current of, penetrating matter, 181, 270
as deficiency of instinct, 145
in dog and man, 180
double form of, 179
function of, 207
as hesitation or choice, 143, 144
imprisonment of, 180, 183-4, 264
as invention and freedom, 264, 270
in man as distinguished from, in lower forms of life, 180, 263, 264,
267, 268
and matter, 179, 181-2
as motive principle of evolution, 181-2
nullified, as distinguished from the absence of consciousness, 143
and the organism, 270
in plants, 131, 135-6, 143
as world principle, 237, 261
Conservation of energy, 243, 244
Construction, 139-42, 150-1, 156, 157-8, 180, 182.
See Manufacture, Solid
the characteristic work of intellect, 163-4
as the method of Kant's successors, 364-5
Contingency, 96, 255, 268.
See Accident, Chance
the, of order, 231, 235
Continuation of vital process in instinct, 138, 139, 166, 167, 246.
See Variations, Vital process
Continuity, 1, 26, 29-30, 37, 138-40, 154, 162-4, 258, 302, 306-7, 311-2,
321, 325-6, 329-30, 347
of becoming, 306-7, 312
of change, 325-6
of evolution, 18, 19
of extension, 154
of germinative plasma, 26, 37
of instinct with vital process, 139, 140, 166-7, 246
of life, 1-11, 29, 163-4, 258
of living substance, 162
of psychic life, 1, 30
of the real, 302, 329-30
of sensible intuition with ultra-intellectual, 361
of sensible universe, 346
Conventionality of science, 207
"Conversion" and "procession" in Alexandrian philosophy, 323
Cook, Plato's comparison of the, and the dialectician, 156
Cope, 35 note, 77, 111
Correlation, law of, 66, 67
Correspondence between mind and matter in Spencer, 368.
See Simultaneity
Cortical mechanism, 252, 253, 262.
See Cerebral mechanism
Cosmogony and genesis of matter, 188.
See Genesis of matter and of intellect, Spencer
Cosmology the, that follows from the philosophy of Ideas, 315, 328
as reversed psychology, 208
Counterweight representation as, to action, 145
Counting simultaneities, the measurement of time is, 338, 341-2
Creation, xi, 7, 11, 12, 22, 29, 30, 45, 93, 100, 101, 103, 105, 108, 114,
128-31, 161, 163-4, 178, 200, 217, 218, 223, 226, 230, 237-40, 261,
270, 275, 339-40
in Descartes's philosophy, 345
of intellect, 248-9
of matter, 237, 239, 247-8, 249.
See Materiality the inversion of spirituality
of present by past, 5, 20-3, 27, 167, 199-202
the vital order as, 230
Creative evolution, 7, 15, 21, 27, 29, 36, 37, 65, 100, 104-5, 161,
163, 223-4, 230-1, 237, 264, 269
Creativeness of free action, 192, 243
of invention, 250
Creeping plants in illustration of vegetable mobility, 108
Cricket victim of paralyzing instinct of sphex, 172
Criterion, quest of a, 53 ff.
of evolutionary rank, 133, 265
Criticism, Kantian, 205, 287 note, 356, 360-2
of knowledge, 194-5
Cross-cuts through becoming by intellect, 314.
See Views of reality
through matter by perception, 206
Cross-roads of vital tendency, 51, 52, 54, 110, 126
Crustacea, 19, 111, 129-30
Crystal illustrating (by contrast) individuation, 12
Cuénot, 79 note
Culminating points of evolutionary progress, 50, 133-5.
See Evolutionary superiority
Current, 26, 27, 51, 185, 236, 237, 250, 266, 269
Currents, antagonistic, 250
of existence, 185
of life penetrating matter, 26, 27, 266, 270
vital, 26, 27, 51, 237, 266, 270
of will penetrating matter, 237
Curves, as symbol of life, 32, 90, 213
Cuts through becoming by the intellect, 313-4.
See Views of reality, Snapshots in illustration, etc.
through matter by perception, 206
Cuvier, 125 note
Dantec (Le), 18 note, 34 note
Darwin, 62-5, 66, 72, 108, 170 note
Darwinism, 56, 85, 86
Dastre, 36 note
Dead, the, is the object of intellect, 165
Dead-locks in speculation, 155, 312
Death, 246 note, 271
Declivity descended by matter, 208, 246, 256, 339-40.
See Descending movement
Decomposing and recomposing powers characteristic of intellect, 157, 251
Deduction, analogy between, related to moral sphere and tangent to
curve, 213
and astronomy, 213
duration refractory to, 213
geometry the ideal limit of, 213-26, 361
in animals, 212
inverse to positive spiritual effort, 212
nature of, 211
physics and, 213
weakness of, in psychology and moral science, 213
Defence and attack in evolution, 132
Deficiency of will the negative condition of mathematical order and
complexity, 209
Definition in the realm of life, 13, 105, 106
Degenerates, 133-5
Dégénérescence sénile (La), by Metchnikoff, 18 note
Degradation of energy, 241, 242, 246
of the extra-spatial into the spatial, 207
of the ideas into the sensible flux in ancient philosophy, 317-9,
324-5, 327-9, 331, 343, 345, 352-3
Degrees of being in the successors of Kant, 362-3
Degrees of reality in Greek philosophy, 324, 327
Delage, 59 note, 81 note, 260 note
Delamare, 81 note
Deliberation, 144
De Manacéine, 124 note
Deposit, instinct and intelligence as deposits, emanations, issues, or
aspects of life, x, xii, xiii, 49, 103, 105, 136, 365
De Saporta, 107 note
Descartes, 280, 334, 345, 346, 353, 358
becoming, 345-6
creation, 346
determinism, 345
duration, 346
freedom, 345, 346
geometry, 334
God, 346
image and idea or concept, 281
indeterminism, 345
mechanism, 345, 346
motion, 346
vacillation between abstract time and real duration, 345
Descending movement of existence, 11, 202, 203, 208, 271, 275, 369
Design, motionless, of action the object of intellect, 154-5, 299,
301-2, 303
Detention in the dream state, 202
of intuition in intellect, 238
Determination, 76-7, 129-30, 223, 246
Determinism, 217, 264, 345, 348. See Inert matter, Geometry
in Descartes, 345
Development, 133, 134-5, 141.
See Order, Progress, Evolution, Superiority
Deviation from type, 82-4
Dialect and intuition in philosophy, 238
Dichotomy of the real in modern philosophy, 350
Differentiation of parts in an organism, 253, 260
Dilemma of any systematic metaphysics, 195, 197, 230
Diminution, derivation of becoming from being by, in ancient philosophy,
316, 317, 322, 323-4, 327-8, 343-5, 352
geometrical order as, or lower complication of the vital order, 236
Dionaea illustrating certain animal characteristics in plants, 107,
108, 109
Discontinuity of action, 154, 306-7
of attention, 2
of extension relative to action, 154, 163
of knowledge, 306
of living substance, 163
a positive idea, 154
Discontinuous the object of intellect, 154
Discord in nature, 127, 128, 254-5, 267
Disorder, 40, 104, 222-3, 225-6, 232-5, 274.
See Expectation, Order, mathematical, Orders of reality, two
Disproportion between an invention and its consequences, 182
Dissociation as a cosmic principle opposed to association, 260
of tendencies, 54, 89, 135, 254, 255, 257, 258.
See Divergent lines of evolution
Distance, extension as the, between what is and what ought to be, 318-9,
327-8, 331
Distinct multiplicity in the dream state, 201, 210
of the inert, 257
Distinctness characteristic of the intellect, 160, 237, 251
characteristic of perception, 227, 251
as spatiality, 203, 207-8, 244, 250
Divergent lines of evolution, xii, 54, 55, 87, 97-101, 103-4, 106, 107,
109, 112, 113, 116, 119, 130, 132, 134-5, 142, 149, 150, 168, 173, 181,
254, 255, 266, 267.
See Dissociation of tendencies, Complementarity, etc., Schisms
in the primitive impulsion of life
Diversity, sensible, 205, 220-1, 231, 235, 236
Divination, instinct as, 176.
See Sympathy, etc.
Divisibility of extension, 154, 162
Division as function of intellect, 152, 154, 162-3, 189
of labor, 99, 110, 118, 157, 166, 260
of labor in cells, 166
Dog and man, consciousness in, 180
Dogmatism of the ancient epistemology contrasted with the relativism of
the modern, 230
of Leibniz and Spinoza, 356-7
skepticism, and relativism, 196-7, 230
Dogs and the law of correlation, 66
Domestication of animals and heredity, 80
Dominants of Reinke, 42 note
Dorfmeister, 72
Dream, 144, 180-1, 202, 209, 256.
See Interpenetration, Relaxation, Detention, Recollection
as relaxation, 202
Driesch, 42 note
Drosera, 107, 108, 109
Dufourt, 124 note
Duhem, 242 note
Dunan, Ch., xv note
Duration, xiv note, 2, 4-6, 8-11, 15, 17, 21, 22, 37, 39, 46, 51,
199, 201, 206, 213, 216, 240, 272, 273, 276, 298-9, 308-9, 317-8, 319
note, 324, 328, 332, 339, 342, 343, 345, 354, 361, 363-4
absoluteness of, 206
and deduction, 213
in Descartes's philosophy, 346
gnawing of, 4, 8, 46
indivisibility of, 6, 308-9
and induction, 216
and the inert, 343-4
in the philosophy of the Ideas, 316-7, 319 note, 324, 327, 328-9
rhythm of, 11, 128, 346.
See Creation, Evolution, Invention, Time, Unforeseeableness, Uniqueness
Echinoderms in reference to animal mobility, 130, 131
Efficient cause in conception of chance, 234
Spinoza and, 269
Effort in evolution, 170
Ειδος, 314-5
Eimer, 55, 72, 73, 86
Elaborateness of the mathematical order, 208-10, 217, 251
Eleatic philosophy, 308, 314-5
Emanation, logical thought an, issue, aspect or deposit of life, ix, xii,
xiii, 49
Embroidering "something" on the canvas of "nothing," 297
Embroidery by descendants on the canvas handed down by ancestors, 23
Embryo, 18, 19, 26, 27, 75, 81, 89, 101, 166
Embryogeny, comparative, and transformism, 25
Embryonic life, 27, 166
Empirical study of evolution the centre of the theory of knowledge and of
the theory of life, 178
theories of knowledge, 205
Empty, thinking the full by means of the empty, 273-4
End in Eleatic philosophy, 314-5
of science is practical utility, 329
Energy, 115-7, 120-3, 242, 243, 245, 246, 252-5, 256, 257, 262
conservation of, 242
degradation of, 242, 243, 246
solar, stored by plants, released by animals, 245, 254
Enneadae of Plotinus, 210 note
Entelechy of Driesch, 42 note
Entropy, 243
Environment in evolution, 129, 133, 138, 140, 142, 150, 167, 168, 170,
192, 193, 252, 256, 257
and special instincts, 138, 168, 192, 193
Epiphenomenalism, 262
Essence and accidents in Aristotle's philosophy, 353
or form in Eleatic philosophy, 314-5
the meaning of, 302-3
Essences (or forms), qualities and acts, the three kinds of
representation, 303-4
Eternity, 39, 298, 314, 317, 320, 324, 328, 346, 352, 354
in the philosophy of Ideas, 316-7, 319, 324, 328
in Spinoza's philosophy, 353
Euglena, 116
Evellin, 311 note
Eventual actions, 11, 96.
See Possible activity
Evolution, ix-xv, 18, 20, 22, 24, 25, 26-7, 37, 46-55, 63, 68, 79
note, 84-8, 97-105, 107, 113, 116, 126, 127, 129-30, 131-2,
133, 134, 136, 138-40, 141-2, 143, 161, 166, 167, 168-72, 173, 174,
175, 179, 181, 182, 185, 186, 190, 193, 198-9, 207-8, 224, 231, 242
note, 246, 248, 249, 251, 252, 254, 264-6, 268, 273, 302, 311,
345, 359, 360, 366
accident in, 104, 169, 170, 173, 174, 251, 252
animal, a progress toward mobility, 131
antagonistic tendencies in, 103, 113, 185
automatic and determinate, is action being undone, 248
blind alleys of, 129
circularity of each special, 128
complementarity of the divergent lines of, 97-102, 103, 116
conceptually inexpressible, 49, 50, 52, 53, 127, 181, 273
continuity of, 18, 19, 26, 37, 46, 273, 302, 312, 345
creative, 7, 15, 21, 27, 30, 36, 37, 65, 100, 105, 161, 162, 163, 223,
230, 238, 264, 269
culminating points of, 50, 133, 174, 185, 265, 266, 268
development by, 133, 134, 141-2
divergent lines of, xii, 53, 54, 87, 97-101, 103-4, 107, 173-4, 246
and duration, 20, 22, 37, 45-6
empirical study of, the centre of the theory of knowledge and of life,
178
and environment, 101-3, 129, 133, 138, 142, 150, 167, 168, 169, 192,
193, 251, 256, 257
of instinct, 170, 171, 174-5.
See Divergent lines, etc., Culminating points, etc., Evolution
and environment
of intellect, x-xii, 153, 186, 189-90, 193, 198-9, 207-8, 359, 360.
See Divergent lines, etc., Culminating points, etc., Genesis
of matter and of intellect
as invention, 344
of man, 264, 266, 268.
See Culminating points, etc.
motive principle of, is consciousness, 181
of species product of the vital impetus opposed by matter, 247-8, 254
and transformism, 24
unforeseeable, 47, 48, 53, 86, 224
variation in, 23-4, 55, 63, 68, 72 note, 85, 131, 137-8, 167, 169,
171, 264
Evolutionary, qualitative, and extensive motion 302-3, 311, 312
superiority, 133-5, 174-5.
See Success, Criterion of evolutionary rank, Culminating points, etc.
Evolutionism, x-xii, xiv, 77, 84, 364
Exhaustion of the mutability of the universe, 337-8
Existence, logical, as contrasted with psychical and physical, 276, 362
of matter tends toward instantaneity, 201
of self means change, 1 ff.
superaddition of, upon nothingness, 276
Expectation, 214-6, 221, 222, 226, 233, 235, 274, 281, 292
in conception of disorder, 221, 222, 226, 233, 234, 235, 274
in conception of void or naught, 282, 292
Experience, 138, 147, 177, 197, 204, 229, 321, 354, 359, 363, 368
Explosion, illustrating cause by release, 73
Explosive character of animal energy, 116, 119, 120, 246
of organization, 92
Explosives, manufacture of, by plants and use by animals, 246, 254
Extension, 149, 154, 161, 202, 203, 207, 211, 223, 236, 245, 318-20,
324, 327, 351, 352
continuity of, 154
discontinuity of, relative to action, 154, 162
as the distance between what is and what ought to be, 318
divisibility of, 154, 162
the most general property of matter, 154, 250, 251
the inverse movement to tension, 245
of knowledge, 150
in Leibniz's philosophy, 351, 352
of matter in space, 204, 211
in the philosophy of Ideas, 318-9, 323-4, 327
and relaxation, 202, 207, 209, 211, 212, 218, 223, 245
in Spinoza's philosophy, 350
in the Transcendental Aesthetic, 203
unity of, 158-9
as weakening of the essence of being, in Plotinus, 210 note
Extensive, evolutionary and qualitative motion, 302-3, 311, 312
External conditions in evolution, 128, 133, 137, 141-2, 150-1, 167,
168, 170, 192, 193, 252, 256, 257
finality, 41
Externality of concepts, 160, 168, 174, 177, 199, 251, 305, 311-4
the most general property of matter, 154, 250, 251
Externalized action in distinction from internalized, 147, 165.
See Somnambulism, etc., Automatic activity, etc.
Eye of mollusc and vertebrate compared, 60, 75, 77, 84, 86, 87-8
Fabre, 172 note
Fabrication. See Construction
Fallacies, two fundamental, 272, 273
Fallacy of thinking being by not-being, 276, 277, 284, 297-8
of thinking the full by the empty, 273-5
of thinking motion by the motionless, 272, 273, 297-8, 307-8, 309-14
Fallibility of instinct, 172-3
Falling back of matter upon consciousness, 264
bodies, comparison of Aristotle and Galileo, 228, 331-2, 334
weight, figure of material world, 245, 246
Familiar, the, is the object of intellect, 163, 164, 199, 270
Faraday, 203
Fasting, in reference to primacy of nervous system over the other
physiological systems, 124
Fauna, menace of torpor in primitive, 130
Feeling in the conception of chance, 207
and instinct, 143, 174-5
Fencing-master, illustrating hereditary transmission, 79
Ferments, certain characteristics of, 106
Fertilization of orchids by insects, by Darwin, 170 note
Fichte's conception of the intellect, 189-90, 357
Filings, iron, in illustration of the relation of structure to
function, 94, 95
Film, cinematographic, figure of abstract motion, 304-6
Final cause, 40, 45, 234, 325
conception of, involves conception of mechanical cause, 44
God as, in Aristotle, 322-3
Finalism, 39-53, 58, 74, 88-97, 101-5, 126-8
Finality, 41, 164, 177-8, 185, 223, 224, 266
external and internal, 41
misfit for the vital, 177, 223-4, 225, 266
and the unforeseeableness of life, 164, 185
Fischel, 75 note
Fish in illustration of animal tendency to mobility, 130, 131
Fixation of nutritive elements, 107-9, 113, 117, 246, 247, 253
Fixity, 108-13, 118, 119, 130, 155.
See Torpor
apparent or relative, 155
cellulose envelope and the, of plants, 108, 111, 130
of extension, 155
of plants, 108-13, 118, 119, 130-1
of torpid animals, 130
Flint hatchets and human intelligence, 137
Fluidity of life, 153, 165, 193
of matter as a whole, 186, 369
Flux of material bodies, 265
of reality, 250, 251, 337, 342, 344
Flying arrow of Zeno, 308, 309, 310
Focalization of personality, 201
Food, 106-9, 113-4, 117, 120, 121, 246, 247, 254
Foraminifera, failure of certain, to evolve, 197
Force, 126-7, 141, 149, 150, 175, 246, 254, 339
life a, inverse to matter, 246
limitedness of vital force, 126, 127, 141, 149, 162
time as, 339-40
Forel, 176 note
Foreseeing, 8, 28, 29, 30, 37, 45, 47, 96.
See Unforeseeableness
Form, xi, 51, 101, 104, 113, 116-8, 129, 135-6, 148-53, 155, 156, 160,
164, 195-7, 222, 237, 250, 255, 302, 303, 314, 317, 318, 322, 341,
357, 359, 361, 362
complementarity of forms evolved, xi, 51, 101, 104, 113, 116-8, 135-6,
255
expansion of the forms of consciousness, xii, xiii
(or essences), qualities and acts the three kinds of representation,
302-3
God as pure form in Aristotle, 196, 322
or idea in ancient philosophy, 317, 318, 330
of intelligence, xiv, 48, 147, 148, 165, 190, 195, 196, 198, 207, 219,
257-9, 266, 358-9, 361.
See Concept
and matter in creation, 239, 250
and matter in knowledge, 195, 361
a snapshot view of transition, 302
Formal knowledge, 152
logic, 292
Forms of sensibility, 361
Fossil species, 102
Foster, 125 note
Fox in illustration of animal intelligence, 138
Frames of the understanding, 46-7, 48, 150-2, 173, 177, 197-9, 219-20,
223-4, 258, 270, 313, 358, 364
fit the inert, 197, 218
inadequate to reality entire, 364
misfit for the vital, x, xiii, xiv, 46, 48, 173, 177, 197-9, 223,
258, 313
product of life, 358
transform freedom into necessity, 270
utility of, lies in their unlimited application, 149-50, 152
Freedom, 11, 48, 126, 130, 163, 164, 200, 202, 207, 208, 217, 223, 231,
237, 239, 247, 249, 264-6, 269, 270, 277, 300, 339-41, 345, 346
the absolute as freely acting, 277
affirmed by conscience, 269
animal characteristic rather than vegetable, 129-30
caprice attribute not of, but of mechanism, 47
coextensiveness of consciousness with, 111, 112, 202, 264, 270
of creation and life, 247, 254, 255
creativeness of, 223, 239, 248
in Descartes's philosophy, 345, 346
as efficient causality, 277
inversion of necessity, 236
and liberation of consciousness, 265, 266.
See Imprisonment of consciousness
and novelty, 12, 163, 164, 200, 218, 231, 239, 249, 270, 339-42
order in, 223
property of every organism, 129-31
relaxation of, into necessity, 217
tendency of, to self-negation in habit, 127
tension of, 200, 201, 202, 207, 223, 237, 301
transformed by the understanding into necessity, 270
See Spontaneity
Fringe of intelligence around instinct, 136
of intuition around intellect, xii, xiii, 46
of possible action around real action, 179, 272
Froth, alveolar, in imitation of organic phenomena, 33-4
Full, fallacy of thinking the, by the empty, 273-6
Function, ix, 3, 5, 44, 46, 47, 88-90, 94, 95, 106-10, 113, 114, 117, 120,
121, 127, 132, 140, 141, 145, 152, 153, 157, 161, 163, 164, 168, 173-5,
186-92, 199, 206, 207, 233, 237, 246, 251, 254-6, 262, 263, 270, 273,
298, 306, 346, 358, 369
accumulation of energy the function of vegetable organisms, 254, 255
action the, of intellect, ix, 12, 44, 47, 93, 161, 162, 186-8, 206, 251,
273, 305
action the, of nervous system, 262, 263
alimentation, 106, 107, 120, 121, 246, 254
of animals is canalization of energy, 93, 110, 126, 255, 256
carbon and the, of organisms, 107, 113, 114, 117, 254, 255
chlorophyllian, 107-9, 114, 117, 246, 254
concept-making the, of intellect, x, 49
of consciousness: sketching movements, 207
construction the, of intellect, 108
illumination of action, of perception, 5, 206, 307-8
of intelligence: action, ix, 12, 44, 46, 93, 160, 162, 186-8, 206, 251,
273, 307-8
of intelligence: concept-making, x, 50
of intelligence: construction, 160, 163, 181-2
of intelligence: division, 154, 155, 162, 189
of intelligence: illumination of action by perception, 5, 206, 301
of intelligence: repetition, 164, 199, 214-6
of intelligence: retrospection, 47, 237
of intelligence: connecting same with same, 199, 233, 270
of intelligence: scanning the rhythm of the universe, 346
of intelligence: tactualizing all perception, 168
of intelligence: unification, 152, 154, 357
of the nervous system: action, 262, 263
and organ, 88-90, 94, 95, 132-3, 140, 141, 158.
See Function and structure
and organ in arthropods, vertebrates and man, 132-3
of the organism, 94, 106-10, 112, 114, 117, 120, 126, 173-5, 246, 253-6
of the organism, alimentation, 106, 107, 120, 121, 246, 254
of the organism, animal: canalization of energy, 93, 110, 126, 255, 256
of the organism, carbon in, 107, 113, 114, 117, 254, 255
of the organism, chlorophyllian function, 107-9, 114, 117, 246, 247, 254
of the organism, primary functions of life: storage and expenditure of
energy, 254-6
of the organism, vegetable: accumulation of energy, 254, 255
of philosophy: adoption of the evolutionary movement of life and
consciousness, 370
of science, 168, 346
sketching movements the, of consciousness, 207
and structure, 55, 62, 66, 69, 74, 75, 76, 86, 88-91, 93, 94, 96, 118,
132, 140, 141, 158, 162, 250, 252, 256
tactualizing all perception the, of science, 168
of vegetable organism: accumulation of energy, 254, 255
Functions of life, the two: storage and expenditure of energy, 254-6
Galileo, homogeneity of time in, 332
his influence on metaphysics, 20, 228
his influence on modern science, 334, 335
extension of Galileo's physics, 357, 370
his theory of the fall of bodies compared with Aristotle's, 228, 331,
332, 334
Ganoid breast-plate of ancient fishes, in reference to animal mobility,
130, 131
Gaudry, 130 note
Genera, relation of, to individuals, 226
relation of, to laws, 225, 226, 330
potential, 226-7
and signs, 158
Generality, ambiguity of the idea of, in philosophy, 229-31, 236
Generalization dependent on repetition, 230, 231
distinguished from transference of sign, 158
in the vital and mathematical orders, 224, 225, 230
Generic, type of the: similarity of structure between generating and
generated, 223, 224
Genesis, xiii, xiv, 153, 186-199, 207, 359, 360
of intellect, xiii, xiv, 153, 186, 187, 190, 193, 194, 196-7, 207,
264, 360
of knowledge, 191
of matter, xiii, xiv, 153, 186, 188, 190, 193, 199, 207, 360
Genius and the willed order, 223, 237
Genus. See Genera
Geometrical, the, is the object of the intellect, 190
Geometrical order as a diminution or lower complication of the vital,
223, 225, 236, 330.
See Genera, Relation of, to laws
mutual contingency of, and vital order, 235
See Mathematical order
space, relation of, to the spatiality of things, 203
Geometrism, the latent, of intellect, 194, 211-3
Geometry, fitness of, to matter, 10
goal of intellectual operations, 211, 213, 218
ideal limit of induction and deduction, 214-8, 361.
See Space, Descending movement of existence
modern, compared with ancient, 36, 161, 333-4
natural, 194, 211-2
perception impregnated with, 205, 230
reasoning in, contrasted with reasoning concerning life, 7, 8
scientific, 161, 211
Germ, accidental predisposition of, in Neo-Darwinism, 168, 169, 170
Germ-plasm, continuity of, 27, 37, 78-83
Giard, 84
Glucose in organic function, 122, 123
Glycogen in organic function, 122-4
God, as activity, 249
of Aristotle, 196, 322, 325, 349, 353, 356-7
ascent toward, in Aristotle's philosophy, 322-3
circularity of God's thought, in Aristotle's philosophy, 324, 325
in Descartes's philosophy, 346, 347
as efficient cause in Aristotle's philosophy, 324
as hypostasis of the unity of nature, 196, 322, 357
in Leibniz's philosophy, 352, 353, 356-7
as eternal matter, 196-7
as pure form, 196-7, 322
in Spinoza's philosophy, 351, 357
Greek philosophy. See Ancient philosophy
Green parts of plants, 107-9, 114, 117, 246, 247, 254
Growing old, 15
Growth, creation is, 240-1, 275
and novelty, 231
of the powers of life, 132, 134-5
reality is, 237
of the universe, 343, 345
Guérin, P., 59 note
Guinea-pig, in illustration of hereditary transmission, 80, 81
Habit and consciousness annulled, 143
form of knowledge a habit or bent of attention, 148
and heredity, 78, 93, 169, 170, 173.
See Acquired characters, inheritance of
instinct as an intelligent, 173-4
and invention in animals, 264
and invention in man, 265
tendency of freedom to self-negation in, 127-8
Harmony between instinct and life, and between intelligence and the
inert, 187, 194-5, 198
of the organic world is complementarity due to a common original
impulse 50, 51, 103, 116, 118
pre-established, 205, 206
in radical finalism, 127-8.
See Discord
Hartog, 60 note
Hatchets, ancient flint, and human intellect, 137
Heliocentric radius-vector in Kepler's laws, 333-4
Hereditary transmission, 76-83, 87, 168-9, 170, 173, 225-6, 230
domestication of animals and, 80-1
habit and, 79, 83, 169, 170, 173
Hesitation or choice, consciousness as, 143, 144
Heteroblastia and identical structures on divergent lines of evolution, 75
Heymons, 72 note
History as creative evolution, 6, 15, 21, 26, 29, 36, 37, 65-6, 103-4,
105, 163, 264, 269
of philosophy, 238
Hive as an organism, 166
Homo faber, designation of human species, 139
Homogeneity of space, 156, 212
the sphere of intellect, 163
of time in Galileo, 332
Horse-fly illustrating the object of instinct, 146
Houssay, 109 note
Human and animal attention, 184
and animal brain, 184, 263-5
and animal consciousness, 139-43, 180, 183, 184, 187, 188, 191,
212, 263-8
and animal instruments of action, 139-43, 150
and animal intelligence, 138, 187, 188, 191, 192, 212
and animal invention, relation of, to habit, 264, 265
intellect and language, 157-8
intellect and manufacture, 137, 138
Humanity in evolution, 134, 137-9, 142, 147, 158, 181, 184, 185, 264-71.
See Culminating points, etc.
goal of evolution, 266, 267
Huxley, 38
Hydra and individuality, 13
υλη of Aristotle, 353
Hymenoptera, the culmination of arthropod and instinctive evolution,
134, 173-4
as entomologists, 146, 172-3
organization and instinct in, 140
paralyzing instinct of, 146, 172, 173-4
social instincts of, 101, 171
Hypostasis of the unity of nature, God as, 196-7, 322, 356
Hypothetical propositions characteristic of intellectual knowledge, 149-50
Idea or form in ancient philosophy, 49, 314, 316-7, 318, 329-30
in ancient philosophy, ειδος, 314-5
in ancient philosophy, Platonic, 48
and image in Descartes, 280
Idealism, 232
Idealists and realists alike assume the possibility of an absence of
order, 220, 232
Identical structures in divergent lines of evolution, 55, 60-1, 62, 69,
74-7, 86, 119
Illumination of action the function of perception, 5, 206, 307
Image and idea in Descartes, 280
distinguished from concept, 160-1, 280
Imitation of being in Greek philosophy, 324, 327
of instinct by science, 168-9, 173-4
of life in intellectual representation, 4, 33, 88-9, 101, 176, 208,
209, 213, 226, 259, 341, 365
of life by the unorganized, 33, 35, 36
of motion by intelligence, 305, 307-8, 312, 313, 329.
See Imitation of the real, etc.
of the physical order by the vital, 230
of the real by intelligence, 258, 270, 307
Immobility of extension, 155
and plants, 108-13, 118, 119, 130
of primitive and torpid animals, 130-1
relative and apparent; mobility real, 155
Impatience, duration as, 10, 339-40
Impelling cause, 73
Impetus, vital, divergence of, 26-7, 51-5, 97-105, 110, 118-9, 126-7,
131, 134-6, 257, 258, 266, 270
vital, limitedness of, 126, 141, 148-9, 254
vital, loaded with matter, 239
vital, as necessity for creation, 252, 261
vital, transmission of, through organisms, 25, 27, 79, 85, 87, 88,
230, 231, 250, 251
vital, See Impulse of life
Implement, the animal, is natural: the human, artificial, 139-43
artificial, 137-40, 150-1
constructing, function of intelligence, 159, 182-3
life known to intelligence only as, 162
matter known to intelligence only as, 161, 198
natural, 141, 145, 150
organized, 141, 145, 150
unorganized, 137-9, 141, 150-1
Implicit knowledge, 148
Impotence of intellect and perception to grasp life, 176-8
Imprisonment of consciousness, 180-3, 264-6
Impulse of life, divergence of, 26, 27, 51-5, 97-105, 110, 118-9,
126-7, 131, 134-6, 257, 258, 266, 270
limitedness of, 126, 141, 148-9, 254
loaded with matter, 239
tendency to mobility, 131, 132
as necessity for creation, 252, 261
negates itself, 247, 248
prolonged in evolution, 246
prolonged in our will, 239
transmitted through generations of organisms, 25, 26, 79, 85, 87,
230, 231
unity of, 202, 250, 270
Impulsion and attraction in Greek philosophy, 323-4
release and unwinding, the three kinds of cause, 73
given to mind by matter, 202
Inadequacy of act to representation, consciousness as, 143
Inadequate and adequate in Spinoza, 353
Inanition, illustrating primacy of nervous system, 124 note
Incoherence, 236.
See Absence of order, Chance, Chaos
in nature, 104
Incommensurability of free act with conceptual idea, 47, 201
of instinct and intelligence, 167-8, 175
Incompatibility of developed tendencies, 104, 168
Independent variable, time as, 20, 335-6
Indetermination, 86, 114, 126, 252, 253, 326.
See Accident in evolution
Indeterminism in Descartes, 345
Individual, viewed by intelligence as aggregate of molecules and of
facts, 250-1
and division of labor, 140
in evolutionist biology, 169, 171, 246 note
and genus, 226-9
mind in philosophy, 191
aesthetic intuition only attains the, 177
and society, 260, 265
transmits the vital impetus, 250, 259, 270
Individuality never absolute, x, 12, 13, 16, 19, 42, 260
and age, 15-23, 27, 43
corporeal, physics tends to deny, 188, 189, 208.
See Interpenetration, Obliteration of outlines, Solidarity
of the parts of matter
and generality, 226-8
the many and the one in the idea of, x, 258
as plan of possible influence, 11
Individuation never absolute, x, 12-16, 43, 260
as a cosmic principle in contrast with association, 259-60
property of life, 12-5
partly the work of matter, 257-8, 259, 270
Indivisibility of action, 94, 95
of duration, 6, 308
of invention, 164
of life, 225, 270-1.
See Unity
of life of motion, 307-11
Induction in animals, 214
certainty of, approached as factors approach pure magnitudes, 222, 223
and duration, 216
and expectation, 214-6
geometry the ideal limit of, 214-8, 361.
See Space, Geometry, Reasoning, "Descending" movement of matter, etc.
and magnitude, 215, 216
repetition the characteristic function of intellect, 164, 199, 205-16
and space, 216.
See Space as the ideal limit, Systems, etc.
Industry, ix, 161, 162, 164
Inert matter and action, 96, 136, 141, 155, 187, 198, 225, 367
in Aristotle, 316, 327, 353
bodies, 7, 8, 12, 14, 20, 21, 156, 159, 174, 186, 188, 189, 204, 213,
215, 228, 240, 241, 298, 300, 341, 342, 346-8, 360
Creation of. See Inert matter the inversion of life
flux of, 186, 265, 273, 369
and form, 148, 149, 157, 239, 250
genesis of, 188
homogeneity of, 156
imitation of living matter by, 33, 35, 36
imitation of physical order by vital, 230
instantaneity of, 10, 201
and intellect, ix, 31, 141, 159-62, 164, 165, 167-8, 175, 179, 181, 186,
187, 195, 196, 197, 198, 205-12, 216-9, 224,
264, 270, 319, 369
the inversion or interruption of life, 93, 94, 98, 99, 128-9, 153, 177,
186, 189, 190, 196, 197, 201, 203, 208, 216-9, 231,
235, 236, 239, 240,
245-50, 252, 254, 256, 258, 259, 261, 264, 267, 272, 276, 319,
339-40, 343.
See Inert matter, order inherent in
knowledge of, approximate but not relative, 206
the metaphysics and the physics of, 195-6
as necessity, 252, 264
the order inherent in, 40, 103, 153, 201, 207-12, 216, 226-7, 230-6,
245, 251, 263, 274, 319-20.
See Inert matter, inversion of life
penetration of, by life, 25, 26, 51, 179, 181, 237, 239, 266, 270, 271
and perception, 12, 206, 226
and the psychical, 201, 202, 205, 269, 270, 350, 367
solidarity of the parts of, 188, 202, 207, 241, 257-9, 270, 271, 352
and space, 10, 153, 189, 204-11, 214, 244, 250, 251, 257
in Spencer's philosophy, 365
Inertia, 176, 224
Infant, intelligence in, 147, 148
Inference a beginning of invention, 138
Inferiority in evolutionary rank, 174-5
Influence, possible, 11, 189
Infusoria, conjugation of, 15
development of the eye from its stage in, 60-1, 72, 78, 84
and individuation, 260
and mechanical explanations, 34, 35
vegetable function in, 116
Inheritance of acquired characters. See Hereditary transmission
Innate knowledge, 146-7, 150-1
Innateness of the categories, 148, 149-50
Inorganic matter. See Inert matter
Insectivorous plants, 107-9
Insects, 19, 101, 107, 126, 131, 134, 135, 140-1, 146, 147, 157, 166,
169, 171-5, 188
apogee of instinct in hymenoptera, 134, 173-4
consciousness and instinct, 145, 167, 173
continuity of instinct with organization, 139, 145
fallibility of instinct in, 172-3
instinct in general in, 169, 173-4
[Pg 389]language of ants, 157-8
object of instinct in, 146
paralyzing instinct in, 146, 171, 172-3
social instinct in, 101, 157-8, 171
special instincts as variations on a theme, 167.
See Arthropods in evolution
Insensible variation, 63, 66
Inspiration of a poem an undivided intuitive act, contrasted with its
intellectual imitation in words, 209, 210, 258.
See Sympathy
Instantaneity of the intellectual view, 31, 70, 84, 89, 199, 201-2, 207,
226, 249, 258, 273, 300-6, 311, 314, 331-3, 342, 351, 352,
Instinct and action on inert matter, 136, 141
in animals as distinguished from plants, 170
in cells, 166
and consciousness, 143-5, 166, 167, 173, 174, 175, 186
culmination of, in evolution, 133, 174-5.
See Arthropods in evolution, Evolutionary superiority
fallibility of, 173-4
in insects in general, 169, 173-4
and intelligence, xii, 51, 100, 103, 113, 116-8, 132-7, 141-3, 145, 150,
152, 159, 168-70, 173-9, 184-5, 186, 197-8, 238,
246, 254, 255, 259,267, 268, 343, 345, 366
and intuition, 177, 178-9, 181
object of, 146-52, 165, 168, 172-9, 186, 189, 195, 234, 254
and organization, 23-4, 138-40, 145, 166-8, 171-2, 173, 176, 193,
194, 264
paralyzing, in certain hymenoptera, 146, 171, 172-3
in plants, 170, 171
social, of insects, 101, 157-8, 171
Instinctive knowledge, 148, 167, 168, 173-4
learning, 193
metaphysics, 192, 269, 270, 277
Instrument, action as, of consciousness, 180
animal, is natural; human artificial, 139-43
automatic activity as instrument of voluntary, 252
consciousness as, of action, 180
intelligence: the function of intelligence is to construct
instruments, 159, 192-3
intelligence transforms life into an, 162
intelligence transforms matter into an, 161, 198
intelligence: the instruments of intelligence are artificial, ix, 137-9,
140-1, 150-1
natural or organized instruments of instinct, 140-1, 145, 150
Intellect and action, ix, 11, 29, 44-8, 93, 136, 142, 152-7, 162, 179,
186, 187, 192, 195, 197-8, 219, 220, 226-9, 251, 270, 273, 297-9, 301,
302, 306, 329, 346-7
in animals, 187
Fichte's conception of the, 189, 190, 357
function of the, 5, 11, 12, 44-50, 92, 93, 126, 137-45, 149-60, 162-4,
168, 174, 176, 181, 187-99, 204-8, 214-9, 229,
233, 237, 241, 242,
246, 247, 251, 270, 290, 298, 299, 328, 336, 337, 341, 342, 347,
348, 356, 357
genesis of the, xi-xv, 49, 103, 104-5, 126-7, 152, 153, 186, 187, 189,
193, 194, 195, 198, 207, 247-9, 358, 359, 366
as inversion of intuition, 7, 8, 11, 12, 46, 49, 51, 86, 88-91, 93, 94,
103-4, 113, 116-8, 129, 132, 133, 135, 136, 139-43,
145, 157, 161,
168-80, 181, 183, 184, 185, 190-204, 207-12, 216-8, 221, 223, 225-6,
230-3, 235, 236, 238, 245-52,
254-9, 264, 267-71, 276, 277, 313, 330,
339, 342-5, 361, 369
and language, 4, 148, 158-60, 258, 265, 292, 303, 304, 312, 313, 326
and matter, ix-xv, 10, 11, 48-9, 92, 135, 136, 141, 142, 152-4, 155,
160, 161, 165, 168, 175, 179, 181, 182, 186-7, 190,
193, 194, 195,
198, 199, 201-4, 205-10, 213, 215, 218-20, 224, 225-30, 240-2, 245,
246, 248-52, 254, 256-9, 264,
270, 271, 272, 273, 275, 297-8, 306,
319, 321, 329, 340, 341-3, 347-9, 355, 358-61, 368, 369
mechanism of the, ix-xv, 4, 30, 32, 47-9, 70, 84-5, 88-9, 101, 137-8,
150-5, 156-7, 160, 161, 164, 165, 167, 168, 173,
174, 176, 177,
186, 187, 190-3, 194-218, 223-40, 244, 246-7, 249-51, 254, 255, 257,
258, 266, 270, 273, 276-7, 292,
300-21, 325, 329, 330, 332, 337, 338,
339, 341-8, 351, 358-9, 361-2, 363-4, 365, 367
object of the, ix-xv, 7, 8, 10, 17, 20, 21, 30, 31, 34, 35, 37, 46-9,
52, 71, 74, 84, 87-92, 93, 95, 102, 103, 139, 140, 149,
152-66, 168,
173, 175-9, 180, 181, 186, 190, 193-211, 213, 216-20, 223, 224, 226,
228-30, 233, 237, 238, 240, 245,
249-51, 254, 255, 257-9, 261, 264,
265, 270, 271, 273, 274, 298-314, 318-22, 326, 328, 329, 332-8, 342,
344-9, 351,
352-7, 359-61, 363, 365, 369-70
and perception, 4-5, 11, 12, 93-4, 161-2, 168, 176-7, 188, 189, 205,
207, 226-7, 228-9, 230, 238, 249-51, 273,
299-300, 301, 306, 359-60
and rhythm, 299, 300-1, 306-7, 329, 337, 346-7
and science, 8-12, 31, 92-3, 152, 153, 157-8, 159, 160-1, 162-3, 168,
173-6, 187, 193-8, 202, 204, 207-9, 214-6, 217,
225-6, 228-9, 241,
251, 270, 273, 297-8, 306, 321, 322, 329, 333-5, 345, 346-8, 354,
356, 357, 359-60, 362-3,
369-70
and space, 10-11, 154, 156-7, 160-3, 174-5, 176-7, 189, 202-4, 207-12,
215, 218, 222-3, 244, 245, 250, 251, 257-8,
361-2
and time, 4, 8-9, 17, 18, 20-2, 36, 39, 45-6, 47, 51, 163, 300, 301,
331-2, 335-7, 341
possibility of transcending the, xii, xiii, 48, 152, 177-8, 193-4,
198-200, 205-6, 207-8, 266, 360-1.
See Philosophy, Intelligence
Intellectualism, hesitation of Descartes between, and intuitionism, 345
Intelligence and action, 137-41, 150, 154-5, 161, 162-3, 181, 189, 198, 306
animal, 138, 187, 188, 212
categories of, x, 48, 195-6
of the child, 147-8
and consciousness, 187
culmination of, 130, 139-40, 174-5.
See Superiority
genesis of, 136, 177-8, 366
and the individual, 251
and instinct, 109, 135, 136, 141, 142, 168-70, 173-7, 179, 186, 197,
209, 238, 259, 267
in Kant's philosophy, 357-8
and laws, 229-30
limitations of, 152
and matter, 152, 159-60, 161-2, 175, 179, 181, 186, 189, 194-8, 230,
237, 250, 369, 370
mechanism of, 152, 153, 164, 165
and motion, 153, 159-60, 274, 303-7, 312, 313, 329
object of, 145-56, 161, 162, 175, 179, 250
practical nature of, ix-xv, 137-9, 141, 150-1, 247-8, 305, 306, 328-9
and reality, ix-xv, 161-2, 177, 237, 251, 258, 269, 271, 307
and science, 175, 176, 193, 194-5
and signs, 157, 158, 159, 160
and space, 205
See Intellect, Understanding, Reason
Intelligent, the, contrasted with the merely intelligible, 175
Intelligible reality in ancient philosophy, 316-7
world, 160-1
Intelligibles of Plotinus, 353
Intension of knowledge, 149-50
Intensity of consciousness varies with ratio of possible to real
action, 144-5
Intention as contrasted with mechanism, 233.
See Automatic order, Willed order
of life the object of instinct, 176, 233
Interaction, universal, 188-9
Interest as cause of variation, 131
in representation of "nought," 296, 297.
See Affection, rôle of, etc.
Internal finality, 41
Internality of instinct, 168, 174-5, 176-7
of subject in object the condition of knowledge of reality, 307,
317, 358-9
Interpenetration, 161, 162, 174-5, 177, 184 note, 188, 189, 201-3,
207-8, 257, 258, 270, 319-20, 341, 352
Interruption, materiality an, of positivity, 219, 246, 247-8, 319-20.
See Inverse relation, etc.
Interval of time, 8-9, 22, 23
between what is done and what might be done covered by consciousness, 179
Intuition, continuity between sensible and ultra-intellectual, 360-1
dialectic and, in philosophy, 238.
See Intellect as inversion of intuition
fringe of, around the nucleus of intellect, xiii, 12, 46, 49, 193
and instinct, 176-9, 182
and intellect in theoretical knowledge, 176-9, 270-1
Intuitional cosmology as reversed psychology, 207-8
metaphysics contrasted with intellectual or systematic, 191-2,
268-70, 277-8
method of philosophy, apparent vicious circle of, 191-4, 195-8
Intuitionism in Spinoza, 347-8
and intellectualism in Descartes, 345-6
Invention, consciousness as, and freedom, 264, 270-1
creativeness of, 164, 237, 340, 341
disproportion between, and its consequences, 181, 182-3
duration as, 10-1
evolution as, 102-3, 255, 344-5
fervor of, 164
indivisibility of, 164
inference a beginning of, 138
mechanical, 142-3, 194-5
of steam engine as epoch-marking, 138-9
time as, 341
unforeseeableness of, 164
upspringing of, 164
See New
Inverse relation of the physical and psychical, 126-7, 143-4, 145, 173-4,
177-8, 201, 202, 206-7, 208, 210-1, 212, 217, 218, 222, 223, 236, 240,
245, 246, 247-8, 249, 256, 257, 261, 264, 265, 270, 319-20
Irreversibility of duration. See Repetition
Isolated systems of matter, 204, 213, 215, 241, 242, 341, 342, 346, 347-8.
See Bodies
Janet, Paul, 60-1 note
Jennings, 35 note
Jourdain and the two kinds of order, 221
Juxtaposition, 207-8, 338, 339, 341.
Cf. Succession
Kaleidoscopic variation, 74
Kant, antinomies of, 204-5, 206
becoming in Kant's successors, 362
coincidence of matter with space in Kant's philosophy, 206, 207-8, 244
construction the method of Kant's successors, 364-5
his criticism of pure reason, 205, 287 note, 356-62, 364
degrees of being in Kant's successors, 362-3
duration in Kant's successors, 362-3
intelligence in Kant's philosophy, 230, 357
ontological argument in Kant's philosophy, 285
space and time in Kant's philosophy, 204-6
and Spencer, 364
See Mind and matter, Sensuous manifold, Thing-in-itself
Kantianism, 358, 364
Katagenesis, 34
Kepler, 228-9, 332-5
Knowledge and action, 150, 193-4, 196, 197, 206-7, 208, 218
criticism of, 193-4
discontinuity of, 306
extension of, 149
form of, 148, 194-5, 358-362
formal, 152
genesis of, 190
innate or natural, 146-50
instinct in, 143, 144, 166-9, 173, 177, 192-3, 198, 268
intellect in, ix-xv, 48, 149, 162-4, 177, 179, 193-4, 196-9, 206-7, 208,
218, 237, 238, 251, 270, 305, 306, 312, 313, 315,
317, 325, 331-2, 342, 343, 347-8, 359-60, 361
intension of, 149-50
of reality viewed as the internality of subject in object, 307,
317, 358-9
intuition and intellect in theoretical knowledge, 174-7, 179, 238,
70, 342-4
matter of, 194-5, 357-8, 359-62
of matter, xi, 48, 206-7, 360-1
object of, ix-xv, 1, 48, 147, 148, 159-60, 163, 164, 197-9, 270,
342, 359-60
fundamental problem of, 273-5
as relative to certain requirements of the mind, 152, 190-1, 230
scientific, 193-4, 196-8, 206, 207, 218
theory of, xiii, 177, 179, 197, 204-5, 207-8, 229, 231
unconscious, 142-6, 146, 150, 165, 166
alleged unknowableness of the thing-in-itself, 205, 206
Kunstler, 260 note
Labbé 260 note
Labor, division of, 99, 110, 118, 140, 157, 166, 260
Lalande, André, 246 note
Lamarck, 75-6
Lamarckism, 75-6, 77, 84-87
Language, 4, 147, 157-60, 258, 265, 293, 302-3, 305, 312-4, 320
La Place, 38
Lapsed intelligence, instinct as, 169, 175
Larvae, 19, 140, 145-66, 172-3
Latent geometrism of intellect, 194, 211-2
Law of correlation, 66, 67
and genera, 226-9, 330
heliocentric radius-vector in Kepler's laws, 334
imprint of relations and laws upon consciousness in Spencer's
philosophy, 188
and intuitional philosophy, 176-7
physical, contrasted with the laws of our codes, 218-9
physical, expression of the negative movement, 218
physical, mathematical form of, 218, 219, 229-30, 241
relation as, 228, 229-30
Learning, instinctive, 192, 193
Le Dantec, 18 note
Leibniz, cause in, 277
dogmatism of, 356, 357
extension in, 351, 352
God in, 351, 352, 356
mechanism in, 348, 351, 355, 356
his philosophy a systematization of physics, 347
space in, 351-2
teleology in, 39, 40
time in, 352, 362
Lepidoptera, 114 note, 134
Le Roy, Ed., 218 note
Liberation of consciousness, 183-4, 265, 266
Liberty. See Freedom
Life as activity, 128-9, 246
cause in the realm of, 94, 164
complementarity of the powers of, ix-xv, 25-6, 27, 51-5, 97-105, 110,
113, 116-9, 126-7, 131-6, 140-3, 176, 177, 183,
184, 246, 254-7, 266, 270, 343, 344-5
consciousness coextensive with, 186, 257, 270, 362-3
mutual contingency of the orders of life and matter, 235
continuity of, 1-11, 29, 30, 162, 163, 258
as creation, 57-8, 161-2, 223, 230, 246, 247-8, 252, 254, 255
symbolized by a curve, 31, 89, 90
embryonic, 166
and finality, 44, 89, 164, 185, 222-3
fluidity of, 153, 165, 191-2, 193
as free, 129-30
function of, 93-4, 106-10, 113, 114, 117, 120, 121, 126-7, 173-5,
246, 254-6
harmony of the realm of, 50, 51, 103, 116, 117-8, 127
imitation of the inert by, 230
imitation of, by the inert, 33-6
impulse of, prolonged in our will, 239
and individuation, 12-4, 26, 27, 79-80, 85, 87, 88, 127-8, 149, 195-6,
230, 231, 250, 259, 261, 269, 300-1, 302-3.
See Individuality
indivisibility of, 225-6, 270
and instinct. 136-40, 145, 165-8, 170, 172, 173, 175-9, 186, 192-7, 233,
264, 366
and intellect, ix-xv, 13, 32-5, 44-9, 89, 101, 102-3, 104-5, 127, 136,
152, 160-5, 168, 173-4, 176-9, 181, 191-201, 206,
207, 213, 220, 222-3, 224, 225-6, 257-61, 266, 270, 300-1, 342, 355, 359-61, 365, 366
and interpenetration, 271
as inversion of the inert, 6-7, 8, 176, 177, 186, 190, 191, 196,
197, 201, 202, 207, 208-9, 210-1, 212, 216, 217, 218,
222-3, 225-6, 232, 235, 236, 238, 239, 245-50, 264, 329-31
a limited force, 126, 127, 141, 148, 149, 254
and memory, 167
penetrating matter, 26, 27, 52, 179, 181, 182, 237, 239, 266, 269-70
as tendency to mobility, 128, 131, 132
and physics and chemistry, 31, 33, 35, 36, 225-6
in other planets, 256
as potentiality, 258
repetition in, and in the inert, 224, 225, 230, 231
sinuousness of, 71, 98, 99, 102, 112, 113, 116, 129-30, 212
social, 138, 140, 157-8, 265
in other solar systems, 256
and evolution of species, 247-8, 254, 269
theory of, and theory of knowledge, xii, 177, 179, 197
unforeseeableness of, 6, 8-9, 20, 26-7, 28, 29, 37, 45-6, 47, 48, 52,
86, 96, 163, 164, 184, 223-4, 249, 339, 341
unity of, 250, 268, 270
as a wave flowing over matter, 251, 266
See Impulse of, Organic substance, Organism, Organization,
Vital impetus, Vital order, Vital principle, Vitalism,
Willed order
Limitations of instinct and of intelligence, 152
Limitedness of the scope of Galileo's physics, 357, 370
of the vital impetus, 126, 127, 141, 148, 149, 255
Linden, Maria von, 114 note
Lingulae illustrating failure to evolve, 102
Lizards, color variation in, 72, 74
Locomotion and consciousness, 108, 111, 115, 261.
See Mobility, Movement
Logic and action, ix, 44, 46, 162, 179
formal, 292
genesis of, x-xi, xiii-xiv, 49, 103, 104-5, 136, 191-2, 193, 301,
359, 366
and geometry, ix, 161, 176, 212
impotent to grasp life, x, 13, 32, 35, 36, 46-9, 89, 101, 152, 162-5,
194-201, 205, 206,
213, 219, 220, 222, 223, 225-6,
256-61, 266, 270, 313, 355, 360-1, 365
natural, 161, 194-5
of number, 208
and physics, 319-20, 321
and time, 4, 277
See Intellect, Intelligence, Understanding, Order, mathematical
Logical existence contrasted with psychical and physical, 277, 298,
328, 361-2
categories, x, 48, 195, 196
and physical contrasted, 276-7
Logik, by Sigwart, 287 note
λογος, in Plotinus, 210 note
Looking backward, the attitude of intellect, 46, 237
Lumbriculus, 13
Machinery and intelligence, 141
Machines, natural and artificial, 139.
See Implement, Instrument
organisms, for action, 252, 254, 300-1
Magnitude, certainty of induction approached as factors approach pure
magnitudes, 215-16
and modern science, 333, 335
Man in evolution, attention, 184
brain, 183, 184, 263-5
consciousness, 139-43, 180, 181, 183, 185, 187, 188, 191-2, 212, 262-8
goal, 134, 174-5, 185, 266, 267, 269, 270
habit and invention, 265
intelligence, 133, 137-9, 143, 146, 174, 175, 187, 188, 212, 266, 267
language, 158
Manacéine (de), 124 note
Manufacture, the aim of intellect, 137, 138, 145, 152-4, 159-65, 181, 191,
192, 199, 251, 298
and organization, 92, 93, 126-7, 139-43, 150
and repetition, 44, 45, 155-8
See Construction, Solid, Utility
Many and one, categories inapplicable to life, x, 162-3, 177-8, 257,
261, 268
in the idea of individuality, 258
See Multiplicity
[Pg 394]
Martin, J., 102 note
Marion, 107 note
Material knowledge, 152
Materialists, 240
Materiality the inversion of spirituality, 212
Mathematical order. See Inert matter, Order
Matter. See Inert matter
Maturation as creative evolution, 47-8, 230
Maupas, 35 note
Measurement a human convention, 218, 242
of real time an illusion, 336-40
Mechanical account of action after the fact, 47
cause, x, 34, 35, 40, 44, 177, 234, 235
procedure of intellect, 165
invention, 138, 140, 194-5
necessity, 47, 215, 216, 218, 236, 252, 265, 270, 327
Mechanics of transformation, 32
Mechanism, cerebral, 252, 253, 262, 263, 265, 366.
See Cerebral activity and consciousness
of the eye, 88
instinct as, 176-7
of intellect. See Intellect, mechanism of
and intention, 233.
See Automatic order, Willed order
life more than, x, xiv note, 78-9
Mechanistic philosophy, xii, xiv, 17, 29, 30, 37, 74, 88-96, 101, 102,
194-5, 218, 223, 264, 345, 346, 347, 348, 351, 355, 356, 362
Medical philosophers of the eighteenth century, 356
science, 165
Medullary bulb in the development of the nervous system, 252
and consciousness, 110
Memory, 5, 17, 20, 21, 167, 168, 180, 181, 201
Menopause in illustration of crisis of evolution, 19
Mental life, unity of, 268
Metamorphoses of larvae, 139-40, 146-7, 166
Metaphysics and duration, 276
and epistemology, 177, 179, 185, 197, 208-9
Galileo's influence on, 20, 238
instinctive, 191-2, 269, 270, 277-8
and intellect, 189-90
and matter, 194
natural, 21, 325
and science, 176-7, 194-5, 198, 208-9, 344, 354, 369-70
systematic, 191, 192, 194, 195-6, 238, 269, 270, 347
Metchnikoff, 18 note
Method of philosophy, 191-2
Microbes, illustrating divergence of tendency, 117
Microbial colonies, 259
Mind, individual, in philosophy, 191
and intellect, 48-9, 205-6
knowledge as relative to certain requirements of the mind, 152,
190-1, 230
and matter, 188-9, 201, 202, 203, 205-6, 264, 269, 270, 350, 365-9
See Psychic, Psycho-physiological parallelism, Psychology and
Philosophy, ψυχη
Minot, Sedgwick, 17 note
Mobility, tendency toward, characterizes animals, 109, 110, 113, 129-32,
135, 180
and consciousness, 108, 111, 115-6, 261
and intellect, 154-5, 161-2, 163, 300, 326, 327, 337
of intelligent signs, 158, 159
life as tendency toward, 127-8, 131, 132
in plants, 112, 135
See Motion
Möbius, 60 note
Model necessary to the constructive work of intellect, 164, 166-7
Modern astronomy compared with ancient science, 334, 335
geometry compared with ancient science, 31, 161, 334
idealism, 231
philosophy compared with ancient, 225-9, 231, 327-8, 344, 345,
349-51, 354, 356-7
philosophy: parallelism of body and mind in, 180, 350, 355, 356
science: cinematographical character of, 329, 330, 336, 341, 342, 346-7
science compared with ancient, 329-36, 342-5, 356-7
[Pg 395]science, Galileo's influence on, 334, 335
science, Kepler's influence on, 334
science, magnitudes the object of, 333, 335
science, time an independent variable in, 20, 335
Molecules, 251
Molluscs, illustrating animal tendency to mobility, 129-31
perception in, 189
vision in, 60, 75, 77, 83, 86, 87
Monads of Leibniz, 351-4
Monera, 126
Monism, 355
Moral sciences, weakness of deduction in, 212
Morat, 123 note
Morgan, L., 79 note, 80
Motion, abstract, 304
articulations of, 310-1
an animal characteristic, 252
and the cinematograph, 304-5
continuity of, 310
in Descartes, 346-7
evolutionary, extensive and qualitative, 302, 303, 311, 312
in general (i.e. abstract), 304-5
indivisibility of, 306-7, 311, 336-7, 338
and instinct, 139-40, 331-2
and intellect, 71, 155, 156, 159-60, 273, 274, 298, 317-8, 321, 329, 331-2, 338, 344-5
organization of, 310-1
track laid by motion along its course, 308-11, 337, 338
See Mobility, Movement
Motive principle of evolution: consciousness, 181-2
Motor mechanisms, cerebral, 252, 253, 263, 265
Moulin-Quignon, quarry of, 137
Moussu, 81
Movement and animal life, 108, 131, 132
ascending, 12, 101, 103, 104, 185, 208-9, 210-1, 369-70.
See Vital impetus
consciousness and, 111, 118, 144-5, 207-8
descending, 11-2, 202-4, 207-10, 212, 246, 252, 256, 270, 276, 339,
361, 369-70
goal of, the object of the intellect, 155, 299-300, 302, 303
intellect unable to grasp, 313
mutual inversion of cosmic movements, 126-7, 143, 144, 173-4, 176, 177,
209-10, 212, 217, 218, 222-3, 236, 245-51,
261, 264, 265, 272, 342-3
life as, 166, 176-7
and the nervous system, 110, 132, 134, 180, 262-3
of plants, 109, 135-6
See Mobility, Motion, Locomotion, Current, Tendency, Impetus,
Impulse, Impulsion
Movements, antagonistic cosmic, 128-9, 135, 181, 185, 250, 259.
See Movement, Mutual inversion of cosmic
Multiplicity, abstract, 257, 259
distinct, 202, 209-10, 257.
See Interpenetration
does not apply to life, x, 162, 177, 257, 261, 270
Mutability, exhaustion of, of the universe, 244, 245
Mutations, sudden, 28, 62-3, 64-8
theory of, 85-6
Natural geometry, 195-6, 211-2
instrument, 141, 144-5, 150-1
or innate knowledge, 147, 150-1
logic, 161, 194-5
metaphysic, 21, 325-6
selection, 54, 56-7, 59-60, 61-5, 68, 95, 169-70
Nature, Aristotelian theory of, 135, 174
discord in, 127-8, 255, 267
facts and relations in, 368
incoherence in, 104
as inert matter, 161-2, 218, 219, 228-9, 239, 245, 264, 280-1, 303,
356, 359-60, 367
as life, 100, 138, 139-40, 141-2, 143, 144-5, 150, 154, 155-6, 227,
241, 260, 269, 270, 301-2
order of, 225-6
as ordered diversity, 231, 233
unity of, 105, 190, 191, 195, 196-9, 322, 352-7, 358
Nebula, cosmic, 249, 257
Necessity for creation, vital impetus as, 252, 261
and death of individuals, 246 note
and freedom, 218, 236, 270
in Greek philosophy, 326-7
in induction, 215, 216
and matter, 252, 264
Negation, 275, 285-97.
See Nought
Negative cause of mathematical order, 217.
See Inverse relation, etc.
cosmic principle, 126-7, 143, 144, 173-4, 176-7, 209, 212, 218, 223-4,
236, 245-51, 261, 264-5, 272, 243.
See Inert matter, Opposition of the two ultimate cosmic movements, etc.
Neo-Darwinism, 55, 56, 85, 86, 169-70
Neo-Lamarckism, 42 note
Nervous system a centre of action, 109, 130-1, 132, 134-5, 180, 253, 261-3
of the plant, 114
primacy of, 120-1, 126-7, 252
Neurone and indetermination, 126
New, freedom and the, 11-2, 164, 165, 199-200, 218, 230, 239, 249,
270, 339-42
Newcomen, 184
Newton, 335
Nitrogen and the function of organisms, 108, 113-4, 117, 255
νοησεως νοησις of Aristotle, 356
Non-existence. See Nought
Nothing. See Nought
Nought, conception of the, 273-80, 281-3, 289-90, 292-8, 316-7, 327.
See Negation, Pseudo-ideas, etc.
νους ποιητικος of Aristotle, 322
Novelty. See new.
Nucleus intelligence as the luminous, enveloped by instinct, 166-7
in microbial colonies, 259
intelligence as the solid, bathed by a mist of instinct, 193, 194
of Stentor, 260
Number illustrating degrees of reality, 324-5, 327
logic of, 208
Nuptial flight, 146
Nutritive elements, fixation of, 107-9, 114, 117, 246, 247, 254
Nymph (Zool.), 139, 146
Object of this book, ix-xv
of instinct, 146-52, 163, 175-9
of intellect, 146-52, 161-5, 175, 179, 190-1, 199-200, 237, 250,
252, 270, 273, 298-304, 307-8, 311-2, 354, 359
internality of subject in, the condition of knowledge of reality,
307-8, 317-8, 359
of knowledge, 147, 148-9, 159-60
idea of, contrasted with that
of universal interaction, 11, 188-9, 207-8
of philosophy as contrasted with object of science, 195-6, 220-1, 225-6,
227, 239, 251, 270, 273, 297-9, 305-6, 347
of science, 329, 332-3, 335-6
Obliteration of outlines in the real, 11, 188, 189, 207-8
Oenothera Lamarckiana, 63, 85-6
Old, growing. See Age
the, is the object of the intellect, 163, 164, 199, 270
One and many in the idea of individuality, x, 258.
See Unity
Ontological argument in Kant, 284
Opposition of the two ultimate cosmic movements, 128-9, 175-6, 179,
186, 201, 203, 238, 248, 254, 259, 261, 267.
See Inverse relation of the physical and psychical
Orchids, instincts of, 170
Order and action, 226-7
complementarity of the two orders, 145-6, 173-4, 221-2.
See Order, Mutual inversion of the two orders
mutual contingency of the two orders, 231, 235
and disorder, 40, 103-4, 220-2, 225-6, 231-6, 274
mutual inversion of the two orders, 186, 201, 202, 206-9, 211, 212,
216-8, 219-21, 222-3, 225-6, 230, 232, 235, 236,
238, 240, 245-8,
256, 257, 258, 264, 270, 274, 313, 330
mathematical, 153, 209-11, 217-9, 223-6, 230-3, 236, 245, 251, 270, 330-1
of nature, 225-6, 231, 233
as satisfaction, 222, 223, 274
vital, 94-5, 164, 222-7, 230, 235, 236, 237, 330-1
willed, 224, 239
Organ and function, 88-91, 93-4, 95, 132, 140, 141, 157, 161-2
Organic destruction and physico-chemistry, 226
substance, 131, 140, 141-2, 149, 162-3, 195-6, 240 note, 255, 267
world, cleft between, and the inorganic, 190, 191, 196, 197-8
world, harmony of, 50-1, 103, 104, 116, 118, 126-7
world, instinct the procedure of, 165
Organism and action, 123-4, 125, 174, 253, 254, 300-1
ambiguity of primitive, 99, 112, 113, 116, 129, 130
association of organisms, 260
change and the, 301, 302-3
complementarity of intelligence and instinct in the, 141-2, 150, 181,
184, 185
complexity of the, 162, 250, 252, 253, 260
consciousness and the, 111, 145, 179, 180, 262, 270
contingency of the actual chemical nature of the, 255, 257
differentiation of parts in, 252, 260.
See Organism, complexity of
extension of, by artificial instruments, 141, 161
freedom the property of every, 130, 131
function of, 26, 27, 79, 80, 85, 87, 88, 93-4, 106-110, 113, 114, 117,
120, 121, 126-7, 128, 136, 173-5, 230, 231, 246,
247, 250, 251, 254, 255, 256, 258, 270
function and structure, 55, 61, 62, 69, 74, 75, 76-7, 86, 88-91, 93-4,
95, 96-7, 118-9, 132, 139, 140, 157-8, 161-3, 250,
252, 256
generality typified by similarity among organisms, 223, 224, 228-9, 230
hive as, 166
and individuation, x, 12, 13, 15, 23, 26-7, 42, 149, 195-6, 225-6,
228-9, 259, 260, 261, 270
mutual interpenetration of organisms, 177-8
mechanism of the, 31, 92-3, 94
philosophy and the, 195-6
unity of the, 176-8
Organization of action, 142, 145, 147-8, 150, 181, 184, 185
of duration, 5-6, 15, 25, 26
explosive character of, 92
and instinct, 24, 138-46, 150, 165-7, 171-2, 173, 176, 192-3, 194, 264
and intellect, 161-2
and manufacture, 92, 93, 94-5, 96, 126-8
is the modus vivendi between the antagonistic cosmic
currents, 181, 250, 254
of motion, 310
and perception, 226-7
Originality of the willed order, 224
Orthogenesis, 69, 86-7
Oscillation between association and individuation, 259, 261.
See Societies
of ether, 301-2
of instinct and intelligence about a mean position, 136
of pendulum, illustrating space and time in ancient philosophy,
318-9, 320
between representation of inner and outer reality, 279-80
of sensible reality in ancient philosophy about being, 316-8
Outlines of perception the plan of action, 5, 11, 12, 93, 188, 189, 204-5,
206-7, 226-7, 228-9, 230, 250, 299-300, 306
Oxygen, 114, 254, 255
Paleontology, 24-5, 129, 139
Paleozoic era, 102
Parallelism, psycho-physiological, 180, 350, 351, 355, 356
Paralyzing instinct in hymenoptera, 139-40, 146, 172, 174-5
Parasites, 106, 108, 109, 111-13, 134-5
Parasitism, 132
Passivity, 222-4
Past, subsistence of, in present, 4, 20-3, 26-7, 108, 199-202
Peckham, 173-4 note
Pecten, illustrating identical structures in divergent lines of
evolution, 62, 63, 75
Pedagogical and social nature of negation, 287-97
Pedagogy and the function of the intellect, 165
Penetration, reciprocal, 161-2.
See Interpenetration
Perception and action, 4-5, 11, 12, 93, 188, 189, 206, 226-7, 228-9,
300-1, 306-7
and becoming, 176-7, 303-6
cinematographical character of, 206-7, 249, 251, 331-2
distinctness of, 226-7, 250
and geometry, 205, 230
in molluscs, 188
and organization, 226-7
prolonged in intellect, 161-2, 273
reaction in, 264
and recollection, 180, 181
refracts reality, 204, 238, 359-60
rhythm of, 299-300, 301
and science, 168
Permanence an illusion, 299-301
Peron, 80
Perrier, Ed., 260 note
Personality, absolute reality of, 269
concentration of, 201, 202
and matter, 269, 270
the object of intuition, 268
tension of, 199, 200, 201
Perthes, Boucher de, 137
Phaedrus, 156 note
Phagocytes and external finality, 42
Phagocytosis and growing old, 18
Phantom ideas and problems, 177, 277, 283, 296
Philosophical explanation contrasted with scientific explanation, 168
Philosophy and art, 176-7
and biology, 43-4, 194-6
and experience, 197-8
function of 29-30, 84-5, 93-4, 168, 173-4, 194-7, 198, 268, 269, 369-70
history of, 238
incompletely conscious of itself, 207-8, 209
individual mind in, 191
and intellect, ix-xv
intellect and intuition in, 238
of intuition, 176-7, 191-4, 196, 197, 277
method of, 191-2, 194, 195, 239
object of, 239
and the organism, 195-6
and physics, 194, 208
and psychology, 194, 196
and science, 175, 196-7, 208, 345, 370
See Ancient philosophy, Cosmology, Finalism, Mechanistic
philosophy, Metaphysics, Modern philosophy,
Post-Kantian philosophy
Phonograph illustrating "unwinding" cause, 73
Phosphorescence, consciousness compared to, 262
Photograph, illustrating the nature of the intellectual view of
reality, 31, 304-5
Photography, instantaneous, illustrating the mechanism of the
intellect, 331-2, 333
Physical existence, as contrasted with logical, 276, 297-8, 328, 361
laws, their precise form artificial, 218, 219, 229, 240-1
laws and the negative cosmic movement, 218
operations the object of intelligence, 175, 250
order, imitation of, by the vital, 230
science, 176-7
Physicochemistry and organic destruction, 226
and biology, 25-6, 29-30, 34, 35, 36, 55, 57, 98, 194
Physics, ancient, "logic spoiled," 320, 321-2
of ancient philosophy, 315, 320, 321-2, 355
of Aristotle, 228 note, 324 note, 331, 332
and deduction, 213
of Galileo, 357, 369-70
and individuality of bodies, 188, 208
as inverted psychics, 202
and logic, 319-20, 321
and metaphysics, 194, 208
and mutability, 245
success of, 218, 219
Pigment-spot and adaptation, 60, 61, 71-3, 76-7
and heredity, 83, 84
Pinguicula, certain animal characteristics of, 107
Plan, motionless, of action the object of intellect, 155, 298-9, 301-2, 303
Planets, life in other, 256
Plants and animals in evolution, 105-39, 142-3, 144, 145-6, 147, 168,
169-70, 181, 182, 183-4, 185, 254, 267
complementarity of, to animals, 183-4, 185, 267
consciousness of, 109, 111, 113, 120, 128-35, 142-3, 144, 181, 182, 292.
See Torpor, Sleep
function of, 107-9, 113, 114, 117, 246, 247, 254, 256
function and structure in, 67, 77-8, 79
individuation in, 12
instinct in, 170, 171
and mobility, 108, 109, 111-13, 118-9, 129, 130, 135-6
parallelism of evolution with animals, 59-60, 106-8, 116
supporters of all life, 271
variation of, 85, 86
Plasma, continuity of germinative, 25-6, 42, 78-83
Plastic substances, 255
Plato, 49, 156, 191, 210 note, 316, 318, 319, 320, 321, 327, 330, 347, 349
Platonic ideas, 49, 315-6, 321, 322, 327, 330, 352
Plotinus, 210 note, 314-5, 323, 324 note, 349, 352, 353
Plurality, confused, of life, 257.
See Interpenetration
Poem, sounds of, distinct to perception; the sense indivisible to
intuition, 209
illustrating creation of matter, 240, 319-20
ποιητικος νους, of Aristotle, 322
Polymorphism of ants, bees, and wasps, 140
of insect societies, 157
Polyzoism, 260
Positive reality, 208, 212. See Reality
Positivity, materiality an inversion or interruption of, 219, 246,
247-8, 319-20
Possible activity as a factor in consciousness, 11, 12, 96, 144, 145,
146-7, 158-9, 165, 179, 180, 181, 189, 264, 368
existence, 290, 295
Post-Kantian philosophy, 362, 363
Potential activity. See Possible activity
genera, 226
knowledge, 142-7, 150, 166
Potentiality, life as an immense, 258, 270
zone of, surrounding acts, 179, 180, 181, 264.
See Possible activity
Powers of life, complementarity of, xii, xiii, 26, 27, 51-5, 97-105, 110,
113, 116-8, 119, 126-7, 131-6, 140-3, 176, 177, 183, 184, 246, 254, 255,
257, 266, 270, 343, 345
Practical nature of perception and its prolongation in intellect and
science, 137-41, 150, 193-4, 196, 197, 206, 207-8, 218, 247-8, 273,
281, 305, 306-7, 328, 329
Preëstablished harmony, 205-6, 207
Present, creation of, by past, 5, 20-3, 26-7, 167, 199-202
Prevision. See Foreseeing
Primacy of nervous system, 120-6, 252
Primary instinct, 138-9, 168
Primitive organisms, ambiguous forms of, 99, 112, 113, 116, 129, 130
"Procession" in Alexandrian philosophy, 323
Progress, adaptation and, 101 ff.
evolutionary, 50, 133, 134, 138, 141-2, 173-4, 175, 185, 264-5, 266
Prose and verse, illustrating the two kinds of orders, 221, 232
Protophytes, colonizing of, 259
Protoplasm, circulation of, 32-3, 108
and senescence, 18, 19
imitation of, 32-3, 35
primitive, and the nervous system, 124, 126-7
of primitive organisms, 99, 108, 109
and the vital principle, 42-3
Protozoa, association of, 259-61
ageing of, 16
of ambiguous form, 112
and individuation, 14, 259-61
mechanical explanation of movements of, 33
and nervous system, 126
reproduction of, 14
Pseudo-ideas and problems, 177, 277, 283, 296
Pseudoneuroptera, division of labor among, 140
ψχνη of Aristotle, 350
of Plotinus, 210 note
Psychic activity, twofold nature of, 136, 140-1, 142-3
life, continuity of, 1-11, 29-30
Psychical existence contrasted with logical, 276, 297-8, 327-8, 361
nature of life, 257
Psychics inverted physics, 201, 202.
See Inverse relation of the physical and psychical
Psychology and deduction, 212-3
and the genesis of intellect, 187, 194, 195-6, 197
intuitional cosmology as reversed, 208-9
Psycho-physiological parallelism, 180, 350, 351, 355, 356
Puberty, illustrating crises in evolution, 19, 320-1
Qualitative, evolutionary and extensive becoming, 313
motion, 302-3, 304, 311
Qualities, acts, forms, the classes of representation, 303, 314
bodies as bundles of, 300-1
coincidence of, 309
and movements, 299-300
and natural geometry, 211
superimposition of, in induction, 216
Quality is change, 299-300
in Eleatic philosophy, 314-5
and quantity in ancient philosophy, 323-4
and quantity in modern philosophy, 350
and rhythm, 300-2
Quaternary substances, 121
Quinton, René, 134 note
Radius-vector, Heliocentric, in Kepler's laws, 334
Rank, evolutionary, 50, 133-5, 173-4, 265
Reaction, rôle of, in perception, 226-7
Ready-made categories, x, xiv, 48, 237, 250, 251, 273, 311, 321,
329, 354, 359
Real activity as distinguished from possible, 145
common-sense is continuous experience of the, 213
continuity of the, 302, 329
dichotomy of the, in modern philosophy, 349
imitation of the, by intelligence, 90, 204, 258, 270, 307, 355
obliteration of outlines in the, 11-2, 188, 189, 207-8
representation of the, by science, 203-4
Realism, ancient, 231-2
Realists and idealists alike assume possibility of absence of order,
220, 231-2
Reality, absolute, 198, 228-9, 230, 269, 359-60, 361
as action, 47, 191-2, 194-5, 249
degrees of, 323, 327
in dogmatic metaphysics, 196
double form of, 179-80, 216, 230-1, 236
as duration, 11-2, 217, 272
as flux, 165, 250, 251, 294, 337, 338, 342
and the frames of the intellect, 363-4, 365.
See Frames of the understanding
as freedom, 247
of genera in ancient philosophy, 226-7
is growth, 239
imitation of, by the intellect, 89-90, 365
and the intellect, 52, 89-90, 153, 191, 192, 314-5, 355-6
intelligible, in ancient philosophy, 317
knowledge of, 307-8, 317, 358-9
and mechanism, 351, 354-5
as movement, 90, 155, 301-2, 312
and not-being, 276, 280, 285
of the person, 269
refraction of, through the forms of perception, 204, 238, 359-60
and science, 194, 196, 198, 199, 203-4, 206-8, 354, 357
sensible, in ancient philosophy, 314, 317, 321, 327, 328, 352
symbol of, xi, 30-1, 71, 88-9, 93-4, 195-6, 197, 209, 240, 342,
360-1, 369
undefinable conceptually, 13, 49
unknowable in Kant, 205
unknowable in Spencer, xi
views of, 30-1, 71, 84, 88, 199, 201, 206-7, 225-6, 249, 258, 273,
300-7, 311, 314, 331-2, 342, 351, 352
Reason and life, 7, 8, 48, 161
cannot transcend itself, 193-4
Reasoning and acting, 192-3
and experience, 203-4
and matter, 204-5, 208-9
on matter and life, 7, 8
Recollection, dependence of, on special circumstances, 167, 180
in the dream, 202, 207-8
and perception, 180, 181
Recommencing, continual, of the present in the state of relaxation, 201
Recomposing, decomposing and, the characteristic powers of intellect,
157, 251
Record, false comparison of memory with, 5
Reflection, 158-9
Reflex activity, 110
compound, 173-4, 175-6
Refraction of the idea through matter or non-being, 316-7
of reality through forms of perception, 204, 238, 359-60
Regeneration and individuality, 13, 14
Register of time, 16, 20, 37
Reinke, 42 note
Relation, imprint of relations and laws upon consciousness, 188
as law, 229, 230-1
and thing, 147-52, 156-7, 160, 161, 187, 202, 352, 357
Relativism, epistemological, 196, 197, 230
Relativity of immobility, 155
of the intellect, xi, 48-9, 152, 153, 187, 195-6, 197-8, 199, 219,
273, 306-7, 360-1
of knowledge, 152, 191, 230
of perception, 226-7, 228, 300-1
Relaxation in the dream state, 201, 209-10
and extension, 201, 207-8, 209, 210, 212, 218, 223, 245
and intellect, 200, 207-8, 209, 212, 218
logic a, of virtual geometry, 212
matter a, of unextended into extended, 218
memory vanishes in complete, 200
necessity as, of freedom, 218
present continually recommences in the state of relaxation, 200
will vanishes in complete, 200, 207-8
See Tension
Releasing cause, 73, 74, 115, 118-9, 120
Repetition and generalization, 230-1, 232
and fabrication, 44-5, 46, 155-8
and intellect, 156-7, 199, 214-6
of states, 5-6, 7-8, 28-9, 30, 36, 45-6, 47
in the vital and in the mathematical order, 225, 226, 230, 231
Representation and action, 143-4, 145, 180
classes of: qualities, forms, acts, 302-3, 314
and consciousness, 143-4
of motion, 159-60, 303-4, 305, 306-7, 308, 313, 315, 344-5
of the Nought, 273-80, 281-4, 289-317, 327
Represented or internalized action distinguished from externalized
action, 144-7, 158-9, 165
Reproduction and individuation, 13, 14
Resemblance. See Similarity
Reservoir, organism a, of energy, 115, 116, 125-6, 245, 246, 254
Rest and motion in Zeno, 308-12
Retrogression in evolution, 133, 134
Retrospection the function of intellect, 47-8, 237
Reversed psychology: intuitional cosmology, 208
Rhizocephala and animal mobility, 111
Rhumbler, 34 note
Rhythm of duration, 11-2, 127-8, 300-1, 345-7
intelligence adopts the, of action, 305-6
of perception, 299-300, 301
and quality, 301
scanning the, of the universe the function of science, 346-7
of science must coincide with that of action, 320
of the universe untranslatable into scientific formulae, 337
Rings of arthropods, 132-3
Ripening, creative evolution as, 47-8, 340-1
Romanes, 139
Roule, 27 note
Roy (Le), Ed., 218 note
Salamandra maculata, vision in, 75
Salensky, 75 note
Same, function of intellect connecting same with same, 199-200, 233, 270
Samter and Heymons, 72 note
Saporta (De), 112 note
Savage's sense of distance and direction, 212
Skepticism or dogmatism the dilemma of any systematic metaphysics,
195-6, 197, 230-1
Schisms in the primitive impulsion of life, 254-5, 257.
See Divergent lines of evolution
Scholasticism, 370
Science and action, 93, 195, 198, 328-9
ancient, and modern, 329-37, 342-5, 357
astronomy, ancient and modern, 334-5, 336
cartesian geometry and ancient geometry, 333-4
cinematographical character of modern, 329, 330, 336-7, 340-1, 342, 345-8
conventionality of a certain aspect of, 206-7
and deduction, 212-3
and discontinuity, 161-2
function of, 92, 167-8, 173-4, 176-7, 193-4, 195-6, 198-9, 328-9, 346-7
Galileo's influence on modern, 333-4, 335
and instinct, 169, 170, 173-4, 175, 193-5
and intelligence, 176, 177, 193-6
Kepler's influence on modern, 334
and matter, 194-5, 206-7, 208
modern. See Modern science
object of, 195-6, 220, 221, 251, 270-1, 273, 296-8, 306-7, 328-9,
332-3, 335-6, 347-8
and perception, 168
and philosophy, 175-6, 196-7, 208-9, 344, 370
physical. See Physics and reality. See Reality and science
and time, 8-13, 20, 335-8
unity of, 195-6, 197, 228-9, 230, 321-2, 323, 344-5, 347-8, 349, 354,
355-6, 359-60, 362-3
Scientific concepts, 338-40
explanation and philosophical explanation, 168
formulae, 337
geometry, 161, 211
knowledge, 193-4, 196-7, 198, 199, 207, 208, 218
Sclerosis and ageing, 19
Scolia, paralyzing instinct in, 172
Scope of action indefinitely extended by intelligent instruments, 141
of Galileo's physics, 357, 370
Scott, 63 note
Sea-urchin and individuality, 13
Séailles, 29 note
Secondary instincts, 139, 168
Sectioning of becoming in the philosophy of ideas, 317-8
of matter by perception, 206-7, 249, 251
Sedgwick, 260 note
Seeing and willing, coincidence of, in intuition, 237
Selection, natural, 54, 56-7, 59-60, 61-2, 63, 64, 68, 95-6, 169, 170
Self, coincidence of, with, 199
existence of, means change, 1 ff.
knowledge of, 1 ff.
Senescence, 15-23, 26-7, 42-3
Sensation and space, 202
Sense-perception. See Perception
Sensible flux, 316-7, 318, 321, 322, 327, 343, 345
intuition and ultra-intellectual, 360-1
object, apogee of, 342-3, 344-5, 349
reality, 314, 317, 319, 327, 328, 352
Sensibility, forms of, 361
Sensitive plant, in illustration of mobility in plants, 109
Sensori-motor system. See Nervous system
Sensuous manifold, 205, 221, 232, 235, 236
Sentiment, poetic, in illustration of individuation, 258, 259
Serkovski, 259 note
Serpula, in illustration of identical evolution in divergent lines, 96
Sexual cells, 14, 26, 27, 79-81
Sexuality parallel in plants and animals, 58-60, 119-21
Shaler, N.S., 133 note, 184 note
Sheath, calcareous, in illustration of animal tendency to mobility, 130-1
Signs, function of, 158, 159, 160
the instrument of science, 329-30
Sigwart, 287 note
Silurian epoch, failure of certain species to evolve since, 102
Similarity among individuals of same species the type of generality,
224-6, 228-9, 230-1
and mechanical causality, 44, 45
Simultaneity, to measure time is merely to count simultaneities, 9,
336, 337, 341
Sinuousness of evolution, 71, 98, 102, 212-3
Sitaris, unconscious knowledge of, 146, 147
Situation and magnitude, problems of, 211
Sketching movements, function of consciousness, 207-8
Sleep, 129-31, 135, 181
Snapshot, in illustration of intellectual representation of motion,
305, 306, 313, 315, 344
See View of reality, Cinematographical character, etc.
form defined as a, of transition, 301-2, 317, 318, 321-2, 345
Social instinct, 101, 140, 158, 171-2
life, 138, 140, 158, 265
and pedagogical character of negation, 287-97
Societies, 101, 131-2, 158, 171-2, 259
Society and the individual, 260, 265
Solar energy stored by plants, released by animals, 246, 254
systems, 241-4, 246 note, 256, 270
systems, life in other, 256
Solid, concepts analogous to solids, ix
intellect as a solid nucleus, 193, 194
the material of construction and the object of the intellect, 153,
154, 161, 162, 251
Solidarity between brain and consciousness, 180, 262
of the parts of matter, 203, 207-8, 241, 271
Solidification operated by the understanding, 249
σωμα in Aristotle, 350
Somnambulism and consciousness, 144, 145, 159
Soul and body, 350
and cell, 269
creation of, 270
Space and action, 203
in ancient philosophy, 318, 319
and concepts, 160-1, 163, 174-5, 176-7, 188-9, 257-9
geometrical, 203
homogeneity of, 156, 212
and induction, 216
in Kant's philosophy, 205, 206, 207, 244
in Leibniz's philosophy, 351
and matter, 189, 202-13, 244, 257, 264, 361-2, 368
and time in Kant's philosophy, 205-6
unity and multiplicity determinations of, 357-9
See Extension
Spatiality atmosphere of, bathing intelligence, 205
degradation of the extra-spatial, 207
and distinctness, 203, 207, 244, 250, 257-9
and geometrical space, 203, 211, 213, 218
and mathematical order, 208, 209
Special instincts and environment, 138, 168, 192-3, 194
and recollections, 167, 168, 180
as variations on a theme, 167, 172, 264
Species, articulate, 133
evolution of, 247, 255, 269
and external finality, 128-9, 130-1, 132, 266
fossil, 102
human, as goal of evolution, 266, 267
human, styled homo faber, 139
and instinct, 140, 167, 170-2, 264
and life, 167
similarity within, 223-6, 228-9, 230-1
Speculation, dead-locks in, xii, 155, 156, 312, 313-4
object of philosophy, 44, 152, 196, 198, 220, 225-6, 227, 251, 270-1,
273, 297-8, 306-7, 317, 347-8
Spencer, Herbert, xi, xiv, 78-9, 153, 188, 189, 190, 364, 365
Spencer's evolutionism, correspondence between mind and matter in, 368
cosmogony in, 188
imprint of relations and laws upon consciousness in, 188
matter in, 365, 367
mind in, 365, 367
Spheres, concentric, in Aristotle's philosophy, 328
Sphex, paralyzing instinct in, 172-5
Spiders and paralyzing hymenoptera, 172
Spinal cord, 110
Spinoza, the adequate and the inadequate, 353
cause, 277
dogmatism, 356, 357
eternity, 353
extension, 350
God, 351, 357
intuitionism, 347
mechanism, 348, 352, 355, 356
time, 362
Spirit, 251, 269, 270
Spirituality and materiality, 128-9, 201-3, 316-7, 208-9, 210-1, 212-3,
217, 218, 219, 222-3, 237, 238, 245, 247-8, 249, 251, 254, 256, 257,
259, 261, 267, 270-1, 272, 276, 343
Spontaneity of life, 86, 237.
See Freedom
and mechanism, 40
in vegetables, 109
and the willed order, 224
Sport (biol.), 63
Starch, in the function of vegetable kingdom, 114
States of becoming, 1, 13, 163, 247-8, 299, 300, 307
Static character of the intellect, 155-6, 163, 274, 298
views of becoming, 273
Stehasny, 124 note
Steam-engine and bronze, parallel as epoch-marking, 138-9
Stentor and individuality, 260
Stoics, 316
Storing of solar energy by plants, 246, 253-6
Strain of bow and indivisibility of motion, 308
Stream, duration as a, 39, 338
Structure and function. See Function and structure
identical, in divergent lines of evolution, 55, 60, 61-2, 63, 69, 73-4,
75, 76-7, 83, 86, 87, 118-9
Subject and attribute, 147-8
Substance, albuminoid, 120-1
continuity of living, 162
organic, 121, 131, 140, 142, 149, 162-3, 195-7 note, 255, 267
in Spinoza's philosophy, 350
ternary substances, 121
Substantives, adjectives, verbs, correspond to the three classes of
representation, 302-4
Substitution essential to representation of the Nought, 281, 283-4,
289-90, 291, 294, 296
Success of physics, 218, 219-20
and superiority, 133, 264-5
Succession in time, 10, 339, 340, 341, 345. Cf. Juxtaposition
Successors of Kant, 363, 364
Sudden mutations, 28, 62-3, 64-5, 68-9
Sun, 115, 241, 323
Superaddition of existence upon nothingness, 276
of order upon disorder, 236, 275
Superimposition. See Measurement of qualities, in induction, 216
Superiority, evolutionary, 133-5, 173, 174-5
Superman, 267
Supraconsciousness, 261
Survival of the fit, 169.
See Natural selection
Swim, learning to, as instinctive learning, 193, 194
Symbol, the concept is a, 161, 209, 341-2
of reality, xi, 30-1, 71, 88-9, 93, 195-6, 210, 240, 342, 360-1, 369-70
Symbolic knowledge of life, 199, 342, 360
Symbolism, 176, 180, 360
Sympathetic or intuitive knowledge, 209, 210, 342
Sympathy, instinct is, 164, 168, 172-8, 342-3.
See Divination, Feeling, Inspiration
Systematic metaphysics, dilemma of, 195, 196, 230-1
contrasted with intuitional, 191-2, 193-4, 238, 269, 270, 277, 346-8
postulate of, 190, 195
Systematization of physics, Liebniz's philosophy, 347
Systems, isolated, 9-13, 203, 214, 215, 241, 242, 342, 347-9
Tangent and curve, analogy with deduction and the moral sphere, 214
analogy with physico-chemistry and life, 31
Tarakevitch, 124 note
Teleology. See Finalism
Tendency, antagonistic tendencies of life, 13, 98, 103, 113, 135, 150
antagonistic tendencies in development of nervous system, 124-5
complementary tendencies of life, 51, 103, 135, 150, 168, 246
to dissociation, 260
divergent tendencies of life, 54, 89, 99, 101, 107-8, 109-10, 112,
116-8, 134, 135, 150, 181, 246, 254-8
to individuation, 13
life a tendency to act on inert matter, 96
toward mobility in animals, 109, 110, 113, 127-8, 129-33, 135, 181, 182
the past exists in present tendency, 5
to reproduce, 13
of species to change, 85-86
mathematical symbols of tendencies, 22, 23
toward systems, in matter, 10
transmission of, 80-1
a vital property is a, 13
Tension and extension, 236, 245
and freedom, 200-2, 207-8, 223, 237, 239, 300-2
matter the inversion of vital, 239
of personality, 199-200, 201, 207-8, 237, 239, 300
Ternary substances, 121
Theology consequent upon philosophy of ideas, 316
Theoretic fallacies, 263, 264
knowledge and instinct, 177, 268
knowledge and intellect, 155, 177, 179, 238, 270, 342, 343
Theorizing not the original function of the intellect, 154-5
Theory of knowledge, xiii, 178, 180, 184-5, 197, 204, 207-8, 209,
228-9, 231
of life, xiii, 178, 180, 197
Thermodynamics, 241-2.
See Conservation of energy, Degradation of energy
Thesis and antithesis, 205
Thing as distinguished from motion, 187, 202, 247-8, 249, 299-300
as distinguished from relation, 147, 148, 150, 152, 158-9, 159-60,
161, 187, 202, 352, 356-7
and mind, 206
as solidification operated by understanding, 249
Thing-in-itself, 205, 206, 230-1, 312
Timaeus, 318 note
Time and the absolute, 240, 241, 297-8, 339, 343-4
abstract, 21, 22, 37, 39
articulations of real, 331-3
as force, 16, 45-6, 47, 51, 103, 339
homogeneous, 17, 18, 163-4, 331-3
as independent variable, 20, 335-7
interval of, 9, 22, 23
as invention, 341-2
in Leibniz's philosophy, 351, 352, 362
and logic, 4, 277
and simultaneity, 9, 336, 337, 341
in modern science 321-37, 341-5
and space in Kant, 205
and space in ancient philosophy, 318, 319.
See Duration
Tools and intellect, 137-41, 150-1.
See Implement
Torpor, in evolution, 109, 111, 113, 114 note, 120, 128-35, 181, 292
Tortoise, Achilles and the, in Zeno, 311
Touch, science expresses all perception as touch, 168
is to vision as intelligence to instinct, 169
Track laid by motion along its course, 309-12, 337
Transcendental Aesthetic, 203
Transformation, 32, 72, 73, 131, 231, 263
Transformism, 23-5
Transition, form a snapshot view of, 301-2, 316-7, 318, 321, 344-5
Transmissibility of acquired characters, 75-84, 87, 168, 169, 172-3,
225-6, 230-1
Transmission of the vital impetus, 26, 27, 79, 85, 87, 88, 93-4, 110,
126-7, 128, 230, 231, 246, 255, 256, 257, 259, 270
Trigger-action of motor mechanisms, 272
Triton, Regeneration in, 75
Tropism and psychical activity, 35 note
Truth seized in intuition, 318-20
Unconscious effort, 170
instinct, 142-3, 144, 145-6, 147, 166
knowledge, 145-8, 150-1
Unconsciousness, two kinds of, 144
Undefinable, reality, 13, 48
Understanding, absoluteness of, 153-4, 190-1, 197-8, 199, 200
and action, ix, xi, 179
genesis of the, ix-xv, 49, 189, 207-8, 257-9, 359, 361-2
and geometry, ix, xii
and innateness of categories, 147, 148-9
and intuition, 46-7
and life, ix-xv, 13, 32-3, 46-50, 88-9, 101, 147-8, 149, 152, 162-5,
173-4, 176-7, 178, 195-201, 213, 220, 222-3, 224,
226, 257-9, 261,
266, 270, 271, 313, 361-2, 365
and inert matter, 166, 168, 179, 194-5, 198, 205-6, 207, 219, 355
and the ready-made, xiii, 48, 237, 250, 251, 273, 311, 321, 328-9,
354, 358
and the solid, ix
unlimited scope of the, 149, 150, 152
See Intellect, Intelligence, Concept, Categories, Frames
of the understanding, Logic
Undone, automatic and determinate evolution is action being, 249
Unfolding cause, 73, 74
Unforeseeableness of action, 47
of duration, 6, 164, 340-2
of evolution, 47, 48, 52, 86, 224
of invention, 164
of life, 164, 184
and the willed order, 224, 342-3
See Foreseeing
Unification as the function of the intellect, 152, 154, 357-8
Uniqueness of phases of duration, 164
Unity of extension, 154
of knowledge, 195-6
of life, 106-7, 250, 268, 271
of mental life, 268
and multiplicity as determinations of space, 351-3
of nature, 104-5, 189-90, 191, 195-6, 197, 199, 322, 352, 356-8
of the organism, 176-7
of science, 195-6, 197, 228-9, 230, 321, 322, 344-5, 347, 359-60, 362-3
Universal interaction, 188, 189
life, consciousness coextensive with, 186, 257, 270
Universe, continuity of, 346
Descartes's, 346
physical, and the idea of disorder, 233, 275
duration of, 10, 11, 241
evolution of, 241, 246 note
growth of, 342-3, 344
movement of, in Aristotle, 323
mutability of, 244, 245
as organism, 31, 241
as realization of plan, 40
rhythm of, 337, 339, 346-7
states of, considered by science, 336, 337
as unification of physics, 348-9, 357
Unknowable, the, of evolutionism, xi
the, in Kant, 204, 205, 206
Unmaking, the nature of the process of materiality, 245, 248, 249,
251, 272, 342-3
Unorganized bodies, 7-8, 14, 20, 21, 186.
See inert matter
instruments, 137-9, 140-1, 150-1
matter, cleft between, and the organized, 190, 191, 196, 197-9
matter, imitation of the organized by, 33-4, 35, 36
matter and science, 194-6
matter. See inert matter
Unwinding cause, 73
of immutability in Greek philosophy, 325, 352
Upspringing of invention, 164
Utility, 4-5, 150, 152, 154-5, 158-9, 160, 168, 187, 195-6, 247-8,
297-8, 328-9, 330
Vanessa levana and Vanessa prorsa, transformation of, 72
Variable, time as an independent, 20, 336
Variation, accidental, 55, 63-4, 68, 85, 168-9
of color, in lizards, 72, 74
by deviation, 82-3, 84
of evolutionary type, 23-4, 72 note, 131-2, 137-8, 167, 169, 171-2, 264
insensible, 63, 68
interest as cause of, 131-2
in plants, 85-86
Vegetable kingdom. See Plants
Verb, relation expressed by, 148
Verbs, substantives and adjectives, 303
Verse and prose, in illustration of the two kinds of order, 221, 232
Vertebrate, ix, 126, 130, 131-4, 141
Vibrations, matter analyzed into elementary, 201
Vicious circle, apparent, of intuitionism, 192-4, 196-7
of intellectualism, 194, 197, 318-9, 320
View, intellectual, of becoming, 4, 90-1, 273, 298-9, 304, 305, 310, 326-7
intellectual, of matter, 203, 240, 250, 254, 255
of reality, 206
Vignon, P., 35 note
Virtual actions, 12.
See Possible action
geometry, 212
[Pg 407]Vise, consciousness compressed in a, 179
Vision of God, in Alexandrian philosophy, 322
in molluscs. See Eye of molluscs, etc.
in Salamandra maculata, 75
Vital activity, 134-6, 139, 140, 166-9, 246, 247-8
current, 26, 27, 53-5, 80, 85, 87, 88, 96-105, 118-9, 120, 230-1,
232, 239, 257, 266, 270
impetus, 50-1, 53-5, 85, 87, 88, 98-105, 118-9, 126-7, 128, 131-2,
141-2, 148-9, 150, 218, 230-1, 232, 247-8, 250,
252, 254-5, 261
order, cause in, 34, 35, 94-5, 164
order, finality and, 223-5, 226
order, generalization in the, and in the mathematical order contrasted,
225, 226, 230-1
order, and the geometrical order, 222-3, 225, 226, 230, 231, 235,
236, 330-1
order, imitation of physical order by vital, 230
principle, 42, 43, 225, 226
order, repetition in the vital and the mathematical orders contrasted,
225, 226, 230, 231
process, 166-7
Vitalism, 42, 43
Void, representation of, 273, 274, 275, 277-8, 281, 283-4, 289-90,
291, 292, 294, 296, 298
Voisin, 80
Volition and cerebral mechanism, 253-4
Voluntary activity, 110, 252
Vries (de), 24, 63 note, 85
Wasps, instinct in, 140, 172
Weapons and intellect, 137
Weismann, 26, 78, 80-1
Will and caprice, 47
and cerebral mechanism, 252
current of, penetrating matter, 237
insertion of, into reality, 305-6, 307
and relaxation, 201, 207-8
and mechanism in disorder, 233
tension of, 199, 201, 207-8
Willed order, mutual contingency of willed order and mathematical
order, 231-3
unforeseeability in the, 224, 342-3
Willing, coincidence of seeing and, in intuition, 237
Wilson, E.B., 36
Wolff, 75 note
Words and states, 4, 302-3
three classes of, corresponding to three classes of representation,
302-3, 313-4
World, intelligible, 162-3
principle: conciousness, 237, 261
Worms, in illustration of ambiguity of primitive organisms, 130
Yellow-winged sphex, paralyzing instinct in, 172
Zeno on motion, 308-13
Zone of potentialities surrounding acts, 179-80, 181, 264
Zoology, 128-9
Zoospores of algae, in illustration of mobility in plants, 112
Abolition of everything a self-contradiction, 280, 283, 296, 298
idea of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__.
See Nothing
Absence of order, 231, 234, 274.
View Disorder
Absolute and freedom, 277
reality, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-9, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
reality of the individual, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
time and the, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
Absoluteness of duration, 206
of understanding, xi, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
Abstract becoming, 304-7
multiplicity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-9
time, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-2, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__-9, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__-3
Accident and essence in Aristotle's philosophy, 353
in evolution, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-7, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__-7
Accidental variations, 55, 63, 68, 69, 74, 85-6, 168
Accumulation of energy, function of vegetable organisms, 253, 255
Achilles and tortoise, in Zeno, 311, 312-3
Acquired characters, inheritance of, 76-9, 83-4, 87, 169, 170, 173, 231
Act, consciousness as inadequacy of, to representation, 144
form (or essence), quality, three types of representation, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-3
Action, creativeness of free, 192, 247
and ideas, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
and consciousness, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__-80, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__
discontinuity of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
animal freedom, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
as a function of the nervous system, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-3
indivisibility of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-9
and inert matter, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-2, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__
instinct and, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
tool of awareness, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
tool for living, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
instrument of matter, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-9
as a tool for awareness, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
and intellect. See Mind and action
The intensity of consciousness changes based on the ratio of what is possible to what is real, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
meaning of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-3
moves from want to fulfillment, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
organism a machine for, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__
and perception, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__-30, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__
possible, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__-7, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__-81, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__
and science, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-6, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-9, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-30
and space, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
realm of intelligence, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
tension in a free, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__-2
Activity, dissatisfaction the starting-point of, 297
of instinct, connected with the vital process, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
life as, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-9, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
inverse factors in vital, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
and nervous system, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-3, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-3
organism as, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
potential. See Action, feasible
tension of free, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-1
and stagnation in evolution, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__-20, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__-30, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-6, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__
vital, has evolved differently, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
See divergent paths of evolution
Adaptation, 50-1, 55, 57-8, 59, 70, 101, 129, 133, 192, 255, 270, 305-6
and cause, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
mutual, between materiality and intellectuality, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-7
and progress, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-2
Adequate and inadequate in Spinoza, 353
Adjectives, substantives and verbs, 303-4, 315
Aesthetics and philosophy, 177
Affection, Role of, in the idea of chance, 234
in the concept of zero, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-3, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
in denial, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-7
Affirmation and negation, 285-6, 293
Age and individuality, 15-6
Albuminoid substances, 121-2
Alciope, 96
Alexandrian philosophy, 322, 323
Algae in illustration of probable consciousness in vegetable forms, 112
Alimentation, 113-4, 117, 247
Allegory of the Cave, 191
Alternations of increase and decrease of mutability of the universe, 245-6
Alveolar froth, 33-4
Ambiguity of the idea of "generality" in philosophy, 230-1, 320-1
of basic organisms, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-30
Ammophila hirsuta, paralyzing instinct in, 173
Amoeba, in illustration of imitation of the living by the unorganized, 33-6
To illustrate the ambiguity of primitive organisms, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
to demonstrate the mobility characteristic of animals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
to illustrate the "explosive" energy expenditure typical of animals, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Anagenesis, 34
Anarchy, idea of, 233, 234.
View Disorder
Anatomy, comparative, and transformism, 25
Ancient philosophy, Achilles and tortoise, 311-2
Alexandrian philosophy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-3
Allegory of the Cave, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Anima (De), __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ note
Peak of practical object, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__
Archimedes, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4
Aristotle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__-33, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_9__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_10__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_11__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_12__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_13__
Arrow of Zeno, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-13
ascent to God, in Aristotle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Astronomy, ancient and modern, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-6
attraction and drive in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4
becoming in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
bow and indivisibility of motion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-9
Caelo (De) by Aristotle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ note, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__ note
and Cartesian geometry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-5
causality in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-6
change in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-9, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-3
cinematic nature of, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
circularity of God's thinking, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4
concentric spheres, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
concepts, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-7, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
"conversion" and "parade" in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
degradation of ideas into meaningful flow, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-3
degrees of reality, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
reduction, the process of becoming through. See Degradation of Ideas, etc.
duration, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-9 note, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-9
Eleatic philosophy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
Enneads of Plotinus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ note
essence and accident, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
essence or form, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-5
eternal, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-6
Eternity, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-9
extension, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ note, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__
form or idea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-20, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-31, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
geometry, Cartesian, and ancient philosophy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
God of Aristotle, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-7, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
υλη, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
Idea, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-22, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-3
and indivisibility of motion, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
intelligible reality in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
intelligibles of Plotinus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
λσγος, of Plotinus, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__ note
matter in Aristotle's philosophy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
and modern astronomy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
and modern geometry, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-4
and modern philosophy, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-7, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-9, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-2, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_5__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_6__-51, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_7__,
__A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_8__
and modern science, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-30, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_2__-3, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_3__-5, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_4__
motion in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__-8, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__-3
necessity in, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
thought process, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
non-being, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_1__
poetic mind, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_0__
oscillation about existence, sensible reality as, __A_TAG_PLACEHOLDER_
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!